"Michaels, Barbara - Wings of the Falcon (v1.0) [html]" - читать интересную книгу автора (as Barbara Michaels)
Wings of the Falcon
ELIZABETH
PETERS
WRITING AS
BARBARA MICHAELS
To Joan and Fred Caroline, Mary
Ann, and Nancy and the four-footed Hartsocks whose number is, at the
time, Indeterminate.
Though all of the characters in this book are completely
fictitious, some of the more improbable events are based on actual
fact. The history of the Risorgimento in Italy is filled with incidents
as dramatic as any writer could invent. The Falcon, of course, is an
invention; but Emilio and Attilio Bandiera are not. The town of Parezzo
is imaginary, but Perugia's insurrection and the retaliation of the
papal troops are factual. Captain De Merode is a fictitious character,
but Schmidt of Perugia and other mercenary commanders supplied the data
on which I based my fanatical soldier. There is not and never was a
family like the Tarcontis. However, their Etruscan cemetery resembles
real ones and the tomb of the princess is based on the historical
Regolini-Galassi tomb. Several early excavators claim to have seen
perfectly preserved bodies crumble as the air entered the tomb. Even
the white rabbits come from a factual account by Mrs. Hamilton Gray.
The historical background of Italy in 1860 is as accurate
as I could make it. I hope I have succeeded in conveying the courage
and dedication of the men who fought to unite Italy and free her of
medieval institutions.
Contents
Chapter 1
Authors who write in
the first person cannot expect their…
Chapter 2
To call my cousin
Andrea impetuous is to do him…
Chapter 3
When I awoke, the
interior of the coach was dusky…
Chapter 4
Girls know when they
are pretty. Mirrors may lie, but…
Chapter 5
"You were never in
serious danger, you know." How he…
Chapter 6
We were late returning,
and the others were just sitting…
Chapter 7
Stefano had sprained
his ankle; he retired to his lair…
Chapter 8
One breathlessly hot
afternoon a week or so after Andrea's…
Chapter 9
No one said anything to
Miss Perkins about the flowerpot…
Chapter 10
Time had no meaning in
the stifling darkness. It might…
Chapter 11
She had been speaking
Italian, of course. I ought to…
Authors who write in the first person cannot expect their
readers to be seriously concerned about the survival of the main
character. A heroine who can describe her trials and tribulations in
carefully chosen phrases obviously lived through those trials without
serious damage. Yet I remember being absolutely breathless with
suspense when the madwoman entered Miss Jane Eyre's chamber and rent
her wedding veil asunder; and I bit my nails to the quick as I followed
the perils of Mrs. Radcliffe's haunted heroines.
Not being Miss Brontë or Mrs. Radcliffe, I have no
hope of engaging my reader's attention to that
extent. Yet some of the experiences that befell me, at a certain period
of my life, were as distressing and almost as improbable as any of my
favorite heroines' adventures. Perhaps my youth and inexperience made
my problems seem worse than they were. But even now, when I am a good
many years older (I prefer not to state how many)--even now a
reminiscent shiver passes through me as I remember Lord Shelton, and
that dreadful moment when he held me helpless in his grasp, with his
breath hot on my averted face and his hands tearing at my gown.
I anticipate. It is necessary to explain how I found
myself in such a predicament; and that explanation must incorporate
some of my family history.
My father was an artist--not a very good one, I fear. It
is a pity, in a way, that his father was able to leave him a small sum
of money, for without it Father would have had to seek gainful
employment instead of pursuing the elusive genius of art. His small
inheritance was enough to keep him in relative comfort for several
years, while he traveled on the continent, ending, finally, in that
artists' mecca, Rome. To a young man of romantic tastes and ardent
spirits, the old capital of the Caesars had many attractions beyond its
artistic treasures--the colorful models who waited for employment on
the Spanish Steps, the companionship of other struggling young artists,
the wine and laughter and song in the soft Italian nights.
Father was a remarkably good-looking man, even when he
was dying. Consumption is not a disfiguring disease. Indeed, that is
one of its diabolical qualities, that it should give its victims a
ghastly illusion of health and beauty just before the end. Father's
slenderness and delicacy of features were intensified by the ravages of
the disease. The pallor of his complexion was refined by soft dark hair
and lustrous black eyes framed by lashes so long and thick that any
woman would have envied them.
Knowing him as he was in his decline, I can imagine how
handsome he was at twenty, when he met my mother, and I can understand
how he won her heart so quickly. Her family did not find it so easy to
understand; for she was the daughter of a noble Italian house. In the
ordinary course of events my father would never have met her. A
romantic accident threw them together. The carriage in which she was
traveling to Rome was delayed by bad weather, and in the darkness was
set upon by bandits. Her attendants fled or were overcome; and Father
happened upon the scene at the most critical moment, just as the
miscreants were dragging the lady from the carriage. As his horse came
thundering down upon them, the bandits thought him the leader of a
troop of defenders, so that there was time for him to lift my mother's
fainting form into the saddle and escape before they discovered their
error.
By the fitful moonlight he had seen enough to make out
the shrinking form of a woman, beset by the men who threatened her
person or her property, or both; but it was not until they reached the
inn, fortunately not many miles distant, that he saw the face of the
girl he had saved.
I resemble her only in my coloring--which some might find
surprising, for I am fair-haired and blue-eyed. In fact, not all
Italians are dark. Those of the northern regions are often fair, and
there was some such strain in my mother's family. My features are more
like those of my father, and although he could not be overly modest
about his looks without denigrating mine, he would never allow that any
woman could equal my mother's beauty.
Of course the circumstances of their first meeting were
romantic enough to dazzle any young man. My mother was in a dead faint
when he carried her into the inn and placed her on a settle by the
hearth. The firelight turned her tumbled ringlets to red-gold; and this
gleaming halo framed a countenance of pure perfection. As he knelt
beside her, supporting her head upon his arm, her lashes fluttered and
lifted. The first thing she saw was his face--young, handsome, glowing
with emotion; the first sensation she was conscious of feeling was the
strength of his arm, tenderly yet respectfully embracing her.
It is no wonder they fell in love at first sight. What is
wonderful is that their love should have won out over all obstacles.
That first night they were both too young and too bewitched by one
another to think sensibly, or they would have realized that their only
hope lay in an immediate elopement. But the practical difficulties were
great. For one thing, it was virtually impossible for them to be
married in a country where Protestants were not even allowed to hold
church services. So the authorities were notified of the attack upon
the carriage, and Prince Tarconti was informed that his daughter was
safe; but not before the lovers had had time to converse for hours in a
language more eloquent than Father's fluent if ungrammatical Italian.
How well I knew each detail of that romantic history! It
was my favorite bedtime story in childhood, and if my mother was the
saint to whom I addressed my childish prayers, a certain Count Ugo
Fosilini was the villain of my youthful nightmares. A remote family
connection, he was the suitor destined for Francesca Tarconti by her
aristocratic father; she had been on her way to visit his parents in
Rome when Fate intervened. It was natural that he should be the
emissary sent by Prince Tarconti to recover his daughter. As soon as
Count Ugo set eyes on my father he knew he had a rival; and he took
care to insult him by offering him money as a reward for the rescue.
Of course Father dashed the gold indignantly to the
ground. The gesture was gallant but ill-advised, for it confirmed what
the Count had until then only suspected. My mother was at once removed
to the Fosilini palazzo in Rome, where she was kept a virtual prisoner.
This was not enough for the Count. He was too arrogant to challenge a
man whom he considered his social inferior, so he hired assassins, of
whom there were plenty to be found in Rome. My father was saved only
through the devotion of his friends, struggling young writers and
artists like himself. Some of them were members of a revolutionary
secret society, so they were more than willing to frustrate the plans
of Count Ugo, whose reputation as a cruel landlord was well known. The
members of one such group aided my father when he followed Mother to
the family estate in the hills of Umbria, and they were instrumental in
assisting in the couple's eventual escape from Italy. That was the most
exciting chapter in the story--Mother's flight from the sleeping
castle, accompanied by a devoted maidservant, through whom she had
maintained communications with Father; their desperate ride through the
night, with Mother in men's clothing, astride her plunging steed; the
fishing boat in Genoa, and the rough patriots who sailed it, carrying,
quite often, other cargo than fish; and the triumphant landing in
Marseilles.
They were married in London. My mother's rejection of all
she had left was total; she even gave up her religion. At first the
young couple lived obscurely, fearing retaliation; but as the months
passed they realized that Mother's family had reacted with the cold
arrogance typical of their class. Finally they learned, through friends
in Italy, that Prince Tarconti had disinherited his daughter and
forbidden her name to be pronounced in his hearing. To her family she
was as good as dead.
Alas, in only too short a time she was. She died at my
birth; and when Father wrote to Italy, to announce the two events, he
received no reply. Since he had acted only out of a sense of common
decency, he was not sorry that the correspondence ended there.
The succeeding years--seventeen of them--may be passed
over quickly. They were not good years for him; but I did not know that
until it was too late. With the selfishness of youth I wore the pretty
dresses, played with the expensive toys, and accepted the presence of
maids and nurses without wondering where the money came from, or why
Father was so often absent from home. He continued to paint and, I
assumed, to sell his paintings. It was not until one winter night, when
he collapsed in a fit of uncontrollable coughing as he bent to kiss me
good night, that I realized he was ill.
I was too young to understand the ominous portent of the
attack. He was quick to reassure me; and the action of a lady of his
acquaintance, in sending him to the south of France, undoubtedly did
prolong his life. I remained in England, in boarding school. I did not
realize that my school fees were part of Mrs. Barton's payment for my
father's services; nor that the term "patroness" was a euphemism for
her real role in his life.
She was not the first of his "patrons"--nor the last. I
understand that now. I do not judge him. I still believe he did it
primarily for me, to give me the comfort and security he could supply
in no other way.
After the incident I have mentioned, his health seemed to
improve, as it sometimes does with this illness. I saw very little of
him, and I was selfish enough to resent his neglect, as I saw it. I
cannot completely blame myself for failing to understand why he had to
keep me from him. He even managed to delude the innocent ladies who ran
the boarding school. It was in Yorkshire, far from the vicious gossip
of London, but the dear old Misses Smith would not have believed the
gossip if they had heard it. They adored my father, and always hovered
over him when he came on his rare visits, accepting him as the
gentleman of means he pretended to be.
Yet I loved him; and I
ought to have sensed the increasing desperation under his smiling
manner.
He had good reason to be desperate that winter before my
eighteenth birthday. The precarious pattern of existence he had built
was tottering on its foundation--and I, like a dweller in a house
riddled with insects, would have lived on in fancied security until the
floor collapsed under my feet. Certainly I would never have guessed
from his manner, when he came to fetch me for the Christmas holidays,
that anything was amiss. He had never looked more handsome, and the
dear old ladies fluttered about him, offering him wine and seed cake.
He was wearing a magnificent new watch chain of heavy gold, all hung
with beautiful little trinkets--carved cameos and lockets and the
like--which I longed to examine.
I sat demurely, though, my hands folded in my lap, as the
Misses Smith had taught me, while my future was discussed. With beaming
pride the ladies told him that my education was complete. I was the
star student, the parlor boarder, accomplished in all forms of
needlework, from broderie anglaise to
cross-stitch. My sampler, a magnificent picture of a lady and gentleman
in a grove of trees--with apples as large as the lady's powdered
head--was proudly displayed. My skill on pianoforte and harp was
praised, my knowledge of French commended. As I was soon to learn, my
father was an accomplished actor, but he found it difficult to
dissemble that day. The elder Miss Smith broke off in the midst of her
speech to comment with concern on the gray shade of his cheeks, and to
press more Madeira on him.
I think it was only in recent weeks that he had begun to
face the truth about his condition. Now he was being forced to face
another unpalatable truth he had tried to ignore. My schooldays were
almost over. I must leave school for…where? That was the problem now,
and it must have seemed to him that everything was collapsing at once.
He had played a role for many years. He carried off the
rest of the visit in style, and we took our places in the handsome
traveling coach, well wrapped in furs and robes against the chill of
winter. Snow was beginning to fall as we drove away from the school,
but I was too happy to care about the weather. I had not seen my father
for almost a year.
I did most of the talking, babbling on about Mary
Wentworth's shocking flirtation with the curate, and Alice Johnson's
cheating at map drawing, while Father listened with a smile. As the
afternoon drew on, my tongue slowed; finally I fell asleep.
I woke with a start. The shadows of early evening filled
the interior of the coach. Father was bending over me. In the dimness
his face shone with a pearly pallor, and something in his expression
filled me with alarm.
"What is it?" I cried, struggling against drowsiness.
Instantly he withdrew into the corner of the seat.
"Nothing, my love. I apologize for waking you. I was
studying your face. You are so like…"
He turned his face away. I was moved, for I thought I
understood his distress.
"Am I really like Mama? I thought--"
"You resemble her more and more as you grow. Do you know,
Francesca, that you are the same age she was when I first saw her?"
"If it distresses you to speak of her," I began, touching
his hand.
Roughly he drew it away.
"No! I must speak of her and of other things I have been
afraid to face. I was not always such a coward, my darling; but when
she died, something died in me too, my manhood, perhaps…."
Then he realized that his mood was alarming me. He took
my hand in his and smiled.
"Don't be upset. I feel the chagrin of a father who sees
his daughter growing away from him, who foresees the time when another
man will win her smiles. You are a young woman now, my love. Is there
no man who has touched your heart?"
This was the sort of talk I found pleasurable, if mildly
embarrassing--the sort of talk we girls indulged in late at night,
after the lights were out. I believe I blushed.
"Mary Ellen's brother is very handsome," I began. "When
he came to visit her last year we talked for a while; I found him so
pleasant! Mary Ellen said he liked me very much."
"Did she indeed." Father's voice sounded tired. I could
not see his features clearly. He went on, as if to himself, "But what
opportunity would you have, in that little island of innocence, to meet
young men? And which of them would offer, if he knew…What am I to do?
What in heaven's name am I to do with you?"
"But, Father," I exclaimed. "I don't want to marry. Why
can't I stay with you?"
My father let out a groan and buried his face in his
hands. Now genuinely frightened, I tugged at his fingers.
"What is it? Father, are you ill? Are you in pain?"
A long shudder passed through his body. Then he lowered
his hands and smiled at me. His voice was calm when he said,
"No…. It is only a little pain, my darling. Of course you
must stay with me. We will not be parted again, until…. Francesca, have
I ever spoken to you of your mother's family?"
"Often. What cruel people they must have been."
"I should not have given you that impression," he said
slowly. "I was wrong. I, of all people, should have understood their
grief at losing her."
"But wicked Count Ugo," I began.
My father muttered something I did not quite catch. I
thought I heard the word "fool," but did not know whether it applied to
the Count, or to me--or to himself.
"Even he must be excused," he said aloud. "I too would
have fought to keep her. And he is an old man now, if he is still
alive. I suppose he married and had children of his own. Let us not
speak of him. Your grandfather--"
"He was cruel," I said firmly. Yet the word struck me
strangely. The stern old man had been one of the villains of the story;
yet he was closely related to me, part of my blood; my mother's father,
the same to her as my adored parent was to me.
Father shook his head vigorously.
"He did what any father would have done. I can understand
him now that I too have a beloved daughter. He was not unkind to her,
Francesca. She loved him."
"She loved you more," I said.
"Yes."
He relapsed into silence after that. I thought he was
remembering the past. I know now that he was struggling with a cruel
decision. That night, after our supper at the inn where we broke our
journey, he called for the paper and ink and sat writing late. I
remember the way the candlelight touched his long, delicate fingers,
and the shadows it cast across his face. The hollows of his eye-sockets
and sunken cheeks became shapes of darkness, like the stark modeling of
a tragic mask.
II
The holidays were sheer delight. We had lodgings in a
fine old house in Leicester, maintained by a genteel elderly widow.
Like most women, she fell genteelly in love with Father, and we made
merry together, decking the house with Christmas boughs and holly. We
even had a Christmas tree. Prince Albert had introduced this German
custom when he married the queen, and the pretty fir trees, decked with
candles and ornaments, were now popular. I had made Father a pair of
slippers embroidered with purple pansies and sprays of an
eccentric-looking vegetable which was supposed to be rosemary--"for
remembrance," as I explained to him. The gifts I received were
magnificent, surpassing even his usual extravagance--a new pelisse,
trimmed with ermine and silver buttons, a tiny muff of gray squirrel, a
coral necklace, books, music for the pianoforte…too many to be
recalled. I went reluctantly back to school, cheered only by Father's
promise that he would come for me soon.
I expected to finish out the term, but to my surprise and
delight the moment of our next meeting came sooner than I dared hope.
It was early in April, when the buds were beginning to swell with green
promise, that Father next appeared. He came without advance warning,
and when I saw him I did not need Miss Bertha Smith's hastily checked
exclamation to be alerted to the change in his appearance.
He was handsomer than ever, if that was possible, with a
fine rosy flush on his cheeks; but he was terribly thin. Father
admitted cheerfully that he had been ill, and was still plagued by a
slight cough. But fine weather would soon set him up.
I accepted this facile good cheer, because I wanted to
believe it. There was nothing I, or anyone else, could have done for
him; yet I am still haunted by remorse when I think….
My boxes and parcels, hastily packed, were loaded onto
the carriage. The Misses Smith embraced me, weeping. I wept too, and
sobbed bitterly as I bade farewell to my friends. When the carriage
drove off and I leaned out the window, waving at the other girls, I was
sure they were a little jealous of me for having such a young, handsome
father. Little did I know that I would never see any of them again,
despite our promises of continued correspondence and future meetings;
or that they, the daughters of small merchants and prosperous
tradesmen, had far more hopeful futures than I.
III
Father had taken a house in Richmond, outside London. It
was a tiny box of a place, but it had lovely gardens. We led a very
retired life; I played for him on the pianoforte he had hired, and
worked at my drawing. I had a small talent for this skill and, with his
help, made considerable progress. I suppose that eventually I might
have become bored with our lack of social life, for we saw no one
except tradesmen and servants, but during those short weeks Father's
company was all I desired. He seemed quite gay; but sometimes I would
hear him coughing at night.
One afternoon I came back to the house after finishing a
sketch of the garden with it beds of daffodils. I was anxious to show
it to Father, I felt it was the best thing I had ever done. I was
wearing a white muslin-gown, with rose-colored ribbons, and ribbons of
the same shade trimmed my broad-brimmed hat. The day was unseasonably
warm, so I took the hat off as soon as I entered the house. I thought
Father was resting, as he usually did in the afternoon.
I came in through the side door, so I did not see the
carriage. I had no warning of guests until I approached the parlor door
and heard voices. Such was my haste, and my stupid innocence, that it
never occurred to me to wait, or even to knock. I merely thought, Good,
Father is awake--and opened the door.
I heard one sentence before they were aware of my
presence.
"But, my dear, surely you did not think you could elude
me forever, after such--"
A cry from my father made the speaker break off. He
turned on his heel, in a quick, violent movement.
He did not look like a man who could move so fast. He was
tall and heavily built; not fat, but with a flabbiness of face and body
that suggested self-indulgence. I was immediately struck by his attire,
with it small, peculiar touches of almost feminine elegance--gloves of
pearl-gray satin, a stickpin that was a single huge opal, and a cloak
lined with sea-green satin.
There was no reason why his appearance should have filled
me with such instinctive repugnance that I actually fell back a few
steps. He was not young, but his fleshy jowls and wrinkled cheeks were
not more unattractive than the faces of other men I had seen. Perhaps
it was his eyes, of a gray so pale that they seemed to blend with the
unhealthy pallor of his cheeks. A slow smile parted his lips, and I saw
that his teeth were stained an ugly yellow. I soon learned that he did
not smile often, perhaps for this reason.
My father, who had stood paralyzed during the few seconds
of time that elapsed, now moved as if to approach me. The other man did
not turn, but one arm shot out to bar Father's way. His lips had
closed, to hide the ugly teeth, but he was still smiling.
"Why, Allen," he said, in a mocking tone. "I understand
now the incentive for your--er--actions of late. No effort is too great
to keep this pearl snug in its little casket, eh? Will you introduce
me? No? Then…" His arm still out-stretched, he made me a courtly bow
and addressed me directly. "I am Shelton, my dear. Allen hasn't
mentioned me? How ungrateful! His oldest and dearest friend--the patron
who appreciates his talents so generously…. But I am a man of broad
tastes, I assure you. My interests are not limited to any single field
of…art."
I didn't understand what he was hinting. I thought him
ugly and unprepossessing, but courteous. Indeed, if he had bought
Father's paintings--for so I interpreted his remarks--he deserved a
pleasant answer. So I made him a curtsy, and said,
"How do you do, sir. I have been at school; you must
excuse my ignorance of my father's business affairs. I hope in future
to be closer to him."
I thought this a rather neatly turned little speech, and
was chagrined to observe that it struck Mr. Shelton quite dumb for a
moment. His eyes narrowed till they were mere slits in his face. Then
he began to chuckle softly.
"Father," he said, between chuckles. "Why, Allen, I would
never have supposed you had a child of…What are you, my dear--fifteen
or sixteen?"
"Almost eighteen," I said.
"Such a great age! (By the by, my dear, I am Lord
Shelton; you must call me ‘my lord,' or ‘your lordship,' eh? That's a
good girl.) Yes, a lovely age; so tender, so untouched…. But, Allen, I
must scold you for concealing this charming young lady. I would like to
be of service to her, as I am of service to her father. The three of us
should get on famously together, don't you think?"
From my father came a horrible, choking gasp. He fell
forward, clutching at Shelton's outstretched arm.
His lordship was quick to act. Lowering Father's limp
body to the floor, he bellowed for the servants in a stentorian voice
quite unlike his normal lisping whisper. The maid came running,
followed by the cook, and they dragged me forcibly from my father. He
was still choking, and from his parted lips issued a bright crimson
stream.
He died three days later. I was with him at the end. So
was my Lord Shelton. There was no way of keeping him out of the house;
indeed, I had no desire to do so, for during those three dreadful days
he managed everything. I would not have eaten or slept if he had not
ordered the meals and directed the servants; and they jumped to obey
his slightest wish as they had never obeyed my gentle, easygoing father.
If I thought of Lord Shelton at all, it was to regret my
first critical thoughts, for he was unfailingly kind, almost paternal,
in his manner. The only thing that bothered me was that he would not
allow me to be alone with Father. He said it would be too distressing
for me; but in fact Father lay unconscious the entire time, breathing
with difficulty.
The night Father died I knew the end was near. The doctor
had come and gone for the last time; there was nothing he could do. I
knelt by the bed holding Father's limp hand, praying for some last word
from him. His lordship sat at the foot of the bed, still as a statue,
his eyes never leaving my face. He did not speak. The sounds that broke
the dead silence were the yawns of the housemaid, who was present "for
the sake of propriety," as his lordship had remarked.
They say that the souls of the dying go out with the
tide, or with the turn from night to day. It was at that moment, when a
promise of dawn indicated the coming of morning, that my father's eyes
opened.
He did not see me. His gaze was fixed on a spot beyond
and above me, outside the candle's feeble light--a spot deep in
darkness. So intent was his look that involuntarily I turned my head to
see what it was he beheld. There was nothing there.
"Francesca," he said. His voice was young and strong. A
faint smile played about his lips. "Soon, my darling; soon."
Then, with horrifying abruptness and a strength utterly
incommensurate with the ravages of his disease, he sat bolt upright.
His eyes turned wildly, passing over me, and focusing finally on the
man who sat at the foot of the bed. His lordship rose to his feet. My
father tore his hand from my grasp and pointed, his finger quivering.
In the same strong voice he cried,
"It is a dead man who speaks to you, Shelton. As you act
toward my defenseless child, may God requite you in kind. Remember!"
A great gush of blood ended the speech. He fell back on
the pillow.
I felt as if some invisible artery had broken in me as
well; as if the vital fluid had escaped, leaving only a shell. With a
steady hand I closed my father's staring eyes. Blind instinct must have
told me that collapse was not far away, and that I must move now or be
beyond the capability of movement. I rose; like a sleepwalker I passed
his lordship, who was still standing, his hands raised as if to ward
off a blow. His face, shining with perspiration, looked like a mask of
yellowed wax. I was able to reach my own room, and my bed, before
unconsciousness claimed me.
IV
I passed the next few days in the same trancelike state.
I don't think I would have moved at all if the housemaid had not told
me what to do. Her name was Bessie; she was a good-natured, rather
stupid girl, and I attributed her care for me to genuine kindness. "You
must eat something, Miss Fran; see the nice soup cook has made for
you." "No, Miss Fran, you must not wear that dress, it is not
respectful to your poor papa to wear colors. Here is a new black frock
his lordship ordered for you."
His lordship was often mentioned. He had ordered the
funeral arrangements and selected the coffin. He paid the bills, too,
although I did not think of that; it never occurred to me to wonder how
the house was being run. But he did not come near me until the day
after the funeral.
There is some purpose to the rituals of death. They allow
a vent for grief, so that it does not turn inward. The services were
short and simple, the mourners few--besides me, there were only the
servants and his lordship. Father was buried in the little cemetery of
the nearby church, St. Margaret's. It was a beautiful spring day. I
stood in tearless calm by the grave, his lordship beside me, but when
the first clods struck hollow on the coffin, I felt an echoing blow in
my heart. I wept that night, for the first time, while Bessie comforted
me in her clumsy way.
Later that night, after she had tiptoed out under the
false impression that I slept, I lay staring into the darkness. I
wished that the comfortable stupor of those early days had not left me,
for the thoughts that now pressed in were not pleasant. I was alone.
What was to become of me? For the first time I thought about money. Not
proper, perhaps, for a newly bereaved daughter; but I was discovering a
hard inner core of practicality which I had not had to draw upon until
then.
It brings a wry smile to my lips now to recall that I
thought of his lordship as my best hope. Had he not promised to be of
assistance to me? Had he not carried out the sorrowful duties attendant
upon death with tactful care? And was he not, by his own claim, my
father's friend? So young, so foolish was I that I even interpreted
Father's dying speech as an appeal to a trusted comrade. I was glad,
therefore, on the following evening, when his lordship was announced.
I was sitting in the parlor; the last gentle light of
sunset was fading in the west. I had asked Bessie to bring my
embroidery, but I was not making much progress with it. Painful
thoughts would intrude.
I rose to greet him, putting my work down on the table,
and despite my feelings of gratitude I did not care for the way his
narrow gray eyes moved over me. I was wearing my only black dress, the
one he had ordered for me; I was suddenly conscious of the way it clung
to the contours of bosom and waist.
"Your lordship." I made him a curtsy. "I am glad you have
come; I wanted to thank you--"
"There is no need for that." He advanced a few steps into
the room and then turned to Bessie, who as lingering by the door. "The
room is abominably dark," he said curtly. "Bring more candles."
When she had obeyed, he seemed to be more at ease.
"There, that is better. You may go now."
Inexperienced as I was, I knew he should not have been
giving orders to my servant in my presence. But it would not have been
gracious to say so, after all he had done. Yet, when the door had
closed after Bessie, I had a panicky feeling of abandonment. I told
myself I was behaving foolishly…. But his look was so odd! He kept
turning his head, searching the shadowy corners. I started to sit down
and then, though I could not have said why, I decided to remain
standing.
"You have been so kind," I said, while he continued to
inspect the room like a tyrant afraid of assassins. "I am glad to have
the opportunity to thank--"
"Your father was my friend." He interrupted again. The
word "thank" seemed to vex him. "Yes, my dearest friend. I feel his
loss."
"So do I," I said softly.
"As his friend…" He hesitated for a moment and then
seemed to take courage. "After all," he said loudly, "what other choice
is there? I am doing the chit a kindness."
I felt as if he were not addressing me, but some
invisible third person. It was not a comfortable feeling.
"Your lordship," I said distinctly.
He looked squarely at me, and a light came to his narrow
eyes.
"A kindness," he repeated. "Yes; it would be a crime to
let such beauty fade, in a factory or on the streets. Someone will
enjoy it, she is too young, too naïve…. Why not I? I have the best
right. I'll protect her. I'll crown that golden hair with rubies,
though it is like a crown itself…."
He began advancing toward me. His face was horrible,
flushed and swollen; his tongue darted in and out like that of a
serpent, moistening his lips. I backed away. He stopped and his eyes
narrowed cunningly.
"Wouldn't you like rubies, sweetheart? Emeralds, if you
prefer; by God, you are worth it, you'll be a sensation if I choose to
display you instead of keeping you all to myself. And pretty clothes,
my love; gowns of satin and silk instead of that ugly black; fine lace
around those pretty white shoulders…."
With one of those quick, serpentine movements, so
unexpected from a man of his bulk, he darted forward and caught me in
his arms.
No man had ever held me in that way before. His gross,
flabby body against mine sickened me. Although he was not heavily
muscled, he was so much bigger than I that my frantic struggles were of
no avail. I tried to scream. Only a faint cry came from my straining
throat, and he laughed aloud and pressed me closer to him.
"Don't waste your breath calling for Bessie, sweetheart.
She's too busy counting the gold I have given her. It is my money that
has paid her wages all along--or didn't you know that?"
I stopped struggling for a moment as the sense of his
words penetrated my mind. His head struck, as a snake's might; I turned
my own head to avoid his lips and felt them hot and wet against my
neck. He continued to mumble, between kisses, saying horrible things,
things that hurt even more than the pressure of his arms.
"Paid her wages--and everything else, the food that went
into your pretty little mouth, my love…. How do you think Allen got his
money, my darling? I gave him everything, the ungrateful--" I don't
remember the word; it was one I had never heard. He went on, gasping,
"Ungrateful. Ran away; stole…. You owe me for that, little love, you
must pay your father's debts. Doing you a favor. Kindness on my part.
Haven't had a woman for…. Almost a new experience, an interesting
change…. You're like him, you know. Except for that golden crown of
hair…."
The dreadful, mumbling monologue went on and on.
Understanding only a small part of what he meant, I felt my senses
falter. Coward that I was, I almost welcomed the merciful anesthesia of
unconsciousness, but when his clawing hand closed on the collar of my
dress and ripped it down over my shoulders, the cool air struck my bare
flesh like a dash of ice water. I revived; I struggled again, and tried
again to scream. The sound was muffled by his lordship's mouth closing
over mine. His touched filled me with such loathing that I summoned up
enough strength to bite him. He swore, but he freed my mouth long
enough to enable me to give one last despairing cry.
I do not believe that miracles occur in this modern age,
at least not to unworthy persons like myself. What happened was not a
miracle, it was surprising only in its timing. But there was one
strange thing; I cannot account for it even now. The cry that came to
my lips, the name I called upon, was not Bessie's, nor that of my
father, so recently gone from me.
"Mother!" I screamed.
I had one glimpse of his lordship's face looming over me,
filling all my vision like a devil's mask; I closed my eyes, knowing
that I was lost, praying for unconsciousness. Then suddenly I felt
myself falling. I tried to scream again but there wasn't a scream left
in me; I could only gasp for breath, and give an undignified grunt as I
landed on the carpet in a sitting position. Momentarily I expected to
feel Lord Shelton's arms grasping me again. When nothing happened, I
dared to open my eyes.
I will never forget my first sight of him.
Under the circumstances any man would have looked like an avenging hero
to me--Saint George, Apollo, Perseus rolled into one. And he was so
handsome! Tall and broad-shouldered, his hair a mass of clustering gold
ringlets, his features strong…. He appeared larger than life as he
towered over me. His face was set in a scowl and his strong brown hands
held Lord Shelton by the throat. He shook him as a terrier might shake
a rat; and then, with a gesture of magnificent contempt, he flung the
limp body away. His lordship struck a chair, which collapsed under his
weight and let him roll ignominiously to the floor amid the broken
splinters.
Then my rescuer turned to me. He dropped to one knee. His
eyes were blue; they blazed like pools of deep water with sunlight in
their depths. My hands flew to my breast in an effort to gather the
rags of my dress around me. At once the young man turned his eyes away.
"Are you hurt?" he asked, in a deep, reverberant
baritone. "If he has harmed you, I will kill him."
I was hurt, certainly; his lordship's fingers had left
aching spots that would be bruises in a few hours, and his nails had
raked my shoulders. But I knew what my rescuer meant. I had acquired
worldly wisdom quickly and painfully.
"No," I croaked. "No, you mustn't kill him, he didn't….
You will only get into trouble."
"Bah," said my hero vigorously. "Who cares for that? This
cretino, this vandal has dared to touch you…. Do
you allow--may I have the honor to carry you to your room? Then I will
return to deal with this creature."
He had the most beautiful hands. Long-fingered and
slender, yet utterly masculine in their sinewy strength, they
hesitated, giving me time to withdraw, or protest. I did neither. As he
gathered me gently into his arms I let my head fall against his broad
chest. He rose effortlessly to his feet. Then he turned to his
lordship, who was crawling toward the door.
"He glides, like the serpent he is," remarked my hero
with satisfaction. "Will you not arise, villain, and let me kick you? I
am sorry now that I dirtied my hands on such trash."
His lordship gathered himself together and staggered to
his feet. He would have looked pathetic--his clothing disordered, his
age very apparent--had it not been for the naked malevolence in his
eyes.
"Nor do I use my hands to avenge an injury," he snarled.
"There are better ways. You have no right--"
"I have the best right," said the strange young man
emphatically. "Old rascal, I would challenge you if you were worthy of
the honor. Those of my race do not fight with low persons.
"Your race?" His lordship sneered. "I am Lord Shelton--"
"And I am the Conte Andrea del Baldino Tarconti. My
father is Prince Tarconti; and we trace our ancestry back three
thousand years to the kings of Etruria. Yes…." he went on, as his
lordship turned an ugly purplish shade, "Yes, you see that I do have
the right. I am this lady's cousin, and her natural protector; and
since you claim to have a few drops of gentle blood, I may trouble
myself to kill you after all, my lord."
To call my cousin Andrea impetuous is to do him no more
than justice. The circumstances of our first meeting necessitated
behavior that might not have been characteristic; as he afterwards
said, the sight that met his horrified eyes when, in response to my
desperate cry, he burst through the door could only be answered by
immediate, vigorous action. I was soon to learn, however, that such
action was habitual to him; he was enthusiastic, forthright, direct.
When I opened my eyes the morning after his dramatic
appearance, it was his hearty voice outside my door that had awakened
me. Without that assurance of his reality I think I should have
considered that I had been dreaming. Then I turned over in my bed and
received further confirmation; my body ached from head to foot.
From the tones of Andrea's voice I gathered that he was
expostulating with someone, but I was unable to hear another voice, he
spoke so loudly and so continuously. Finally the door opened and
Bessie's head came in--only her head, no more. Seeing me awake, she
allowed the rest of her person to follow her head.
"Miss?" she quavered. "Are you ready to get up, miss?"
"Yes," I said shortly. I had not forgiven her for her
part in my betrayal, although Andrea had reduced her to tears and howls
of repentance, the previous night, when he heard what she had done.
"Female Judas," was the mildest of the epithets he applied to her. He
had proposed flinging her out into the night, but it was obvious that I
could not remain in the house without an attendant, so Andrea had
allowed her to stay, promising to spend the night himself in order to
ensure my safety. Whether he had done so or not I did not know. I had
not expected to sleep at all that night, but I fell into oblivion as
soon as Bessie had put me to bed. Now, except for my bodily aches, I
felt amazingly cheerful. I wondered if my cousin was really as handsome
as I remembered.
I did not find out for some time, since Andrea refused to
come into my bedchamber, even after Bessie had wrapped me in my
dressing gown. It covered me from my chin to my toes, and seemed to me
quite a respectable garment; but when I came out of my room Andrea took
one look at me, blushed deeply, and looked elsewhere. Even when we were
seated at the breakfast table, with Bessie serving us, he found it hard
to look directly at me.
It may seem strange that I was able to eat, and heartily,
devouring eggs and chops with my usual appetite. Our social system
makes hypocrites of women, but I was not old enough to pretend to
feelings I did not have. The growing admiration in my cousin's blue
eyes assured me that I had nothing more to fear. It is easy to accept
miracles when one is seventeen. As the meal progressed, Andrea grew
more at ease, and finally he said naïvely, "In England, a young
lady may appear in her nightclothes without impropriety, is it so?"
I stopped eating, a forkful of food halfway to my lips,
and contemplated the ample folds of my dressing gown in some dismay. It
had not occurred to me that that was the cause of his embarrassment;
Father and I had always breakfasted so.
"It is not my night attire, really," I said. "I don't
think…. Surely, since you are a member of the family--a cousin--"
"A half cousin only," said Andrea, with what seemed to me
to be unnecessary precision. "Your mother and my father were only half
brother and sister."
"I know nothing of the family," I said.
Andrea started to speak and then looked significantly at
Bessie, who was standing by the sideboard, her hands folded and her
eyes fixed on him with the anxious appeal of a dog.
"Send her away," he said, indicating Bessie with a toss
of his head. "She spoils my appetite."
At which Bessie let out a howl and, without waiting for
my order, bolted from the room.
I looked at Andrea, whose broad forehead had smoothed out
and who was eating with every evidence of pleasure. It was obvious that
Bessie's feelings for him included more complex emotions than simple
fear. No wonder. With my newborn sophistication, I thought that my
cousin's path through life must be strewn with heartbroken females of
all ages and social classes. He was even more handsome than I
remembered. Despite his northern coloring and beautiful blue eyes, one
might have known him to be a foreigner; his fair hair was a little
longer than an Englishman might have worn it, although he was
clean-shaven.
He looked at me, and it was my turn to blush. I had not
meant to stare so rudely. To cover my confusion I said, "What did you
mean, we are half cousins?"
"But it is very simple. Our grandfather married twice. My
father and your mother were children of different mothers. My
grandmother was an English lady; that is why I speak English so well."
"Ah, I see. Your grandmother taught you."
"Not my grandmother; she died before I was born. Her
sister, who came to Italy when Grandmother married into the family, was
my teacher--if it is teaching to shout a word very loudly, and then
strike, very hard, when the young pupil does not understand."
"She sounds horrid," I said indignantly.
"She is horrid," said Andrea,
smiling broadly. "She is una tipica--how do you
say it?--a typical English old maid. That is a term she did not teach
us, but we learned it, my brother and I, and used it to torment the
poor lady. Our parents died of fever, within two weeks of one another,
when we were infants, so Aunt Rhoda had the task of bringing us up.
However, I do not know that she did such a good job of it. We learned
English only because she refused to learn Italian. She despises the
language, the country, and all its inhabitants."
"I am so confused! You mention a brother…."
"Did not your mother speak of the family? But no, her
resentment--"
"She died when I was born," I said. "But she was not
resentful; it was my grandfather who refused to forgive her, or
acknowledge my existence."
Andrea flung his head back and laughed heartily,
displaying a set of splendid white teeth.
"Yes, he would do that. He is horrid, too--a horrible old
man. But he is mellowing; I think he will receive you kindly."
"You think so? Didn't he send you?" I put my hand to my
head, which really did feel as if it were whirling around. "I must be
more confused than I realized. I didn't even ask how you happened to
appear so miraculously. It was like an answer to a prayer."
My cousin's keen blue eyes softened.
"Perhaps it was. Who knows? Although I am not a likely
agent of the heavenly powers. But, of course, I forget; you did not
know of your father's letter; he said he was writing without your
knowledge."
"I didn't know."
"It was a fine letter," Andrea said. "He wrote that he
was dying, that you would be left alone, with no money and no
protector; and he suggested that you might have need of protection. How
he knew this…. But I distress you. Forgive me."
I had bowed my head, remembering the night in the inn
when Father had sat writing, his face set and tired. It must have hurt
him to be forced to appeal to the cruel old man--to admit his failure
and face the knowledge of his imminent death. But what an eloquent
letter it must have been, to overcome my grandfather's long-cherished
resentment.
I said as much to Andrea, and was faintly amused to see
my cousin look uncomfortable. As I had already learned, his face
reflected every passing emotion; he was not a guileful man.
"Well, to be truthful, he did not--that is, he…. How can
I say this?" Andrea demanded of the empty air.
"Be candid," I said. "You can't hurt my feelings; I have
none for my grandfather, so why should I care what he thinks of me? You
don't mean to say that you acted without his knowledge or consent? My
dear cousin--"
"That is not quite how it was." Andrea sighed deeply and
ran his fingers through his bright curls. "I think I must explain about
the family. You should know about them if you are to live with them."
"But I don't know that I shall. If I am not welcome in my
grandfather's house--"
"But of course you are welcome! Besides, where else is
there for you to go?"
I was silent.
"So," Andrea resumed cheerfully, "I will explain the
family. There is Grandfather, of course. He is…ah, but it is impossible
to describe him. Only stand up to him, don't let him bully you, and you
will get along. Then there is Aunt Rhoda. She is our great-aunt,
really, but we call her ‘aunt.' I have told you about her. She and
Grandfather fight constantly."
He smiled reminiscently. It was clear that he found his
brawling relations quite entertaining. I was not at all sure I would
find them so. Nor was I getting a very clear picture of them.
Description was not Andrea's strong point.
"Your brother," I said. "Is he older or younger than you?"
"We are twins. He is the heir, however; he was born
first. Though you would not think so; he is not strong, poor Stefano.
But he is very clever. He reads a great deal. He has nothing better to
do, being so sickly. It is he you must thank for my coming. I would
never have had the sense to think of it, or the intelligence to plan
things. I have the strength in the family, but Stefano has the brains."
I had already conceived a girlish admiration for my
cousin. Now, suddenly, I liked him too, liked him very much. His
modesty and good nature were as irresistible as his handsome face.
"I will look forward to meeting your brother and thanking
him," I said. "But I can never forget that it was you who actually--"
"No, no, you must not thank me, what else could I do?
Only what any gentleman would do. After all," he added, his eyes
twinkling, "that is what Aunt Rhoda taught me to be. A poor imitation
of an English gentleman, as Stefano says. Now you know about the
family--"
"Is that all of them?" I asked, overwhelmed with a
premature attack of stage fright.
Andrea laughed again.
"Oh, there are always relatives visiting. Cousins and
aunts and other people. You will like them. And they are sure to love
you, Cousin. But we have talked enough. Time is passing. We must leave
this house as soon as possible."
He flung his napkin down and bounded to his feet. I was
beginning to find his energy a little overwhelming.
"But," I began.
"No buts! That is one of Aunt Rhoda's favorite sayings.
In this case she would be right." His hands braced on the table, he
leaned toward me. His face was serious. "I don't understand your
father's way of life; it is not my business to understand. But in his
letter he said he had nothing--no property, no money. I do not know who
has paid the rent for this house, Cousin. I do not say this to hurt you
or make you afraid, but I do not think you should stay here. I have
many things to arrange; you will forgive me if I leave you? You shall
be packing while I am gone so that we can be away from here by
nightfall. Do not worry," he added, kindly, while I gaped like a fish
out of water. "Stefano has planned it all, he told me what I must do."
Not being acquainted with the admirable Stefano, I did
not find this information as reassuring as he meant it to be. But out
of the chaos into which his words had thrown me, one thought came to
the fore.
"Wait," I cried, for he was already striding briskly
toward the door. "Cousin--I am ashamed to confess it, but I am afraid.
What if his lordship should return?"
"His lordship? Ah, the villain of last night." Andrea
turned. The sunlight pouring in through the windows of the breakfast
room turned his golden curls into a shining halo. His face was as
beautiful as an angel's and as benevolent as a saint's. "I have taken
care of him, there is nothing to fear. I was out early this morning.
And I did it myself," he added, with obvious satisfaction. "Stefano did
not instruct me, for of course he did not know of that
matter."
"Did what?" I gasped. I think I knew the answer before he
spoke.
"Killed him," said Andrea calmly. "These meetings always
take place at dawn. Hurry with your packing, little Cousin."
II
By the time I had recovered from my shock at his last
speech, he was gone. I could hardly pursue him along the street in my
dressing gown, so I did the only thing I could do--I began my packing.
I cannot say that I did it neatly. Weeks later, when my trunks were
unpacked, I was provoked at the jumble of clothing and ornaments, books
and fancy work that had been tumbled in anyhow. Yet it was a wonder I
was able to do anything at all. I suppose my brain was numbed by the
series of stunning surprises I had received in such a short time.
Certainly I felt no regret at his lordship's death, nor any horror at
Andrea's act. But as the day wore on and he did not return, I began to
be frightened for him. There were laws against dueling. He was a
stranger, and his lordship was a peer of the realm, with powerful
friends.
Late in the afternoon, when the doorbell finally rang, I
flew to answer it without waiting for Bessie. My disappointment was
extreme when I saw, not my cousin, but a stranger--an elderly woman,
stout and gray-haired, who stared severely at me through her gold
pince-nez. I was about to tell her that she had the wrong house when
she asked if I was not Miss Fairbourn. I admitted that I was. She
nodded.
"I am Miss Perkins. Alberta Perkins. I was sent by Count
Tarconti. May I come in?"
"I suppose so," I said stupidly. "Where is the Count?"
"I presume his letter will explain." She withdrew an
envelope from her large handbag, but withheld it from my eager fingers.
"It would be better, would it not, to peruse your letter within?"
I led the way to the parlor. She immediately handed me
the letter. Rudely, I left her standing while I ripped it open.
The handwriting was characteristic of my cousin--bold,
dashing, and ill-spelt. Apparently Aunt Rhoda's tutelage had not
extended to the writing of English. I do not attempt to reproduce the
exact words, but the general sense was as follows:
Dear Cousin.
Here is Miss Perkins, your companion, who will bring
you to us in Italy. She is highly recommended, and speaks Latin!
Forgive me that I do not escort you; but friends have told me that your
stupid English law [the word "stupid" had been scored out, but I could
still read it] makes it necessary for me to leave without delay or risk
prison. I will greet you on the happy day of your arrival.
Your devoted cousin,
Andrea
I looked at Miss Perkins, who was studying me through her
pince-nez.
"I don't understand," I said weakly.
"I'm not sure that I do, either," said Miss Perkins. "But
perhaps we might sit down and talk about it."
My immediate anxieties about Andrea being relieved, I was
able to study Miss Perkins with more attention. She was--well, not to
put too fine a face upon it, she was ugly. Short and stout, with square
shoulders and a massive bosom, she had features of almost masculine
prominence--a jutting nose, a protruding chin, and bushy gray eyebrows.
Except for her bosom and her hair, which was worn in an untidy bun, I
might have taken her for a man. Her clothing, though feminine in
design, was quite severe except for one item--her bonnet. The ribbons
that tied it under her chins were bright crimson, and this color
matched the feathers that were attached, somewhat insecurely, on the
left side.
I liked that bonnet. I could not have explained my
reaction then, in so many words. Now I know that I recognized in it a
hidden, almost shamefaced romantic streak, a love of soft feminine
things that Miss Perkins was unable to indulge in otherwise.
There were other attractive features about her. Her eyes,
though narrow and light gray in color, had a mild, benevolent
expression. And her voice was beautiful--a soft, deep contralto. I
smiled tentatively at her, and she responded with a broad, beaming grin.
"Please sit down," I said. "And forgive my inattention.
Would you care for refreshment? A cup of tea, perhaps?"
"I would dearly love a cup of tea," said Miss Perkins.
Within five minutes we were chatting like old friends.
One thing we had in common from the start was our amazement at Andrea.
Apparently he had simply walked into the employment bureau where she
had come to apply for a new position, and, finding her at liberty, had
hired her on the spot. He had given her only the briefest explanation
of the problem, and then had pressed a huge roll of bills into her
hand. Her protests were waved aside--"I am a judge of character,
madame, and I saw at once you are someone to be trusted. Besides, I am
entrusting to your care my beloved young cousin; what is mere money
compared to that?"
I could not help laughing as she repeated this
characteristic speech, with a roll of her eyes and an inimitable
imitation of Andrea's delightful accent. Immediately she sobered.
"Pray don't think I mean to mock the Count," she said
earnestly. "I, too, fancy myself a judge of character, and I have
seldom been so impressed by a young man's kindness and honesty. If he
has a fault--forgive me if I appear to criticize--I would judge him to
be somewhat impetuous."
"He certainly is that," I admitted. "Miss Perkins, I
think it is only fair to you to tell you why Andrea found it necessary
to depart with such haste."
"Lack of candor is not one of his failings," Miss Perkins
said. "He told me why. And if his version of the story is accurate…. It
was only the barest outline he gave me; don't think I mean to inquire
into a subject which must be exceedingly painful…."
Never would I have supposed myself capable of recounting
such embarrassing details to a stranger. But there was something about
that woman…. I even told her as much as I could decently say about
Father's difficulties. Miss Perkins made no comment, but her eyes
flashed and her big hands clenched as she listened. If she had
expressed sympathy, I might have broken down. As it was, I was able to
complete my account fairly calmly. I felt a strange relief when I had
done so.
"Your cousin did quite right," said Miss Perkins
energetically. "Well, my dear, you have had a difficult time, but that
is over and done with. You must start thinking about the future."
Different as they were in every other way, Andrea and
Miss Perkins had one characteristic in common. When they acted, they
acted with dispatch. Miss Perkins agreed with Andrea that I should not
stay in the house. She moved me out that very evening to respectable
lodgings, and we remained there for the three days that passed before
we found passage on a steamer going to Civitavecchia, the port of Rome.
It was with indescribable emotions that I stood on the
deck of the ship and watched the roofs of London fade into a black
smudge on the horizon. My old life was over. What would the new one
bring? I felt a qualm. Then I looked to my right, where Miss Perkins
stood, her big hands clutching the rail and her crimson plume blowing
bravely in the breeze; and I had a feeling that things were going to
work out after all.
III
I had immediate cause to be grateful for Miss Perkins'
presence. As soon as we entered the Channel, I became horribly seasick.
She had not a moment's discomfort. In between tending to me she made
frequent expeditions onto the deck, from which she would return with a
beaming face and animated accounts of the conversations she had had
with other travelers, the sailors, and even with the captain. She was
insatiably curious, and I felt that by the time we reached Italy she
could have commanded the ship herself, and steered it into port. Her
example shamed me so that I was finally persuaded to drag my miserable
body on deck. There, as she had suggested, the air did me good, and it
was not long before I was over my discomfort.
Although my physical ailments were overcome, I became
more and more prey to other worries as the voyage went on. I had not
had time to brood, in the hurry and confusion of departure; but now, at
leisure, I began to wonder what was in store for me. To say that I was
going to my mother's family sounded well enough, and yet it was like
entrusting myself to utter strangers, in an alien land. As for the
country to which I was traveling, I knew nothing of it except for some
of the heroic deeds of the ancient Romans. Oh, yes; I could also sing,
accompanying myself on the pianoforte, two Italian songs.
Miss Perkins did her best to remedy my ignorance. She had
managed to obtain a small grammar and spent several hours a day
teaching herself Italian. But as she herself admitted, the Tuscan form
of the language was apt to be of limited use. The long Italian
peninsula contained many dialects, unintelligible even to natives of
neighboring districts. It also contained many kingdoms and states.
There was no Italian nation.
Yet, according to Miss Perkins, the dream of unity had
animated patriots for half a century. It was from this amazing woman,
who seemed to know something about every subject under the sun, that I
first heard the names of Mazzini and Cavour, of King Victor Emmanuel
and Garibaldi--and of Pius the Ninth, called Pio Nono by his subjects,
who was not only the reigning Pope, but the temporal monarch of the
country in which my grandfather's estates were situated.
Miss Perkins had a habit of rubbing her nose vigorously
with her knuckles when she was agitated. I believe I have implied that
her nose was quite large, possibly the result of this process. When she
mentioned Pio Nono, the gesture became almost violent.
"They called him il papa liberale
when he first assumed the throne of Peter," she said. "He began well; a
general amnesty freed hundreds of political prisoners whom his
predecessors had punished without trial. He even relaxed the strict
press censorship. But if Italy is to be unified, the Pope must give up
his temporal powers, and that he refuses to do. He rules now in a most
tyrannical manner. Of course we cannot expect other nations to enjoy
our English liberties; but there is no such thing as freedom of speech
or of the press in Rome--the cradle of the republican form of
government! As for freedom of religion--"
She would have gone on, her indignation rising, but I had
not interrupted.
"I don't understand what you mean by temporal ruler. Is
the Pope a king, then, with his own army?"
"Exactly. Not that his army is much good," said Miss
Perkins, with a sniff. "He had to flee from Rome during the rebellion
of 1849, and it took a French army to restore him. He would not be
there now if the French and the Austrians did not keep troops in Italy
to maintain the status quo."
"But what do France and Austria have to do with Italy?"
he asked.
"A very good question!" Miss Perkins struck the rail with
her fist. "They have no moral right to interfere. But neither Louis
Napoleon nor the Emperor wants a strong united Italy challenging them
in Europe. By supporting the Pope they keep the country permanently
divided, for the Papal States lie directly across the center of the
peninsula, between the kingdom of Piedmont in the north and the Kingdom
of the Two Sicilies in the south."
"There are three countries in Italy, then," I said,
thinking I had got it straight at last.
"There are more than three. But these are the most
important. Victor Emmanuel, king of Piedmont, is the hope of the
liberals. He would rule constitutionally, with legal safeguards for the
liberties of his subjects. Francis the Second, the king of Naples and
Sicily--for that is what is meant by the ‘Two Sicilies'--is a tyrant
even worse than the Pope. His opponents are flung into prison without
trial--"
One of Miss Perkins' few weaknesses was that she was apt
to lecture at length, especially when her indignation was aroused. I
therefore interrupted her again. I had learned that I could do this
with impunity, for under her forbidding exterior she was as mild as a
lamb, and never scolded.
"I had no idea you were such a fiery revolutionary, Miss
P. You spoke of this man Garibaldi with great enthusiasm yesterday; I
think you must be one of his disciples."
"We have mutual friends," said Miss Perkins primly.
I had to laugh; the idea of my friend and the
swashbuckling Italian adventurer having any acquaintances in common was
ludicrous. But Miss Perkins was quite serious.
"Mrs. Roberts, with whom he stayed in London five years
ago, is an acquaintance of mine. I was fortunate enough to meet the
General at her house."
"I suppose he is very handsome," I said slyly.
"Yes…no." Miss Perkins considered the question. "I
suppose he isn't really handsome. He is only of medium height, rather
stocky, and his face is pleasant rather than beautiful. But one doesn't
think of his looks when one meets him. His charm lies in his
simplicity, his humility--and one's knowledge of the lion-hearted
courage that animates him. All his life he has fought for freedom, even
as an exile in South America. In Rome, he and his volunteers carried on
an epic struggle against the French; when finally the city fell,
Garibaldi refused to surrender. His devoted wife fled with him; she
died in his arms as they hid in a fisherman's hut, with enemy troops
hot on their trail. Last year he fought with the Piedmontese against
Austria, and they say that he is about to set sail for Sicily, where
the oppressed people have risen against their government. If he--"
One of the ship's officers came by at that moment and
invited us to come along and see how the ship was steered. I was
relieved at the interruption. I was not much interested in the workings
of the ship, but I was even less interested in the cause of Italian
liberation. Little did I realize that this dull, abstract subject, as I
thought of it, was to become one of burning interest to me, and soon.
By the time we landed I knew more about modern Italian
politics than I wanted to know. Miss Perkins also lectured me on Roman
history and antiquities. If someone had heard us in conversation, they
would have thought her the excited young woman on her first voyage
abroad, and me the world-weary sophisticate. She fairly bubbled with
excitement at the prospect of seeing the land of Michelangelo and
Raphael, of Julius Caesar and Brutus--whom she admired much more than
she did Caesar. I could not share her raptures. As the moment of
confrontation approached, I became increasingly nervous. What if
Grandfather refused to receive me? What if Andrea was not there to
support me?
When we steamed into the harbor of Civitavecchia on a
bright spring morning, Miss Perkins could hardly contain herself.
Clutching the rail, she muttered Latin verses interspersed with
comments to me.
"Precisely as it was in imperial times; the verses of
Rutilius might still apply! ‘Molibus aequoreum concluditur
amphiteatrum….' Yes, yes, the amphitheater of water within,
and the twin moles stretching out toward the island…. Dear me, how
fascinating! ‘Interior medias sinus invitatus….'"
And much more.
The town itself dampened even Miss Perkins' enthusiasm.
Every traveler who has approached Rome through this, its major port,
has spoken of its filthy streets and inns and its thieving inhabitants.
Miss Perkins took one look at it and took measures to get us out of
there as quickly as possible.
Unfortunately it was necessary for us to spend the night
in Civitavecchia. Modern transportation, like everything else modern,
was frowned upon in the Papal States; there was no railroad in the
region we must reach. So we sought out an inn, where we might hope to
hire a carriage and driver. Such had been Miss Perkins' efficiency
throughout that I was not surprised to hear her direct our driver to a
particular albergo, which turned out to be
somewhat less filthy and run-down than the others we had seen from the
carriage. We were received by the host without much show of courtesy
until Miss Perkins mentioned our destination. The Tarconti name wrought
a miraculous change; we were shown to the best chamber the place
afforded and, with a deep bow, the host begged our indulgence while he
went to see what could be done for us in the way of transportation. In
the meantime, if we would honor his inn by partaking of refreshment,
however inadequate for persons of our quality….
As soon as we were alone, Miss Perkins dropped into a
chair and pursed her lips in a silent whistle--a habit she had ordered
me not to emulate, since it was not ladylike. The crimson plume was
drooping, but Miss Perkins was still undaunted, as her first comment
proved.
"Heavens, how exhausting it is to make one's wants known
in a mixture of three languages and a series of frantic gestures! I
believe I am beginning to grasp the local dialect, however."
"You are amazing," I said sincerely. "I shudder to think
of making this trip without you. I could never have done it."
"You would have managed somehow," said Miss Perkins. "It
is surprising how efficient one becomes when one must. As for my
abilities, you may thank me when we reach the Castello Tarconti.
Congratulations at this point would be premature."
It was not long, however, before the host returned with
good news. He had found a coach and a driver who knew the road, and we
might set out first thing in the morning. Cheered by this information,
we sought our hard and lumpy bed and slept soundly.
We were up early next morning and had to wait for the
carriage, which was late. Miss Perkins badgered the host until he threw
up his hands and fled, promising to make inquiries. Miss Perkins then
turned her attention to some of the other guests who were awaiting
breakfast and transportation in the inn parlor. After conversing with
one of them, a pleasant-looking gentleman wearing modish checked
trousers, she let out a cry of excitement.
"È vero?" she demanded
eagerly. "Is it true?"
The gentleman nodded and handed her the newspaper he had
been reading, as if this would verify the statement she had questioned.
"What is it?" I asked curiously. I thought I had
recognized a familiar name amid the torrent of Italian the two had
exchanged.
"Garibaldi," exclaimed Miss Perkins, proving me correct.
"He has landed in Sicily! He sailed a few days ago, secretly, from
Genoa, with a thousand volunteers."
"I'm glad to hear it," I said with a smile. "At least I'm
glad if you are."
"More than glad--delighted! He will easily conquer that
Bourbon tyrant and free the oppressed people, first of Sicily and then
of the Neapolitan kingdom. That region will join the kingdom of
Piedmont, as Tuscany has just done, and the Papal States will be next--"
At this point the host returned to tell us our carriage
was ready. His timing may not have been entirely fortuitous; Miss
Perkins' loud enthusiasm was making people look askance at us, and the
kindly gentleman in the checked trousers had moved away. It was not
wise to speak with favor of General Garibaldi, or of invasion, in His
Holiness's domain.
The carriage was a shabby equipage, but after inspecting
it closely, Miss Perkins pronounced it sound. The driver was subjected
to an even more piercing scrutiny. What could be seen of his face,
between his shock of untidy black hair and a ferocious moustache,
looked amiable enough. His name was Giovanni, and he assured us, with
expressive gestures, that he was prepared to lay down his life to
defend us and get us safely to our destination.
Miss Perkins muttered, "Typical Italian braggadocio; but
I think the fellow is trustworthy." We had just taken our places within
the carriage when a pair of riders came quietly out of the stables and
took up positions behind the coach. They looked like the bandits in the
wild tales some of the girls at school had read surreptitiously. They
were heavily bearded; wide-brimmed slouch hats and neckerchiefs hid
even more of their faces; they wore blouselike shirts and loose
trousers which were tucked into their boots. From the belt of one man
protruded something that looked, even to my inexperienced eye, like the
handle of a pistol.
Miss Perkins put her head out the window and shouted for
the host. At first he pretended not to understand her, but her
gesticulations were not to be ignored. They exchanged further gestures
and shouts; then Miss Perkins withdrew into the coach and looked
doubtfully at me.
"He says they have been hired to protect us. The roads
are infested with robbers."
"Oh, dear," I exclaimed.
Miss Perkins rubbed her nose thoughtfully.
"The danger of robbers may not be great, but the country
is certainly in a disturbed state, and a guard might not be a bad idea."
"But they may be robbers themselves," I protested. The
fierce aspects of the two men frightened me.
"There would be no sense in that," Miss Perkins said; and
I was relieved to see she had stopped rubbing her nose, which meant
that she was satisfied in her own mind. "If the host meant to set
thieves on us, he would keep them out of sight until we were in the
countryside, with no witnesses about. I think we may proceed, and be
grateful for the guards."
Soon we were out of the city and bumping along a rough
road through a flat region covered with heath and low bushes. The
landscape was uninteresting, with only an occasional ruined tower or
broken bridge to break the monotony; but after a time we left the coast
and headed inland, toward a range of undulating hills. The scenery grew
wilder and more rugged, and as the sun sank lower, we had fine views of
hillsides covered with dark foliage, shining in the westering rays.
We stopped for the night at a village called Palo, where
the inn had been recommended. It was a simple place, but clean, and the
food was fairly good. There were no other travelers, so we had the
place to ourselves; and wearied by the activities of the day, we soon
fell asleep.
The sun was barely above the horizon when I awoke next
morning. Miss Perkins was not in the bed. I had come to rely on her so
much that at first I was panic-stricken by her absence; but I forced
myself to be calm. After all, I could not have her with me forever…. I
paused in the middle of dressing, one foot half into my stocking; and I
really believe this was the first time since Father's death--the first
time in my life, in fact--that I thought about someone else's problems.
Miss Perkins had been hired to accompany me on my
journey; no doubt she would be sent home afterwards. Her expenses would
be paid, I thought I knew Andrea well enough to be sure of his
generosity; but what would become of her after that? I had already
observed that her clothing, though once good, was shabby, and her
wardrobe was far from extensive. Even the brave red plume showed signs
of wear. She had been "available" when Andrea sought a companion for
me. Perhaps she had long been available for a paying situation. No
longer young, far from prepossessing in appearance, eccentric in her
habits…. I could see that she might not easily find another position.
Not that she had hinted, even indirectly, of being in need….
It was this cheerful courage that endeared her to me,
among other qualities. I was very young and not very sensible, but
thank heaven I had sense enough to value these qualities. Was it
possible that my unknown grandfather might let her stay with me as a
sort of governess-companion? Perhaps if we both made ourselves very
useful to him…. There was another English lady, Andrea's great-aunt, at
the castle; she might enjoy Miss Perkins' companionship.
At least it was something to think about. I finished
dressing and went out in search of Miss Perkins and breakfast. I could
hear the normal cheerful morning sounds of any country house--chickens
clucking, the splashing of water, voices calling out, a burst of
laughter.
I found Miss Perkins in the courtyard, where the chickens
strutted and scratched and a flat black cat sunned itself on a pile of
broken stones. Miss Perkins was sitting on a block of wood, her skirts
hitched up, talking animatedly to one of our guards. Which one I could
not have said; they looked very much alike, with their fierce black
whiskers and swaggering, piratical clothing. I stood listening for a
moment, unnoticed. The conversation seemed friendly, and I was amused
to observe that Miss Perkins was using her hands freely, in quite an
Italian manner. Then I caught a word or two that I thought I
understood. Interested, I moved forward, and the guard caught sight of
me. He gave a start, and Miss Perkins turned.
"Ah, good morning, Francesca. I hope you slept well. A
beautiful morning, is it not? I have been chatting with this young man.
Antonio is his name."
Antonio's broad-brimmed hat was already in his hand. He
swept it toward the ground in a low bow. When he straightened, I saw
that the fierce beard was deceptive. His eyes were big and brown and
gentle, with long, curling lashes, and his cheeks--what I could see of
them--were as soft as a girl's. He was much younger than I had thought;
and now that I had time to study it, I rather liked the effect of his
casual costume. The loose shirt set off his broad shoulders and the
scarlet sash was tied tightly around his slim waist. He smiled shyly at
me, said something I did not understand, and began to back away. As he
turned I saw something that made me gasp. Miss Perkins pinched my arm;
not until Antonio had gone into the inn did she speak.
"He understands a little English. You would not wish to
speak tactlessly, I am sure."
"But his hand," I exclaimed. "It was his left hand that
held his hat; his right is…. Did my eyes deceive me?"
"They did not. He has lost his right hand."
"Poor young man! What an unfortunate accident."
"It was no accident. That is the punishment the Holy
Father's troops deal out to rebels. Do you remember my telling you
about the risings last year in the Papal States?"
"I have forgotten," I muttered, still staring horrified
at the door through which Antonio had gone.
"You should pay closer attention. This is not ancient
history, Francesca; it happened last year, in 1859 of the Christian
era. Last summer, when Piedmont persuaded Napoleon to join in a war
against Austria, the patriots in the central parts of Italy rose
against the occupying Austrian troops. They hoped Piedmont and France
would aid them against a common enemy; but Louis Napoleon betrayed his
allies. He made a separate peace with Austria. The Italian state of
Tuscany gained its freedom, and won union with Piedmont. However, the
rebellions here in the Papal States were crushed by Pio Nono's
mercenaries. The most notorious of these soldiers is Schmidt, the
commandant in Perugia. That is where Antonio fought. Most of the
captured rebels were executed. Antonio's family has some influence; he
was only condemned to lose the hand he had dared raise against his
lord. They plunged the stump into hot tar afterwards, to stop the--"
"Don't!" I begged.
"Oh, it would be very convenient if we could live our
comfortable lives without hearing of such horrors," Miss Perkins said
angrily. "But so long as they happen, it would be cowardly to hide our
heads. You are not in England, Francesca. Life has many perils, and it
is better to be prepared for them."
The words struck home with a force I am sure she had not
intended. If my father had not tried to shield me from the unpleasant
facts of life--if he had let me share his difficulties--who knows, he
might have been able to break free of the horrible bonds that held him.
At least I would have been better prepared to deal with Lord Shelton. I
had been saved then by a miracle; I could not count on a second one.
Seeing my stricken face, Miss Perkins became repentant.
"Forgive me for speaking so roughly. Really, I must learn
to watch my tongue, there is no excuse--"
"No," I said. "You were right. How does Antonio…. I
suppose he trained himself to use his left hand?"
"Yes, doesn't he do beautifully? I had quite a good talk
with him; such an opportunity to improve my Italian. He speaks the
beautiful Tuscan dialect. And he told me about some interesting
antiquities which we will see on today's trip. Did you know that your
grandfather's estates are situated in the old kingdom of the Etruscans?
A fascinating people! They are frequently mentioned by Roman writers,
but only in the last thirty years have their ruins come to light. I had
no idea…."
I thought she had dragged the Etruscans--whoever they
were--into the conversation in order to distract me from my painful
thoughts. But I did Miss P. an injustice. The Etruscans were just as
interesting to her as the other subjects she had mentioned since we
met, and during the course of the day I learned a great deal about
them. According to Miss Perkins, the country through which we were
passing had once been part of their powerful empire, which had
dominated central Italy in the seventh and sixth centuries B.C., and had later ruled Rome. She babbled on
about Mr. Dennis and Mrs. Hamilton Gray, who had written books about
Etruscan antiquities; and once I thought she was going to fall out the
coach window when we passed a rugged cliff in which we could see
strangely regular openings, like doors cut into the rock. Miss Perkins
explained that they were just that--the doors to ancient Etruscan
tombs, which, like many dwellings of the dead, had been built in
imitation of real houses.
"Fascinating!" she exclaimed, after I had pulled her back
into the coach and, with difficulty, persuaded her to retain her seat.
"I do hope there are tombs on your grandfather's land. He may allow me
to do some digging, if indeed he has not excavated himself, like Prince
Buonaparte and the Duchess of Sermoneta. Only imagine, dear Francesca,
the thrill of discovering a princess's tomb, like the one General
Galassi found in 1836. You know of it, of course?"
"No," I said, with affectionate resignation. "But I
suspect you are going to tell me about it."
She did, and at some length. My initial prejudice soon
gave way to interest; for what girl could resist the allurement of
buried treasures, rich jewels, and mystery?
Like all pagans, who did not possess the Christian's
assurance of a spiritual heaven, the Etruscans placed the vain
adornments of life in the tombs of their dead--food and drink,
cosmetics, weapons, jewels. Naturally most of the tombs were robbed;
and although one must condemn the robbery as morally reprehensible, one
must also admit that the thieves had common sense, on their side. They
could eat the food and sell the gold, which was more than the dead
person could do.
However, the tomb to which Miss Perkins had referred
somehow escaped discovery until modern times. There had been two
burials in the sepulcher. One had been that of a warriors. His weapons
were buried with him, along with many other beautiful and curious
objects. In the inner chamber of the tomb there had been another body.
It had long since fallen into dust, but the ornaments it had worn to
the grave still lay on the ground, where they had fallen when the flesh
and bone crumbled. They were all of massive gold--headdress,
breastplate, necklaces and chains, earrings and bracelets and brooches.
The delicacy of the workmanship was unsurpassed in its skill; indeed,
according to Miss Perkins, modern jewelers would not have been able to
duplicate some of the work. I could not help being thrilled by the
description of the long-dead princess's parure, and for a while
afterwards I peered from the window as eagerly as Miss Perkins, looking
for Etruscan tombs.
As the day waned, so did my enthusiasm. Even Miss Perkins
fell silent; and after we had dined on the contents of a basket
prepared for us by the innkeeper, she dozed off. I have to confess that
she snored. But this did not prevent me from following her into slumber.
I was awakened with a shock as the carriage gave a
violent lurch and stopped, so suddenly that I was thrown from my seat.
Dizzy with sleep, I struggled to right myself, hearing a medley of
sounds that filled me with alarm. The rapid pound of horses' hooves
mingled with shouts and curses and the explosions of firearms. Before I
had time to recover my wits or my upright position, the carriage door
was wrenched open. I couldn't see who had opened it; Miss Perkins, her
bonnet askew but her courage high, blocked my view.
"How dare you?" she demanded indignantly. "What is the
meaning of--"
The speech ended in a gasp as she fell forward. A man's
hand had seized her and unceremoniously pulled her out of the carriage.
Now seriously alarmed, I followed her out with more haste than dignity.
Poor Miss Perkins, blinking and rumpled, was held by the
arm by the ruffian who had removed her from the carriage. He was tall
and redheaded; his crimson jacket, dirty white breeches, and tall
plumed hat matched the costume worn by half a dozen other men who
surrounded the carriage. All carried muskets. One of these weapons was
leveled at our driver, whose rotund face had lost its healthy pink
color.
The fact that the men were soldiers did not reassure me
as to their intentions. I had never seen more villainous faces.
I had removed my bonnet earlier; my hair curled damply
around my face and neck. I pushed it back, knowing that I did not
present a very imposing appearance, but too angry to care.
"Let go of her at once," I cried.
The man did so; but as his eyes swept over me I realized
that he had not been responding to my order. He had simply found a new
interest.
"Be careful," said Miss Perkins in a low voice. Then, as
the man reached out for me, she stepped between us and spoke to him in
a sharp voice. She spoke English; to my surprise the man answered in
the same language, and in a rich Irish brogue.
"Will you be listenin' to the tongue of the old bitch,"
he exclaimed. "Don't be interfering now, you lads; I saw the little
darlin' first…. Only see the golden hair of her!" And, pushing Miss
Perkins rudely aside, he caught a strand of my hair in his dirty
fingers.
At that interesting moment another of the soldiers called
out--not in English, but in French--and the Irishman released me. A man
on horseback appeared from beyond the carriage.
The rider was obviously an officer. His uniform, in
contrast to those of his men, was a model of military neatness. His
cuirass and helmet had been polished till they shone. The waving plume
in his helmet was as snowy white as his tightly fitting breeches. The
gold epaulets and the gold-hilted sword slung at his side confirmed his
rank, and even the dust of the road did not hide the fact that his
boots were of the finest leather.
"Thank heaven," said Miss Perkins, with a sign of relief.
At once she cried out to the officer, in French. "Your assistance, sir,
if you please! Or does the Holy Father allow his soldiers to molest
helpless Englishwomen?"
Leaning forward, one arm on the pommel of his saddle, the
officer inspected us with insolent deliberation before replying.
"You travel, madame, through a troubled country at a
troubled time. You must expect some slight inconvenience. We are on the
track of a dangerous criminal. Have you seen such a man?"
"We have seen no one," Miss Perkins replied.
"Then you will not object if we search your carriage, to
make sure no one is hidden there?"
"You doubt my word?" Miss Perkins demanded. "I had always
been led to believe that Roman officers were gentlemen."
"They are soldiers first," was the curt reply. "Even now,
madame, some of my men pursue two suspicious characters who are
following your carriage. They must have been guilty, or they would not
have fled at the sight of us."
"Yet I have heard that the sight of papal soldiers is not
always welcome," said Miss Perkins. "Even to the innocent."
The officer's lips tightened.
"Stand aside, madame. Corporal, inspect the carriage."
One of the men saluted and moved forward. With a shrug
Miss Perkins stepped out of his way.
"A helpless woman must yield to bullies," she said. "Be
assured, sir, that the British consul will hear of this."
"The British consul is some distance from here," said the
officer. "I advise you not to be so free with your tongue, madame."
I thought this very good advice, and dared to poke Miss
Perkins in the ribs, a gesture she ignored. I couldn't imagine why she
was being so belligerent. Her speeches were provocative; yet my anxious
ear seemed to detect an underlying note of uncertainty, as if she were
worried about something other than the perilous situation in which we
found ourselves.
The search of the carriage was quite thorough. The
soldier even lifted the seats. Finally he descended and saluted again.
"No one, sir."
"I told you so," said Miss Perkins.
The clatter of approaching hoofbeats prevented the young
officer's reply. He turned as several other soldiers rode up. It was
not necessary for them to report failure; they had no prisoners. I
heard Miss Perkins give a soft sigh.
The officer turned back to us.
"It is necessary, madame, for me to ask you the identity
of the two men who rode with you."
"I have no idea," said Miss Perkins calmly. "Until you
mentioned them, I was unaware that we had any such escort."
The officer was not stupid. When he asked the question,
he watched me, not Miss Perkins. As he had hoped, my face betrayed my
surprise at her answer.
"Indeed," he said softly, his eyes still on me. "Then I
fear, madame, that you must come with us."
"Impossible," said Miss Perkins angrily. "We are already
late. I do not wish to be delayed. It is dangerous to be out after dark
on these roads."
"More dangerous than you realize. It is no use arguing
with me, madame; you have no choice. Get into the carriage, or my men
will assist you to do so." As she hesitated, sputtering angrily, he
added in a soft voice, "I myself will assist mademoiselle. She has said
nothing; perhaps she is less foolish than you, and is amenable to
persuasion."
He began to dismount. I looked at Miss Perkins, making no
attempt to conceal my alarm. She nodded at me, and said clearly.
"Perhaps, sir, you will send a messenger to Prince
Tarconti, telling him that you are holding his granddaughter a prisoner
and that she will, therefore, be delayed."
The officer's reaction would have been amusing if I had
been in any mood to find humor in the situation. He stood motionless,
one foot still in the stirrup. Then he finished dismounting and came
toward us. His expression was no longer hostile.
"This young lady is the granddaughter of Prince Tarconti?"
"You may accompany us to the castle and see for yourself,
if you doubt," said Miss Perkins.
"But, madame--why did you not say so at once?"
"You gave me no opportunity, sir," said Miss Perkins, now
in control of the situation and enjoying it immensely.
"But then--you will accept my apologies, madame? My
apologies, and my escort. The roads are dangerous; I would not have any
relation of the Prince in danger through my negligence."
"Certainly, sir," said Miss Perkins graciously. "Would
you care to join us in the carriage?"
The officer accepted the invitation with alacrity. His
name, he informed us, was Captain Raoul De Merode. He was not a
bad-looking man, though I thought his features too sharp and his dark
eyes too close-set. When he removed his helmet his appearance was
improved, for his face was softened by thick brown hair, scarcely
darker in color than his tanned countenance. But I was not misled by
his smile. He had been ready enough to be rude--perhaps worse than
rude--to two undefended women when he thought them unimportant. I knew
Miss Perkins was no more deceived by his present courtesy. She had some
hidden motive behind her actions, but what it was I could not guess. I
could only follow her lead, trusting to her better understanding.
One thing she certainly wanted was information. Adjusting
her plume to its former cocky position, she leaned forward and asked,
"Who is this dangerous criminal you are pursuing, Captain? A
murderer--a brigand?"
"One might call him a brigand. Or a traitor. He is quite
a famous character in these parts; you would not have heard of him,
being strangers here…."
His voice was as smooth as cream, his face guileless, but
suddenly I had a feeling that he and Miss Perkins were playing a game
of wits, in which I was only a spectator.
"If you would tell me his name I would know whether I had
heard of him," said Miss Perkins, showing all her teeth in a broad
smile.
"They call him Il Falcone," said De Merode. This time he
got no reaction from either of us. I had never heard the name, and if
Miss Perkins had, she was too clever to betray the fact.
"The Falcon," she translated, unnecessarily. "How very
romantic!"
"Childish," De Merode corrected, with a snap of his even
white teeth. "These people are like that--like spoiled children who
don't know what is good for them. But the games they play are sinister,
dangerous games, and one day they will be punished as they deserve."
"By their fond papa," said Miss
Perkins gently.
"His Holiness is the spiritual father of us all," the
captain said sternly. "He is also the ruler of these peasants. By
disobeying him they offend God twice over."
"How you must dislike your present service," said Miss
Perkins. "For a daring young officer to pursue ragged peasants…."
"A soldier does not question his orders. And, to be
truthful, it is not the peasants who give us trouble. Without the
anarchists to stir them up, they would be docile enough. The rebels are
men of the so-called educated classes, who have read too much and
thought too little."
His thin lips curved in a smile, as if he appreciated his
own bon mot.
"Is this Falcon person an educated man, then?" Miss
Perkins inquired.
"I don't know who he is, or what he is. If I did…"
I could contain my curiosity no longer. "Do you mean that
this man's identity is unknown? How can that be?"
"He is an elusive creature," De Merode said. "And he
commands a certain loyalty--though to use that word of the brigands who
make up his guerrilla troops is to do them too much honor. We have
caught and--er--questioned several of his men. They died without
divulging his name.
Miss Perkins' face grew stern, and despite the warmth of
the day I felt a sudden chill.
"They--died?" I repeated.
The captain's eyes turned to me.
"They were executed, mademoiselle. The price of treason
is death--even in your country."
Under the concealment of her skirt Miss Perkins' fingers
found my hand and pinched it warningly. I subsided; but there was no
doubt in my mind that De Merode had tortured the unfortunate men who
had fallen into his hands.
"You spoke of guerrilla troops," said Miss Perkins. "Does
this man have his own army, then?"
De Merode's thin lips curled.
"They are not soldiers, they are bandits. They hide
behind rocks and pick off my men as we ride. They rescue the prisoners
we arrest--men who have spoken out against His Holiness or printed
derogatory articles in their underground newspapers. They encourage the
peasants to resist taxation, they plaster the walls with inflammatory
posters. Wherever there is trouble in this province, you may be sure
that Falcon is behind it."
"Tell us about him," said Miss Perkins persuasively.
"The man himself? I wish I could. He doesn't always wear
a mask, and yet although he has been seen dozens of times, we have no
consistent description of him. Sometimes his hair is gray, sometimes it
is black; sometimes he is bearded, and then again he will appear with a
patch over one eye and flowing moustaches. He is always well mounted.
He rides like a centaur, and on at least three occasions he has escaped
capture by outriding his pursuers. Like his own person, his horses
change appearance." De Merode spoke as if he had forgotten we were
present. He must have recapitulated this information again and again,
in the hope of discovering some clue to the unknown's identity.
"Despite his gray wigs, he must be young; no elderly man could
accomplish the physical feats he had performed. A man who had access to
horses of such quality, and so many of them, must be a man of wealth.
And if the proclamations issued in his name are written by him, he is
well educated."
"Young, rich, well educated," Miss Perkins repeated.
"Forgive me, Captain, but you paint a portrait which is irresistible to
impressionable females. Don't tell me that he is also handsome, or we
will lose our hearts to your rebel."
"I don't know what he looks like," said De Merode
sharply. "And I would advise you not to say such things; I know you are
joking, but in these parts we have lost our sense of humor where Il
Falcone is concerned. Anyone who is suspected of assisting him is
subject to arrest. That is why--forgive me--I was suspicious of you.
One of the men who was following you looked like a certain Antonio
Cadorna, who is known to be one of the Falcon's lieutenants."
"But surely you don't suspect us now," said Miss Perkins.
"Hardly. There is no more loyal subject of His Holiness
than Prince Tarconti."
"Indeed," said Miss Perkins thoughtfully.
She pinched me again when I started to speak. Thereafter
she lapsed into silence, broken by ostentatious yawns. I decided she
had learned what she wanted to know.
If the yawns were meant as hints, they had their effect.
Soon the captain excused himself and resumed his place on horseback.
"Miss Perkins," I exclaimed, as soon as the carriage
started up again. "What on earth has--"
"Sssh." Miss Perkins gestured toward the carriage window.
One of the soldiers was riding close by. I didn't see how he could
overhear, but Miss Perkins' grave face kept me silent. She said aloud,
"Sit next to me, my dear, put your head on my shoulder and try to
sleep. We still have some distance to go."
I obeyed. We could then converse in soft tones without
being overheard.
"Are these ruffians really soldiers?" I whispered. "One
of them was Irish--"
"They come from all the Catholic countries of Europe,"
Miss Perkins replied. "Pio Nono has enlisted an army of crusaders, as
he calls them, so that he won't have to depend on the support of
Napoleon, whom he hates. Some of them are honest fanatics, but many are
only unemployed scoundrels who enjoy violence for its own sake. This
young captain is one of the fanatics. He must be related to the Belgian
De Merode who organized this army at the pope's request."
"And the Falcon--I have never heard such a wild tale! Why
did you deny knowing Antonio?"
"Because he warned me this morning that he and his friend
were wanted by the authorities. They accompanied us in order to protect
us from ordinary bandits, of whom there are plenty, but I knew that if
we should encounter a troop of soldiers, our guards would have to
retreat. They were no match for so many armed men."
"But why should they bother to protect us?"
"I'm not sure," Miss Perkins said. "But the rebels hope
for aid from England; they know they have English sympathy for their
cause, since they are fighting for freedom. Your grandfather seems to
be an important person; they may think you can influence him."
"He sounds like a man whom it would be hard to
influence," I whispered. "A hard man."
"We must not judge him…. I liked Antonio. I convinced him
that I sympathized with his cause, so he was ready to confide in me--up
to a point. I do not think he was completely candid with me. He
certainly did not tell me he was one of the Falcon's men."
"Then you had heard of this mysterious adventurer?"
"Oh, yes. I have followed the cause of Italian liberation
with some interest. Il Falcone is not one of the well-known heroes of
the movement; he seems to limit his activities to this province. Yet in
his own way he is famous enough."
"He sounds very romantic," I murmured.
"Don't be misled by the romantic trappings," said Miss
Perkins dryly. "If what I have heard of that young man is correct, he
is a very shrewd person indeed. The mystery and the swashbuckling serve
several practical purposes. They conceal the Falcon's identity and they
appeal to the peasants. As the Captain said, the poorer classes are
apathetic, and yet no revolution can hope to succeed without their
support. By playing the role of an Italian Robin Hood, our friend the
Falcon hopes to win them over. I don't envy him the job. The poor
creatures are so downtrodden, so wretchedly poor, so uneducated that
they are afraid to rebel."
"I think it is very exciting," I said.
Miss Perkins was silent for a long time. I began to think
she had no more to say on the subject. Then she spoke in a voice I had
heard from her once before.
"Exciting? Yes, I suppose it seems so to you. To me it is
noble and terrible and pitiful. They are so young, these boys like
Antonio, with their brave moustaches and their shining courage…. But I
have seen so many noble causes fail, Francesca. The race is not always
to the swift, and virtue does not always triumph. Not on this plane of
existence, at any rate."
This time, when she fell silent, I had no wish to pursue
the subject.
I fell asleep finally, but my sleep was troubled. I
dreamed of a rider, a man on a big black horse, who fled before me as I
tried to follow him. It was important to me that I catch up with him,
but although I seemed to be running faster than any mortal could run, I
made no progress for a long time. Then slowly I began to shorten the
distance between us. I still could not see the rider's face. Finally I
was close, so close that I had only to stretch out my hand to touch
him. As I did so, the figures of man and horse shifted, and changed
outline. It was no longer a rider I followed, it was a bird--a falcon,
with a cruel hooked beak, made for killing, whose flight took it
straight up into the sky out of my reach.
When I awoke, the interior of the coach was dusky with
twilight. It took me a moment to realize where I was. I was stiff and
aching with the discomfort of travel, and my dreams had left me in a
state of depression. Or perhaps it was not the dreams. I was now close
to the climax I had dreaded for days--the meeting with the unknown
people who would decide my fate.
The view from the window of the carriage was not one to
lighten dismal spirits. The sky was still bright, but I could not see
much of the blue heavens; towering hills, shrouded thickly by
underbrush, closed in around us. There was no sign of human habitation,
only trees and an occasional strange rock formation. The road, which
had never been good, had deteriorated even more, and the carriage
jolted badly. It was this rough motion that had awakened me, in spite
of the fact that Miss Perkins had wedged me into my corner of the seat
with a variety of bundles and bags.
"Ah, you are awake," she said, as I stretched my cramped
limbs and yawned. "I was about to rouse you; we are almost there."
"Oh, dear," I said involuntarily. "I hope--I do hope
Andrea is there to welcome us."
"Well, well, I daresay we will manage somehow even if he
is not. What interesting country this is! Quite picturesque in its
natural wildness. I noticed several tumuli--mounds, you know--that may
be Etruscan tombs."
Her cheerful voice put me to shame. I sat up and tried to
straighten my clothing and smooth my hair. It was impossible to see
anything out the window now, for trees lined the narrow road so closely
that their branches scraped the sides of the coach.
"Where is our escort?" I asked.
"They left us a few miles back--when Captain De Merode
was satisfied that we were really going toward the Castello Tarconti.
He promised, however, to call on us soon."
"He is a suspicious man, isn't he?"
"Yes, I fear he is not interested in your charming blue
eyes."
"I'm glad of that! I have never met a man who gave me
such an impression of cold cruelty."
Miss Perkins' reply was an anguished grunt, as the
carriage lurched into and out of a deep hole. Then she let out an
exclamation.
"Look, Francesca."
Through the window on her side of the coach I saw a view
that made me catch my breath. The trees and shrubs had vanished; we
were traveling along the edge of a deep ravine, with nothing between
the chasm and the wheels of the carriage. The slope was not really
sheer, and the rock face was broken by innumerable hardy plants and
small trees that clung tenaciously to the rough surface, but it was an
alarming sight. How far down the cleft descended I could not tell; the
lower slopes were hidden in vegetation. The sun's rays, striking down
through a break in the western hills, cast a strange and brilliant
light on the upper levels of greenery, and I had an impression of
uncontrolled, almost savage, exuberance--of vines and creepers and
brambles twined in a tangled mass.
Then I realized that Miss Perkins had been looking, not
at the ravine, but at what lay beyond, on the crest of the hill.
Only my nervous apprehension made Castello Tarconti
appear ominous as it sprawled across the hilltop. With the rich light
of evening gilding its stone and plastered walls, it really was quite
an attractive sight; the outline of the towers and chimneys and quaint
turrets against the evening sky had considerable charm. As I was to
learn, it was even larger than it appeared--a jumble of wings and
additions from different centuries, as multichambered as a beehive. The
Princes of Tarconti had palaces in Rome and Florence, and a villa in
the lake country, but this was their ancient family seat, and they
preferred the bucolic pleasures of the country to the pageantry of
cities and courts. So the original fortified tower had grown into a
great château, surrounded by extensive gardens and provided with
every modern comfort.
"A large place," remarked Miss Perkins, rubbing her nose
vigorously.
Neither of us spoke as the carriage strained up the last
steep approach and passed under a sculptured arch into a long avenue
lined with towering cypresses.
"At least the gate was open," I said, as we rolled along
a graveled avenue that was much smoother than the road.
Miss Perkins chuckled. "That's the spirit. We will regard
the open gate as a good omen."
The carriage emerged from the tree-bordered avenue into a
broad park with fountains and flower beds. The facade of the house,
immediately before us, was staggering in its sheer size. At each end
were towers topped by turreted spires. A great staircase mounted
superbly to a terrace whose balustrades were adorned with flowering
plants in pots--roses, orange trees, gardenias and geraniums, all in
bloom, perfuming the dying day.
To my relief we did not stop before the monumental
ascent; I was sure I could never get up the steps without stumbling.
Instead the carriage turned to the left and passed through a gateway
into a walled courtyard.
With the assistance of the driver we descended from the
carriage and stood looking about us. The courtyard was clean and well
kept, its surface neatly paved with stone set in geometrical patterns.
Shrubs and flowers fringed the perimeter and grew about the edges of a
small fountain. The doorway of the house was surmounted by a carved
stone crest, presumably that of the Tarcontis, but I could not make out
its details, for it was badly worn by time and weather.
Interesting as these features were, they were
overshadowed by the strange collection of objects that littered the
courtyard. Broken columns and headless statues stood all about;
fragments of sculpture were fastened to the stuccoed walls. Even the
pots that held the plants were of antique vintage. In a spot of honor
near the stairs, sheltered under an awning, was the strangest object of
all: a great stone box, carved all over with reliefs, and surmounted by
the semire-clining statue of a man. He was raised on his elbow, and his
loose robe had fallen away from one shoulder. In his hand he held a
cup, lifted as if in salute. The intimate gesture, the warm terra-cotta
brown of the material, and the stiff, almost sinister smile that curved
the carved lips gave the figure a frighteningly lifelike appearance. He
seemed to be looking straight into my eyes; and I felt as if we had
been greeted, if not welcomed, by the presiding genius of the place.
Miss Perkins let out a cry of delight. "It is Etruscan--I
have seen engravings like it. An Etruscan sarcophagus, no less!"
"Yes," I said. "No less, and no more. Do you suppose he
is the only one who is going to greet us?"
I was learning to speak coolly in order to hide my real
feelings--which, if I had displayed them, would have made me turn my
back on the Etruscan gentleman's unpleasant smile and scramble back
into the shelter of the carriage. I might have done it--for Miss
Perkins, abandoning me, had made straight for the carved coffin and was
peering at the reliefs on its side--had not the door of the house swung
open.
Our driver, who had been unloading our belongings,
straightened and called out.
The person in the doorway came trotting down the stairs.
It was not my grandfather, or any of the other members of the family,
but a stout, elderly woman whose face was the color of oak and who wore
a peasant costume--a white apron brightly embroidered, a laced bodice,
and a high, fluttering cap. She came straight to me, dropped a stiff
curtsy, and broke into a flood of speech. My Italian was improving, but
I understood only a word or two of her dialect--enough, however, to
believe that my arrival had been expected. Miss Perkins understood a
little more. She looked as relieved as I felt.
"It is not courteous, though," she remarked, as we
followed the servant into the house. "One of the family might have come
to welcome you."
"To be truthful, I am too tired to care," I
replied--though not quite truthfully. "If there is a room prepared for
us, and some water with which to wash off the stains of travel, I will
be content."
Tired and worried though I was, my first impression of
the place was not unpleasant. There was no Gothic gloom in the entrance
hall, with its broad flight of curving stairs, nor in the handsome
drawing room into which the servant escorted us. It was a room of
considerable grandeur, in the French style, with large windows and
light-painted paneling. There were paintings on the ceilings and on the
paneled walls, and fine carpets covered the floor. The furniture was
upholstered in rich velvets and brocades. A pianoforte of rosewood and
a great gilded harp stood in a bay formed by the curved windows. Before
the fireplace, like a throne, stood a big red velvet chair. The servant
indicated the person who was sitting in this chair and immediately
withdrew, closing the door behind her.
For some time no one spoke. I realized that the person
who had received us was deliberately postponing speech in order to
increase our discomfort. We stood there weary and travel-strained, like
beggars come to ask a favor of a great lady.
It was a lady who sat there, and I had no doubt as to her
identity. I had seen women of her type often; she was as typically
English as the old servant had been typically Italian. We were in the
presence of Andrea's Aunt Rhoda.
She was extremely thin and, I thought, tall, although the
fact that she was seated made it hard for me to ascertain her exact
height. Her face was long and narrow, her hair gray. Her eyes were gray
too, almost colorless. She wore a gown of heavy black wool, with the
latest-style hoops puffing out her skirts. Her hands, holding a piece
of needlework, were so long and thin and white they looked like naked
bone.
"Good evening, Aunt Rhoda," I said.
The lady, who had been staring curiously at poor Miss
Perkins, turned her icy gaze on me.
"I am not your aunt," she said. "You may address me as
Miss Rhoda."
I bowed my head without replying. I was beginning to be
angry. She might at least have the courtesy to ask us to take seats!
Like a subaltern making his report, Miss Perkins
introduced herself and explained how she had come to be employed by
Andrea. She concluded by asking after his health.
"My great-nephew is quite well," said Miss Rhoda. She
sounded a little less hostile, as if she had decided that this
strange-looking female did know how to behave, even if her bonnet was
not à la mode. "Unfortunately he is not here at present. He is
an irresponsible young man. It was only last week that we learned of
your coming. I have had rooms prepared for you. You will be shown to
them shortly. I detain you now because it is necessary that you should
understand the basis on which you are to be received here."
"Then," I said, "perhaps you will allow Miss Perkins to
sit down. We have had a tiring journey."
Miss Perkins made a deprecatory noise. Miss Rhoda ignored
her, she looked at me, if not with warmth, with a little more interest
than she had hitherto displayed.
"She may sit. You, miss, will remain standing before your
elders. And I suggest that you do not adopt that tone with me. Your
status is not so secure that you can afford to be insolent."
"What is my status?" I inquired. Miss Perkins did not sit
down. She shifted a little closer to me, and I was conscious of her
approval and support. I knew I could not allow this woman to bully me
or she would continue to make my life miserable. After all, she had
less standing in the family than I. She was not even related by blood.
"That of a dependent," said Miss Rhoda bluntly. "You have
a certain moral claim, no doubt; but it was not that consideration that
prompted the Prince to receive you here. I pointed out to him that his
family honor demanded that you be rescued from the disgrace and infamy
into which you would descend without his charity. Your father--"
"My late father," I interrupted.
I could say no more. I hoped that would be enough to
remind Miss Rhoda of the newness of my bereavement, for I knew if she
spoke disparagingly of my father I would cry. I did not want to cry in
front of her. As I was to learn, she was hard, but she had a strong
sense of propriety. She nodded grudgingly.
"We will say no more of that. I only mean to warn you
that your grandfather does not wish to see you. Avoid him. Do not
expect from him affection or kindness. He means to support you and
shelter you, but that is all."
"I understand," I said. "And now--pardon me, but it has
been a tiring day."
"Very well." Miss Rhoda rose. She was even taller than I
had thought; she towered over me. "Follow me."
As she swept toward the door, I glanced at Miss Perkins,
who shook her head warningly. We would talk later--and, I imagined,
with considerable warmth. Now at least we were assured of shelter for
the night, and both of us were too tired to think beyond that.
But the surprises of the day were not yet over. As we
crossed the entrance hall, preceded by the dignified black form of Miss
Rhoda, I heard footsteps on the stairs. Miss Rhoda stopped with a start
and muttered something under her breath. She turned quickly, as if to
speak to me; but there was no time. A man came into sight around the
curve of the stairs. Preoccupied with his private thoughts, his eyes
fixed on the steps, he did not catch sight of us until he was almost at
the bottom of the flight. He recoiled, so suddenly he had to catch with
both hands at the railing to keep from falling; and there he remained,
staring until the whites showed around his pupils.
He was elderly, but not old and fragile, as I had
expected him to be. His figure was still broad-shouldered and vigorous,
his gray hair thick. His features were marked by pride and temper, with
harsh lines scarring his brow and framing his thin-lipped mouth. Yet
there was something in the expression of his eyes--some vague
wildness--that did not fit the general impression of severity. At the
time I attributed this expression to surprise, for he certainly was not
expecting to see us.
After Miss Rhoda's warning, and what I already knew of
him, I would not have been surprised to see him turn his back in silent
disdain, or hear an angry tirade. Instead, incredulously, I beheld the
stern face soften. It took on a look of radiant joy.
"Larthia!" he whispered. His voice was that of a man
welcoming back to life a loved one whom he has given up for dead.
II
The room that had been prepared for me was not good
enough, my grandfather declared. Only one of the grand state apartments
would suffice. Miss Rhoda's furious objections were brushed aside, and
only my own insistence that I would prefer this smaller, cozier room to
the dust-enshrouded grandeur of the great bedchambers persuaded
Grandfather to leave matters as they had been arranged, until the
larger room could be properly cleaned and redecorated. Another
advantage to the original arrangement, in my eyes, was that Miss
Perkins' room was next to mine. They were not quite servants' rooms;
not quite. But it was clear that Miss Rhoda was not anxious to see me
comfortably settled. She expostulated loudly with Grandfather. It was
grotesquely comical to see them shouting at one another, for she did
not use a word of Italian, and he answered only in that language. Yet
they seemed to understand each other well enough. Finally Miss Rhoda
was shouted down. She withdrew, and the angry look she gave me
suggested that she blamed me as much as she blamed the old gentleman
for criticizing her arrangements.
My grandfather followed her out, after summoning an army
of servants, who were ordered to supply us with every possible comfort.
He was oddly formal, almost shy, with me. There were no warm embraces;
he bent over my hand, touched my hair; yet the affectionate smiles and
glances he gave me were a welcome I had not hoped to receive.
At last Miss Perkins and I were alone. She dropped into a
chair, her booted feet extended, and I followed her example. For a few
moments we stared at one another; there were so many things to say, I
hardly knew where to begin. Finally she sat up and examined the
contents of the tray that had been brought for us, and a smile of
pleasure spread over her weary face.
"Tea. Good India tea, I believe. We have Miss Rhoda to
thank for that, at any rate."
"We haven't much else to thank her for," I said.
"Imagine, her daring to tell me that Grandfather didn't want to have me
here. She must have known I would see him sooner or later, and that his
affectionate behavior would prove her a liar."
"Precisely why I suspect she was not lying," said Miss
Perkins, pouring tea. She took a sip and sighed luxuriously. "Our first
decent tea since London."
"But nothing could have been fonder than his treatment,"
I protested.
"Yes. Therefore we must conclude that between the time he
gave her her orders and the moment when he saw you something happened
to change his attitude. I observed that he addressed you by a name that
is not your own."
"Name?" I frowned. "I thought it was an Italian word for
welcome, or a term of affection."
"My knowledge of the language is fairly good, and I
assure you that is a word I have never heard. It was not your mother's
name?"
"Her name was also Francesca."
"Most peculiar. I don't know why I am so sure it was a
name, unless…. Yes; I am sure I have seen or read it, in that context.
But where?"
"I don't know." I drank my tea and felt the warmth relax
my taut nerves. "Nor do I really care. I am limp with relief, Miss
Perkins. I confess I was very much afraid of how we would be received."
"I know you were." Miss Perkins smiled at me. "You
controlled your anxiety very courageously. And see how well it has all
turned out! Now I suggest we make use of those basins of hot water the
servants have provided. The Prince said he would see us at
dinner--supper, I suppose I should call it--and we mustn't be late."
I agreed; and Miss Perkins retired to her own room,
where, I hoped, she would have time for a rest before we were called to
supper. I was no longer tired. The joy of finding that I was welcomed
and wanted had restored all my energy.
It was a pleasure to loosen my tight stays and remove my
travel-stained clothing. While I was doing so, one of the maids came to
unpack for me and help me with my toilette. By means of gestures I
persuaded her to return later. I wanted to be alone for a while--to
think, and to explore my new surroundings.
As I have intimated, the room was small and somewhat
shabby. However, the bed linen had been aired, and the huge armoire had
been cleaned out, ready for my clothing. I hung up my few dresses,
trying to decide what to wear. I had little choice, for there had been
no time to have mourning made before we left London, and only three of
my gowns had been dyed a suitable black. Then, unable to contain my
curiosity any longer, I went to the window.
The room was on the third floor of the castle, so the
view was splendid. Daylight still lingered, though the light was gray
and melancholy in the deeper recesses of the uneven ground. The distant
vista was empty of life; only steep hills, completely covered by dark
pines and tangled underbrush, lined the horizon. Nearer at hand the
castle grounds descended in a series of terraced gardens to the valley
below. On the left, half hidden behind a clump of trees, was a small
building too ornate for a shed or a servant's cottage. The roofline was
like that of a miniature castle, with battlements and a tiny tower. As
I contemplated this structure, straining my eyes to make out details
through the gathering darkness, a light sprang up in one of its
windows. So the little house was inhabited. I wondered by whom. It was
the sort of place that might have belonged to one of the faerie knights
in the French romances.
A knock on the door signaled the return of the maid, so I
tore myself from my musings and let the girl go to work, unpacking and
helping me dress. Teresa--for that was her name--was a pretty child,
with the coal-black hair of the Roman native and a rounded figure that
would one day be fat. Now it nicely filled out the short-sleeved white
blouse and laced bodice she wore with a brightly embroidered skirt and
apron.
Before long Miss Perkins joined me, and fell into
conversation with Teresa, hoping to improve her knowledge of the local
dialect. Her painstakingly learned Italian was of limited use, since
the accent and vocabulary were so different. Miss Perkins' attempts to
imitate her speech reduced Teresa to red-faced gasps, as she tried to
restrain her laughter. Miss Perkins soon put her at ease by chuckling
loudly at her own errors, and the two of them had quite a merry time.
Teresa was an efficient maid, as I would have expected a
servant trained by Miss Rhoda to be. She would not allow me to do
anything for myself, even taking the brush gently from my hands when I
started to do my hair. As she brushed, she murmured, "Bella--molto
bella…" and I smiled at her, for I recognized that word.
When I indicated that the brushing had gone on long enough and started
to pin my hair up, she objected, and indicated, by gestures, that I
should allow it to flow loose down my back. I shook my head. I had not
worn it so casually since I was a child.
Miss Perkins, who had followed the discussion with
interest, said, "Do as she says, Francesca. She would not make such a
suggestion on purely aesthetic grounds; either it is the local style,
or it has been requested by someone who has a right to do so."
"Do you think Grandfather--?"
"We will soon find out," said Miss Perkins, for Teresa
was indicating that we should follow her.
We would surely have gotten lost without a guide. The
room into which Teresa finally ushered us was not the formal parlor we
had seen before, but a smaller, more pleasant chamber on the ground
floor. It had French doors that stood wide open, admitting the perfumed
breeze from the gardens. Darkness was almost complete, but the room was
brilliantly lighted with dozens of wax candles. Two men occupied chairs
on either side of a low table, where a chessboard was set out.
My grandfather rose quickly to his feet as we entered.
His clothing was that of an earlier, more colorful era-knee breeches of
brown velvet and a matching coat trimmed with gold braid. The hand he
extended to me twinkled with jewels.
He frowned slightly at the sight of my somber bombazine
dress with its simple white lace collar. My only ornament was a
mourning brooch of jet with a lock of hair under glass. Father had had
the brooch made years before, with Mother's hair. I had prized off the
back and added one of his brown curls.
Grandfather's frown turned to a smile as he touched my
hair, and I knew it had been by his orders that I was wearing it loose.
His hand resting gently on my shoulder, he turned me to face the other
man.
He had not risen from his chair. In the first moment of
seeing him I had been misled by his curling fair hair, but my start of
joyful recognition was premature. A second glance told me that this was
not Andrea after all. It must be Stefano, his brother; the resemblance
between the two could only be that of close kinship. Stefano's features
were like his brother's, but his face was thinner and not so tanned.
His eyes had the same sapphire sparkle, but their expression lacked
Andrea's cheerful candor. His dress was quietly fashionable; the stark
white-and-black evening garb contrasted with Grandfather's more
flamboyant suit. He was balancing a slim black stick between his hands,
and as I returned his critical stare with interest he lowered this to
the floor and started to rise.
Then I realized the truth, and felt my cheeks turn warm
with embarrassment. He was lame. Without the stick he would not have
been able to stand up, and even with its aid he leaned noticeably to
one side.
During the slow and obviously painful movement his eyes
did not leave my face. Now the corners of his narrow lips curved
slightly. I had the ridiculous impression that he had deliberately
delayed rising from his chair so that I would have time to misjudge
him, and then feel guilty for doing so.
When Grandfather introduced us, I found that my tentative
identification had been correct. Stefano greeted Miss Perkins in
English, and with perfect courtesy. Then he turned a satirical eye upon
me.
"My dear Miss Perkins, are you sure you and Andrea found
the right Miss Fairbourn? This infant doesn't look old enough to be out
of the schoolroom. What on earth am I to call her? I don't know her
well enough to use a pet name, and the more formal mode of address--"
"Francesca will do nicely," I interrupted. I had felt
sorry for him when I saw his infirmity, but his sarcastic manner of
speaking about me, as if I were the infant he had called me, irritated
me very much.
His thin smile broadened.
"I see you have a mind of your own--and a tongue to go
with it. But pray be seated, Francesca, and you too, Miss Perkins.
There are several matters to be explained before you meet the rest of
the family. From now on regard me merely as a voice. I am here to
translate; the sentiments I express will be those of his Excellency. He
understands English--better, I sometimes think, than any of us
realize…."
He turned his sardonic smile on the old gentleman, who
glowered back at him without making the slightest indication that he
had comprehended; but I rather thought that he did understand quite
well.
"In any event," Stefano went on, "he refuses to speak the
language. It is his way of annoying Miss Rhoda. So, I am here. And I
must first tell you that initially he was opposed to your coming. When
your father's letter arrived he was unbearable for several
days--muttering curses like a stage Shylock. It was Andrea who
persuaded him to behave sensibly. Andrea is the favorite here; Andrea
can persuade him to do almost anything. It is to your advantage,
Francesca, to keep on the good side of Andrea."
"I only wish I could," I replied. "I had hoped he would
be here."
"Oh, he has gone off on some jaunt or other," Stefano
replied, with a curl of his lip. "He is quite a gay blade, my handsome,
athletic brother…. But he was here long enough to tell us of the
unfortunate situation in which he discovered you."
The tone and the implication were cruel. I felt tears of
shame and vexation rise to my eyes. Before they could spill over and
disgrace me completely, Grandfather burst into a torrent of agitated
Italian. He even went so far as to shake a fist under his grandson's
nose. Stefano laughed.
"The Prince says I must apologize. He also remarks that
Andrea's conduct was worthy of his name. You see how it is? By
murdering a man, my brother has raised himself in our grandfather's
esteem. But"--as the old man began sputtering again--"perhaps we should
abandon that subject. Andrea, in short, insisted that you could not be
abandoned; and the Prince agreed that you might come here so long as
you kept out of his way. Is it clear now to whom you owe your
reception?"
I nodded and exchanged a meaningful glance with Miss
Perkins, who had been listening as interestedly as I. She had been
quite right about Miss Rhoda; however antagonistic the woman might be,
she would not have risked a direct lie. Again Andrea had been my good
agent. It was like his modesty to have given so much of the credit to
his brother.
Stefano continued to watch me with the same fixed smile.
His mouth was a contradiction; the lower lip was full, a sign of
passion and sensuality, while the upper lip was so narrowly cut as to
be almost invisible. If the laws of physiognomy were true, his was a
nature in which the emotions warred with the intellect--and his sour,
cynical look showed that resentment had overcome both his intellect and
his other emotions.
"Very well," he said, after a moment or two. "The next
question is this: Why did our esteemed ancestor change his attitude
toward you? For I am to inform you that you are the new favorite. If
Andrea doesn't take care, you will supersede him. I am myself in the
dark as to this. Do you have any ideas?"
I said nothing, and after a moment the keen blue eyes
moved from me to Miss Perkins. She shook her head.
"Hmmm," said Stefano. "The Prince refuses to explain
himself. He always does. Well, then, I am to inform you that you are
his dear granddaughter and the beloved daughter of the house. Pleasant,
is it not? But I fear you must face some hostility, Francesca. Miss
Rhoda is not well disposed toward you. She dislikes almost everyone,
and she was very jealous of your grandmother, the Prince's second wife.
Then there is Galiana--"
Here he was again interrupted by Grandfather, who had
been listening with increasing signs of impatience. I had suspected
that we were getting quite a few of Stefano's personal opinions, in
spite of his claim to be merely a translator. I thought the Prince said
much the same. Stefano continued to smile.
"I am relieved of my duties," he said, with mock
distress. "We are to go in to the others now. What?" He turned to the
Prince. "Oh, yes, I am to assure you of his affection; you are to come
to him with any difficulties, and you are to tell him that you
understand what I have told you."
I turned to the old gentleman, who was leaning forward in
his chair watching me with affectionate anxiety. Words seemed too
flat--especially English words--so I smiled and put my hand on his. He
clasped it tightly, then raised it to his lips.
"A touching moment," said the dry voice I had already
learned to dislike.
A footman appeared out of nowhere, as a good servant
should, and opened the door. I cast an appealing glance at Miss
Perkins. Imagine my surprise when I saw that Stefano was offering her
his arm in a most gentlemanlike fashion. He walked with a perceptible
limp, but more nimbly than I had expected, though he leaned heavily on
his cane.
The hall was very long, lighted by candles set in heavy
silver sconces. Grandfather chatted cheerfully, smiling down at me and
patting my hand as we walked side by side. Stefano and Miss Perkins
were behind us. They were speaking, but I was unable to overhear them.
At least Stefano had been courteous to Miss Perkins. She
had been unusually silent during the interview; but then she had not
been given a chance to speak. I was somewhat surprised that no one had
questioned her about the trip and the arrangements Andrea had made with
her. Well, but we were here, safe and sound; there was no need to go
into unnecessary detail.
I was occupied with such speculations as we walked the
length of the long, quiet hall, my hand on my Grandfather's arm. With
his affection to support me I was not afraid of meeting the other
residents of the castle, but if Miss Rhoda was an example of what I had
to expect I was not looking forward to the others.
Then the footman opened a pair of doors at the far end of
the corridor, and stood back. There were several people in the great
drawing room. Miss Rhoda I knew. The other two were strangers. My eyes
fixed themselves on one of them. She was the most beautiful girl I had
ever seen.
Girls know when they are pretty. Mirrors may lie, but the
eyes of young men do not, and even in our unworldly school atmosphere
we had not been totally deprived of masculine company. Brothers,
fathers, and uncles had been allowed to visit; the Misses Smith had
entertained us with occasional evening soirees at which gentlemen of
under thirty might appear; even in church, when our minds ought to have
been on higher things, we had not been unmindful of the young men who
took advantage of those occasions to survey the Misses Smith's students.
I knew I was not ugly. My complexion was the favored pink
and white, my features were regular, my eyes blue. I also knew that my
flaxen hair would be appreciated in a country where the people are
predominantly brunette. I was, as my cousin had mockingly observed, of
small stature. I had no reason to become stout. I must confess that I
had a fairly good opinion of myself when I walked into the drawing room
that night.
But this girl! A mass of coal-black hair, shining in the
candlelight; great black eyes, soft as velvet, framed by feathery
lashes and brows that might have been shaped by the brush of a master
painter; a mouth…. Well, in my jealousy I thought her mouth a little
too small, a little petulant. But it was a perfectly shaped Cupid's
bow, and the features I have not mentioned were no less exquisite.
As we entered, she moved her embroidery frame out of the
way and rose. Her height and her figure were as perfect as her face.
She bent in a curtsy that displayed the grace of her movements and the
abundance of her flowing locks.
The older ladies had to be presented first. I was forced
to turn my eyes away from the girl, but I was conscious of every move
she made.
Miss Rhoda had not risen in deference to my grandfather's
rank. From her expression it was clear that nothing less than the
presence of royalty--British royalty--would have brought her to her
feet. She wore a magnificent gown of plum-colored velvet with skirts so
wide they completely hid the chair in which she was sitting, giving her
a startling appearance of sitting on air. A Gorgon would have looked
less grim.
The other elderly lady's gentle face was in pleasing
contrast to Miss Rhoda's. She wore mourning that was extreme even by
the severe standards of her class. Not a touch of white or color, not
even the deepest purple, lightened the somber black of her gown. Her
jewels--bracelets, rings, and a collarlike necklace--were of jet beads.
From her widow's cap hung a heavy black veil that framed her
magnificent pure-white hair. Her face was almost as pale as her pearly
hair, without a trace of color in lips or cheeks, but her eyes, though
sunken, were as bright and black as the jet beads. She was a striking
study in moonlight and shadow, and I could see that once she must have
been as lovely as the dark girl--her daughter, if resemblance was any
clue.
So fascinated was I by this study of past and present
beauty that I was slow in hearing the name by which the two were
introduced. When I realized what Grandfather had said, I started. The
lady of pearl and jet smiled faintly.
"It is a pleasure to meet you, signorina," she murmured.
"Contessa." I made a rather clumsy curtsy and turned to
acknowledge the introduction of her daughter. "Contessa…."
I could not say the name. I knew it well from my father's
stories of the past. Count Fosilini, the pursuer of my mother, the
cruel rival of my father…. Could these two be his widow and daughter?
The two families had been friendly, distantly connected, if I
remembered correctly. This was a shock I had not expected in all my
worst forebodings.
Then I told myself firmly that I was being foolish. The
old rivalry was far in the past. Neither of the Fosilini ladies showed
any signs of recalling it. The younger countess smiled in a
particularly friendly manner and indicated a chair near her own, which
I took. She did not speak at first; but after the others had begun to
converse, she leaned toward me and said softly in French,
"I hope you will be happy here, Mademoiselle Fairbourn.
It will be a pleasure for me to have a young lady of my own age to talk
to."
Her French was not very good, but her accent was
adorable. I thought she seemed shy. I was soon to learn that this
impression was erroneous, and that the young lady was far from subdued
when her mother was not present.
"You are very kind," I said, returning her smile. "If we
are to be friends, as I hope, you must call me Francesca."
"Ah, a good Italian name! Mine is Galiana. It was the
name of a famous beauty of olden days, a lady so lovely that her native
town went to war to keep her safe from the evil man who wanted to marry
her against her will."
Her tone was so complacent, and her pretty face so smug
as she told this little anecdote, that I was forced to laugh. I laughed
too loudly; Miss Rhoda broke off her interrogation of Miss Perkins and
stared balefully at me. I lowered my voice.
"How nicely you embroider," I said admiringly, leaning
forward to examine the square of ivory satin on which Galiana was
working a design of flowers in bright silk thread.
"Thank you. My mother has tried to teach me, but I will
never embroider as well as she. That is the second altar cloth she is
making for the chapel."
Then I realized that the Contessa had been watching us.
She smiled sweetly as I looked at her, and turned her embroidery frame
so that I could see what she was doing. The work was certainly
marvelous. The background was a rich crimson velvet, on which her
ingenious fingers had fashioned little figures of saints and prophets.
Their robes were done in gold thread, with such intricate stitchery
that the folds of the drapery looked three-dimensional. Tiny pearls and
brilliants adorned the crowns of the female saints, and a border of
Latin verse surrounded the whole.
"It is lovely," I said respectfully. The Contessa
inclined her head but did not reply, and I was groping wildly for some
means of continuing the conversation when the door opened and a servant
announced that the meal was served.
Just at that moment, when I ought to have been relaxing
and appreciating the fact that still another apprehension had proved
groundless, I was conscious of a strange sensation. It was almost
physical in its intensity, like an insect sting squarely between my
shoulder blades. I had risen; now I turned, unconsciously defensive,
and met the intent stare of a woman who had appeared as if by magic
behind the chairs on which Galiana and I had been sitting.
She was short and squat, with a broad peasant face. Her
features were coarse and unprepossessing; they were rendered even less
attractive by the abundance of hair distributed about her countenance.
The hair on her head was as coarse as black wire and as lusterless as
the fur of a dead animal. Her eyebrows were half an inch thick; they
grew together in a single bar and were paralleled by a distinct
moustache. She was clad all in black, of a peculiarly rusty appearance,
and her expression, as she stared at me…
I decided I must have been mistaken about her inimical
look. As soon as I turned, her black eyes lowered submissively. Moving
with a stealth surprising to so large a woman, she picked up the
Contessa's embroidery frame and workbag. She moved bent over at the
waist, as if in a perpetual state of obeisance, and the Contessa paid
her no heed whatever. No one else seemed to see anything out of the
way, either, except for Miss Perkins, who was staring at the woman as
openly as I was.
Grandfather had offered his arm to the Contessa, while
Stefano escorted his aunt. That left Galiana and me and Miss Perkins to
go in together. As we followed the others, I whispered to Galiana, "Who
is that woman?"
"What woman?" said Galiana.
"The one in black, who took your mother's work for her."
"Oh, Bianca," said Galiana indifferently. "She is the
Contessa's maid."
"That unsightly creature?" Miss Perkins exclaimed. "Not
that I mean to be unkind, but--"
"Oh, she is ugly, very ugly," Galiana said cheerfully.
"She is also dumb, and very stupid. But she adores my mother; she would
do anything for her."
"One of the Contessa's charities?" said Miss Perkins.
"How good it is of her to protect someone whom no one else would
employ."
"My mother is a saint," Galiana said seriously. "She
would have entered a convent after Father's death, if it had not been
for me. As it is, she works endlessly for the Church. Her charities--"
But here she was forced to stop. We had entered the
dining salon and were shown to our places.
The main meal of the day was in the early afternoon, so
this was supposedly only a slight repast before retiring. As course
followed formal course, I began to think that if this was a sample of a
light meal, I should soon become plump. Fish, soup, game, poultry,
salads of all kinds, fruit, elaborate sweets…. We were waited on by
half a dozen footmen and served a different wine with each course.
I sat next to Grandfather, who kept urging me to eat.
Conversation was general and rather stilted because of the presence of
the servants; but there was one lively exchange, when Miss Perkins, in
response to a question about our journey, described our encounter with
Captain De Merode. She censored the account considerably, avoiding any
mention of acquaintance with the two "brigands" whom the Captain had
been pursuing, but even in its abridged version the story produced
shocked exclamations from the audience. Grandfather was indignant until
I explained that the Captain had been quite courteous after he learned
who I was.
"Ah," Grandfather said, somewhat mollified. "Then it is
excusable. I will speak to the Captain, all the same."
"He is a man of good family, devoted to His Holiness,"
said the Contessa, who had scarcely spoken up to that time. "His zeal
is excusable--admirable, even--your Excellency."
Miss Rhoda demanded a translation of the last two
speeches. That is how I know what was said. When Stefano had obliged,
Miss Rhoda shook her head.
"Such rudeness could never happen in England," she said.
"Do tell me, Miss Perkins, what is being worn at court these days."
"That should be a safe topic," said Stefano. "We don't
discuss serious matters at table, do we, Aunt? Only dull banalities. I
feel sure Miss Perkins can hardly wait to describe the latest fashions."
Miss Perkins did her best, but this was one topic on
which she was not well informed. The rest of the meal passed in
comparative silence, and finally we returned to the drawing room.
I could hardly wait to be alone with Miss Perkins, to
talk over these new people and experiences. Before long, however, the
fatigues of the day caught up with me. A yawn which I was unable to
suppress drew Grandfather's attention, and he immediately dismissed me.
The military term is appropriate; it was clear that this household was
run on patriarchal terms. Swaying with weariness as I was, I was amused
to observe the nightly ritual, as each person stood before the Prince
to bid him good night. The ladies curtsied and Stefano bowed formally.
Grandfather acknowledged these gestures with as much condescension as a
reigning monarch might have exhibited; but after I had curtsied he took
me by the shoulders and kissed me gently on the brow.
Teresa was waiting for me when I reached my room, and I
was glad of her help. I could barely keep my eyes open long enough to
undress, and I slept instantly, without dreaming.
I always slept well in that cozy little room, and it was
as well that I did, for the next days were so busy and so full of new
impressions that I needed all my strength to keep up with the plans
Grandfather made for me. He had the energy of a young man and the
arrogance of an emperor.
He was also a busy man. The life of a leisured dilettante
was not to his taste, and much of his wealth came from various business
enterprises which he himself controlled. But he spent considerable time
on my concerns. First and foremost was the refurbishing of the
apartment he had selected for me. It had been my mother's, and since it
had not been touched since the day of her elopement, considerable work
was necessary to make it habitable. The rooms--bedroom, salon, and
several smaller chambers--were to be completely redecorated. Servants
were sent riding posthaste to Urbino and Parezzo carrying the Prince's
instructions to linen drapers, cabinetmakers, and painters; and the
following weeks were enlivened by the arrival of huge wagons bringing
the new furnishings. In the meantime servants cleaned, painted,
plastered; a wispy-looking little man arrived from Florence to restore
the ceiling paintings, which had been damaged by rainwater.
I also had to have an entire new wardrobe. My
grandfather's vigorous criticism of my drab clothing required no
translation. Among the battalions of servants--who were tucked away
when not required, somewhere in the sprawling attics like unused
tools--was a resident seamstress who was immediately set to work. It
was during this long and, I must confess, most enjoyable procedure that
I became better acquainted with Galiana.
I couldn't help liking her. Her dark, somber beauty did
not match her personality, which was as cheerful and gay as she was
dark. We communicated in an odd mixture of languages, mostly French,
although she did know a few words of English and helped me to improve
my Italian.
"From the first I knew we should be friends," she told
me, in her prettily accented French. "You cannot know how good it is to
have another girl here. Always when I come I am bored, bored!"
"Then you and your mother don't live here?" I asked.
We were rummaging among the fabrics in a storeroom,
trying to select something for a morning gown. I held up a length of
rather faded lilac print.
"No, no," Galiana exclaimed. "That, it is for housemaids,
peasants." She snatched the fabric from my hands and threw it on the
floor with a theatrical gesture of disgust. "Live here? No, we have a
house over the mountain; but we come here often to stay, since our roof
leaks--is that the word?"
"That is the word," I agreed, smiling. "But why don't you
have the roof mended?"
Galiana opened her big black eyes even wider.
"But there is no money. My father was not a sensible man.
He spent it all, all. He was your mother's lover, you know."
I would have remonstrated with her regarding this term,
but I realized that Galiana did not know its implications, in English
or in French. So I said nothing, and she went rattling on.
"I am glad your mother did not marry him, for then I
would not be here, eh? Perhaps I would have been you! Ah, but that is
funny, is it not? I would be you, and you--you would not exist."
The oddest little chill ran through me when she said
that. For a moment I almost fancied that the merry black eyes had lost
their sparkle and were regarding me with cold dislike.
But the next moment she was laughing heartily as she
draped herself in a piece of heavy gold brocade, and stalked up and
down the chamber pretending to be Cleopatra.
The castle was a vast storehouse of treasures, including
enough fabric to clothe an entire boarding school, but Galiana declared
that most of it was too old-fashioned, or too worn, or inadequate in
some other way. So another messenger was sent off to merchants in
Florence. Of course I should not have expected to wear colors for
another year; but I told myself it would not hurt to have the fabric on
hand. If Grandfather should insist that I disobey society's rules about
mourning--which he was quite capable of doing, since he preferred to
ignore my poor dear father's very existence--then filial duty would
require that I obey.
I don't like to think how shallow and vain I was at that
age. In fact, when I look back on my behavior during those first weeks
in Italy, I am heartily ashamed of myself. My painful experiences ought
to have taught me that the vanities of this world are not to be relied
upon, but I did not want to think about the past. All the happy
memories of my father had been overshadowed by the final revelations,
as a spreading ink stain can spoil a pretty gown. There were moments
when--I confess it with shame--I thought of him almost with hatred. It
would have been better for my character if I had been received by
Grandfather as he had originally intended to receive me; then I would
have had to win his affection with patience and good behavior. But he
gave me his love and I accepted it complacently--as we always accept
things we have not earned.
I am glad to say I had enough decency to be concerned
about Miss Perkins. It was not selfishness that prompted my interest in
her--not entirely--for by then I had smugly decided that I needed no
companion. Was I not the spoiled darling of a wealthy prince? I had a
friend of my own age in Galiana; and if there was some patronage in my
attitude toward the girl, I wasn't aware of it. I thought of myself as
being very kind…. Oh, dear. It is so depressing to look back on one's
past failures.
At any rate, I saw little of Miss Perkins in the days
immediately following our arrival. I wasn't worried about her, for I
knew she could amuse and entertain herself anywhere; if she went to
Purgatory instead of Heaven, she would poke her head into all the dark
corners and interrogate the attendant imps about the various methods of
torture. Of course we met at meals, but I did not speak to her at
length until one bright afternoon a week or so after we arrived.
Galiana was with her mother, who spent many hours in her room reading
and meditating and praying. I went out into the courtyard looking for
amusement, and there I found Miss Perkins seated on a fallen column.
Her hands rested on her knees and she was staring solemnly at the great
sarcophagus with its statue of a reclining Etruscan.
"Did you know that his Excellency your grandfather
excavated that object himself?" she demanded, motioning for me to take
a seat beside her. "Your cousin the Count informs me that there is an
entire Etruscan cemetery not far from here. I do hope I shall have time
to see it, and your grandfather's collection of treasures, before I
leave."
"Leave?" I stared at her. "But, Miss Perkins--"
"Well, my dear, I was hired to bring you here and I have
done it," said Miss Perkins.
She turned her cheerful smile on me. I was conscious, all
at once, of paler streaks in her iron-gray hair, and of the deep lines
in her face. Impulsively I threw my arms around her.
"Miss Perkins, please stay. There is a great deal more
for you to do. I need you. Please don't leave me alone."
"But, Francesca, you are not alone. You have a whole new
family, and you are the pet. Why do you need me?"
"I don't know," I mumbled. "That is--I know I have been
very fortunate. But I would like you to stay. Unless you have duties,
connections, in England--"
"No, I am quite independent. However--"
"Oh, splendid. I will ask Grandfather now."
"Wait--Francesca, don't be so impetuous--"
I paid no attention. Leaving her staring after me, I ran
up the steps and into the house. I did have the courtesy to knock
before I entered the library; and the gruffness of my grandfather's
voice as he shouted " Avanti!" made me think that
perhaps I ought to have waited. But it was too late to retreat now; I
opened the door.
As soon as he saw me, Grandfather's scowl turned into a
beaming smile. Stefano, who was seated beside the desk, did not look so
pleased. He lifted his black cane in a mocking salute.
"How charming," he exclaimed, as I stood with
Grandfather's arm around me. "Curls flying, frills and ribbons
fluttering, the fresh young face flushed…. We must have your portrait
taken in just that pose, Cousin."
Grandfather's right hand moved in one of those eloquent
Italian gestures, and Stefano subsided, with a vulgar wink at me.
The relationship between my cousin and my grandfather was
a curious one. Grandfather regarded Stefano with a mixture of respect
and contempt--respect for his cool intelligence, contempt for his
physical weakness. There were times when his infirmity troubled Stefano
a great deal, and then he kept to his own rooms, not even appearing for
meals. At other times he served as a useful adviser to Grandfather in
business matters. The two of them spent long hours in the library. The
discussions were not always amicable; one could often hear voices
raised in anger, even through the heavy carved door. Voices, did I say?
No; Grandfather was the only one who shouted. Stefano never lost his
temper, he only incited other people to lose theirs.
I was determined not to let him incite me, so I ignored
the wink and plunged into my speech. I knew some Italian by then, but
in my excitement I forgot what little I knew. Grandfather always seemed
to understand me anyway.
"It is about Miss Perkins," I exclaimed. "I would like
her to stay here. Couldn't she be my governess or companion, or
something like that?"
For once Grandfather didn't understand. He turned a
bewildered look on Stefano, who was watching me with his familiar
narrow smile. He translated what I had said and added, in English,
"What a high-handed young person you are, Francesca. It is in your
blood, I suppose. Interesting, how quickly personality can adjust to
changes in fortune."
He would have gone on with more sly digs at me if
Grandfather had not waved him to silence.
"You may have anything you wish, child," he said. "If you
want her to stay, it is settled."
"Just a minute," said Stefano. "You can't dispose of a
lady's person so easily. Suppose Miss Perkins doesn't want to stay."
"Oh, she does," I said eagerly. "She told me she had no
relatives in England and she is fascinated by Italy--especially by
Grandfather's antiquities. Couldn't she help you with that,
Grandfather? La vostra collezione--antichità--er--"
" Sì Sì, carissima. She
will be very useful."
" Grazie!" I stood on tiptoe and
kissed his cheek.
He patted me on the head. Courteous as he was, I could
see he was anxious to get back to his interrupted work. Before I could
take my leave, Stefano spoke again.
"One more question, Cousin. Why are you so anxious to
have Miss Perkins remain? She can't be of any use to you."
"It is just barely conceivable that I might be of use to
her," I replied sharply. "She is not young. I don't suppose she is
rich--"
"Ah, it is sheer benevolence on your part, then." Stefano
nodded. "What a beautiful thing to see."
That was the day when I realized how thoroughly I
disliked my cousin Stefano.
It was also the day when we received a formal call from
Captain De Merode. I had almost forgotten about him; and when he was
announced, I was fool enough to be flattered. He must be interested in
me after all, I thought.
We ladies were sitting in the main drawing room--the
Salon of the Sybils, as it was called, from the paintings that covered
the ceiling. This was a penance I paid daily, unless I could think of
some excuse for not joining in the teatime ritual--a ritual long
established and insisted upon by Miss Rhoda. I must say that she had
trained the servants to prepare the beverage and its accompaniments
quite nicely, and I found the delicious little sandwiches and cakes
some compensation for the dull conversation. I don't know what moved
the Contessa to join us; it couldn't have been the food, for she ate
like a bird. She displayed no especial warmth toward Miss Rhoda, only
her usual gentle courtesy, and since she spoke no English and Miss
Rhoda no Italian, conversation between them was severely limited.
Galiana told me that teatime was much less dull since Miss Perkins had
arrived, for that indomitable lady did her best to converse with
everyone, translating when possible, and carrying on a cheerful
monologue when no one else spoke. She found it heavy going, however;
Galiana was too intimidated by her mother to risk a remark often.
Usually the gentlemen did not join us for tea, but on
this particular afternoon Grandfather and Stefano were both present.
The latter, seated next to Miss Perkins, was discussing antiquities
with her, and Grandfather was giving me an Italian lesson, to our
mutual amusement, when the Captain was announced.
Grandfather rose. He was usually punctilious about such
courtesies, but I could see that he was honestly pleased to see the
young man. De Merode was in full dress uniform, and looked quite
handsome. His spurs, sword hilt, and decorations shone brilliantly; his
boots had been polished to a mirror finish, and his tall helmet, which
he held under one arm, had a lovely white egret plume.
He bowed over the hand of each lady, leaving mine till
last. There was design in that, I thought, and when his warm lips
lingered on my fingers, instead of brushing the air above them, I was
sure.
Grandfather--who could speak adequate French when he had
to--immediately took De Merode to task for his rudeness, but his
smiling manner showed that he was prepared to forgive and forget.
"My dear Prince--have pity!" De Merode covered his eyes
with his hand in mock repentance. "Credit me only with too much zeal in
my profession. I have come to beg forgiveness. I would have come
earlier, but we have been on duty day and night this past week."
"Ah." Grandfather leaned forward, forgetting his mock
displeasure in his curiosity. "Then the tales I hear are correct? That
wretched mountebank has appeared again?"
"You mustn't refer to our hero so rudely, Prince." De
Merode smiled meaningfully at me. "I believe the ladies find him very
romantic."
"Oh, certainly we do," Galiana exclaimed. "I am sure he
is young and handsome; aren't you, Francesca? I wish I could see him!"
"Galiana." The poor girl jumped at the sound of her
mother's soft voice. The Contessa went on, "I know you speak in jest,
but on this subject mockery is profane. This wretched man is defying
not only the law of man but God's vicar on earth. You should pray for
his soul and deplore his actions."
"Yes, Mama," Galiana muttered, lowering her eyes.
"What has he done now?" I asked.
"Rescued his printing press," said the Captain.
I had been expecting some tale of human interest--a poor
peasant freed of his taxes, a bandit snatched from prison--and this
anticlimax, I regret to say, struck me as very funny. I began to laugh,
and after a moment Galiana joined me. The Captain frowned.
"The press is more important than you realize," he said.
"An informer--that is to say, a patriotic peasant--gave us information
which enabled us to locate the abandoned hut in which the machine was
concealed. Unfortunately we arrived too late. Oh, the press had been
there, the evidence was unmistakable; but that demon had somehow gotten
wind of our intentions and anticipated us."
"But most of the peasants can't read," Grandfather
protested. "How stupid these revolutionaries are, to waste print on
such animals."
Stefano coughed gently. All eyes turned toward him.
Sitting at ease, dressed with his usual severe elegance, his only sign
of disability was his black cane.
"The gentry can read. It is this class, one supposes,
that your bird of prey wishes to convert."
"Precisely," De Merode agreed grudgingly. "Besides, it is
not only words he prints. I suppose, your Excellency, that your people
don't want to show you this inflammatory nonsense, but you ought to
know what your peasants are seeing." With a flourish he pulled a scroll
of paper from the breast of his tunic and unrolled it.
It was a drawing. Crudely done, but immediately apparent
to the meanest intelligence, it showed a figure dressed in flowing
robes and a papal tiara. One hand was raised in blessing under a
celestial glory (in the shape of a fat cloud). But the other hand was
employed in snatching a loaf of bread from the hand of a
miserable-looking peasant. A dead or dying child lay at the feet of
this man; beside him crouched a woman, menaced by a leering figure in
the same uniform Captain De Merode wore with such distinction.
Someone, I did not see who, gasped sharply. My
grandfather's face turned purple with rage; he snatched at the drawing.
"Wait," I said, putting out my hand. "May I see it,
Captain? I know something of drawing, and I think…. Yes; this sketch is
a piece of deception in itself. Its first impression is one of crude
vigor, effective but unsophisticated. Yet this is not the drawing of a
man untrained in art. The perspective, and the anatomy of the figures,
is quite good."
I had forgotten myself in my interest and had spoken in
English. Stefano tapped his stick on the floor and gave me a mocking
smile.
"Clever," he said condescendingly. "But I fear your
analysis doesn't help the Captain. This need not be a masterpiece from
the hand of the Falcon himself. He numbers educated men among his
followers."
He then proceeded to translate my comment. The only one
who seemed to be impressed or interested was Galiana, who looked at me
admiringly. The Captain merely nodded.
"As the Count has said, this tells us nothing."
"I fail to see, however," said Stefano, "why you brought
it here. Surely my grandfather needs no urging in his dedication to the
cause?"
"But, my dear Count, how can you even mention such a
thing?" De Merode's eyes widened. "I desire only to be of service to
his Excellency."
I doubted that, and so, from his skeptical expression,
did Stefano. What the Captain's real motive was I could not be sure,
but the result was disastrous. Grandfather was very upset. Before his
anger could subside, De Merode introduced another sensitive topic.
"I had hoped to greet Count Andrea," he said, accepting a
sandwich from a tray that was offered to him. "Where is he?"
"You know Andrea," Stefano said casually. "Always the
gadfly. Actually, he has been in Rome on family business."
"Really? That's strange. A mutual friend mentioned to me
that he had seen the Count in Genoa a few weeks ago."
Genoa, as everyone knows, is a northern Italian city.
There was no apparent reason why the name should have struck that
assemblage of gentlefolk like a cannonball. Grandfather's face had lost
some of its ominous color; now the blood rushed back into his cheeks.
Stefano's eyes narrowed; Miss Rhoda made a sudden movement, her skirts
rustling; and Galiana let out a little squeal.
Thanks to Miss Perkins' interminable lectures, I knew why
they had reacted as they did. From the northern part, in the darkness
of night only two weeks before, the Thousand volunteers had set forth
with Garibaldi for the liberation of Sicily. That they had landed, and
had had some military success, we all knew, for Grandfather subscribed
to the official Roman newspaper. It was always several days late in
reaching us; and, as Miss Perkins liked to point out, its reporting was
far from unbiased; but even the papal press was forced to admit what
all the rest of the world knew--that Garibaldi's ragged forces were
making amazing headway against the trained troops of King Francis of
the Two Sicilies.
"But surely," I said--careful now to speak French, so
that everyone would understand--"surely it is possible to visit Genoa
for innocent reasons. Your zeal carries you too far, Captain."
The Captain, of course, made quick disclaimers, and the
conversation turned to harmless topics. Miss Perkins had been reading
Manzoni's novel I Promisi Sposi, which had become
a minor classic in thirty years since its publication. She and Stefano
managed to carry on a dialogue about the book. The rest of us were
silent, for the most part; Galiana and I because we had not read the
book, the Contessa because she seldom spoke at any time, and
Grandfather because…. Well, I thought I knew his reasons.
When the Captain took his departure, he bowed gracefully
over my hand, but this time I did not let it linger in his. The man was
somehow sinister. I was forced to admit that my foolish vanity had led
me astray. This tight-lipped fanatic, as Miss Perkins had called him,
had no interest in me as a woman. He had barely glanced at Galiana,
whose beauty would have held the admiring gaze of most men. He cared
only for the cause in whose name he was willing to commit acts of
horrible cruelty. But why had he come to visit us? Unless…
Knowing Andrea's ardent temperament, I could imagine him
taking up the cause of liberation, even though it was anathema to
Grandfather. Had not Miss Perkins said that some young aristocrats
followed Garibaldi? Yes, I could admit the possibility; and I am
ashamed to say that my reaction to the idea was of irritation. Surely
Andrea wouldn't be so foolish! Life was pleasant here in the castle;
would he risk losing all that comfort and luxury for a hopeless cause?
Now was that all he stood to lose. I had not forgotten young Antonio.
II
I found the Captain's visit even more disturbing in
retrospect than it had been in actuality. Thoughts of Andrea wounded,
lying in pain on the dusty plains of Sicily haunted me. The weather did
not help my mood. Wind and rain brought unseasonable cold, and darkness
set in early. My little room, once so cozy, seemed cramped and shabby.
When Teresa had finished dressing me for supper I paced restlessly
around the small chamber. Then it occurred to me that I would see how
the repairs in my new rooms were progressing. I was anxious to move
into them. Perhaps Grandfather would let me do so before the work was
finished, if the rooms were all habitable. The bedchamber, at least,
might be ready for occupation.
Snatching up a candle, I set out along the corridor. A
stair, another long hallway, a second stair--all gloomy in the
half-light, melancholy with the sound of the wind moaning around the
windows. The rooms themselves, unlighted and desolate, only increased
my gloom. It was clear that they were a long way from finished. Wood
shavings, pots of paint, stained cloths lay all about. The
high-ceilinged, empty rooms echoed to my footsteps. A gust of air from
one of the uncurtained windows lifted a corner of a dust sheet and I
started nervously. Imagine, then, my horror when I heard the sound of
footsteps rapidly approaching. There was no reason for anyone to come
here at this time of night, and in such frantic haste. The workmen had
left long ago.
I worked myself into a regular melancholy fit, and was
prepared for the worst. My relief was exaggerated when I saw a familiar
form in the doorway.
"Grandfather," I cried, with a nervous little laugh.
"Heavens, how you frightened me."
He was as pale as a sheet; the candle he held trembled
violently. He said nothing, only stared at me with a wild, haggard look.
Then I realized why he looked so. The doorway of the
sitting room was visible from his own room. Seeing a light where there
should be none--a frail, flickering shadow of light--in a room that had
not been inhabited since his adored daughter left, never to return, he
had thought…. I dared not contemplate what he may have thought.
"I came to see how the work is going," I explained,
taking his arm. "Come, let us go; it is dark here, and cold."
"Sì, Sì," he muttered,
yielding to the pressure of my hand as a child might. "È
molto fredo qui…." And he accompanied me into the corridor
with a faltering step quite unlike his usual brisk stride.
Once out of the room, he recovered some of his spirits,
but as we went on I saw that he was studying me with a frown. Suddenly
he said, "Your gown. It is not right."
Puzzled, I looked down at my frock. As I had half
expected, Grandfather had objected to my wearing black all the time, so
I had allowed myself to be persuaded to relax the rules just a little.
I was proud of this dress, which the seamstress had finished only the
day before. It was of gleaming white satin with an overskirt of black
lace and scallops of the same shadowy fabric around the sleeves.
Grandfather touched my jet mourning brooch, which
fastened the lace bertha.
"Jewels," he said slowly. "A princess should wear jewels.
Come. I will give you the ones that are yours."
"But--" I began.
"Yes, yes, it is necessary. I have wanted so long to see
you wear them. For me, carissima?"
It was impossible to refuse him; and, to be honest, I was
vain enough to be easily persuaded. I assumed he meant to offer me,
only for that evening, some of the family jewels that would have been
my mother's. Few women are strong enough to resist the lure of gems,
and I was no exception.
We strolled arm in arm to the library, and there he
seated me in a chair while he went to the Raphael madonna that hung
between the windows. I watched while he lifted the picture. Behind it
was the utilitarian gray face of a wall safe.
From the aperture Grandfather withdrew box after box of
crimson leather stamped with the family arms in gold. They were of all
sizes and shapes, and my anticipation mounted as he piled them on the
desk. Not until all had been removed and the safe closed and hidden
again did he begin opening the boxes.
The first was almost a foot square. When he took out the
contents I caught a great solemn flash of gold, and eagerly put out my
hand. Grandfather shook his head and with his own hands put the
ornament around my neck. I had no opportunity to examine it before he
came toward me with the next--a large golden brooch, which, with some
fumbling, he fastened to the lace at my breast. They came thick and
fast after that--a bracelet several inches wide, carved all over with
tiny figures of crouching animals; other armlets of sheet gold; a
second necklace, from whose woven gold chain hung the head of a fanged
dragon; gold filigree earrings so heavy they dragged at my earlobes…. I
held up my hand, filled with a mounting sense of oppression as the
massive gold pressed against my flesh.
"Please, Grandfather…. It is so heavy!"
"One more." And on my brow he placed a diadem of twisted
gold wires.
I knew the jewels were not family treasures, but the
parure of an ancient Etruscan lady, excavated, no doubt, from one of
the tombs on his property. The chill I felt from them was not solely
physical; it was eerie to reflect that the last warm flesh they had
touched was now dust. But I told myself not to dwell on such thoughts,
which were, after all, pure superstition. Had not the Princess of
Canino created a sensation by appearing at the ambassador's fete in the
parure of Etruscan jewelry excavated by her husband?
Grandfather's strange mood had lightened as he took out
the jewels; now, standing back to admire the effect, he smiled and said
something I did not understand. When my hands went automatically to my
head, to adjust the diadem, he laughed and spoke again; this time I
recognized the word "mirror."
There was a tall, gilt-framed mirror on the wall. It had
been chosen for the beauty of its carved frame, and the silvering of
the glass was somewhat worn. Perhaps it was this quality, or the dim
light--for the room was lighted by only a few candles--but the sight of
myself in the muddy surface of the mirror made me start back.
My face was annihilated by its frame of gold--around my
throat, at my breast, on my brow. For the most part the ornaments were
far too massive for modern tastes. But the workmanship was superb. The
first necklace was my favorite. The chain was composed of half a dozen
tiny individual chains woven into an intricate web. From it hung loops
of even finer chain, and a series of flower pendants, each covered with
the minute balls of gold, tinier than grains of sand, which were a
distinctive sign of Etruscan gold work. It was quite lovely, and by
itself would have been a charming ornament. I touched it gently and
said aloud,
"This must have been her favorite. Oh, Grandfather, may I
wear this tonight, just this one? I promise I will take the greatest
care of it."
I gave another start as Grandfather's face appeared in
the mirror next to mine. The distorting surface gave him such an odd
look--all staring eyes and smiling mouth. He understood my request, but
I did not find it so easy to understand his answer. He wanted me to
wear the entire parure to dinner! I expostulated. Not only was the
jewelry quite uncomfortably heavy, but I felt I should look ridiculous.
But Grandfather did not brook argument. So we started down the hall, my
hand on his arm; and the well-trained servants who lighted our passage
showed no sign of surprise at the sight of me.
Our entrance into the drawing room was sensational. The
others were gathered there waiting for dinner to be announced, and when
we came in Galiana bounced to her feet, knocking her embroidery frame
over. Even the imperturbable Miss Perkins exclaimed in amazement, and
Miss Rhoda let out a snort.
"How vulgar," she said loudly.
Grandfather took my hand and stepped back; he was
displaying me, like a newly purchased statue, and for a moment I
resented his possessive attitude. But the admiration in Galiana's face
reassured me; I made a careful curtsy, so as not to disturb the weight
that dangled from me. While Galiana fluttered around me, touching the
ornaments with greedy little fingers, I looked at the others. The
Contessa might have been in another room; she had not lifted her eyes
from her embroidery. As for Stefano…
I had not expected we would see him that evening, since
he had favored us with his presence for tea, but there he was, with
that black stick balanced in his fingers, looking me over with a cool
stare. Well schooled as his face was, I thought I detected an even more
fiery emotion than usual in his blazing blue eyes, and I made him a
mocking little bow. As the heir he probably regarded everything in the
castle as his own property. He would not like to think that Grandfather
would give me objects of such value.
"Well, Miss Perkins," I said, turning to that lady, who
was walking around me with her head cocked, in the same style in which
she was wont to examine works of art. "Have you ever seen anything so
lovely?"
"Hmph," said Miss Perkins, rubbing her nose. "Rather
overpowering, don't you think? Those earrings will tear your flesh,
child."
"Not for one evening. They are only a loan, Miss P. After
all," I added, as she still seemed uncommonly sober, "what better way
to display jewelry than on a model? I thought you were anxious to see
these."
"True, true." Miss Perkins stopped abusing her nose and
looked more cheerful as her antiquarian zeal overcame whatever scruples
had vexed her. "They are fascinating! Even lovelier than the Regolini
jewelry, if the description I read is to be trusted. This giant brooch,
or fibula, as it is called, is an amazing piece of workmanship. Look at
these rows of tiny animals, sphinxes and lions…."
A servant came to announce supper; I swept in on
Grandfather's arm, feeling like a queen. It wasn't easy to eat, since a
jangle of gold accompanied every movement I made, and the bracelets
kept slipping down over my hand. And throughout the meal, whenever I
turned to Miss Perkins, I found her watching me with the same puzzled
frown.
III
There was rain in the night, but morning dawned clear and
bright. By noon the sun had dried all but the deepest puddles, and I
decided to go out. I was restless and bored. Miss Perkins was in the
library pursuing some antiquarian search; Galiana had excused herself
to attend her mother, whose health, always delicate, seemed to be worse
that day.
I wandered out into the gardens in search of amusement,
but found none, only the usual small army of gardeners at work clipping
and raking and weeding. The acres of formal planting required constant
attention, especially at this time of year. The roses were at their
best, exquisite blooms of every shade from silvery white to a crimson
so deep as to be almost purple. This garden, less formal than the
others, had been laid out as a compliment to the Prince's English wife.
I could picture her, in the softly flowing gown and broad-brimmed hat
of half a century ago, walking along the graveled paths with her
spaniels, or sitting on one of the marble benches breathing in the
scent of the blooms.
The other gardens were in the Italian or French style,
with flowing water ingeniously employed to create a feeling of
coolness, not only in innumerable fountains but in water stairs and
quiet pools where lilies bloomed. There were artificial grottoes, with
statues standing in mosaiced niches. Peacocks strutted along the
terraces, shattering the somnolent summer air with their harsh cries.
The gardens were so extensive that I had not yet explored
them completely. I was in no mood to do so that morning--fountains and
flowers are not exciting enough for restless youth--but in lieu of
anything better to do I went on through alleys of close-grown box
higher than my head, under fantastic arches of greenery. Passing along
a tunnel of vines, I suddenly found myself in an open area bathed in
sunlight. All around were flowers growing in delightful
confusion--phlox, stock, roses, snapdragons; the tall blue spikes of
delphinium, carnations of mammoth size. Their spicy perfume filled the
air, which rang with the hum of insects seeking the nectar.
Before me were the walls and turrets of a little house,
which I recognized as the one whose fantastic roof I had seen from my
bedroom window that first night. Several times since I had watched the
distant casements turn gold as lights sprang up within to combat the
dark of evening, and I had idly wondered about the identity of the
occupant, but had never had the time or the inclination to pursue the
question.
Now I started along the path between beds of pansies and
dahlias. The little house was quite charming. Leaded windows broke the
austere lines of the stone facade. An octagonal tower at the left front
corner had a steeply peaked roof, like a dwarf's cap, and a quaint
little carved balcony. My curiosity aroused, I lifted my skirts in
order to ascend the steps leading up to the front door. Before I
reached it, the door opened and a man came out.
The dreamlike, fairy-tale look of the place had me half
convinced that it was unoccupied. I fell back with a cry of surprise.
Stefano--for it was he--also started violently.
"What are you doing here?" he demanded.
"I was unaware that this was forbidden territory," I
replied, recovering myself. "Even Bluebeard warned his wife not to
intrude on the chamber of horrors; if you wish to be undisturbed, you
might have said so."
"I am saying so now," Stefano replied, in a tone of
haughty irony. He folded his arms and leaned against the doorjamb.
"So this is where you hide, like a cross old hermit," I
said. "It is a pretty little cell, Cousin."
"I'm glad you approve," Stefano said, still blocking the
door.
"Aren't you going to invite me in?"
"No."
"You aren't very polite."
"That is a virtue I am seldom accused of possessing.
Don't sulk, Cousin, it spoils the shape of that charming mouth. I am
not discriminating against you in particular. No one comes here without
an invitation from me."
"Not even Grandfather?"
"Not even he. There is nothing to see," he added,
shifting his weight carefully from one foot to the other. "Only
bachelor quarters, austere and extremely untidy. No murdered brides,
hanging by their hair, no evidence of weird, evil rites; not even a
woman's forgotten shoe or ruffled garter, little Cousin."
I blushed furiously. I don't know which I resented
more--the crudity of the hint, or the fact that he had read my
unladylike thoughts with such precision. Stefano smiled.
"I'll give you a proper tour some other time, Francesca.
At my convenience."
"But I'm bored now," I said.
"Then you are a young woman with very few resources.
Read, embroider, play on the pianoforte, sketch, ride…. The Prince has
given you the gentlest mare in his stables."
"I can't ride alone. Why don't you come with me?"
There was some malice in the question. I wanted revenge
for his rudeness. But I swear I had no idea that I would be probing
into such a tender spot. Stefano's smile vanished; his face grew dark
with anger.
"Oh, well done, Cousin. However, lest you think your
triumph too complete, I must tell you that I did remount the horse that
threw me--two years ago, after my bones had healed in the inadequate
fashion you see. But I ride, in my own clumsy way, privately. I
certainly do not intend to give you the pleasure of jeering at me."
And with a lurch that almost threw him off balance, he
plunged into the house and slammed the door.
The echoes were still reverberating as I ran down the
flowery path. Tears of shame and anger clouded my vision. I had
assumed--though I don't know why I should have done so--that Stefano
had been crippled for years, perhaps since birth. That was bad enough;
but for a man to be struck down in the full flush of his youthful vigor
was certainly tragic. How he must rage against the cruel fate that had
injured him and left his brother untouched!
As I have said, I am not proud of my thoughts during this
period. As I went on, dabbing at my eyes, rage won out over shame.
After all, he had mocked me first; no gentleman should even hint of
such matters to a lady! And how was I to know he was so sensitive about
his affliction? A truly noble character would have risen above it!
I went into the yew garden, where Alberto, the head
gardener, was delicately clipping the bushes which had been shaped into
fantastic animals. It was precise, exacting work, one clip for every
fifteen minutes of concentrated study; and it was very boring to watch.
I wandered on in the direction of the stables.
One of the stable cats had recently had a litter of
kittens. She was a lean, wild black beast, who was extremely suspicious
of my overtures. The cats were not pets, but working animals, tolerated
because they controlled the rats and mice that infested stable yards.
But the kittens were adorable, and I had hopes of winning their mother
with time. I thought I might also pay a social call on Stella, the
little mare that had been assigned to my use. Not being accustomed to
horses, I was only an indifferent rider, and I had managed to postpone
the lessons Grandfather wanted to give me by pointing out that I had no
proper riding costume. A very elegant one was even now in the hands of
the seamstress, and I looked forward to appearing in the high plumed
hat and black wool jacket, which was to be cut like a man's military
coat, with gold buttons and a high collar. I had no intention of riding
that day, certainly, but as a soft breeze stirred my hair, I rather
wished I could.
I was delighted, therefore, when I found Grandfather in
the stableyard, booted and spurred, watching his favorite steed being
saddled.
"Where are you going, Grandfather?" I asked eagerly. "May
I come with you?"
His stern face lightened at the sight of me, but he shook
his head.
"I am going to the tombs."
"The tombs from which my lovely jewelry came? But I want
to see them. You promised you would take me one day; why not now?"
"It is bad country," Grandfather said slowly. "Rough and
wild. Your pretty dress…."
"I'll change into an old dress. Please wait for me!" And
since he said no more, I turned impetuously to the groom and asked him
to saddle my horse. Then I ran quickly back to the house.
I put on one of the muslin dresses that had been dyed
black, and found a bonnet and gloves. On my way downstairs I passed the
room occupied by Galiana and her mother and heard from within the soft
drone of the Countess's voice invoking the Virgin. I am sorry to say
that instead of admiring her piety, I pitied her daughter. Poor
Galiana; how weary she must be of so much praying.
The library doors opened as I passed them, and Miss
Perkins appeared, blinking and rumpled like a sleepy owl. She had a
great thick book in one hand, with her forefinger inserted in the pages
as a marker.
"Where are you off to?" she asked, seeing my outdoor
attire. "Don't go far, Francesca; you still don't know the area well."
"It's all right, I'm going with Grandfather." I paused
before a mirror to adjust my bonnet. "He is taking me to see the tombs."
"The Etruscan tombs? Oh, Francesca, I don't think--"
"I know you would like to see them too, and I would ask
you to come, but I don't want to keep Grandfather waiting. He was ready
to leave when I asked if I might go with him. Another time, perhaps."
"Wait." As I turned away, my skirts flaring, she caught
my arm. I turned in some surprise, and saw that her face mirrored the
urgency that had been expressed in her tight grasp. "Wait, child, I
must talk to you. I have just found something--"
"I can't wait." I was not stronger than she, but I was
more impatient; I pulled away. "Excuse me, Miss Perkins, but I really
must run. As soon as I get back you can show me your great discovery."
I ran away, laughing, leaving her standing with her hand
outstretched and her lips parted in a frustrated appeal.
The horses were saddled when I reached the stableyard,
and Grandfather was pacing up and down switching at his boots with his
whip. He said nothing, only swung into the saddle and turned the
horse's head toward the gateway. Clumsily I followed suit. He seemed to
be in a bad mood, and I thought it best not to annoy him with questions.
Conversation would have been difficult in any case. There
was a trail, of sorts, but so narrow and overgrown and rocky that we
had to go single file. I had sense enough to let the reins lie loose.
My little mare had been chosen for her docility and intelligence, and
she picked her way through the brambles with delicate steps. The shade
of olives and firs softened the warmth of the sun, and the sky overhead
was as blue as my cousin Andrea's eyes. The could shadows lay cool on
the hillsides, dulling the brilliant green of the foliage.
Then we began to descend. Before long I regretted my
enthusiasm and began to wish I had not come. The slope was so steep in
places that I closed my eyes and clutched the pommel with both hands.
Branches plucked at my bonnet. When at last the track leveled out, I
dared to open my eyes and saw that we were riding slowly through a
green twilight. The trees here were evergreens in whose perpetual shade
the ground was damp and slippery. It was a strange, haunted place; one
would not have been surprised to see the slender form of a wood nymph
slipping through a ray of diffused sunlight.
The end of the ravine opened up into a wider area, though
it was still below the surface of the upper plateau, and I began to see
the gaping square-cut holes that opened into ancient tombs. The ground
here was not so overgrown, so I ventured to urge my horse into a faster
walk until I was beside Grandfather.
"Those are tombs, are they not?" I asked, in my careful
Italian.
He turned his head. From under his frowning gray eyebrows
his eyes contemplated me blankly, as if I had interrupted some train of
thought.
"Yes," he said. "Tombs. But these are poor--the tombs of
peasants. It is not here, the place we seek."
As we went on I was amazed at the extent of the ancient
cemetery. There were tombs of all types; small primitive rooms cut into
the rock, and larger ones of the tumulus type, in which mounds had been
raised over the burial chamber. Bushes and small trees grew thickly
over the swelling green slopes. In some places I could see the scars of
digging, but vegetation had covered all but the most recent holes. It
was not a place I should have liked to visit alone. The concealed
shafts were like traps into which one might easily tumble. The
atmosphere of the place was rather uncanny too. It was so still. No
bird sang, no small animals rustled through the coarse grass. I
remembered something Stefano had said the previous night at dinner,
when he and Miss Perkins were talking about the cemetery. The peasants
thought this was a haunted place, sacred to the dead. The poor
superstitious creatures believed in ghosts, and curses, and all manner
of pagan horrors. We, of course, were above such fears….
A little to the right of the rough path rose the towering
slope of the biggest mound I had yet seen. It must have been thirty
feet high. Around its curved base was a circle of masonry, big, roughly
hewn blocks of pale tufa, like a stone girdle.
"Is that it?" I asked. "The tomb of the jewels?"
"Sì, sì. La tomba della principessa."
Grandfather dismounted and came around to help me down. For a moment he
stood looking about with a puzzled air, as if he could not remember the
way. Then, taking my hand, he struck off at an angle, straight through
the weeds, toward the base of the mound.
It was hard for me to keep up with him. Once I tripped
over a stone and would have fallen if he had not been holding my hand.
We had gone halfway around the circumference of the mound before he
stopped.
The bushes were thicker here, obscuring the masonry at
the base of the mound. Grandfather pushed into them, tramping down
weeds with his heavy boots, thrusting branches aside. While he
searched, I tried to catch my breath. It was hot in the sun, and I felt
all tumbled about. I took off my bonnet and pushed the heavy hair back
from my face.
Grandfather turned. "Here," he said.
He had torn away some of the underbrush. There, in the
slope of the bank, the horizontal blocks of the surrounding stonework
had been cut out to form an entrance in the shape of a Gothic arch. A
single monolith filled the opening like a great stone plug. So
precisely had it been cut to fit the rounded sides that one could
scarcely see the crack between door and frame.
I wanted to ask if this was the original door, or one he
had placed there to keep vandals away. There were other questions I
might have asked, for I was genuinely excited at being so close to my
first ancient tomb. But my meager knowledge of the language failed; I
determined to ask Miss Perkins, when I returned. How thrilled she would
be by such an adventure! I felt a little guilty at having run off
without her. Well, but I would tell her all about it, and we would come
again another day.
I watched, fascinated, as Grandfather tugged at the
stone. There was no denying his antiquarian zeal; his suit was becoming
dirty and snagged by the rough stone. I wondered if a man his age ought
to be engaging in such heavy work. The stone must be weighted or
balanced in some clever fashion, or he could never hope to move it. It
must weigh hundreds of pounds--tons, perhaps, if it was very thick.
I didn't see the trick of the door, since his body was in
the way, but apparently he found a catch of some kind, for the heavy
block began to move. Without speaking or looking at me, he stepped
through the opening.
It was as if he had vanished, so black was the interior.
But when I peered inside, I saw him standing at the top of a flight of
stone steps. On a shelf inside the entrance was a box of candles. He
lighted one of these and held it up.
"Come," he said.
I hesitated. The candlelight was feeble; I could see
nothing beyond the stairs. From the pitch-blackness came a breath of
thick moist air, clammily cold and reeking of damp.
"Avanti," Grandfather repeated,
beginning to descend. His voice came back, echoing hollowly. With a
shiver I picked up my skirts and followed.
The stairs were few in number but slippery with damp. I
touched the wall once for support, but pulled my hand back at once; the
stone was slimy and cold.
At the foot of the stairs was a chamber some thirty feet
long, but so narrow it was hardly more than a broad passageway. The
walls were of stone. At shoulder height they curved sharply inward, so
that the ceiling gave the impression of a long, high vault. The room
was empty except for scraps of stone and rusted metal on the floor.
The candle burned blue in the dank air. I had already had
quite enough of tombs, and would have retreated then and there--after
all, there was nothing much to see--but Grandfather stalked on, holding
his inadequate light high like an ancient priest. At the far end of the
corridor-room were three openings, one straight ahead and one on each
side. The side openings were quite low; peering through one, I saw a
tiny stone-cut chamber, as empty as the first. The doorway straight
ahead had been filled with blocks of masonry, which now lay broken and
tumbled. Grandfather stepped over these blocks and passed into the
inner chamber. I followed; but I wished he had given me his hand.
Climbing over the rubble was not easy with my voluminous skirts.
The far chamber was also the last; there was no other
exit. It was a little smaller than the first, and had the same steeply
vaulted ceiling, smeared with lichen and mold. At the very end was a
low stone platform.
I think the musty air had dulled my wits; it took me
several seconds to understand the function of this rude bier, and when
I did, I felt a chill--a foolish qualm, since, after all, the purpose
of the structure had been funereal.
"It is very interesting," I said, with a brightness I
certainly did not feel. I didn't like the way my voice echoed in that
chamber of the dead; when I spoke again, it was in a whisper. "Can we
go now, Grandfather?"
"Here is where she lay," Grandfather said, his eyes fixed
on the low platform. His hand was trembling. The candlelight flickered
wildly across the stained ceiling. "Here…." And then he said something
else I didn't understand, something about remembering. He began to back
away, as if he were retreating from the presence of a monarch--or from
something he was afraid to turn his back on. I took one step after him,
and then what I had feared happened: his shaking hand lost its grip on
the candle, which fell to the floor and went out.
I cried out. The echoes of the scream went on for an
inordinately long time. When they died, I heard Grandfather stumbling
over the loose stones around the inner doorway. I was afraid to move,
for fear of falling and hurting myself, or touching the foul slime that
covered walls and floors. Naturally I assumed Grandfather was going to
get another light. I could see the tomb entrance, or at least part of
it--a square of brightness against the black of the interior.
Grandfather's body blotted out much of the light as he climbed the
stairs. And then--then…. The light disappeared. I stared into
blackness, unable to believe what had happened, although the dull,
grating thud of the closing door confirmed the evidence of my eyes.
I don't know how long I stood there, waiting…. For the
door to open, the beautiful glow of daylight, the sound of
Grandfather's voice apologizing, exclaiming, explaining how the
accident had happened…. I don't know how long it was before the truth
dawned on me.
I didn't really believe it. If I had done, I would have
gone into hysterics. Instead, I began making my slow, careful way back
toward that closed slab of stone. I couldn't bring myself to touch the
wall, so I had to move an inch at a time, sliding first one foot and
then the other along the slippery floor, stepping carefully over
obstacles as my toe touched them, balancing for long moments on one
foot while the other probed. Strain my eyes as I might, I could not see
even a crack of light. Those ancient artisans who sealed the bodies of
the dead away for eternity had known their business. Yet there was
light in that dreadful place--patches of lichen that glowed with a
faint greenish pallor, like the ectoplasm produced by mediums.
The tomb seemed very noisy. It wasn't until later that I
realized that the hollow reverberation, like the beating of a far-off
drum, was the pounding of my heart. My brain was too numbed to feel
fear, but my body was wiser.
When I reached the steps, my knees gave way completely,
somewhat to my surprise. But it was better to crawl up the stairs; they
were deep and slippery. One patch of lichen on the right-hand wall
looked exactly like the print of a giant, crippled hand. I thought, in
the stupor arising from terror, that the twisted fingers pointed the
way out. I followed their lead and crouched on the topmost step with my
palms flat against the unyielding surface of the stone. I thought for a
moment that it moved slightly. It was my arms that gave way; I was
close to losing consciousness, and too benumbed to realize it. But the
illusion gave me a moment of renewed hope. I rose cautiously to my
feet, careful not to trip over my skirts, and threw all my weight
against the slab. At least I meant to push. My body refused to obey me.
A curious lethargy had seized my limbs.
Leaning against the stone, cheek and hands pressed
against the roughness, I suddenly remembered what Grandfather had said
just before he dropped the candle.
"Here is where she lay…." But the Italian word for "she"
is lei; and that is also the word for the formal
version of the pronoun "you." One would use the formal version when
addressing royalty--a princess…. And with that realization other
unnoticed clues fell suddenly into place. The last, and most formidable
of them, was the very fact of my entombment. It had not been an
accident. If he had dislodged the slab by some ill-judged movement, he
would by now have opened it again.
I realized that I was being overcome by some miasmic
atmosphere in that long-sealed place. I seemed to feel the door move
again, and knew this time that my senses must be deceiving me.
The door swung open.
Sunlight blinded me. A rush of warm, sweet air--how
heavenly sweet, after the horror of the tomb--filled my straining
lungs. For a moment I stood swaying on the threshold. I thought I must
have fainted, and that this was a dream; for before me, his white shirt
dirt-smeared and torn, his eyes wide with horror, his fair hair curling
damply--was Andrea. With a long sigh of relief I fell forward into his
outstretched arms.
"You were never in serious danger, you know." How he knew
I was awake I could not imagine. I lay still, my eyes closed,
sensuously enjoying the touch of the sun on my upturned face. There was
something soft under my head, but I did not mind the hard ground, or
even the pebbles that pressed into my back. I would have endured
greater discomfort and felt myself fortunate.
I did not need to open my eyes to know that my first
impression had been incorrect. It was not Andrea, but Stefano, who had
released me. I had made that error once before--stupidly, for the
brothers were not that much alike. Certainly no one could confuse their
voices. Stefano's cool ironic tones were unmistakable.
I opened my eyes. He was sitting on a rock a few feet
away. The soft bundle of cloth under my head must be his coat. He was
in his shirt sleeves. Perspiration streaked his face and his bared
throat.
"If I was not in danger, why are you so pale?" I inquired.
"Exhaustion," Stefano replied coldly. "The exertion of
moving the stone was strenuous, for a cripple."
"I can't imagine how you did it," I murmured, letting my
eyes linger on the breadth of shoulder, displayed by his wetly clinging
shirt. Unperturbed by my regard, Stefano smiled.
"Because my leg is injured does not mean all my muscles
are atrophied. Can you stand?"
"No."
"I can lift you," Stefano said, "but I cannot carry you
any distance. So, unless you wish to remain here all day…."
"Oh, stop baiting me," I cried. "It was a horrible
experience! You may say I was in no danger, but I am still shaken; I
must rest a little…."
I turned my head so he wouldn't see me crying. Now that
the danger was over, I felt drained of all strength. After a moment
Stefano spoke in a gentler voice.
"I know it must have been frightening, Cousin. You are no
coward, I'll say that for you; I expected to find you screaming with
hysterics, or in a swoon. Rest a while. But Miss Perkins will be pacing
the floor until she sees you safe and sound."
"Then it was Miss Perkins who sent you? Or did you know
he would do this?"
"In God's name, how can you suggest such a thing?"
Stefano demanded in a rough voice, quite unlike his usual smooth tones.
"Do you suppose I would not have warned you if I had suspected for an
instant…. It was an accident," he added, controlling his voice. "You
can't believe it was anything else."
I raised myself on one elbow and looked earnestly at him.
"Stefano, you must tell me the truth."
Stefano studied me thoughtfully. Then he nodded.
"You are right. The truth is probably less frightening
than the things you are imagining. It all began here, you see--five
years ago, when he excavated this particular tomb. It is a very old
one, dating back to the early days of the Etruscan kingdom--the seventh
or eighth century before Christ. How it remained hidden so long, I
don't know. Many of the other tombs had been robbed. But this was
untouched; the rich treasure was still here. Weapons, lamps,
pottery--and the jewels you wore the other night. Also--the bodies of
the dead.
"Those in the outer chamber were mere heaps of dust. But
the inner chamber had been sealed. The Prince had to demolish the
barricade himself. He had difficulty forcing his people to come here at
all. Only a few of the bravest entered the tomb with him, and at the
sight of that enigmatic, walled-up door, they fled, screaming of curses
and vampires. So Grandfather took up chisel and hammer and attacked the
wall. His imagination had been fired by the fine things in the outer
chamber; as soon as one block had been removed, he thrust his head and
one hand, holding a candle, into the aperture.
"The air in such places is usually bad. One might expect
that the candle would not burn. But this one flared up, and the scent
that reached his nostrils was not noxious; it was dry and strangely,
spicely perfumed. As the candle flame leaped, he saw--her.
"She was lying on the stone bier at the far end of the
chamber. At first he thought it was a statue he saw, one of those
marvelous chryselephantine statues of gold and ivory, like the great
Minerva of Phidias described by ancient writers. She was all gold, from
her glittering gown and jewels to the golden hair streaming over her
shoulders, down her ivory arms and breast. Her face was one the great
Phidias might have claimed as his masterpiece, pale and unmarred. The
Prince stood transfixed; and as he watched, her pure perfection
suddenly crumbled. She fell into dust before his very eyes. The golden
scales of her gown collapsed, with the faintest of musical chiming, and
her diadem dropped into the hollow that had been her face."
I let out a little sound of horror, and Stefano nodded
gravely.
"It must have been an appalling sight; I remember my own
reaction when he described it to us, days later. He fell into a swoon
after that dreadful vision. One of his most courageous attendants,
venturing into the tomb in search of his master, found him lying on the
floor, cold and still as a dead man. He was ill for days, but as soon
as he could move, he insisted on returning to the tomb. We helped him
demolish the wall, Andrea and I--for the story had gotten about and not
a man on the estate would go with us, threaten as we might. There was
nothing on the slab, only the eerie suggestion of a vanished form,
outlined by the positions of the jewels that had fallen from it."
"I don't believe it," I muttered. "Such things don't
happen. He must have been dreaming. He was ill. He saw the jewelry,
fallen, as you saw it, and collapsed. In his delirium he imagined the
rest."
"That is what I myself believe," Stefano said. "But it
doesn't matter, does it? What matters is what he
believes. And he believes he saw her--the Etruscan princess, the
ancestress of our race."
I lay back, flat on the ground, and stared up at the blue
vault of the sky. Never before had I so appreciated the simple joy of
being alive, under the sun.
"There is one more thing," Stefano said slowly. "Among
the objects we found in the inner chamber were some silver jars that
had contained perfume or cosmetics. They were inscribed with a name."
"And that name was--"
"Larthia."
"So," I said, after a moment. "It was
Miss Perkins who sent you in search of me."
"Yes. She had no real cause to fear for you, only a vague
foreboding. But when she told me he had called you by that name, when
you first arrived…. You have the golden hair, the family blood. Such a
fancy might explain his sudden reversal of feeling toward you. He has
had…odd spells since the discovery, times when he doesn't seem to be
himself. They don't last long, they are infrequent, but…. I thought he
looked strange last night, when he had decked you out in his treasure.
And so I came. I--I met the Prince between here and the castle. When I
asked him where you were, he looked surprised and said he had not seen
you since breakfast."
"You saved my life," I said. "If I had been there longer,
I would have broken down."
"Don't thank me, thank your Miss Perkins. She has quite
redeemed my opinion of the English--which has been somewhat prejudiced
by Aunt Rhoda. A remarkable woman! She told me she had been haunted by
that name since you came. Seeing you wearing the jewelry last night
revived her memory. She spent the morning in the library looking for
the reference. Dennis mentions the tomb and the name in his book on
Etruria."
I sat up. My head spun for a moment, but soon I was able
to get to my feet. I felt exhausted.
"Can you mount without help?" Stefano asked, still seated.
"I am afraid not," I said apologetically.
He rose. Limping badly, he came toward me. He did not
have his stick. I knew, by the fact that he had forgotten this
essential aid, that he had been more alarmed than he implied; but his
face had settled back into its usual cold mask.
He helped me into the saddle, not without difficulty. His
horse was cropping the sour grass nearby, but he made no move to
approach it.
"Ride on," he said curtly.
I started to object, and then I understood. He did not
want me to see him struggling to mount. So I turned the mare's head and
set her into a walk. I heard nothing and I did not look back. After an
interval Stefano came up beside me, and, as the trail narrowed, went
ahead. We did not speak again.
I was not so resilient or so brave as I had thought. For
some time I had horrible dreams of being shut into dark places or being
pursued through underground passages by invisible horrors. I said
nothing to Galiana about the experience. In fact, no one knew about it
except Stefano--who never again referred to it--and Miss Perkins, who
brushed aside my emotional thanks with gruff embarrassment. Grandfather
behaved as if no such thing had happened and when, several days later,
he made a casual remark about taking me to the cemetery, "…which you
have not yet seen," I realized that the episode had been wiped from his
mind. I did not need Miss Perkins to tell me not to go in that
direction with him again, yet strangely I was not uneasy with him.
I had plenty to occupy my mind, and before long the
incident had faded in my thoughts, except for the occasional dreams.
The work on my new suite of rooms proceeded apace, and the dressmakers
from Florence arrived with cartloads of lovely fabrics. Galiana and I
forgot our other concerns when that rainbow assortment was carried in;
we reveled in India muslins and silver lace, in flame-colored taffeta
and azure moiré.
I had become fond of Galiana, although I often thought in
my smug way how typically Italian she was with her volatile moods--one
moment convulsed with mirth over some schoolgirl joke, the next pensive
and sad as she described her mother's failing health. Her black eyes
could snap with anger when one of the servants failed to obey quickly
enough, but her rages passed as quickly as the summer storm, leaving
her sunny and cheerful again.
Some of her traits annoyed me, however. One of the most
annoying was the way she behaved toward Stefano, when he chose to grace
us with his presence. It would not be quite accurate to say she flirted
with him, for she seemed a little in awe of him; but she hung on his
words with a breathless attention I found disgusting. He was not
particularly responsive; in fact his attitude was reminiscent of the
way a man might look at a favorite puppy or kitten, if the little
creature should suddenly break into human speech.
One evening she chose a seat on a footstool next to his
chair and never took her big black eyes off his face as he discussed
antiquities with Miss Perkins. Stefano left early that evening; and
next morning, as Galiana and I were preparing to go out, I spoke to her
about it.
"I didn't realize you were so interested in ancient
history, Galiana."
"I am not." Galiana giggled. She had a sweet,
high-pitched little laugh. "No, not at all."
"Then it must be Stefano who interests you," I said,
concentrating on tying my veil.
"But he is the heir," Galiana said calmly. "One day he
will be Prince Tarconti."
"Isn't that rather mercenary?" I exclaimed.
She didn't understand me at first. Neither of us spoke
French all that well, and we often had slight difficulty in
communicating. I was somewhat hesitant about explaining myself; my
exclamation had been made in the warmth of surprise; but when she
understood my meaning, she laughed and shrugged.
"It is always done," she said. "Oh, to be sure, I'amour--c'est
belle, certainement, mais n'est pas pratique. Perhaps I will
have a lover after I am married. And Stefano is not ugly. He is not as
handsome as Andrea, but he will do quite well."
I found this terribly cold-blooded, but I had to admit it
was the acceptable attitude for her nation and social class. In fact,
it was the common attitude in England as well. I had often listened to
the older girls at school discussing marriage; the question of dowries
and settlements and titles entered into the matter pretty frequently.
Galiana hummed to herself as she studied her reflection
in the mirror. I felt a stab of jealousy run through me. My new riding
costume was finished and I had thought I looked rather well. The black
wool was becoming and the dashing cut of the jacket set off my too-slim
figure quite nicely. The swoop of the plume and veil against my fair
hair was good too. But next to Galiana I looked like a child. She was
deliciously plump. I knew her neat little waist owed a good deal to
tight lacing, but the effect was excellent. Her riding costume was a
daring shade of crimson that set off her vivid coloring. It was a
little shabby, and if I had been more generous I might have been moved
to suggest that she share in the bounty of new clothes I was getting.
Grandfather would never have objected. But I was not noble enough to
rise above the challenge of her bouncing black ringlets and rosy
cheeks. Feeling a little out of sorts, I turned from the mirror.
"Let's go," I said. "The sky is clouding over; I don't
want to be caught in the rain."
We were going to the village. It was not far away, at the
foot of the hill where the castle stood, and I couldn't see why we were
not allowed to go alone; but whenever I rode out, a groom in the
Tarconti livery followed at a discreet distance. This was not only a
question of propriety, but also of safety; for there were bandits in
the hills, not only the mysterious Falcon's followers, but men who had
taken up a life of crime as a result of poverty or their own vicious
inclinations.
A trip to the village was a treat only because we got out
so seldom. According to Galiana, it had little to offer. We had hoped
of getting to Viterbo, or even Florence, eventually, but in the
meantime even Isola Turna was a novelty to me. The shop in the village
(there was only one of importance) had ribbons and buttons, sufficient
excuse for two bored girls to seek it out.
The sun had gone under the clouds by the time we reached
the town, making it look even more somber than it ordinarily appeared.
The houses were of dull gray stone, with narrow, suspicious-looking
windows. There were no trees and no flowers, not even window boxes,
such as I had seen in other Italian towns. A few lean dogs sprawled in
the dust of the main street. The central square was not unattractive,
but it was very dirty. The fountain had floating debris of all kinds in
the water, and the statue in its center was streaked with bird
droppings.
The church, dedicated to Saint Sebastian, had a facade of
the same gray stone. A single window and a flight of stairs leading up
to the door were the only features that broke the monotony of the flat
front wall. Even the bell tower was short and squat. Apparently the
church wall served as a sort of public notice board; a few tattered
papers flapped loose corners in the wind.
One side of the piazza had houses a little more
pretentious than the others we had seen, with stone balconies and
handsome windows. There were also a few small shops. One was a
café with rusty iron chairs set out on the stone paving. When we
came into sight the chairs were pushed back, conversation stopped, and
the patrons--roughly dressed, bearded men--stared at us as hard as they
could.
The shop we entered was dimly lighted and so filthy that
no respectable English merchant would have admitted to owning it. I
found Signor Carpaccio, the owner, unpleasantly obsequious; and I could
not help contrasting him with crusty old Mr. Peters, who had owned the
sweetshop in the village in Yorkshire.
The ribbons were not very pretty, but we bought several
yards of lilac twill, just to be buying something, and Galiana found a
crude little statue of Saint Sebastian for her mother. Poking around on
a shelf filled with carved stone figures, I selected a rather nice
little image of a cat. So we had several parcels when we came out of
the shop.
The clouds had thickened, and we made haste to remount.
Galiana shivered. She was a creature of the sun, and often complained
of the cold at temperatures I found pleasantly mild.
"Brrr! It is going to rain, I think. Let us hurry,
Francesca."
She set her horse into a canter at once and I followed,
with the groom behind me. We were almost out of town when a child
darted out of a side street, no wider than an alley, right under my
horse's feet.
I jerked on the reins so suddenly and so awkwardly that
even my gentle Stella was forced to rear, and I came close to tumbling
off. I dismounted as quickly as I could, without waiting for the groom
to help me. The child lay still, face down in the dirt.
I should not have moved it. Miss Perkins told me that,
later, but I was too frightened to be sensible. I caught the little
thing up and lifted it onto my lap. I use the indefinite pronoun
because I couldn't tell whether it was a boy or a girl. It wore the
loose robe-shirt all tiny children wore before they graduated to skirts
or trousers, and its hair was cropped crudely around its ears. It was
very slight; its bones felt as fragile as a bird's under my hands.
Its face was pale under a solid coating of dirt, and its
eyes were closed. My heart gave a great leap and seemed to stop. Then
the eyes opened.
"Thank God," I cried, forgetting my hard-won Italian in
my agitation. "Are you hurt, child?"
The groom, a stocky young fellow named Piero, was now
beside me. His Italian was difficult to follow, he spoke only the harsh
local dialect; but after he had passed his hands over the child's body
and limbs, he smiled reassuringly and spoke slowly. I caught the word "bene."
That, and his smile, made me feel better. The child continued to lie in
my lap, staring up at me with great velvety eyes. It looked very solemn
for such a young child. It was also very dirty.
Galiana had not dismounted.
"Come along, Francesca," she said impatiently. "It will
rain any moment. We will be soaked."
"But the child," I began.
"You heard Piero say it is not hurt. Put it down and
hurry."
Angrily I gathered the child into my arms and stood up.
It weighed nothing at all. I was looking around, wondering how to ask
Piero if he could locate its home, when the door of a nearby house
opened and a woman ran out. The shawl had fallen back from her gray
hair, and her lined face was anxious. She limped as she ran. I thought
it must be the child's grandmother. The small face came alive at the
sight of her. Stretching out two bony little arms, it cried, "Mamma."
The woman took the child, an operation made slightly more
difficult than it needed to have been because she was simultaneously
trying to curtsy. When the exchange was effected she pressed the infant
to her bosom and wrapped her shawl around its bare feet and legs. I was
still stunned by the revelation of the child's cry; the woman looked
far too old to be the mother. When the woman looked up at me she was
smiling, and I saw, with another shock, that her teeth were brown and
broken. I had expected her to rail at me, and I wouldn't have blamed
her; the child had moved too quickly for me to avoid it, but a mother's
concern is inexcusable. Instead she snatched at my hand and tried to
kiss it. I fumbled in my purse and pressed a coin into her hand.
"For medicine," I said. "Or a doctor, if…. Oh, Galiana,
tell her, will you, she doesn't understand me. A doctor should see the
child."
"Doctor?" Galiana looked baffled. "There is no doctor in
the village, Francesca. Do come! Such a fuss over a peasant child. They
are just like animals, my dear, they aren't easily hurt. If you don't
come now, I shan't wait for you."
Tossing her head, she rode away.
The woman was retreating, bowing with every step. The
child lay in her bosom; it was placidly sucking its thumb and still
staring at me. I looked helplessly at Piero. With a smile, he bent and
held his hands for me to mount. There seemed to be nothing else to do,
so I clambered back onto Stella and followed Galiana.
I made no attempt to catch up with her immediately. I was
puzzled and shocked by her attitude. It made me feel quite unfriendly
toward her. But she reined up and waited for me with an angelic smile
on her pretty face.
"I have just thought of something very amusing," she
said. "Did you hear what the woman said to you when she was mumbling
over your hand?"
"I couldn't understand her," I said shortly.
"Why, she called you by the name these ignorant people
give to the harvest goddess. They have a festival in the autumn, with
games and feasting; one of the girls is chosen to be the Principessa
Etrusca, as they call her. Stefano says it is a…What did he call it?"
She frowned prettily. "Oh, yes. It is a survival of the old religion,
and the girl who plays the goddess must bleach her hair yellow if it is
not that shade already. I suppose they confuse her with his
Excellency's princess--the one he found in the tomb with all her
jewels."
I jerked on the reins so hard that Stella stopped.
"What are you talking about?" I demanded.
"You must have heard of the princess," Galiana said.
"Everyone in the village knows about it, that's why they won't go near
the old tombs. You have yellow hair, like hers."
I looked sharply at her, but her smooth face was quite
innocent.
"Yes, I have heard about her," I said. "How strange. I
don't think I want to be taken for a goddess."
"It's your own fault," Galiana replied. "Getting involved
with these people. You'd better take a bath as soon as we get back,
Francesca. You look a fright, all covered with dust. And--" Her eyes
narrowed with malicious laughter. "I'll wager you have fleas, too. The
villagers all have them."
I lifted my chin in my most dignified manner and said
nothing. I had been about to apply my nails to a spot on my neck that
had developed a suspicious itch; but not for worlds would I have given
Galiana that satisfaction.
II
The poets say that beauty is in the eye of the beholder.
I never realized the truth of the statement until I next rode to the
village. This time Miss Perkins was with me, and I felt as if I were
seeing the place through new eyes.
Galiana insisted on coming. Any excursion was better than
staying at home. She had taken a fancy to Miss Perkins, although the
way she laughed at that poor woman's manners would have infuriated a
less amiable person. Miss Perkins didn't mind. "There is no harm in the
girl," she said, after I had indignantly described Galiana's callous
behavior toward the child. "She is the product of her class, Francesca;
she has never been taught to think of others. You mustn't blame her.
Perhaps you can help educate her feelings and tastes."
I couldn't be so tolerant. But I had to admit that
Galiana was not beyond hope. She came with us even though she knew my
reason for going was to inquire after the child.
We stopped in front of the house and Piero went to knock
at the door. A strange woman answered it. But she knew who I was, and
what I wanted; in a moment the child's mother came running out of the
house, whose windows and doorway were now fringed with staring faces.
She tried to kiss my hand. I could hear Galiana giggling as I hastily
pulled it away. There was no use trying to explain to her that it was a
sense of fitness, not fear of fleas, that made me reluctant. I had been
taught that one bowed the knee only to God and the Sovereign.
With Miss Perkins to interpret, I found that the child
had taken no harm. It was even then at play in the piazza. So we rode
that way, after I had given the woman a few coins. Her gratitude was so
exaggerated that I was reminded of Galiana's remarks about the
Principessa Etrusca.
I had told Miss Perkins about this theory and she was
inclined to agree. As we rode off, she looked thoughtful.
"I am afraid, Francesca, that you are about to become a
local saint. You must control your benevolence."
"Don't be sarcastic, Miss P.," I said sulkily. "You know
I am not benevolent at all. Only the cruelest brute could be
indifferent to an infant--and anyone would look like a saint next to
Galiana."
The other girl was a few feet ahead, and I was speaking
English, so I had no fear that she would overhear me. Miss Perkins
shook her head.
"It isn't only Galiana. This country is ripe for a
revolution. It is not quite as bad as France used to be; but the
tumbrils and the guillotine, tragic as they were, arose out of bitter
injustice on the part of the nobility."
She was surveying the mean little street as we rode, and
her face was both sad and angry.
"Look about you," she went on. "There is no school in
this town, no hospital, not even a doctor. Oh, yes, we have far to go,
even in England; but this country is still in the Dark Ages. Do you
know how old the child's mother is? Thirty-one! She looks sixty. She is
so badly crippled with rheumatism she can scarcely walk--the result of
living in damp, filthy old houses. Those houses belong to your
grandfather, Francesca. How long has it been, I wonder, since he
repaired any of them? Yet he is considered a kindly lord in comparison
to others in the province."
I was too shocked to answer at first. Miss Perkins rode
on, muttering angrily to herself, and I let her draw ahead.
I could hardly blame Galiana for laughing at the way Miss
Perkins rode; she was a figure of fun on a horse, for she had never
learned to post, and rolled around in the saddle like a two-year-old.
But she rode as she did everything else, with a grim determination that
overcame lack of skill, and that day her generous indignation lent her
dignity. By the time we reached the piazza she had forgotten her
libertarian sentiments, and the face she turned to me was beaming with
admiration.
"What a beautiful old town!" she exclaimed. "Look at the
carved stonework on that balcony, Francesca. The church cannot be later
than the fourteenth century. See the shape of the Gothic arches in the
rose window."
When she had finished exclaiming over the beauties of the
piazza, it looked quite different to me. The sun was shining brightly,
which may have helped. The fine weather had brought the townspeople out
into the air. Women filled great jars at the fountain. A group of
little children sat in the dirt playing some sort of game with pebbles
and bits of stick. I saw my small acquaintance among them, but did not
go to him (Miss Perkins had ascertained that the infant was of the male
sex and was named Giovanni), fearing that my attentions might alarm
him. I pointed him out to Miss Perkins, adding,
"His mother says there is nothing wrong with him; but see
how quietly he sits there. Surely small children should be running
around, shouting…."
"They are all too quiet," Miss Perkins replied, her face
darkening. "A diet of macaroni and vegetables gives one little energy.
Even the women move slowly, with effort. As for the men…" and she
snorted contemptuously.
There were certainly a number of men lounging about doing
nothing, while the women were carrying the heavy jars. Now that Miss
Perkins had pointed it out, I could see the lethargy that affected all
of them, even the busy women. They were not pale; no one who lived
under the hot Italian sun could help but be burned by its rays. But
they had a sickly look under their tans, and most of them were too thin.
Galiana was already before Signor Carpaccio's shop,
calling impatiently to us. Miss Perkins paid no attention. She jerked
her horse's head around and went bouncing across the piazza toward the
church. Laughing, I followed her, leaving Galiana to do as she pleased.
Miss Perkins rolled out of the saddle before Piero could
come to her assistance. He gave me a grimace of mingled amusement and
chagrin. I grinned back at him (Galiana was forever reproaching me for
my informal attitude toward the servants) and accepted his help in
dismounting.
Miss Perkins was standing at the top of the steps, her
head tilted back and her bonnet hanging by its ribbons as she
contemplated the carved Gothic window.
"What is the interior like?" she asked.
"We didn't have time to visit the church before."
Miss Perkins shook her head. "Tsk, tsk. People come all
the way from England, even from America, to see historic beauty of this
sort. You should not ignore--"
Luckily for me, we were interrupted by Galiana at that
point in the lecture.
"What are you doing?" she demanded. "Let us go to the
shop."
"I want to see the church," Miss Perkins replied coolly.
"What for?" Galiana asked.
"Have you ever seen it?"
"No, of course not. There is a chapel at the castello;
we hear Mass there, with Father Benedetto. Even you heretics must know
that…."
Galiana was beginning to learn that she could say such
things to Miss Perkins, but her expression was rather wary until Miss
Perkins burst into a shout of laughter.
"Heretics, are we? Well, for a good Catholic, you are
singularly ignorant about your own faith, my dear. This heretic will
help educate you, and we will begin by visiting this most interesting
and ancient church. Ha--but, what is this?"
She turned and peered near-sightedly at one of the
yellowed placards fastened to the facade of the church.
"It is a notice of taxes," Galiana said. She could
read--barely.
"So I see." Miss Perkins adjusted her pince-nez. "An
inappropriate notice for a church, is it not?"
Galiana sighed impatiently. Miss Perkins proceeded to
read all the notices, while we fidgeted. Finally she walked toward the
door. We were about to follow when there was a shift of movement all
over the piazza. For a second everything froze. The women stopped in
midstride, balancing their jars; the men looked like statues caught in
a dramatic gesture; even the children stopped pushing the pebbles
around in the dust. The next moment--it was amazing, how quickly it all
happened--the piazza was half empty. The women and children had gone.
The troop of soldiers came into the piazza two abreast.
They must have filled the narrow street from wall to wall. They carried
long muskets, with bayonets attached. Behind them came the cavalry, a
dozen or more mounted men--and Captain De Merode.
"What miserable-looking soldiers they are," I said,
remembering the Queen's Household troops whom I had seen on parade in
London. In comparison to their spotless uniforms and military
precision, these slouching rascals looked like scarecrows.
Miss Perkins shook her head. "Don't you remember the
Swiss mercenaries we saw in Civitavecchia--lazy, fat men whose muskets
were rusted with disuse? These men may look dirty, but their bayonets
are freshly polished…. Look at their faces--their eyes. The peasants
call them ‘lupi'--wolves."
"How do you know all that?" I asked in surprise.
"I talk to people," said Miss Perkins. "What is more, I
listen."
I took a closer look at the soldiers, who had spread out
around the piazza like troops occupying a hostile city. The villagers
had melted away; the chairs before the café were empty. But I
was aware of watching eyes, flashes of movement in doorways and
windows. The soldiers sensed the invisible watchers too. Now that Miss
Perkins had alerted me, I saw the ferocity of the bearded faces, the
animal keenness of the eyes.
The mounted men rode straight toward us. The Captain
lifted his hand, and the little troop came to a ragged stop around the
curving steps of the church. De Merode dismounted with a jingle of
swordbelt and spurs. He swept off his helmet.
"Ladies, what a pleasure to meet you here. I would not
have thought this wretched hole had any amusement to offer ladies of
your sort. And you, Mademoiselle--Parker? I was under the impression
that you had returned to England."
"Were you?" Miss Perkins did not bother to correct his
mistake about her name. "You do your spies less than justice, Captain.
I am sure you know everything that goes on in this district."
The word was ill-chosen--deliberately, if I knew my Miss
Perkins. The Captain scowled.
"My spies"--he emphasized the word--"are less efficient
than I could wish. I have not yet succeeded in the task my commander
honored me with."
"Honored?" I repeated, glancing at his unkempt soldiers
with a curling lip. I had learned this gesture from watching Stefano.
Apparently it was just as annoying on my face. De Merode's cheeks
reddened.
"Any service of His Holiness is an honor," he snapped.
"To be assigned to clean out this viper's nest of traitors is a duty
worthy of a soldier. There is no more dangerous post in the Papal
States, I assure you."
"I can see that," I remarked, glancing around the empty
square. "What dangerous mission have you come to perform, Captain?"
"Since you are here, you may watch," said De Merode.
Turning, he snapped out an order. Two of his men came forward. One was
carrying a roll of paper, the other a pot and a brush. Before long, the
facade of the church bore a new notice. From where I stood I could see
only one line of the printing--the number 10,000.
Miss Perkins scrutinized the notice. "So much money for
the capture of one local rebel? But I suppose you need not pay it, eh?"
"The money will be paid," De Merode said. "It is a small
price to pay for peace in this province; but a large sum for a poor
man."
His voice carried across the quiet piazza. He spoke
Italian, instead of the French he had been using; and Miss Perkins
answered in the same language and in the same loud tone.
"Larger than the thirty pieces of silver Judas earned….
You will excuse us, Captain. I have brought these two young ladies to
see the church. It is of great antiquarian interest."
She swept us before her through the heavy doors.
The interior was so dark, after the sunlight of the
piazza, that I stopped short, gripped by a wave of panic. The darkness
reminded me…. Then Miss Perkins caught my arm.
"Straight ahead. There is a heavy leather curtain between
this entrance and the body of the church."
It was not much lighter inside; the high narrow windows
were so encrusted with grime that little sunlight struggled in. Toward
the altar, some distance away, a few tiny candle flames burned bravely.
Galiana muttered, "I want to go."
"So long as you are here, you may as well say a prayer,"
said Miss Perkins. "If I do not mistake my saints, that statue is of
the Holy Sebastian; you observe the arrows protruding from his side,
like the quills of…. Say a prayer, Galiana, while we examine the
church."
Galiana obeyed reluctantly, falling to her knees before
the statue. It was a horrid-looking thing, of painted wood,
unpleasantly lifelike despite its crudity. Streaks of garish red
streamed down the saint's body from his manifold wounds, and his face
was contorted by a spasm of anguish.
Still holding my arm, Miss Perkins drew me to the far
side of the church.
"The reward," I said. "Was it for the Falcon?"
"Yes."
"But why make such a great show of putting up the notice?
One soldier could have done it."
"I don't understand that myself," Miss Perkins admitted.
"I think perhaps we should go back to the castle. I have an uneasy
feeling."
But when this proposition was put to Galiana, she made a
loud outcry. She had followed our desires with regard to the church;
the least we could do was let her visit the shop. Miss Perkins gave in,
but I could see she was still uneasy.
I began to share her feelings as we crossed the square
toward the shop. The mounted men had gone, but many of the foot
soldiers were still there, relaxing like men released from duty. Some
occupied the chairs outside the café. A waiter, wearing an
exceedingly filthy apron, was serving them wine. The others strolled
two by two or sat on the edge of the fountain.
At first the shop seemed to be deserted. Galiana called
the proprietor's name and after a moment Signor Carpaccio appeared from
behind a curtain at the back of the shop. He greeted us with his usual
obsequiousness and ran to show Galiana a tray of trinkets newly arrived
from Florence. They were cheap-looking things, shiny silver rings and
pendants set with mosaic, but Galiana's tastes, like those of a magpie,
were all for the cheap and shiny. She poked at the trinkets, bartering
like a fishwife. I joined Miss Perkins, who was examining the ceramics
I had seen before. The animal figures were rather appealing.
"Strange, how the talent survives," said Miss Perkins,
holding up a small glazed statue of a stag. "The Etruscans were
particularly skilled in the art of terra cotta."
While we were standing there we heard a burst of coarse
laughter from one of the soldiers at the café next door.
"I can't understand why they are still here," Miss
Perkins muttered. "They are stationed at Parezzo; from what I hear of
that city, there are wine shops and--er--entertainment of other sorts
more interesting than anything this poor hamlet can supply."
"Ask him," I suggested, indicating Signor Carpaccio.
When the question was put, the man shrugged.
"It is only this wretched outlaw, this Falcon. He has
sworn to tear down a reward notice if one should be put up. The
soldiers are waiting for him to come. But," he added quickly, as Miss
Perkins made a movement toward the door, "there is no reason for the
signorina to run away; the villain will not dare appear. He will
certainly be captured if he does."
"Of course he will appear," Miss Perkins snapped. "His
reputation depends on his keeping such rash, stupid promises.
Girls--come, we must go."
"But surely, Miss Perkins, he will wait till nightfall,
or till tomorrow, when the soldiers are less alert," I exclaimed. "It
would be madness for him to come now."
"Publicity is his aim, not caution," Miss Perkins
replied. "Where is Piero? We must leave at once."
Galiana, her eyes sparkling, joined me in pleading for a
delay. She was as anxious as I to catch a glimpse of the romantic
bandit. Unlike myself, she seemed to believe he would appear soon. I
could not believe any man, even a romantic bandit, would be so stupid.
No; the Falcon would steal into town after dark, that would be the
sensible thing to do.
However, Miss Perkins was adamant. She herded us out into
the piazza, where we found Piero waiting by the fountain. He was
chatting with one of the soldiers. The mood had relaxed. The drinkers
were still drinking, and some fluttering skirts could be seen among the
uniforms. The girls--for they were all young--did not seem to share the
fear of their fellow townspeople. They were giggling and flirting. One
bold-faced, black-haired beauty was strumming a stringed instrument and
smiling up into the face of the soldier who bent over her. As we stood
waiting for Piero to bring the horses, the girl struck a ringing chord
and raised her voice in song. It was a strange, wild strain in a minor
key, like a lament. I expected Miss Perkins would want to listen, but
she urged us to mount, and we turned toward the narrow street that led
to the castle.
We had almost reached it when a thunder of pounding
hooves was heard. A shot rang out. The voice of the singer rose to a
scream, and broke off. I tried to stop and turn around. The horses
reared and danced; and for a few seconds all was confusion. However, I
saw him come.
Like a bullet from a pistol barrel, the great black
stallion came plunging out of one of the narrow vincoli,
or alleyways--a space so confined it was a wonder a horse could pass
through it, much less at that speed. The soldiers, still milling about,
were not expecting anyone to come from that quarter. Before they could
aim their weapons, the rider had reached the church steps. Swaying
sideways in his saddle, he thrust at the newly affixed placard with the
blade of his sword. The glue had not yet set; the paper pulled free and
wrapped itself around the blade. The rider whirled it once around his
head with an indescribable air of mockery and disappeared into another
alleyway, as narrow as the first.
It transpired in far less time than it takes to describe
it, yet I was left with an indelible memory of horse and rider. The
bandit's clothing matched the ebon hue of his steed. Even his head was
covered with a close-fitting black hood. The only touch of color was
the blood-red sash tied around his slender waist--the scarlet badge of
rebellion. The somber colors were not depressing or sinister, however;
on the contrary, I had never seen anything more vigorously alive than
the man and his beautiful stallion.
I was still staring at the narrow orifice into which the
rider had vanished, his dark attire blending with the gloom of the vincolo,
when something struck Stella on the flank. She might have bolted if
Piero had not snatched the bridle. I turned to see a jostling mass of
horsemen filling the street behind me. The papal cavalry had been lying
in ambush somewhere along that main thoroughfare--which, though narrow,
was considerably wider than any of the other streets that led into the
piazza. But the riders had been unable to follow the Falcon because of
the impediment presented by our group. De Merode, his face livid with
anger, was trying to lead his men through. It was he who had struck at
Stella.
A few of the foot soldiers, less scatterbrained than
their fellows, were already running in pursuit, but of course they had
no hope of catching a rider--and such a rider!
We got ourselves straightened out finally, after
considerable pushing and shouting. De Merode gave me a furious look
before gathering his troop together and galloping off. I knew he must
suspect us of deliberately barring his way, and I couldn't entirely
blame him. Considering the circumstances of our first meeting, he had
some reason to wonder whose side Miss Perkins and I were on. Doubly
reassured by my awareness of my innocence and by my grandfather's
unassailable position, I was quite willing to be the object of his
mistrust rather than have that dangerous young man turn his attentions
to the real conspirators--the girls who had been so friendly to his
soldiers, distracting their attention and preventing them from reaching
their weapons in time.
I expressed these ideas to Miss Perkins, not without
difficulty, for we were trotting along at a rapid pace.
"Quite right," she gasped. "The girl who sang--a signal--"
She broke off with a grunt as our horses, urged by Piero,
broke into a gallop. She had said enough, however; and I contemplated
this new idea with growing amazement and indignation. Had our romantic
bandit had the cold-blooded effrontery to use us as a shield? The
girl's song might well have been a signal; and if so, then the Falcon
must have been lurking in the immediate vicinity, perhaps in one of the
walled courtyards of the houses near the piazza. That would suggest
that he lived in the town, or very close to it. What really disturbed
me was the fact that he must have known of our trip to the village in
order to plan his strategy. He must have spies in the very stronghold
of his enemies--in the castle itself.
We were late returning, and the others were just sitting
down to tea. It was in the Salon of the Nymphs that day; Miss Rhoda
preferred to use the formal rooms in turn, to make sure they were
properly kept up. This, one of the smaller salons, was particularly
pleasant on hot days, for the water theme suggested by the ceiling
paintings had been carried out in the color scheme and ornaments. The
bas-reliefs of flowers and vines twining across the pale-green paneling
had been done in soft silver gilt instead of the garish gold prevalent
elsewhere. The draperies were of silvery green satin. The chandeliers
of Murano glass, in delicate shades of blue and green frosted with
crystal, suggested waves breaking in sprays of foam. The rugs, which
had been specially woven in Persia, were of the same cool sea shades.
Even the Nereids on the ceiling sprawled languidly in aquamarine
shallows, although their curves were rather more prominent than slender
sea nymphs ought to have had. As Miss Perkins once remarked, the
artists had used mythological themes only as an excuse for painting
unclothed female forms.
Galiana was the first to enter, rudely pushing past Miss
Perkins in her anxiety to tell the exciting news. I thought Grandfather
would have a fit. He turned an unbecoming shade of scarlet that clashed
horribly with his mauve smoking jacket, and rushed from the room.
"Profanity is so useful to gentlemen in relieving their
feelings," remarked Miss Perkins, gazing after him. "No, Francesca,
don't follow him; he will not be able to express himself freely in your
presence."
"My daughter," said the Contessa gently, "you should not
have told the Prince."
Galiana, who was so brash and assertive with others,
never contradicted her mother, so I came to her defense.
"He would have heard it sooner or later. The village must
be buzzing with the news, and Piero will spread it among the servants."
"It is certainly a most inappropriate time, however,"
sniffed Miss Rhoda. "He was on the verge of a tantrum already, after
reading the newspaper."
"Ah," said Miss Perkins, reaching eagerly for the copy of
Monitore, which lay on a table. "What is the news?"
"The worst possible," said Miss Rhoda, as the Countess
sighed and shook her head. "That bandit Garibaldi has captured Palermo."
Miss Perkins, her face aglow, read of her hero's exploits.
"All of Sicily must be in his hands by now," she
muttered. "The newspaper is a week old."
"Much good may it do him," snapped Miss Rhoda. "The
largest Bourbon army is on the mainland; if Garibaldi dares to cross
the straits, he and his hobgoblin crew will be annihilated."
"On the contrary," cried Miss Perkins. "This is only the
beginning. The kingdom of the Two Sicilies will fall into his hands
like a ripe plum. It is rotten with discontent. And then--"
"He would never dare attack the realm of His Holiness,"
said the Contessa in a strangled voice. "God would not permit such
blasphemy!"
"God and Cavour," said Miss Perkins dryly. "The Prime
Minister of Piedmont does not want Garibaldi to claim credit for
liberating the Papal States as well as the Two Sicilies. Cavour is
jealous of Garibaldi--"
"For heaven's sake, must we discuss politics?" demanded
Miss Rhoda. "It is a most inappropriate subject. At least, Miss
Perkins, I beg you to be silent in the presence of the Prince."
"But his Excellency and I have had several good heated
discussions," exclaimed Miss Perkins. "I think he enjoys them."
"Well, I do not," said Miss Rhoda; and that was the end
of that.
However, Miss Perkins received support from Stefano, who
joined us for dinner that evening. He immediately introduced the
subject of Garibaldi's success, with a sly sidelong look at
Grandfather; and although the old gentleman fumed, it seemed to relieve
his spleen to pound on the table and shout. Stefano egged him on; but
he didn't agree with Miss Perkins either. Like all moderates, he
incurred the ire of extremists on both sides, and bore it with amused
condescension.
The latest exploits of the Falcon amused him even more.
Galiana, always eager to gain his attention, described the incident in
her breathless fashion; and Stefano shook his head, with a sneering
smile.
"The fellow is a clown. But how typically Italian.
Conspiracy is in our blood. For the last fifty years the country has
been crawling with secret societies, petty groups with poetical names,
noble aims, and very little effect. The Sons of Mars, the Carbonari,
and the White Pilgrims were just as absurdly theatrical as the Falcon.
He is obviously ignorant of our history, or he would remember what
happened to other incompetent idealists. Emilio and Attilio Bandiera,
for instance."
He paused, sipping his wine; and although I knew he had
done so deliberately in order to whet out curiosity, I could not
refrain from asking the question.
"Who were they?"
"Young officers who took it into their heads to liberate
the peasants of Calabria," Stefano replied. "They landed--if you can
believe this--with sixteen men! They assumed, of course, that the
peasants would flock to join them. The peasants did not object to being
liberated, but they were not about to risk their skins for that
illusory good…."
"Pardon me, Cousin, if I object to your rhetorical
style," I said, trying to imitate Stefano's tone of cool irony. "I
think I can anticipate what you are about to say; the young idealists
were caught and executed, is that right? How can you speak so callously
of a noble aim, however misguided?"
My attempt at coolness failed; my voice broke on the
final words. I don't know why--at least I did not then know why--I was
so moved, but my emotion silenced the others for a moment. Stefano's
fixed smile never left his face, but the look in his eyes indicated
that I had touched him--probably evoked his contempt and annoyance.
Surprisingly it was the Contessa who spoke first.
"The signorina is right about one thing, Stefano. You are
too frivolous about serious matters."
Stefano bowed his head without replying, and Miss Perkins
hastened to break the awkward silence.
"You are unfair to our friend the Falcon, Count Stefano.
There is reason in what he does. The people here are not the peasants
of Calabria, and this is 1860. A rebellion at this time might well
succeed; at least it might produce more lenient laws, kinder treatment."
"Not at all," Stefano replied. "Last year's rebellions in
Tuscany and Aemelia succeeded, to be sure, but only because they had
support from Piedmont. No local uprising here can possibly succeed
without outside aid, and Victor Emmanuel cannot challenge the Pope
without risking war with France. Napoleon must defend Pio Nono; the
clerical party in France is strong, and he needs their support, usurper
that he is."
Once again Grandfather proved that he understood the
abhorred English tongue quite well. He interrupted this speech with a
growl and a comment about the valor of the papal troops. Stefano's lip
curled.
"Oh, as for that, I consider De Merode's international
rabble a greater danger than your foolish Falcon. The gutter scrapings
of Europe and Ireland--"
"The De Merode family is one of the best in France,"
Grandfather interrupted.
"Impractical dreamers, like the other refugee nobles who
fight for Pio Nono," Stefano said curtly. "They still dream of a
restoration. France has seen the last of its kings. Not that the
Buonapartes are any improvement over the Bourbons."
"Then you would support a republic?" Miss Perkins asked.
Stefano raised his eyebrows until they almost touched his
exquisitely arranged curls.
"Heaven forbid, Miss P. The tyranny of the mob is as bad
as the tyranny of a noble class. Look at what happened to France when
she tried that solution."
At that point Miss Rhoda let out a loud "hem!" and rose.
The other ladies followed, leaving Stefano and Grandfather to their
argument. The only one who was reluctant to depart was Miss Perkins.
II
I remember the following Thursday for three reasons. It
was Galiana's saint's day, and we were to have a little party; one of
my lovely new dresses was finished; and Andrea returned.
I was trying on the dress when he arrived and he made
such an uproar that all of us flew downstairs to see what was
happening. We followed the sound of music--the grand piano in the Salon
of the Sybils, which was being played in great crashing chords. The
music was more notable for volume than for beauty, but it had a fine
martial ring; and somehow I was not surprised when I ran into the room,
with Galiana on my heels, to see my cousin seated at the instrument
pounding away at a great rate. He bowed when he saw us, but did not
rise. Instead he began to sing.
"Si scopron le tombe, si levano i morti,
I martiri nostri son tutti risorti!…"
I needed no interpreter to understand. The ghosts of the
martyrs were rising, with swords in their hands, to join in the fight
for Italy's freedom. They were thrilling words. Andrea fairly shouted
them, his golden curls tossing, his eyes shining. He ended with a
mighty crash and bounded to his feet. He seized my hand and planted a
hearty kiss upon it; then he turned to Galiana and caught her up in his
arms. She shrieked with delight, her little feet dangling.
Still the same impetuous Andrea--but there were several
significant differences. The blond moustache was new, and so was the
bronzed hue of his skin; but the most striking change was in his
attire. The loose red shirt, and the bandanna tied rakishly around his
throat--how well I knew them, from Miss Perkins' descriptions! Not an
official uniform, but as distinctive as any regimental facings, this
was the costume worn by Garibaldi's soldiers--by the Thousand (as they
were called) who had set sail from Genoa for the liberation of Sicily.
I was endeavoring to assimilate this startling new
development when an outraged exclamation made me turn. Miss Rhoda stood
in the doorway, her lavender satin skirts filling it completely. Over
her shoulder I saw the pale face of the Contessa; her eyes were fixed
on her daughter, still clasped in Andrea's red-shirted arms. And behind
the Contessa was her omnipresent shadow--the maid Bianca.
Andrea lowered Galiana to the floor as Miss Rhoda swept
into the room and bore down on the young pair like a battleship. The
Contessa swayed, as if seized by faintness. Bianca's muscular
black-clad arms supported her mistress instantly. After a moment the
Contessa recovered herself and waved the maid away, but Bianca
continued to stand in the doorway, her eyes fixed on her mistress with
a look of doglike devotion that was very curious to see.
Andrea grasped Miss Rhoda's hand and pumped it so
enthusiastically that her intended lecture turned into a series of
stutters. His manner changed completely as he greeted the Contessa; he
took her hand gingerly, as if it would break, and raised it to his
lips. Then, with obvious relief, he turned to me.
"Cousin, it is good to see you. I am sorry I could not
greet you on your arrival; but as you see, I had more pressing matters
to attend to."
"I do see." I could not help smiling at the twinkle in
his eyes. "But what a way to announce yourself, Cousin. Is that the new
anthem of Italy?"
"It may well be that. A stirring song, eh? We call it
Garibaldi's Hymn."
"Sing it again," Galiana begged.
Andrea was willing to comply, but as he went to the piano
the Contessa said softly, "Galiana, you forget yourself. Andrea, you
must not offend your grandfather in his own house."
Galiana drooped, as she always did when her mother
reprimanded her. Andrea looked abashed.
"Where is my grandfather?" he asked.
"Here!"
He entered the room as he spoke. His face was set in a
scowl that would have daunted most erring children, but not Andrea; he
ran to greet his grandfather with outstretched arms, as is the Italian
custom. The old gentleman received him with an arm extended, not to
embrace, but to repel. He gave Andrea a hearty shove and burst into
speech. I caught references to the red shirt, and words like, "traitor"
and "rebel."
Smiling, Andrea again tried to embrace the Prince, who
swung his fist in a blow the younger man easily avoided. Then the old
man turned and rushed out of the room. Andrea winked at us and followed.
III
They made it up, somehow, before dinner, which was a gala
meal in honor of Galiana's saint's day. But Andrea was the center of
attention. He had abandoned his red shirt in favor of formal evening
attire, which was only to be expected; but I fancied that the
disappearance of the uniform of insurrection was a concession on the
young man's part. As for Grandfather--well, men are very peculiar. He
glowered at Andrea from his position at the head of the table, and
spoke in a gruff voice, when he spoke at all; but the light in his eyes
as he looked at this grandson gave him away. I suspected that in spite
of his lack of sympathy with the cause of independence he thought all
the more of Andrea for fighting.
The meal was a succession of elaborate dishes, including
Andrea's favorites, and it was the gayest supper I had enjoyed since my
arrival. Andrea's bubbling good spirits infected almost everyone. Even
Miss Rhoda smiled now and then, and Galiana was transformed. Her eyes
shone and her mouth was constantly curved in laughter. Andrea directed
his wittiest jokes at her.
The Contessa was silent, but then she always was. And
Stefano, at the foot of the table, watched his brother with an
enigmatic smile. I wondered what he was thinking. Did he return the
love and admiration his brother felt for him, or did he resent the fact
that Andrea was the favorite, even with his grim English great-aunt?
Did he, too, yearn for the excitement of battle? It was impossible to
tell for sure; but I thought it would not be surprising if Stefano
failed to relish his role as business adviser.
After dinner we retired to the Salone dei Tritoni and had
an evening of music. Both brothers played; I had heard Stefano once
before, and had admired his precise touch with Bach and Vivaldi. Andrea
played with more bravado and less finesse; he did not repeat the
stirring hymn, but sang a series of romantic ballads in a rousing
baritone, rolling his eyes at me during the most sentimental passages.
It was all in good fun, and I enjoyed it as such; but as the evening
went on I wondered if Andrea was not becoming overexcited. His cheeks
were so flushed he looked feverish.
The Contessa was the first to rise. Her departure--with
Galiana, of course--ended the entertainment, and soon afterwards we all
said good night.
It seemed to me that I had hardly fallen asleep when I
was awakened by sounds outside my door. I heard Miss Perkins'
voice--subdue it as she might, it was a resonant, resounding voice--and
footsteps moving quickly. I got up and slipped into a dressing gown.
Miss Perkins' door stood open. Her bed was not occupied.
Now I began to be alarmed. I went to the end of the corridor, and
below, at the bottom of the stair, I saw light. I descended into the
west wing. The family apartments were on that floor, and there were
more lights in that direction. I felt sure now that something had
happened.
The door of one of the bedchambers was open and a beam of
yellow candlelight spilled out into the hall. The room was filled with
people. One of them was Miss Rhoda, almost unrecognizable with her hair
up in curl papers and her bony figure undisguised by the limp folds of
her dressing gown. As I peered in, she gave a sharp order.
"Get out, all of you. I don't need any of you except the
signora."
The signora--a courtesy title--was Miss Perkins, who was
looking down at the bed with an expression of concern. I could not see
the occupant of the bed for the servants who stood around--two of the
footmen and several maids. These people obeyed the order to leave, and
as they came toward the door, I saw Andrea.
His eyes were half closed and their blue brilliance was
dimmed. On his brow and his bared breast were white cloths; as I
watched, Miss Rhoda removed one of these and replaced it with another,
which she had wrung out with water from a basin. I caught a glimpse of
Andrea's tanned body before the cloth was replaced, and at first I
thought he must be wounded; there was a small reddish mark, roughly
circular, on his right side just under the collarbone.
As I moved aside to let the servants out, Miss Rhoda saw
me. "This is no place for you, Francesca," she said sharply. "Go back
to bed."
"Is he wounded?" I asked anxiously. "Can't I do something
to help?"
"No, no, child." Miss Perkins was helping to place the
cold cloths on Andrea's head. "He isn't wounded, but he is feverish;
some illness he contracted in Sicily. It is very unhealthy country. He
may be infectious, so don't come any closer."
"But you," I began, unwilling to leave the poor sufferer
until I had been assured he was not in danger.
"I sent for Miss Perkins because she told me she had had
nurse's training," Miss Rhoda said. It was quite a condescension for
her to explain anything; I knew she must be too worried to maintain her
usual haughty dignity, and that increased my anxiety.
"I am too tough to catch anything," said Miss Perkins
with a smile. "Go back to bed, my dear. There is nothing to worry
about. The Count is in no danger. He is young and healthy; I have
seldom seen so splendid a physique."
With that I had to agree. I gave the handsome invalid one
last look and reluctantly departed. I would have liked to nurse him; it
would have been a fitting return for his gallantry to me. If we had
been in a novel, no doubt that is how it would have transpired. Instead
he had two middle-aged ladies working over him, and I am sure he
recovered much more quickly as a consequence.
He was better next day and on his feet again within the
week, seemingly unhurt by his illness and as energetic as ever. Our
quiet lives became full of activity, as Andrea invented schemes for our
amusement. He took me to task, in his quaintly humorous fashion, for
being so lazy about my riding, and under his brisk tutelage I soon
became a fairly competent horsewoman. Scarcely a day went by that we
did not ride out, visiting various beauty spots in the neighborhood.
Andrea was quite a keen naturalist and knew a lot about the flora and
fauna of the region. To see him holding a delicate flower in his big
brown hand, earnestly discoursing on its beauty, was a most engaging
sight.
Sometimes Galiana accompanied us. More often her mother
found reasons for her to remain at home. The poor girl's morose face,
on these occasions, should have cast a slight shadow over my selfish
pleasure, but I'm afraid I didn't let it bother me much. I wondered if
the Contessa suspected that the two young people were becoming too
attached to one another. I could see no basis for such a suspicion.
Andrea was charming to Galiana, but he was charming to everyone. Of
course I fancied myself in love with him. Why not? He was a delightful
companion, he had saved me from a fate worse than death and had risked
his life to avenge me; he was incredibly handsome, brave as a lion,
romantic as a hero of legend. I yearned to see him again in his dashing
red shirt, and I tried to question him about his adventures in Sicily.
But on that subject Andrea's facile tongue failed him. He
told me about Garibaldi, whose men thought of him as superhuman--about
the General's courage, his tenderness toward the wounded, his cheerful
acceptance of danger and discomfort. He narrated comical little
anecdotes about the camp and the soldiers. But he would not talk about
the fighting, and I finally came to realize that his memories were not
the sort he could share with a young girl. I had sense enough to leave
off questioning him when his face assumed an uncharacteristic
expression of grim sorrow. But I did not have sense enough to realize
that there was depths in him that I had not fathomed; that I had fallen
in love with a handsome face instead of studying the real man.
Being in love is great fun, however, and I had a
wonderful time. Miss Perkins often accompanied us on our expeditions;
even Stefano joined us when the activity was not too strenuous for him.
On the occasions when he was present, Galiana usually made one of the
party too, but I could not decide whether she was allowed to go with us
because Stefano was there, or whether it was he who sought out her
company. Frankly, the subject did not interest me. It was no pleasure
to have Stefano along; whenever he came there was an argument, usually
about politics.
It was a dangerous topic at that time, and in our house.
The Prince's method of dealing with what he regarded as Andrea's
criminal folly in fighting with Garibaldi was characteristic of him; he
simply ignored the subject as if no such thing had ever happened.
Andrea went along with this. The brave, bright uniform did not appear
again, nor was Garibaldi's Hymn heard within the castle walls. He even
shaved off his moustache. Outside the walls Andrea spoke freely enough
especially when Stefano egged him on.
Grandfather might be able to erase unpalatable truths
from his mind, but I suspected that the rest of the world might not be
so accommodating. Ever since Andrea's return I had been worried for
fear the soldiers might ride up and arrest him. But when I expressed
this worry, the others laughed at me. Andrea laughed loudest of all.
Stefano was more explicit.
"Andrea is protected by the outmoded feudal system he
fought against in Sicily," he said, with a mocking glance at his
brother. "The Princes Tarconti are above the law; one might even say
that, like ancient Roman tyrants, they are the
law. Andrea had sense enough to misbehave outside the borders of
Umbria. His actions would not be precisely favored in Rome, but they
can't be ignored--for favors rendered. Now if he had chosen to lead a
band of rebels against Pio Nono, he might be in serious trouble. Not
even our grandfather's influence could protect him."
Andrea's eyes flashed blue fire.
"I do not expect the Prince or anyone else to answer for
me," he exclaimed. "Nor will I subdue my conscience to his. You may
make jokes, Stefano, but you know Italy must be unified. Dismembered as
we are, we are the plaything of the great powers. If you had seen the
arrogant Austrian soldiers strutting down the streets of Florence,
ogling the women--"
He broke off there, whether from delicacy or indignation
I did not know. For a short while no one spoke.
We were sitting on the ground--or rather, on a handsome
rug spread on the grass--in the sunshine. Galiana's tumbled curls shone
like a blackbird's wings; the wild daisies she had twined in her hair
looked like little stars in the night sky. Andrea, his coat discarded,
his shirt sleeves rolled up to display his muscular brown arms, was
flushed and handsome in his enthusiasm. Miss Perkins, too, was flushed,
but not with enthusiasm. She had gotten sunburned on our last outing,
and her nose was peeling.
Only Stefano sat upright, on a small chair that a servant
had brought for him. His controlled features showed little emotion, but
I thought he had frowned slightly when Andrea mentioned the Austrians
in Florence--perhaps because he did not like being reminded that he was
no longer free to travel about as his brother did.
"What a tiring fellow you are, Andrea," he said, with an
affected yawn. "Do try to control your zeal; you are boring Galiana and
Francesca--"
"He doesn't bore me at all," I broke in. "And I agree
with everything he has said."
"How can you agree with something you don't understand?"
"I do understand!" I rose to my knees--and had to snatch
at my skirts as my hoops bounced higher than decency allowed. Stefano
laughed, and I went on indignantly, "This country is still in the Dark
Ages, it is ripe for revolution! Why, I heard of a case, this very
year, in Civitavecchia. Some young men had asked permission to show
their respect for a deceased friend by carrying his coffin to the grave
instead of allowing it to be carried by the religious society in
control of funerals. They were granted permission, but several days
after the funeral they were all arrested and sent to the state prison
without trial. Such a stupid petty offense--even if it had been an
offense, which it wasn't, because they had asked and been granted--"
"Yes, yes, I heard of the matter," said Stefano, speaking
with difficulty through his laughter. "If you would stop to take a
breath occasionally, Cousin, your speeches would sound more
professional. The voice is the voice of Francesca, but the words, I
suspect, are those of Miss Perkins. Dear lady, you mustn't turn my
little cousin into a revolutionary. Life is very pleasant here; why
don't you both enjoy it and forget your radical ideas?"
That ended the argument for the day; Galiana began to
pelt Andrea with daisies, and a mock battle ensued. But it did not end
the subject, for Stefano seemed to delight in stirring up controversy,
and Miss Perkins was always ready to debate her favorite cause.
We received several newspapers. Grandfather pretended to
read only the official organ of the Roman government, but occasionally
he might be caught peeking into the Tuscan Monitore
or even the Gazzetta Piemontese. Miss Perkins read
them all, from front page to back. As the summer wore on, she became
more and more excited. Garibaldi had been proclaimed dictator of
Sicily, and there were rumors that he planned to attack the mainland.
King Victor Emmanuel of Piedmont and his wily Prime Minister Cavour had
spoken out against this move. Cavour was reluctant to have Naples owe
its freedom to the guerrilla leader. He wanted his king to be the
liberator of Italy. But there was a report that Victor Emmanuel, though
publicly forbidding Garibaldi to cross the Straits of Messina, had
privately written to the General encouraging him to go ahead. At the
same time Piedmontese agents were trying to promote an uprising in
Naples, so that Victor Emmanuel would have an excuse to march into
Neapolitan territory himself in order to restore law and order.
Ironically, we were less well informed about what was
happening in our own province than we were about events as far away as
Sicily. The reasons for this were obvious; censorship ruled with an
iron hand in the Papal States, and the wildest rumors flew about in
lieu of facts. "Our busy friend the Falcon," as Stefano sarcastically
called him, was busy indeed; his illegal newspapers and pamphlets blew
about the province like snowflakes. They reached a wider audience than
one might have supposed. When we rode to the village we would sometimes
see a group of people clustered around one of the tables at the
café, listening intently as one of their number read aloud from
a crudely printed paper. The paper would disappear and the group would
disperse as we approached, but none of us doubted what the subject of
the paper had been.
A few of the posters even reached the castle. They were
found in the most unexpected places; one morning the major domo
discovered one pinned to the front door. There was a tacit conspiracy
to keep these papers from Grandfather, but the rest of us read them
avidly, and Miss Perkins was loud in her admiration of the writer's
skill. Stefano enjoyed reading them aloud and commenting on the
grammatical and rhetorical errors of the text.
Politics were not our sole concern, of course. Miss
Perkins was almost as interested in antiquities, and one day, at her
urging, we agreed to make an expedition to the Etruscan cemetery. I
shrank from returning to the place where I had had such a terrifying
experience, but I could hardly have avoided going without appearing
conspicuous, for the entire household was to take part in the plan.
Grandfather was eager to display his family treasures to Miss Perkins,
and even the Contessa agreed to make one of the party. It was possible
to reach the spot by carriage if one followed a long roundabout road
through the hills. The older ladies and Stefano took this route,
accompanied by a wagonload of servants carrying all the requisites for
a formal meal alfresco. The rest of us rode by the direct path.
We set out early in order to do our exploring before the
greatest heat of the day. It was a glorious morning, sunny and bright;
but as we rode along the rustic trail, one could see the first hints of
autumn in an occasional branch of reddening leaves. Taking a shorter
path, we riders reached the spot before the others did, but agreed to
wait for them before exploring the tombs.
Grandfather was in fine spirits. It was obvious that he
had no recollection of having been here with me. I knew I had nothing
to fear; Galiana and Andrea were with us, not to mention half a dozen
servants. But I confess I felt a cold chill as I saw the high green
mound that concealed the tomb of the princess.
Galiana looked lovely in a gown of white printed with
scarlet flowers and a wide-brimmed straw hat tied under her chin with
scarlet ribbons. Andrea was teasing her because this was her first
visit to our celebrated cemetery.
"All these years," he exclaimed, "and you have never had
the energy to come. Shame!"
"But how could I come alone?" she asked, fluttering her
eyelashes at him. "Besides, I don't see anything very nice about the
place. What is so exciting about weeds and broken stones?"
"I will have the honor of showing you, my dear," said
Grandfather kindly. "But we must wait for the others. Sit down and be
very still, and I will show you something that may interest you more
than broken stones."
The servants spread rugs on some flat rocks so that
Galiana and I could sit without spoiling our dresses. Then they
withdrew, at the Prince's command, and for a long time we sat in
silence.
In the warmth and the pastoral stillness my nerves began
to relax. My earlier impression of the place as uncanny and frightening
must have come from my sensitivity to Grandfather's strange mood. It
really was quite a pretty place. Wildflowers bloomed everywhere. Birds
sang in the trees; as we continued to sit quietly they began to flutter
about and swoop from branch to branch. Then a rustle in the underbrush
made Galiana start. Andrea put his fingers to his lips and shook his
head, smiling. A rabbit hopped out into the clearing.
It was the biggest, fattest, whitest rabbit I had ever
seen, and the least timid. It hopped out onto the path and stood still;
it was so close that I could see its whiskers quiver as it sniffed the
air. It must have scented us or seen us, but it did not seem at all
disturbed by our presence. With a negligent air it began to nibble at
the rank grass.
Galiana broke the spell by giggling. The rabbit gave her
a sideways look and retreated, but not in a blur of motion as these
wild creatures usually exhibit when startled. It bounced along in a
leisurely fashion, as if it had just remembered a not very important
engagement.
"How tame it is," I exclaimed. "Was it a pet at one time?"
"No," said Andrea. "All the rabbits here are wild; all
are white; all are as unconcerned about man as that one you saw. It is
because they have never been hunted. The peasants think they are
supernatural creatures--the souls of the old Etruscans, perhaps."
"You don't hunt them either?" I said. "I'm glad, Andrea.
They are so pretty and so trusting."
"They do not challenge a hunter," said Andrea, with a
laugh. "Besides, the Prince has a fondness for them; eh, Grandfather?"
Grandfather shrugged; he disliked being accused of
sentimental weaknesses, though he had quite a few.
"They are a curiosity," he said.
It was not long before we were joined by the rest of the
party. They had to come the last few yards on foot, leaving the
carriage at the road, and it was an amusing sight to see Miss Rhoda
being respectfully propelled along by two sturdy footmen. The Contessa
leaned on the arm of her maid, who lifted her over the rougher parts as
easily as a man might have done. Stefano brought up the rear. He
obviously found progress both painful and difficult, but no one
volunteered to help him or expressed sympathy.
The tomb of the princess was the greatest attraction, so
we went there first. Miss Perkins was fascinated by the monolithic
stone door.
"How wise of you to have left it in position, your
Excellency," she exclaimed. "So many excavators simply blast their way
through by means of battering rams and explosives. I am amazed at how
clever these ancients were in devising such things."
"It is a curious structure," Grandfather said. "You see
how carefully it is balanced. Once the trick of opening it is known, it
can be moved by one man. This crevice in the rock…" He slipped the
fingers of his right hand into a crack that was in no way distinguished
from other irregularities in the rock facing. "This crevice is the
point of pressure. There is a rude catch, a sort of lock. One
pushes…and voilà!"
And with the word--like the "Open Sesame" of the fairy
tale--the great slab slowly swung out.
We were standing in a semicircle before the entrance, at
a safe distance from the swing of the door, but as the great stone
moved, several of us involuntarily stepped back. A breath of cool, dank
air issued from the opening.
Stefano was watching me with his faint sardonic smile. He
and Miss Perkins were the only ones who knew of my brief incarceration
in this dreadful place, and I was determined that no one else should
know of it. I thought I concealed my agitation rather well. I might
even have forced myself to descend into the tomb if Grandfather had
not, in all innocence, made a fatal gesture.
In our exploration of the tombs we had to manage without
the assistance of the servants. They were reluctant to come into the
valley at all; into the tombs they would not go, not even under threats
of the direst punishment. The only exception was the Contessa's maid,
who followed her mistress like a squat black shadow--counting, I
suppose, on that lady's saintly character to shield her from spiritual
dangers.
So, when the door of the tomb swung open, Grandfather
assumed the role of guide, lighting one of the candles and preparing to
lead the way. It was then that he struck down my faltering confidence
by simply holding out his hand to me. Of course he meant to assist me
on the narrow slippery stairs. His face was wreathed in a kindly smile.
I had actually extended my own hand to take his when suddenly I
realized that I was unable to move.
"No," I gasped. "No, I cannot--"
"Moi, aussi," said Galiana, putting
her arm through mine. "Oh, that horrible dark hole! We will stay here,
Francesca; you brave gentlemen may descend into the dirt and the dark
without us."
Thanks to her, my refusal was considered no more than a
typical feminine weakness. The others tried to persuade us. Grandfather
demonstrated several times the method of blocking the door so that
there was not the slightest danger of our being trapped inside. A
wooden wedge, inserted into the crevice, prevented the stone catch from
slipping into place; the door could thus be completely shut and still
yield to pressure from within. I watched this demonstration with
shivering interest, wishing I had known of it on that other occasion;
but even this, and Andrea's offer to carry her, did not persuade
Galiana to risk her embroidered skirts on the stairs.
In the end only Grandfather and Miss Perkins, assisted by
Andrea, made the descent. Miss Rhoda declined with a sniff; I doubt
that she could have squeezed her crinoline into the space anyhow. The
Contessa stood watching. The beads of her rosary, which was always in
her hands when they were not occupied with embroidery, slipped slowly
through her fingers.
The others stayed underground for quite some time. We
could hear their voices, grotesquely distorted, and an occasional laugh
from Andrea. When they finally emerged, Miss Perkins was beaming and
repeating her favorite word.
"Fascinating. Absolutely fascinating. Your Excellency, do
you consider the date of 800 B.C.
reasonable for this tomb?"
The two of them continued their discussion while we
visited several other tombs. I found that I was able to enter these
without a qualm, although they had stairways even steeper and narrower
than those of the tomb of the princess. These tombs were later in date
than the first, being of the fifth and fourth centuries before Christ,
and I found them more interesting. The rock-cut ledges on which the
bodies of the dead were laid had been carved in the shape of beds, with
stone pillows and posts. One of the tombs had walls ornamented in
bas-relief; shield and spears, helmets and pieces of armor showed that
the occupants had belonged to a family of warriors.
Interesting as it all was, it was also a dirty,
depressing experience, and even Miss Perkins had had enough when we
emerged from the tomb of the warriors into the pleasant sunlight. While
we explored the tombs, the servants had set out a magnificent repast,
covering a stone slab that served as a table with snowy damask cloths,
and bringing chairs from the wagon. We all ate too much--except the
Contessa, who nibbled in her birdlike fashion--and after dining we were
glad to sit or recline for a while before returning to the castle.
The Contessa decided to return to the carriage, where her
embroidery was awaiting her attention. She and her maid went off, the
slight form of the older lady leaning on the arm of the younger. They
were both wearing their usual unrelieved black, yet no two persons
could have been more different. Bianca's rusty black skirts were like
molting plumage, and even the hoarse caw which was the poor creature's
only mode of expression resembled the cry of a crow. As for the
Contessa…. There was one black swan among all the white ones that swam
in the pond in the garden. The Contessa was like that swan, in her
slenderness, her gliding movements.
After a while Miss Rhoda followed the Contessa, declaring
that she had had enough of picnics and was ready to return to
civilization whenever the rest of us were. Miss Perkins begged for a
delay; she was ready to explore again, and Grandfather, flattered by
her interest in his ancestors, offered to show her another tomb at a
little distance. They invited me to join them, but I was having trouble
with one of my boots and said that if I could fix it I would catch them
up. So they went off; Grandfather offered Miss Perkins his arm, but she
was gesticulating so animatedly that she failed to observe the gallant
gesture. I looked about and realized that Galiana and Andrea were no
longer with us. Even the servants had gone, after tidying up the
remains of the banquet. Stefano and I were alone.
He had settled himself in the only patch of shade, under
an overhanging rock ledge, so I joined him. It was too hot at this hour
to sit in the sun.
"I wonder where Andrea and Galiana have gone," I said,
lifting my foot and inspecting my boot. The heel was loose. There was
nothing I could do about it; makeshift repairs would not serve.
Stefano, leaning against the rock with his arms folded
and his eyes closed, said shortly, "Leave them alone. They have few
enough opportunities to be by themselves."
"Do you think they are--er--fond of one another?" I
asked, conscious of a strange little pang.
"What gossips women are," Stefano said irritably. "Of
course they are fond of one another. They have been friends since
infancy."
"That isn't what I meant."
"I know." Stefano opened his eyes and stared at me. "Are
you jealous, Cousin? I suppose that like all the females who pass
through Andrea's life you fancy yourself in love with him."
"If I were, I certainly would not confess it to you," I
replied angrily.
"Very wise of you," said Stefano, and closed his eyes
again.
We sat in silence after that. I knew Stefano was not
asleep, but I had no intention of arousing his biting tongue. After a
while the heat and the quiet made me sleepy. I was beginning to doze
when suddenly Stefano flung himself at me, knocking me off my rocky
seat onto the ground and falling heavily upon me. A loud crash shook
the air.
For a few seconds I was too dazed to move or cry out. The
weight of Stefano's body robbed me of breath. Then he rolled to one
side and I struggled to a sitting position. The angry words I was about
to say died on my lips as I saw the heap of tumbled rock on the stone
where we had been sitting.
"Good heavens," I exclaimed, putting my hand to my
stinging cheeks. My fingers came away red.
"It is only a superficial cut," said Stefano. He was
sitting up too, in a strange, twisted position. One leg was bent under
him.
"You are quick to minimize other people's injuries," I
snapped; and then, seeing his pallor, I repented of my sharp tongue.
"Are you hurt, Stefano?"
"How should I be hurt when you cushioned my fall so
sweetly?" inquired my cousin.
His acrimonious reply did not wound me this time. I
looked at the great heap of rocks, several of which were large enough
to have dashed out my brains, and began to shiver.
"What a miraculous escape! I must thank you again,
Stefano. How were you able to move so quickly?"
"I happened to glance up and see the rock tremble." With
a grimace he could not repress, Stefano tried to straighten his leg.
"It was foolish of me to sit there. Such rock falls are not infrequent."
"It was an accident then?" I asked in a small voice.
Stefano's eyebrows lifted.
"What else could it have been? Oh, but perhaps you are an
heiress in disguise or an agent of the British government, so that some
unknown villain is trying to destroy you…."
He would have gone on in this vein if the others had not
come running, alarmed by the crash. My only injuries were scrapes and
bruises on the left side of my body, where it had struck the ground; so
I was not too distracted to fail to notice that Galiana and Andrea
returned together; nor too alarmed to wonder where they had been and
what they had been discussing to make Galiana's cheeks so rosy red and
her eyes so bright.
Stefano had sprained his ankle; he retired to his lair,
as I called it, and we saw nothing of him for several days. Our
accident had one other consequence. The near fatality confirmed the
servants' abhorrence of the valley of the tombs. To a man--and
woman--they regarded it as an unlucky place and refused to enter it
again.
Grandfather would never have admitted to being
superstitious, but the incident had shaken him. That very day, pleased
by her enthusiasm, he had given Miss Perkins permission to do some
archaeological digging. But after the accident he refused to allow her
to dig in the valley. He had a reasonable excuse, since the sinister
reputation of the place made it virtually impossible to hire workers.
Instead he suggested that Miss Perkins should attempt an excavation at
the base of the hill on which the castle was situated. He had observed
unusual rock formations there and had meant to investigate them himself
at some future time. Miss Perkins accepted the suggestion with
pleasure. Oddly enough, there was no problem about hiring workers.
Apparently it was not the ancient tombs themselves but one particular
cemetery the peasants feared.
This new pursuit amused all of us for a few days. We
visited the excavations and I derived pleasure from watching Miss
Perkins enjoy herself so thoroughly. She was always disheveled and
dusty, since she was perfectly capable of snatching a shovel and
digging at a promising spot. Her complexion was one of the unfortunate
sort that burns but does not tan, so she was usually peeling. None of
these inconveniences disconcerted her in the least. She actually
discovered a few tombs, for my grandfather's calculations had been
correct; the rock formations were manmade. The
tombs were all poor ones, though, and all had been robbed in antiquity.
By the end of the week all of us had lost interest except Miss P., who
went out every morning to her excavations with her skirts hitched up
and her eyes shining.
Toward the end of that same week, if my memory serves me
correctly, our social life was enlarged by a rare event. Stefano
invited us all to supper.
He had been speaking the literal truth when he told me
that no one visited him without a formal invitation. Andrea often joked
about his misanthropic tendencies and declared that he himself had not
set foot inside the garden wall for months.
"He has traps set," Andrea said solemnly. "Last year he
caught two poachers and Aunt Rhoda. She limped for weeks. The last time
I attempted to call on him, a bullet narrowly missed my head. His
servant, Piero, is one of the best shots in the neighborhood. I do not
accuse, you understand, but--"
He broke off, throwing up his hands in pretended terror
as his brother fixed him with a cold stare.
"Someone will shoot you if you
continue to make such bad jokes," said Stefano. "I insist on my
privacy, it is true. I can enforce it only by being rude. If I did not,
Aunt Rhoda would be bustling in every day to make sure the servants
were cleaning properly, and all the bored inquisitive young ladies in
the neighborhood would find pretexts to interrupt me."
Galiana turned red at this remark. So she, too, had
attempted to invade Stefano's citadel! Stefano was not looking at her,
however, he was smiling nastily at me.
"I can't imagine who would want to bother you," I said
loftily.
"No? Unfortunately, Cousin, not everyone has your
delicacy. At any rate I am giving you a chance to exorcise your
curiosity. I will show you over my domain and my servants will give you
an excellent meal. Will you come?"
"Oh, certainly," said Andrea. "We must encourage your
coming out of seclusion, Stefano. You are becoming very social."
In truth we had seen a great deal of Stefano since his
brother returned. I couldn't imagine why he spent so much time with us,
for he didn't seem to enjoy himself.
I did look forward to seeing his house, and that evening
I dressed with special care. I had given up my mourning altogether. It
was not hard to find an excuse for doing so; there had not been a
single bolt of black fabric in the collection from Florence, and
Grandfather himself had assisted in the selection of my new gowns.
Between fear of his displeasure and simple vanity--and other reasons--I
had not objected to the pale-green silks, the ivory brocade, or the
blue satin. Now I had a dozen lovely gowns to choose from, and even
with Teresa helping me I wavered between a rose taffeta with flounces
trimmed in lace and narrow black velvet ribbons, and a white satin
embroidered with tiny rosebuds. Finally I decided on the taffeta, and
then there was the difficult decision of what ornaments to wear.
Grandfather had given me my mother's jewels. Among them was a lovely
seed-pearl set--bracelets and necklace and earrings, and a set of
ornaments for the hair. I decided to wear this, and at last Teresa had
me turned out to my satisfaction.
Miss Perkins was the only one of the older people who was
having supper with us. Grandfather seemed to like to see us four young
people together; he had declined the invitation and overruled Miss
Rhoda's protests, saying that it was foolish to talk of propriety when
four cousins dined together on the family estate. Besides, Miss Perkins
would be more than sufficient as a chaperone. Stefano had insisted on
her coming, since she had never seen his house. The two of them got on
well; she was one of the few people who was never disturbed by his
sarcastic tongue. In fact, she made herself popular with everyone.
Grandfather found in her an antiquarian as learned and as enthusiastic
as he was, and even Miss Rhoda had succumbed to her countrywoman's
amiable willingness to be of service.
When I was dressed I went to see how Miss Perkins was
progressing with her own toilette. I had finally persuaded her to
accept a new dress, since her wardrobe was not adequate for the state
Grandfather kept, even en famille, and I was
looking forward to seeing her in the soft gray silk we had selected. I
found her seated before her mirror, her mouth screwed up, as one of the
maids tugged at her hair.
"This is ridiculous," she remarked, as I entered. "I feel
like a figure of fun. Every time I move my head, this young person
swears at me in Italian."
"You look lovely, I assure you," I said, laughing. "The
Queen herself has not more presence."
"Humph," said Miss Perkins. "Well, I suppose I must
suffer in order to be presentable. That will do, that will do. I can't
stand any more hair pulling."
She did look nice. The crinolines then in fashion were
becoming to the slender and the stout alike. They gave older ladies
dignity, and the modest hoops Miss Perkins wore balanced the
considerable size of the upper part of her body. The gown was trimmed
with bunches of artificial violets, and it had long pagoda sleeves and
a white embroidered collar; for Miss Perkins had shouted with amusement
at the very notion of a decolletage.
Galiana and Andrea were waiting for us in the drawing
room. They sat stiffly in two chairs separated by the entire width of
the room, under the watchful eyes of the Contessa and Miss Rhoda.
Galiana also had a new dress. The color was stunning on her--pale
yellow-gold trimmed with bands of darker gold velvet. I assumed her
mother had provided it, since I certainly had not, and I wondered where
the money was coming from.
The Contessa was in unusually good spirits. With a warm
smile she bade us enjoy ourselves, and she even patted Andrea
affectionately on the arm as he bent to kiss her hand. Miss Rhoda
grumbled, as she always did; this evening she predicted rain and
remarked that my gown was cut too low.
We set out across the gardens. Miss Rhoda's fears of rain
were all in her own mind; it was a beautiful evening. Andrea had given
Miss Perkins his arm and was amusing her by his florid compliments.
Stefano met us at the door of the house. He wore
immaculate evening dress, with bloodstone studs and amethyst cuff
links. We went over the house before dining, and my expressions of
admiration were quite sincere. Everything was in miniature, but in
perfect taste. My favorite room was the library. It was a perfectly
proportioned chamber, with lovely stucco reliefs of classical figures
on the ceiling instead of the usual paintings. There was a big hooded
fireplace, with the family arms above it. Wide French doors opened onto
a terrace beautifully planted with rose bushes and gardenias, and the
little courtyard beyond was enclosed by high brick walls hung with
vines.
"Bluebeard's den," said Stefano, glancing at me. "You
see, ladies, how harmlessly I occupy my time. I am working on a family
history for the Prince, and I amuse myself by writing on philosophical
matters."
As we went through the other rooms, we had evidence of
the other occupations with which he filled his time. An easel and a
model's throne showed his interest in painting, but he refused to show
us his work, saying it was too amateurish. The grand piano in the
drawing room was frequently used, as I knew from hearing him play. He
even had a small laboratory fitted up. We left this place hurriedly,
wrinkling our noses against a strong smell of chemicals.
We saw only the ground floor. One of the rooms had been
fitted up as a bedchamber, and none of us needed to ask why Stefano did
not use the upper chambers.
We were to dine on the terrace. It was an exquisite
setting, with a tiny fountain tinkling in the courtyard. The food was
excellent, as Stefano had promised. I noticed that all the servants
were men, and could not refrain from commenting on this.
"I told you he was a misogynist," said Andrea. "Even his
housemaids are men! That is why the furniture is not dusted, eh,
Stefano?"
"I defy Miss Perkins, wearing white gloves, to find a
speck of dust," said Stefano, who was in an unusually amiable mood.
We had almost finished the meal, and the light was dying
fast, when the peace of evening was broken by the sound of a gunshot.
"Poachers again," said Andrea calmly, as I turned a
startled look on him. "I have told you, Brother, that you must enforce
the laws. We may sympathize with the poor devils needing food, but they
have no right--"
"It is not sympathy, but lethargy, that keeps me from
enforcing the law," said Stefano, scowling. "The Prince is strict
enough about his rights; I am surprised that any of the peasants dare
invade his grounds."
All evening Miss Perkins had nobly refrained from talking
politics, but this reference to an outmoded feudal right was too much
for her; we were treated to a forceful lecture on the unfairness of the
hunting laws. "You aristocrats hunt for pleasure," she exclaimed
indignantly. "As if it were a pleasure to inflict pain on other living
creatures! At the same time you forbid starving men to hunt for food
for their families, when you have deprived them of the means to earn an
honest livelihood by monopolizing the means of production."
"Don't scold me, Miss Perkins," said Andrea pathetically.
"I don't deserve it. You know I agree with you."
"And you know I do not," Stefano remarked with a smile.
"But I won't argue with you, Miss Perkins. You are too clever for me."
He did argue, though, and the two of them went at it
hammer and tongs, while Galiana yawned and Andrea laughed. But Andrea
was conscious of his pretty cousin's boredom, and as soon as possible
he offered to escort her on a walk through the gardens. Stefano waved
them away without interrupting the point he was making. I don't think
Miss Perkins even noticed that they had gone.
When the moon rose in its silvery splendor, bathing the
courtyard in pale light, Stefano finally ended the argument.
"That was refreshing," he said. "But now I think we had
better find Galiana and Andrea. Shame on you, Miss Perkins, for failing
in your duties as chaperone."
"I could do with a walk myself," said Miss Perkins
calmly. "I am afraid I made a glutton of myself."
The young pair were not to be found in Stefano's small
enclosed garden, so we went out into the grounds of the castle. As we
passed into the rose garden, Stefano leaning heavily on his cane,
another shot sounded. This one was much closer, and Stefano stopped
with an angry exclamation.
"I must put an end to this. Moonlight is tricky light to
shoot by; the fool may injure someone."
He had scarcely finished speaking when something buzzed
through the air, passing between us so closely that I felt the wind of
it on my hair, followed by a third explosion.
I would have stood there staring stupidly if Miss Perkins
had not wrapped her arms firmly about me and dragged me to the ground.
"Lie still," she said, as I struggled to free myself.
"That was a bullet. Another may follow."
"But--Stefano--" I began, and then saw that my cousin had
disappeared. Almost at once I heard him calling out, and the voices of
the servants answering. Lights flared up and began to move through the
darkened gardens.
Before long Stefano came back to us, accompanied by one
of his grooms, who was carrying a lamp. His lips curved up when he saw
us sitting on the ground in an undignified jumble of skirts and hoops.
"You can get up now," he said, gesturing to the footman,
who extended a hand to help me and then hoisted Miss Perkins to her
feet.
"Oh, dear," she said, looking at her skirts. "My pretty
dress. I fear I caught my foot in it; there is a sad tear."
"Better your skirt than your scalp," said Stefano. "I
think the danger is over; my people are searching the grounds, but the
idiot who fired those shots will not linger when he realizes how close
he came to murder." Then he turned to me. "Really, Cousin, I begin to
think you are bad luck for me. Are you sure you
have not stolen the crown jewels, or kidnapped the heir to the throne?"
II
I knew Stefano's words were one of his peculiar jokes,
but a few days later I began to wonder myself if someone had not
mistaken me for the object of a family feud. Two accidents in one week
might have been coincidence, but a third….
A few days earlier I had moved into my new rooms. The
dilatory workmen had finally finished; the suite gleamed with fresh
gold paint and smelled of varnish and beeswax. I had never lived in
such luxury. The great canopied bed was draped with silk finer than
anything I had ever put on my back, and the carpets were so deep I
enjoyed walking barefoot on them. Two great carved wardrobes bulged
with pretty clothes, and the dressing table held new toilet
articles--silver-handled brushes and heavy crystal bottles.
However, the castle had a few inconveniences that I have
not mentioned. One of them was the variety of animal life that infested
it. Not noxious insects--Miss Rhoda would never have tolerated the
degree of dirt that breeds such creatures. But there were flies and
wasps; and even Miss Rhoda's British housekeeping could not keep down
all the mice, or the bats that hang about the eaves of such old places.
I was not especially afraid of these creatures, but no one likes
animals that are apt to swoop or scamper out at one unexpectedly. Once
before, in my old room, I had fled screaming from a bat that came
through my open window. The poor thing was as frightened as I was, I
suppose; at any rate, it blundered back out the window before Teresa
and Miss Perkins came running in, to find me in the wardrobe with the
door shut.
Mercifully, Teresa was with me, helping me dress for
dinner, when my second encounter with a bat occurred. The heavy
draperies were pulled back from the balcony windows, which were open
because of the heat, but the light inner curtains had been drawn, since
the light attracted moths and other insects. Teresa was brushing my
hair when the curtain suddenly billowed out. We both turned to look,
and I saw the flapping black shape behind the thin white fabric.
"Oh, dear," I exclaimed, in more annoyance than fear. "Do
chase it away, Teresa, before it gets in, I cannot stand…."
As I spoke, the bat came in through the opening in the
curtains. It was enormous, much bigger than the others I had seen, and
at once I realized that there was something wrong with it. Unlike the
other creature, which had fluttered in aimless panic, this one seemed
to be moved by a demonic energy. Instead of seeking the window, and
freedom, it flung itself across the room in a series of swooping loops
and then darted straight at me.
With a shriek I fell to the floor, my arms over my head.
Teresa's face had gone white as dirty paper. I could have excused her
for fleeing; instead she ran toward me, swinging the hairbrush like a
club. It was luck, not skill, I am sure, that enabled her to hit her
target. The solid silver of the brush struck the creature down. It fell
to the floor not three feet from me, but it was not dead; its wings
continued to flap feebly, and I could have sworn that, crippled as it
was, it tried to crawl toward me. I had one horrible, unforgettable
view of its evil little face--the eyes glowing red, the fanged mouth
open--before Teresa grabbed my shoulders and dragged me away.
Our screams--for Teresa had been shrieking mindlessly the
whole time--finally attracted notice. Galiana was the first to burst
into the room. She fell back with the most earsplitting shriek of all
as she saw the black horror flapping on the floor. Andrea was right
behind her. He did not hesitate; thrusting Galiana roughly behind him,
he snatched a poker from the fireplace and began beating at the fallen
animal.
I didn't faint, but I certainly lost control of my limbs
and my powers of speech for a brief time. When I regained them I was
lying on the chaise longue, with Teresa crouched at my feet, her teeth
chattering like castanets. Miss Perkins was bending over me. My eyes
went at once to the spot on the floor…. A towel had been thrown down
there.
"It is gone," Miss Perkins said. "The Count took it away.
Francesca, did it touch you?"
"I don't think so," I said. "Teresa…" She looked up when
I spoke her name, and I smiled and touched her shoulder. "Teresa hit it
with my hairbrush. Really, Miss Perkins, I am ashamed to have been so
silly. It was only a bat."
Teresa, still paper-white, muttered something I did not
understand.
"Nonsense," Miss Perkins said sharply.
"What did she say?" I asked. I felt better, and was about
to sit up when Miss Perkins pushed me back.
"The word means ‘vampire,'" she said. "Foolish; there is
a variety of bat in South America that drinks blood, but it has never
been seen in Europe. However…. Francesca, are you certain it did not
touch you, not even brush you in passing? Lie back and let me examine--"
"I am quite sure, really. What is all the fuss about?
Where is Andrea?"
He returned at that moment and came to my side.
"The rug will be burned," he said, addressing Miss
Perkins. "Is she--did it--"
"I will scream in a minute if you don't explain," I
shouted. "Good heavens, you are all talking as if it were really…."
Miss Perkins and Andrea exchanged glances. "Tell her, if
you think it wise," he said.
"It had hydrophobia," Miss Perkins said. "If even a drop
of its saliva had touched you…."
Then I did feel faint. Andrea smiled reassuringly.
"The danger is over, Cousin. You were almost the victim
of a rare and unusual accident. I can only recall one other case of a
bat having this dreadful disease. As you know, it is more common in
dogs, but occasionally other creatures are afflicted by it. Only
occasionally; you will never see such a thing again in your lifetime, I
am sure."
"Good God," I said faintly. Again I put out my hand and
touched Teresa. "She saved my life, then. If she had not struck it with
my brush…. Ask her, Miss Perkins, make sure she was not hurt. She is
the one who took the risk."
Miss Perkins insisted on examining the girl, but her
plump bare arms and round face were free of punctures. The color had
returned to her face and she was about to get to her feet when suddenly
she let out a shriek and fell back, her eyes staring.
The Contessa had just come in accompanied by Miss Rhoda
and the ever-present Bianca. They had been attracted by the noise and
confusion; now Andrea explained the situation, and both expressed their
horror and their relief. Then the Contessa went in search of Galiana,
who had returned to her room, overcome. Bianca followed her, as a
matter of course, and as they left I saw that Teresa had extended one
hand in a strange gesture, her fingers rigid.
Andrea saw it too. With an angry exclamation he struck at
the girl's hand.
"Andrea," I cried. "What are you doing? After what she
has done for me--"
"Forgive me," Andrea muttered. "You don't understand.
I--you had better rest now. I will have the servants remove the rug."
And he ran from the room.
"Send Teresa away," said Miss Perkins. "She should rest
too, she has had a shock."
I did so. When we were alone I turned a look of
bewilderment on my friend.
"I don't understand."
"It is simple enough," Miss Perkins said with a sigh.
"Superstition; the curse of the uneducated. These poor peasants explain
everything that is uncommon as supernatural. The gesture Teresa made
was the ancient defense against the evil eye. Afflicted persons such as
hunchbacks and cripples are often regarded by the ignorant as agents of
the devil. In medieval times women like Bianca were burned as witches.
This country is still in the Middle Ages in many respects. I understand
that the Contessa actually saved the poor creature from persecution in
her home village. I think she is weak-witted, perhaps as a result of
her affliction. It is no wonder that she regards the Contessa as a
saint."
"I still don't understand why Teresa should have made
that gesture."
"It is only a theory, of course," said Miss Perkins
modestly. "But I suspect that Teresa, like her ancestors, believes in a
world which is infested by malevolent spirits. There is no such thing
as accident. Therefore the rabid bat was a demon in animal form, a sort
of witch's familiar. And since Bianca is regarded as a witch…."
"That is ridiculous," I said. "I must talk to Teresa. But
I can't forget, Miss P., how brave she was in defending me."
"She deserves even more credit for facing what she
believed to be an emissary of Satan," said Miss Perkins with a smile.
"Well, thank God it turned out as it did. We can forget the incident
and go down to supper."
We went down, but I did not quickly forget the incident.
Of course I did not believe in witches or curses or vampires. It was
equally impossible that any human agent could have sent the infected
creature to attack me. All the same--three "accidents"…it was surely
stretching coincidence rather far.
III
Some day--if I should live to see it--I will probably
tell my grandchildren that the accident of little Giovanni was the
turning point in the development of my youthful character. It may be
so. But I suspect the change was more gradual, the result of a series
of incidents, each one of which wrought a small but meaningful
alteration, until finally the accumulated influence exploded into my
consciousness.
I well remember the day when the explosion occurred. It
was a hot afternoon in August, and I was drowsing over a book in the
rose garden when the summons from the village reached me.
I had been to the village several times, driven by I know
not what vague impulse; I hesitate to call it kindness or charity, for
charity should be more courageous. I crept there surreptitiously,
fearing Galiana's mockery; and the things I took, small baskets of
food, worn-out clothing, were pilfered from the kitchens and
storerooms, though I might have asked Grandfather for anything in the
castle. The villagers were so poor that they accepted anything
gratefully, and even as I was handing out my scraps I felt guilty for
not doing more.
I spent most of my store on little Giovanni and his
family, since I had a particular interest in them, and also because of
the mother's delicate condition. Heaven knows there was nothing
delicate about the conditions of her life; she worked like a man,
hoeing and harvesting in the fields when she was not working in the
house. In spite of my contributions she did not look in good health, so
when the messenger--one of Giovanni's innumerable brothers--came
running to me, I had a premonition of what had gone wrong. The child
was gray-faced and incoherent in his alarm, but Piero, who was
ubiquitous in those days, popped out from behind the shrubbery and
explained enough to make me anxious to leave at once.
With Piero to accompany me I needed no other escort, and
I wanted none. I did not even want to search for Miss Perkins; time was
already of the essence, if the urchin was to be believed, and I was
afraid--oh, God, my stupid vanity!--I was afraid of being found out by
the others. As I was mounting my horse, however, I remembered Miss
Perkins' skill in nursing, and paused long enough to scribble a hasty
note, which I gave to one of the stablemen--who would hand it to one of
the scullery maids, who would hand it to an upper maid, who would pass
it to a footman…. Eventually it would reach the recipient, and I urged
haste with as much eloquence as I could command.
With Piero behind me and the child on his saddlebow, I
galloped to the village. The main street was drowsing in the heat of
afternoon; most of the dwellers were taking the siesta that is common
in this country. But there was a group of silent watchers before the
door of the house where Giovanni lived, and they all turned, their
faces brightening, as I dismounted and flung my reins to Piero.
I had been inside the house before, and had found it hard
to conquer my aversion to the foul filth of the interior of what had
once been a comfortable medieval townhouse. But never had the abysmal
poverty of the place struck me so forcibly as when I entered the
darkened chamber where the mother lay. The windows were tightly shut
and the stifling heat was enough to make me giddy. I tried to tell the
hovering women to open the shutters (there was, needless to say, no
glass in any of these houses); but they only stared blankly.
I managed to get one of the shutters open. The rush of
clean air was unbelievably welcome. It roused the sick woman; as I
knelt beside her, she opened her sunken eyes and smiled feebly. But I
had seen death before. I knew its signs, and I saw them on the
bloodless face.
Then I cursed my selfishness. If I had brought Miss
Perkins, she might have been able to do something. I was helpless. I
could only take the woman's gnarled hand in mine. That seemed to please
her. She was beyond speech; but she tried to raise my hand to her lips.
That gesture broke me down. I knelt, sobbing, with bowed head, while
the woman died.
Miss Perkins found me there, only minutes later. Her firm
hands on my shoulders roused me and lifted me to my feet. She sent me
out of the room. One of the women had to go with me, I was so blinded
by tears.
It was considerably later when Miss Perkins came out of
the house. Her shoulders were bowed and she looked more than her actual
age; but when she saw me she straightened up and tried to smile.
"Come now, Francesca, tears accomplish nothing. You did
your best for the poor soul. You did what she wanted."
"I could do nothing," I exclaimed angrily.
"You came when she called. I don't think you realize how
these simple folk think of you; your presence gave that woman comfort.
No one could have done more."
My eyes were so swollen I had difficulty in seeing. The
sunlight made them ache. I covered them with my hand, and heard myself
saying,
"It is not right. They shouldn't live this way. I want to
do something, Miss Perkins. Show me how to help! I have been selfish
and stupid, but I will be different from now on."
Miss Perkins was far too sensible to respond to this
outburst--genuine though it was--with sympathy or sentimentality.
"Splendid," she said, in her most matter-of-fact voice.
"If you really feel that way, then stop crying, wipe your eyes, and
think how you can help that orphaned family. Come, take your hand from
your eyes; watch me try to mount, that ought to make you laugh."
I think she was clumsier than usual, on purpose.
So began my first exercises in benevolence. As I had
expected, Galiana was very much amused by it all. Grandfather made no
objections; charity, after all, was a suitable occupation for a lady.
He let me rummage through the cupboards and storerooms for food, and
watched with a smile while I laboriously sewed smocks and shirts for
the children. I was a poor seamstress, and Giovanni wore my ill-made
garments with a look of indignant suffering, but he did not complain.
He was always a silent child. I think he was so used to having his
thumb in his mouth he did not know that feature could be used for the
purpose of speaking.
On one of my visits to the village, a strange thing
happened. I had gone down with a basket of bread, fresh from the oven.
I was greeted with the usual smiles and genuflections (which I was
frail enough to enjoy more than I should) but I was also conscious of a
sort of bustling in the background that I had not encountered before.
As I entered, I saw the figure of a man slip through a door at the back
of the house. For a moment he was silhouetted against the sunlight, and
I had an impression of someone unusually tall, wearing a slouch hat
pulled down low on his head. Then the door closed, and the people of
the house seemed to relax. When I went up to the room occupied by the
Messana family I found then eating a haunch of veal. I knew these
people never saw meat unless they were given it; and I certainly had
not brought this roast. Poaching did occur, but it was extremely
dangerous and was usually limited to small game such as rabbits. They
would never dare kill a calf.
When I asked, they looked at me with the bland expression
oppressed people learn in order to conceal their feelings. Finally
Alberto, the eldest boy, said something about the priest. I knew
better, of course. Father Benedetto was a good man, who tried to
relieve his flock; but he was as poor and uninfluential as any of the
villagers.
I could not help connecting the unusual food with the
mysterious visitor. A thrill ran through me. Surely I had seen that
tall, agile figure before. The twist of his body as he slipped through
the door reminded me of a similar movement--a sideways slip from the
saddle, a sword arm extended…. I needed no further evidence to be
convinced that I had seen the Falcon on one of his errands of mercy.
I was learning a little sense, though; so I said nothing
to the Messanas. Miss Perkins was my only possible confidante. I sought
her out as soon as I returned home, and she listened to my story with
interest, but with a twinkling eye.
"My dear child, you are hopelessly romantic. It is very
unlikely that your hero would occupy himself with such trivia. I know
he is said to help the villagers whenever possible; he seems to have a
special interest in this district. But surely he would send one of his
men on such an errand."
"I suppose so," I said, disappointed. "He has been very
quiet these last few weeks, hasn't he? Since Andrea came home, in fact."
Andrea's stay was about to end, however. According to
Galiana, he had already remained longer than he usually did. He found
the castle very boring and went off frequently to seek amusement
elsewhere.
"It is you he came to see," said Galiana, looking at me
slyly. "I think he will marry you, eh?"
"Why should he?" I inquired.
"It would be most suitable. The two parts of the family
united; the two pets of your grandfather. He would be happy to see it,
I think."
"Would you be happy to see it?"
Galiana turned away, her face unusually sober.
"He is not for me. I must marry an elder son. We have no
money, it is for me to restore the family."
"That's silly," I said. "Andrea won't be a pauper; he
will have quite enough to live comfortably. Do you--do you care for
him, Galiana? Lately I have thought…."
"If I did, it would make no difference," said Galiana
sullenly. "I must marry an elder son. But you--you love him too."
The betrayal in a simple three-letter word! I couldn't
smile, she looked so sad; and in fact her statement made me consider
the question more seriously than I had done.
"I love him," I said thoughtfully. "Certainly I do. But
do I love him as a cousin, a kind friend--or as a man? I don't know,
Galiana."
"Then you are a fool," said Galiana. "Sometimes I wish
you had never come here. Sometimes I almost…" And as I stared at her in
shocked surprise, she burst into tears. "Oh, pay no attention to me, I
never mean what I say," she sobbed. "I am not in love, I must marry--"
"I know," I said, putting my arms around her. "An eldest
son. You are a bigger fool than I am, Galiana, if you really believe
that."
Andrea left us the next day, to visit a friend whose
villa was located near Lake Como. I was sorry to see him go, and yet,
after my conversation with Galiana, it was almost a relief to have him
out of the way for a while. We slipped back into our old quiet ways.
When the blow finally fell, it came all the more painfully for the calm
that had preceded it, like a thunderclap out of a smiling blue
sky--that unheralded thunder that was regarded by the Romans, and their
Etruscan mentors, as a sign of the gods' displeasure.
One breathlessly hot afternoon a week or so after
Andrea's departure we were having tea in the drawing room. I remember
thinking--how ironically, as events were to prove!--that the day was
very dull. The heat seemed to have stupefied our wits, and the group
that had never been noted for vivacity seemed even duller after having
known Andrea's laughter.
Then the bombshell fell. It was heralded by the bursting
open of the great doors, and the appearance of Grandfather, flushed and
panting. He was waving a paper. At first he was too breathless to speak.
The face of a scandalized footman appeared over his
shoulder. I don't think I had ever seen one of the family open a door
since I arrived; a servant always appeared when he was needed. This
time Grandfather's unusual haste had anticipated the servant, but the
man consoled himself by slamming the doors smartly after Grandfather
had entered the room.
I rose and went to take his arm.
"What is it, Grandfather? Is something wrong?"
"No, no; it is good news, excellent news." He waved the
paper, his face aglow. "They have caught him! At last the rascal is
behind bars!"
Miss Perkins made a queer gurgling sound and rose slowly
to her feet. The others stared. It was Galiana who exclaimed.
"Il Falcone? I don't believe it. Who is he, then, your
Excellency?"
Some of the color faded from Grandfather's face.
"Most unfortunate," he said gruffly. "One of our best
families…. It is the Cadorna boy--Antonio."
I caught Miss Perkins' glaring eyes in time to suppress
my cry of distress. I had forgotten; I was not supposed to be
acquainted with Antonio Cadorna. But Galiana did cry out.
"Antonio? Non è possible! He
came to my parties, when I was small…. Is he not a friend of Andrea?"
"I am afraid it is only too true," said Grandfather,
ignoring the last question. "Yes; unfortunate; a fine old family. But
the wretched boy deserves his fate. He was lucky to escape from the
affair in Perugia so easily. Apparently he did not learn from that
experience."
"Oh, dear."
I thought it was Miss Perkins who had emitted that
particularly English expression of well-bred regret. Then I realized
that the speaker was Miss Rhoda. The Contessa looked at her
disapprovingly.
"I, too, regret the shame of a respectable family," she
said. "But Antonio deserves his fate. They will execute him, your
Excellency? His family's prominence will not excuse him this time?"
"No. He is to be hanged in the square at Parezzo in three
days. This letter, from Captain De Merode, informs me of the facts;
quite proper of him, to notify me so promptly. He invites me to witness
the execution." Grandfather spoke firmly, but he avoided our eyes. "I
must go, it is fitting. As you know, I own the inn in Parezzo; we will
have a fine view from the front balcony. You ladies can visit the
shops. You will enjoy that, eh?"
His air of forced cheerfulness told me he was not as
callous as he sounded. All the same, the idea that we could be bribed
by a shopping expedition into witnessing such a dreadful thing made me
angry. I turned away.
"No, I won't go."
"You may please yourself," said Grandfather stiffly.
"I will be honored to go, your Excellency," Galiana
exclaimed. "That is, if Mama--"
"But of course," said the Contessa. "It is proper, my
child; he is an old playmate. You must pray for his salvation."
"Good God," I burst out, and would have said more; but
again Miss Perkins caught my eye.
"I think we should all go," she said.
I knew her so well by then I could understand the way her
mind was working. She was right. There were good reasons why we should
go. In my first horrified reaction I had not thought clearly.
"Very well," I said.
Grandfather smiled. He took my acquiescence for obedience
to his will, and was relieved, like all domestic tyrants, that he did
not have to reprimand someone he loved.
"Excellent," he cried, rubbing his hands together. "I
will go and tell Stefano the good news. He is in the library."
As soon as the doors had closed after him, Miss Rhoda
rose to her feet. There was so little extra flesh on her bones that it
was almost impossible for her face to wrinkle, but she looked extremely
agitated.
"I don't understand this," she said. "I remember that
boy; he was here for a visit a few years ago, at Andrea's invitation.
He cannot be the bandit they are looking for."
"No, no." Miss Perkins was pacing up and down; her
knuckles beat a veritable tattoo on her nose. "No, it is a trick--a
trap. They mean to execute the young man, no doubt, but they hope to
catch a bigger fish with him as bait."
"Good heavens," I exclaimed. "You have it, Miss P. The
Falcon--the real Falcon--will not allow his friend to be murdered!"
Galiana clapped her hands; her face glowed with
excitement.
"Il Falcone will come to his rescue," she cried. "Do you
suppose he will ride into the piazza on a great black horse, as he did
in the village? Only think, we will have a perfect view! The albergo
faces on the piazza, and the balcony--"
I could endure no more. I ran from the room, out of the
house, into the gardens. I needed air. As clearly as if I had seen it
only the day before, the face of the young man came back to me--his
soft brown eyes, the bravado of the big moustaches hiding his gentle
mouth.
Antonio could not be the Falcon. All other factors aside,
there was one overriding objection to the identification. I myself had
seen the rebel leader rip the proclamation from the church door. He had
held his sword in his right hand. Antonio had lost that hand. De Merode
must know this as well as I did. Miss Perkins was right, the execution
was a trap; it was just the sort of diabolical scheme De Merode would
invent. The Falcon would not allow his friend to be hanged. Honor and
affection alike would demand an attempt at rescue. No such attempt
could possibly succeed, for De Merode would take every precaution. And
we, as unwilling witnesses, might have to watch not one, but two, brave
men die.
I was young enough to find the Contessa's character quite
inexplicable. I had seen her weep over a dead canary, and she was
unfailingly kind to poor clumsy Bianca; yet this same woman had once
described, with vindictive pleasure, the torments meted out by the
Inquisition to heretics and unbelievers. I know now that human nature
is not consistent, and that morbid fanaticism is not limited to any
single faith; but I still find such an attitude horrible. At seventeen
I was not only horrified, I was incredulous.
Galiana's callousness concerning a boy whom she had known
and played with as a child was just as repugnant. Miss Perkins would
say that her upbringing was at fault, but to me it seemed like a
complete lack of moral character. She was like her father, who had been
a cruel, arrogant man. How could I have considered her my friend?
I was pacing up and down the terrace in a state of great
agitation when Andrea came in sight on the path that led to the
stables. He was in riding costume; his dusty boots and flushed,
perspiring face betrayed the haste with which he had traveled. He came
to me with long, angry strides.
"Is it true?" he demanded. "I heard the news yesterday
and came straight back. Is it true about Antonio?"
"Yes," I said miserably. "Andrea, I'm so sorry."
"Others will be sorry," said Andrea between his teeth. He
ran into the house.
I stared after him. A new, monstrous suspicion had leaped
into my mind. Was it possible…. No, I told myself; it could not be. All
the same, Andrea was not the man to stand idly by while a friend went
to his death. Now I had a new fear to haunt me.
II
We were to leave early next morning, in order to be in
Parezzo in good time. A messenger had been sent off to warn the
innkeeper of our arrival, so that he could prepare the rooms required
for the family and its servants. I assumed that the persons who
occupied those rooms would be summarily evicted The privileges of
aristocracy are very convenient--for the aristocrats.
I had a long talk with Miss Perkins, but came away
without being much encouraged. It seemed impossible for two women to do
anything to aid the condemned man; yet we decided we must attend the
ghastly ceremony on the remote chance that something might occur.
Besides, now that I had had time to think it over, I knew I would die
of suspense if I had to wait at the castello for
news--even though the news would almost certainly be bad.
Later in the afternoon I went looking for Grandfather in
order to ask which of the maids would be coming with us. There was
really no need for me to ask him, for the servants were expected to
move at a moment's notice, without any regard for their feelings or
plans. However, my newly aroused social conscience had made me more
aware of the servants' personal lives. I had learned, to my surprise,
that Teresa was married to one of the footmen and had an infant whom
her aged mother tended during the day. Teresa had to run back and forth
to give the infant the nourishment only she could supply, and I thought
she might like advance notice in case alternate arrangements had to be
made.
At that point in my thinking I felt both amused and
embarrassed. Were alternate arrangements possible? I assumed they were;
but if Teresa would prefer to remain near her child, I might ask
Grandfather to let me take someone else.
When I reached the library I found the door slightly
ajar. This was so unusual that I paused and looked about, and saw the
slightest movement, no more than a breath of displaced air, at the far
end of the corridor. So one of the servants had been listening at the
door. Galiana had told me they did, but this was the first time I had
had any real evidence of the fact.
I was about to enter the room when I heard a voice I had
not expected to hear, and the words it spoke were so startling that I
stopped where I was and listened myself, quite unashamed.
Miss Rhoda was the speaker; soon I heard Grandfather's
low growl, and also Stefano's voice. He was speaking English, as he
always did with Miss Rhoda. Grandfather's grunts were in Italian, but I
understood most of them.
"He will be killed!" This was the comment made by Miss
Rhoda that had reduced me to eavesdropping. "So ill advised, so
reckless--"
"It was certainly ill advised of him to rush in here
bellowing threats and curses," said Stefano's dry, drawling voice. "But
very characteristic of Andrea, you must agree. If he had kept his
opinions to himself, he might have gone to Parezzo and done something
equally ill advised--challenging De Merode, perhaps, or attacking the
executioner."
Andrea must have gone straight from me to Grandfather and
expressed himself with his usual vigor. I was afraid that if I went
into the room, the speakers would not go on. Carefully I pushed the
door open a little wider until I was able to see them. Stefano sat in
his usual chair, his neatly shod feet extended, his cane balanced
between his hands. Miss Rhoda leaned against the desk, her hands
pressed to her flat bosom; her face was turned away, but distress was
evident in every line of her body. Grandfather was trying to look
unconcerned. He did not succeed.
"Something must be done," said Miss Rhoda. "He must be
prevented from going."
Grandfather muttered something I did not hear; and
Stefano, infuriatingly, burst into a laugh.
"Don't worry about your pet, Aunt Rhoda. Something has
been done. The Prince has given instructions to two of the larger
footmen. How I look forward to watching Andrea trying to kick down his
door! His comments should be very amusing."
"Thank God," said Miss Rhoda, with a sigh.
"What are you saying?" snarled Grandfather, turning on
Stefano as if he needed some object on which to vent his anger. "You
will not see him, or hear him; you are coming with us."
"Oh, no." Stefano shook his head. "Unlike my impetuous
brother, I know there is no hope for Antonio, but I am not sufficiently
depraved to enjoy the spectacle of a former acquaintance choking his
life out at the end of a rope. Besides, my presence will be needed
here. You may lock Andrea in his room, your Excellency, but I am the
only person who can keep him there. Andrea is appallingly strong when
he is in a rage; he is quite capable of battering the door down and
massacring several footmen--even if they are not susceptible to
bribery, which they probably are."
"Hmph," Grandfather grunted. "Very well. Suit yourself."
He turned to the window and stood there with his hands
clasped behind his back. Stefano looked at the tall, unyielding figure;
and for a moment his face had an expression I had never seen on it
before. Then he shrugged and gave his cane an expert twirl, catching it
in his hand.
"Your commendation and thanks touch me deeply, your
Excellency."
"Oh, Stefano, don't be so rude," snapped Miss Rhoda.
"Can't you see we are all upset today? Your plan is a good one. I
approve of it. I count on you to keep Andrea here, it would be
disastrous if…. Well, then, I will go and pack."
As she surged majestically toward the door, I picked up
my skirts and fled. Considering Grandfather's mood, it would be better
for me not to talk to him. It is said that listeners hear no good of
themselves; but my eavesdropping had been quite useful. It had relieved
one worry. Andrea would be prevented from helping his friend. Did that
mean, I wondered, that the mysterious Falcon would not make an
appearance?
III
We reached Parezzo late on the following afternoon. It
was a hot, dusty ride, through the heat of the day, and even with the
windows wide open the great traveling coach had the approximate
temperature of a baking oven. The first sight of the old city would
have aroused a cry of admiration from people less preoccupied than we
were. Like San Gimigniano, Parezzo is a city of towers. Square and
massive, they are a grim reminder of the troubled days of yore, when
only the thickness of a man's walls protected him from the avarice and
cruelty of his neighbors.
Frowning and formidable despite their age, the medieval
walls followed the steep contours of the plateau on which the city
stood. Only in one section, where a precipice plunged sheer into the
green valley below, did the walls disappear, as if admitting that here
man's handiwork could not improve on nature's own defenses. On a higher
ridge above the town was the silhouette of battlemented walls--the old
fortress, built in a remote age by a tyrant who commanded the streets
of the town from that impregnable site. As a state prison and military
barracks it still dominated the unfortunates who lived in its shadow.
After a steep ascent we passed under a great stone
archway whose fourteenth-century masonry was guarded by modern
soldiers. A crowd of people eddied around the gate. The soldiers were
stopping everyone who sought entry to the city, checking papers and
identities. The Tarconti arms on the side of our coach were a
sufficient passport; we were waved on without delay.
Miss Perkins continued to point out architectural and
artistic attractions until Miss Rhoda irritably asked her to stop
blocking the window and cutting off what little breeze there was.
We were all crumpled and cross when the horses stopped in
front of the Albergo Tarconti. It had once been a town house. One of
the earlier Tarcontis, alive to the commercial interests of the family,
had converted it into a hotel. We had the entire first floor to
ourselves. It was a large, rambling structure, so there was more than
enough room. Grandfather and his valet occupied one wing, while another
was assigned to us ladies. A large central chamber, handsomely
decorated, was to be used as a communal sitting room. It overlooked the
piazza and had a long stone balcony running its entire length. The
furnishings were amazingly fine for an inn--velvet settees and
armchairs, marble-topped tables, porcelain lamps and a crystal
chandelier. The beams of the ceiling had been carved, painted and
gilded; one motif, repeated over and over, was the crest of the
Tarconti family--a boar rampant on a field of blue.
A sponge bath and a change of clothing restored me to the
state in which I had begun the day--one of physical ease and extreme
mental disquiet. I went at once to the sitting room, where refreshments
had been set out. Miss Rhoda had brought not only her favorite tea, but
a maid who knew how to prepare it, and the scene that awaited me was,
except for the setting, quite like the normal afternoon ritual. Miss
Perkins, cup in hand, was standing at the window, so I joined her.
"Tomorrow they will carry chairs and tables out onto the
balcony," she said quietly. "The pots of flowers on the balustrades
will be put on the floor so as not to impede our view. It is a
beautiful old town, Francesca. The municipal hall is particularly fine,
and so were some of the houses we passed on the main street."
"Yes, I particularly remember the butcher shop," I said
bitterly. "Bloody carcasses hanging at the open door…."
But the piazza was beautiful. Of considerable extent,
irregular in shape, it was virtually walled in by buildings of at least
six stories in height. The cathedral, Santa Maria della Consolazione,
was directly across from the inn. The communal palace dominated the
eastern side of the square. Under its Romanesque arcade the town market
was held twice a week. Its square tower rose high in the air, higher
even than the campanile of the church. In the
center of the piazza was a handsome fountain with a group of life-sized
statues--Neptune, trident in hand, with dolphins at his feet.
On this day the spectator's eye was held, not by the
ancient beauties of the piazza, but by newer structures. The broad
steps before the duomo were hidden by rows of
wooden seats. Most were not more than long planks raised on temporary
supports; but in the center was a sort of loggia, with luxuriously
cushioned chairs shaded by a striped canopy. I was reminded of Miss
Perkins' description of the emperor's box at the Colosseum, from which
the cruel Caesars watched the murder of the early Christian martyrs;
for the canopied loggia was situated so that its occupants would have a
direct view of the gallows.
It was almost finished. Workmen were hammering at the
high crossbeam from which the rope would hang. The platform was ten or
fifteen feet off the ground, so that everyone could see well….
After supper, which was served in the sitting room, the
nervousness that afflicted us all became increasingly apparent.
Grandfather sat stolidly in the great velvet armchair that had been
reserved for him; he was pretending to read a newspaper, but he never
turned the pages. Miss Rhoda's embroidery made no more progress than
his reading, but the Contessa stitched steadily at the great
altarcloth. The gold thread in her needle flashed in the lamplight as
she drew it in and out of the velvet.
The rest of us didn't trouble to conceal our feelings.
Miss Perkins tramped steadily back and forth the length of the room,
from the fireplace to the windows and back. Galiana was on the balcony,
leaning over the railing and calling back descriptions of the progress
being made on the gallows. It wast not quite dark outside, but soon the
situation--especially the rhythmic pounding of hammers from
outside--got on my nerves to such an extent that I determined to go to
my room. I doubted that I could sleep, but at least the dreadful
hammering would be muffled by distance.
I was gathering my work together when the landlord came
to announce a visitor. I immediately sat down again. I would not have
missed this visitor for the world. It was Captain De Merode.
I had never seen him so impeccably turned out. His boots
shone almost as brightly as his gilded cuirass, and the beautiful white
plume in his helmet would have graced any lady's bonnet.
He accepted a glass of wine and sat turning the crystal
goblet slowly in his hands.
"Well," barked Grandfather. "How is it going, Captain?"
"Bien, très bien," was the
tranquil reply. "A pity that the young man must die; but he seems
determined to end on the gallows. This is not his first offense."
"And is he really the Falcon?" Galiana asked.
"It seems so." De Merode sipped his wine.
"You know he is not," Miss Perkins exclaimed; and then
abruptly turned her back as De Merode glanced at her.
"I don't know anything of the sort, mademoiselle.
Naturally, he denies that he is. But one would expect Il Falcone to do
that, even under the most strenuous questioning…."
"You have tortured him," I burst out.
Grandfather crumpled the newspaper and hurled it to the
floor.
"Francesca, be silent. Such matters are not…. It is
sometimes necessary…. Whether the boy is or is not the man in question,
he is a criminal who deserves death. Captain, what measures have you
taken to prevent a rescue? For, no matter what the man's identity--"
"Oh, of course we have taken precautions," said De Merode
readily. "The Falcon has a motley band of adventurers at his command;
some of them might be foolish enough to attempt a rescue. To date, no
such effort has been made. We have the prisoner in the deepest cell of
the fortress, where he is guarded day and night by a dozen men."
The Contessa raised her head from the cloth she was
making for the glory of God.
"His men must know the impossibility of rescue," she
remarked. "The oubliettes of the fortress have guarded prisoners
securely for centuries. The dangerous time, surely, is when the
prisoner is removed to the place of execution."
"Your intelligence is admirable, madame la comtesse,"
said De Merode. Naturally we know that, and have taken steps. May I
say," he added, turning to Grandfather, "that I am honored to see you
here, your Excellency. But I am sorry not to see the Counts Stefano and
Andrea. Are they, perhaps, abroad in the town?"
I was certain that De Merode knew quite well where my
cousins were; but he accepted Grandfather's palpably false explanation
without the flicker of an eyelash.
"What a pity they are both indisposed," he remarked. "I
had hoped that Andrea in particular would attend; his
recent--er--indiscretion has been overlooked, thanks to the favor of
His Holiness, but some small demonstration of enthusiasm for our holy
cause might be well advised."
Grandfather stiffened.
"My grandson's indiscretions, as you call them, are my
affair, Captain."
"I hope so, your Excellency. I sincerely hope so."
De Merode drained his glass, put it on a table, and rose,
adjusting his sword.
"I must take my leave. There is much to do, as you can
imagine; but I could not neglect your Excellency. May I bid your
Excellency good evening? Ladies…."
Finally he was gone. I felt as if some oppressive
presence had left the room.
"What did he mean?" Miss Rhoda demanded. "About Andrea?
You assured me, Your Excellency, that you had arranged--"
"This questioning is intolerable," shouted Grandfather. I
will retire. I suggest you ladies do so too."
He went storming from the room.
IV
During the night, servants moved some of the furniture
from the salon onto the balcony. Grandfather's crimson velvet chair
occupied the central position. There were other armchairs, footstools,
and several low tables. Because of the orientation of the albergo,
the facade was in the shadow when I went out at nine o'clock, but the
air was already uncomfortably warm and Galiana, who had been in her
chair since eight, was complaining about the heat.
"It will be an oven by noon," she grumbled. "What a silly
time for an execution! I thought dawn was the traditional hour."
"The Captain wants the greatest possible degree of
publicity," said Miss Perkins. "He has a good eye for drama, you must
agree."
The scene was certainly lively and colorful. The viewing
stands on the steps of the cathedral had been decked with tapestries
and cushions. In stark contrast, the gallows was draped in black cloth.
The strands were as yet unoccupied; presumably these favored seats were
reserved for dignitaries. I saw one man, with a gaudily dressed woman
on his arm, turned away from them by a soldier.
The troops were already in position. The vivid reds and
blues of their uniform jackets, the flashing brilliance of their
weapons formed a continuous barricade all the way around the piazza.
The poorer spectators, who did not rate seats in the stands, were
beginning to congregate. One would have to come early for a good view.
I felt a little faint and turned away from the piazza
with its ghoulish crowd. The servants were serving breakfast. I watched
Galiana bite into a roll thickly smeared with preserves, and for a
moment I thought I would be sick.
Then Miss Perkins, who was watching me, remarked, "You
must eat something, Francesca. Unless you mean to fast as a religious
exercise?"
Sarcasm was not one of her habits. I looked at her in
hurt surprise. She gave her head a little sideways twitch, so I went to
the serving table and took a roll. After a moment she joined me.
"Look at the stones in the facade of that house," she
said, leading me to the far corner of the balcony. "Unless I am
mistaken, they are ancient Etruscan tombstones. One sees many such
examples of building materials being reused."
We stood with our backs turned to the others. Miss
Perkins glanced around; then she reached into her ample bosom and
produced a scrap of paper. Pantomiming silence, with her fingers to her
lips, she unfolded it and showed it to me.
There was a single line in writing--emphatic, spiky
handwriting, clearly disguised.
"Courage," it read. "He will not die."
Down in the lower-right-hand corner was a tiny
hieroglyphic--a bird with a hooked beak.
Despite Miss Perkins' warning I almost let out a cry.
"What does it mean?" I whispered. "Where does it come
from?"
"I found it under my door this morning," Miss Perkins
replied softly. "The meaning is clear, I think."
"Yes, yes, but…" Hope and astonishment closed my throat.
I crumpled the uneaten bread in my hand. "It is kindly meant, a
gracious thought; but why should he take the trouble to reassure you?
Miss Perkins, are you--"
"No." Her gray eyes were steady; I could not doubt her.
"I swear to you, Francesca, I know no more about the Falcon than you
do. I was about to ask you the same question. If he knows me well
enough to be aware of my sentiments on this matter, he must have known
that I would confide in you. It would be easier to reach me, in my
cubbyhole near the stairs, than to get to your room; and you have a
maid who might have found it first. Are you--"
"I am sure of only one thing, and that is that I am sure
of nothing. Miss Perkins, I will go mad of suspense!"
"We must keep our heads, my dear. I was not joking when I
said you should eat. Keep your strength up and be on the alert. One
never knows."
And this amazing woman then proceeded to eat the note,
washing it down with a long swallow of tea. I began to giggle
hysterically, though I knew she had done what had to be done.
Encouraged by the note, though utterly bewildered by its
import, I forced down some bread and tea and then took my chair,
determined to miss nothing. My heart was pounding so hard I thought
everyone must hear it; but no one was completely calm that day.
Except perhaps the Contessa. Dressed in her usual black,
looking icy cool despite the heat of the day, she had for once
abandoned her embroidery. Her head was bent over her prayer book, and
her lips moved continually. It should have been an edifying sight--this
saintly woman praying for a man she despised--but I found it chilling.
Galiana's giddy comments were scarcely less horrible. For
once she had found enough excitement. Bouncing up and down in her
chair, her bright eyes darting from side to side, she saw everything
that went on, and commented on it.
As the sun mounted higher, the gaily bedecked stands
began to fill up. As I had suspected, the occupants were distinguished
persons; their clothing spoke of their wealth and social position, for
all were dressed in their best. Several men wore gaudy uniforms with
yards of gold braid, huge epaulets, shiny buttons, and the most
fantastic hats. One portly gentleman, whose stomach was so large he
could rest his folded arms on it, had a tricorne hat as large as that
of the great Napoleon I, and rows of medals decorated the breast of his
bright-blue coat. There were even a few ladies among those present.
Some carried ruffled parasols to protect themselves against the sun.
There were so many soldiers that they stood literally
shoulder to shoulder. The bright bayonets on the muskets formed a
shining wall behind which the humbler townsfolk pushed and shoved for
position. The central part of the piazza was kept clear, but the
perimeter, behind the barricade of soldiers, was a jostling mass.
Beyond the spire of the duomo, on
the high westward promontory, the stone walls of the fortress could be
seen. I looked at them, thinking of the young man who lay there, in the
deepest dungeon. Would they send a priest to him, before the end? I
shuddered to think of the torments he had endured, of the mental
torture suffered by one so soon to die. As the morning wore on with
horrible slowness--yet so quickly for the condemned man--the hopeful
mood inspired in me by the note began to fade. The Falcon might boast
of his intentions, but how could he possibly succeed? The piazza was
swarming with soldiers, all armed to the teeth. If the Falcon was
contemplating a dramatic last-second rescue from the very foot of the
gallows, he must be desperately foolhardy. There was no way out of the
piazza. The stone-walled houses around it were like a barricade.
Mounted soldiers barred the exits into the narrow streets and vincoli.
Even the doors of the cathedral and the entrances into the other
buildings were guarded. There were six soldiers at the inn door, under
our balcony. Galiana, leaning over the balustrade, was exchanging
remarks with them. Neither her mother nor Grandfather reproved her;
they were too occupied with their own thoughts to notice, and she was
taking full advantage of this unusual freedom.
I decided we had all been misled by the Falcon's earlier
demonstrations of reckless action. There was no reason to suppose he
would wait until the last minute to attempt a rescue. No, he would
perhaps attack the party while it was on its way to the place of
execution, from the fortress. The streets were narrow, walled in by
houses; from one of these a party of determined men might rush out and
snatch the prisoner.
Then Galiana straightened up.
"Ah, but the Captain is a clever fellow," she said,
addressing me. "Guess what he has done now. The soldier just told me.
He has moved poor Antonio from the fortress; it was done last night, in
secret. He is now guarded in the new barracks, on the east of the town.
The soldiers will bring him from there to the piazza, and now all the
inhabitants of the houses along the route are being taken from their
homes and imprisoned in the fortress until after the execution."
She returned to her conversation with the soldiers, and
Miss Perkins and I stared at one another in consternation.
"The Captain is a brilliant fiend," she exclaimed. "Even
if the Falcon learns of the change in plan, he will be unable to
arrange an ambush. Oh, dear, oh, dear; this is dreadful!"
The blazing golden orb of the sun lifted slowly toward
the zenith. The stands were completely filled. In the central box sat a
stout, mustachioed man dressed in a bright uniform. There were other
dignitaries with him, wearing formal clothes and top hats, with ribbons
stretched across their breasts.
The piazza was now a solid mass of people, except for the
cleared space in the middle. Almost all of the standing spectators were
men. Their cheap dark clothing made a somber frame for the brilliance
of the decorated stands. Some of the windows and balconies of the
houses were crowded with spectators. Other windows were significantly
shuttered; soldiers stood guard on certain of the balconies, and even
on the lower roofs. De Merode had not missed a trick.
Suddenly there was a disturbance in the crowd under the
arch at the opening of the Via della Stellata. The instantaneous
response of the soldiers in this vicinity showed their alertness; they
pushed ruthlessly at the crowd, ignoring the cries of pain, until a
small space had been cleared. In the midst of this open area two
officers, armed with swords instead of muskets, were struggling with a
single figure which looked very small and slight between them. It wore
a long dark habit and hood like that of a friar; but as the soldiers
roughly grasped it, the hood fell back; and I, like the other watchers,
let out a cry of surprise. The face displayed was that of a woman--not
the sunburned skin of a peasant, but the pale, proud profile of a
handsome young lady. I caught only a glimpse of it, and its expression
of anguish, before the uneven struggle was quickly ended and the
slender figure was borne away. But Galiana had recognized her.
"Santa Maria, it is Elisabetta Condotti. How did she get
here? Her family has had her locked up for weeks."
"Who is she?" I asked.
"Antonio's betrothed. At least she was betrothed to him
before he became a revolutionary. She is supposed to be married next
month to a rich banker in Florence."
"Good heavens," I whispered. "That poor, poor creature."
"They will lock her up again, on bread and water," said
Galiana, staring with interest at the spot where the struggle had taken
place. "How foolish it was of her to do that."
"She hoped to see him, one last time," I said softly.
"Perhaps even to speak to him, or touch his sleeve…. And he would see
her, and know that she had courage enough to be with him at the end."
Miss Perkins looked at me curiously but said nothing.
Through the long hot hours, Grandfather had sat like a
graven image, moving only to accept a glass of wine or a biscuit from
his valet. Even the incident of the young woman had not wrung a comment
from him. I knew he was not as unkind as he seemed; I knew he was not
completely happy about what was going on. But in the conflict between
his natural kindness and his pride of caste, the latter had to conquer.
Just when I thought my stretched nerves could not bear
the waiting any longer, there was a stir and eddy among the crowd
across the piazza. Here, under a lichened stone archway, the Via di
Guistizia entered the square. The soldiers there were shoving at the
crowd, clearing the way.
"But surely it is not time," I exclaimed, turning to Miss
Perkins. She consulted her watch.
"It is twenty past eleven. That cunning devil De Merode
has thought of everything."
"And the Falcon has not made his move. It is too late; he
can never reach Antonio here."
Unconsciously we had both risen to our feet. So had the
others. Only Grandfather sat stolidly, staring straight ahead. Even the
Contessa was standing; her lips still moved and her rosary slipped
through her slender white fingers.
The soldiers had cleared a path into the center of the
piazza, a passageway walled with naked steel. Mounted men, a dozen or
more of them, guarded the archway. Through it came the procession.
Two men on horseback led it. De Merode was not one of
them. Then I saw him; his tall white plume stood up bravely above the
caps of the soldiers who surrounded the condemned man. As they drew
nearer, our vantage point above the heads of spectators and soldiers
allowed us to see every detail. De Merode, his unsheathed sword in his
hand, walked immediately behind the prisoner.
Antonio's head was bare. His arms were bound behind him.
His white shirt was open, the collar turned under, in order to
facilitate the hangman's work. There was a soldier on either side of
him, half supporting him, for he could barely walk. His face was
unmarked, but I did not doubt that De Merode had used all the methods
at his disposal to wring a confession from his prisoner--not of his
identity, but of his leader's plans. The torture had an additional
subtle cruelty in its results; physical weakness deprived Antonio of
the ability to walk proudly to death with his head held high. He was a
pitiful sight, but not a gallant or inspiring one, as he was dragged
along between the two soldiers. From the crowd came a low, sullen
sound, like the rumble of far-off thunder. It died as De Merode's voice
cracked out an order and fifty bayonets rose to position.
In the quivering silence the little cavalcade approached
the steps of the gallows. A black-robed priest walked beside the
condemned man; a low mumble of Latin reached my ears, but the priestly
exhortations were wasted on Antonio, whose head had fallen onto his
chest.
The sunlight was so bright it hurt my eyes. The heated
air distorted objects; they seemed to quiver and sway…. No! It was not
an error of vision; the stands before the cathedral really were
swaying. Slowly the whole massive structure folded, as if a giant
invisible knife had cut straight through the center. It collapsed in a
horrible mixture of wooden planking and torn cloth--and human flesh. A
great scream went up; dust and splinters flew into the air.
Before the dust had time to settle, another sound rent
the shaken air--not human this time, the roar of an explosion. A cloud
of smoke rose behind the roofs of the town in the direction of the
barracks.
This second catastrophe, on the heels of the first,
completed the demoralization of the crowd. There was no longer a
cleared space in the piazza; it was jammed with screaming, struggling
bodies. Some of the spectators tried to get away, others ran toward the
wreckage of the stands, where fallen bodies writhed.
Above the din one voice rose--that of De Merode, shouting
orders. By sheer force of personality he had managed to keep a few of
his men under control; they stood fast around the prisoner. De Merode
had Antonio by the arm. A new ray of hope had given strength to the
injured man; he stood upright, swaying with weakness but alert, looking
from side to side. Yet, his position was still hopeless; the point of
De Merode's sword touched his breast, announcing as clearly as words:
One move at rescue and I myself will perform the execution.
The piazza began to clear as the terrified spectators
fled. The place was like a battlefield, with bayonets flashing, horses
plunging out of control, blood and fallen bodies everywhere. I had
heard no shots. The soldiers could not fire into the turmoil for fear
of hitting an ally; and indeed, at this point there was no enemy to be
seen, only utter confusion. So far as I could see, the only ones
injured were those who had occupied the viewing stands, and I thought
vindictively: It serves them right, the ghouls. Yet the sight was
terrible. Some of the soldiers were pulling away the debris in order to
free those pinned beneath. Those who had not been caught were
staggering or crawling away from the scene of the disaster. One very
fat young woman did not appear to be badly hurt, for she was scuttling
along quite fast on her hands and knees. The angle of her crushed hoops
gave us a shocking view of ruffled pantalets and plump pink legs. She
was more comical than terrible, but another person--the military
gentleman I had noticed earlier--was a frightful sight as he reeled
across the square clutching his head. He had lost his tricorne hat, his
blue coat was torn, and his features were almost obscured by blood. The
crimson streams must have blinded him, for he plunged straight at the
little group that still stood fast--the condemned man and his guard….
Where was the guard? The soldiers had disappeared as if
blown away by a magician's spell. It must have happened very quickly,
for De Merode recognized that fact at about the same time I did. A
great flash of light shone, as his sword arm moved. It was crossed by
another flash--the sword of the bloodstained man in uniform, who was
staggering no longer. Straight as a spear, the padding that had
disguised his body flung aside, he struck the Captain's point away
before it could pierce the prisoner's breast. Antonio went staggering
back and was caught by a man garbed in the same rough dark clothing the
poorer towns-people wore. This man helped him into the saddle of a
horse whose uniformed rider had vanished like the other guards.
The piazza was still a melee of struggling bodies, but
the struggle was purposeless no longer; for every bright crimson
uniform there were several dark-clad men--some of them masked--and a
dozen miniature battles were going on. A few of the mounted soldiers
still kept their seats, but one by one they went down before the
assaults of those grim dark figures. Demoralized, virtually leaderless,
the soldiers were no match for opponents who were obviously acting in
accordance with a brilliantly detailed plan. The sharpshooters on the
roofs and balconies dared not fire; the struggling bodies were too
close together. Speed was on the side of the attackers, too. The entire
attack was begun and ended within the space of a few minutes, and the
plunging horses galloped away with their new riders.
One struggle still went on, at the very foot of the
gallows. De Merode's face was contorted in a wolflike snarl, his sword
struck sparks every time it moved. The other man's face was obscured by
the ghastly crimson mask, but it obviously did not affect his eyesight.
Every stroke was neatly parried, every step calculated. Now that
Antonio had been saved, the Falcon's design was to keep the Captain
occupied while his men made good their escape. How he knew when the
moment arrived I cannot imagine, but at a certain time he moved to
attack instead of passively defending himself. De Merode was no mean
antagonist. The two were evenly matched, and the unknown was unable to
penetrate that flashing guard. I let out an anguished shriek as the
Captain's blade barely missed the other's body. The piazza was clearing
rapidly; soon the soldiers would get their wits together, and it would
be a hundred to one….
Miss Perkins snatched up one of the pottery jars, planted
with a lovely trail of salmon geranium, lifted it high above her head,
and threw it.
The first time I saw her I was reminded of a man, and now
her broad shoulders and sturdy frame carried out the task with almost
masculine strength. The heavy pot, which I could not have lifted, came
crashing down into the piazza. It did not come close to the duelists,
but the sound made De Merode start. He recovered almost at once; but he
was just that fraction of a second too slow to deflect his opponent's
blade entirely, although his catlike quickness undoubtedly saved his
life. The thrust was aimed at his breast. It pierced his arm instead,
but the blow was enough to fell him. His adversary snatched the bridle
of a horse that was being held for him. But instead of mounting he
paused and surveyed the piazza with a sweeping glance.
"Hurry, hurry," shrieked Miss Perkins, jumping up and
down. She was clutching my arm. I had bruises next day, five little
black spots, but at the time I felt nothing.
It almost seemed as if the Falcon had heard her. His gaze
turned toward the balcony where we stood. The drying mask of his face
cracked as he smiled; he drew one finger down his cheek, through the
scarlet stains--and put it to his mouth. From Miss Perkins came a
breathless squeak of laughter.
"Tomato juice," she gasped. "Under his hat…. Hurry, you
mountebank!"
The Falcon's narrowed eyes had already left her; they
focused on the object for which they had been searching. One of the
fallen bodies, dressed in rough homespun, was moving. The Falcon
reached it in a series of leaps, dragging his horse with him. Bending,
he swept the man up and flung him across the saddle. Then he mounted
and turned the horse's head toward the Via della Stellata.
His sword was still in his hand and he used it
ruthlessly, striking down the soldiers who snatched at his stirrups. He
was almost at the archway, and safety, when De Merode rose to a sitting
position. His right arm hung limp; he held the pistol in his left
hand--leveled it--and fired. He must have missed at such a distance.
But his shot was a signal to the other men with firearms. A rattle of
ragged musket fire burst out, and one of the bullets struck the target.
I saw it strike, saw a puff of dust go up from the back of the
brilliant blue coat of the mounted man. The impact of the shot flung
him forward across the horse's neck. The startled animal bolted into
the Via della Stellata, followed by a dozen men.
No one said anything to Miss Perkins about the flowerpot,
though the others, including Grandfather, must have seen her throw it.
But the Contessa's attitude toward my friend changed. She shrank from
Miss Perkins after that as she would have shrunk from a vicious
criminal.
The ride back to the castello would have been
uncomfortable in any case, even without the Contessa's refusal to sit
next to Miss Perkins. We left immediately. Grandfather was like a man
possessed, he barely gave us time to pack, and the fact that we would
not reach home before nightfall did not alter his decision. He asked De
Merode for an escort--and was met with a curt refusal. Every man was
needed.
The Falcon had escaped, but only for the moment. His
horse had been found running loose, its flanks horribly streaked with
drying blood--real blood this time, not a substitute. The two men it
had carried had found refuge in a stable or cellar, protected, no
doubt, by a sympathizer in the city. There were hundreds of hiding
places in the old town, but they would all be searched, and until the
search was completed, the town was sealed off. De Merode himself would
have to vouch for any person who wanted to leave.
It was late afternoon before our coach reached the Porta
San Giovanni. All the other gates were closed. This was the only exit
from the town, and it was guarded by a detachment of soldiers. The
coach stopped and I heard the outraged voice of old Bernardo, the
coachman, expostulating with the soldiers. I tried to look out the
window, and bumped heads smartly with Galiana, who was trying to do the
same thing.
The first person I saw was Captain De Merode. His arm was
in a neat white sling and he was paler than usual; otherwise one would
not have known that he was injured, for he was faultlessly erect in the
saddle and his expression was the usual one of cool indifference.
Grandfather's great black stallion stood next to the Captain's horse,
and the two men were talking together. Finally Grandfather shrugged and
turned aside. De Merode came toward us.
"Ladies, your pardon, but I must ask you to get out of
the coach. I assure you, the delay will be as short as possible."
Miss Rhoda voiced loud objections, but to no avail.
Grandfather said nothing. So we got out and the soldiers practically
took the coach to pieces. There was no space, no matter how small, they
did not look into.
The transaction took less time than one might have
expected, and in a few minutes we took our places again. As soon as we
were through the gate, the horses broke into a trot and they maintained
this pace for the entire trip except when it was necessary for them to
be rested. What with the heat and the jolting, the ride was physically
most uncomfortable. As for our mental states, they may be imagined.
Conversation was impossible; even Galiana gave up the attempt after a
few disjointed exclamations of curiosity and frustrated interest; and
since Miss Perkins and I could not talk confidentially, we did not try
to talk at all. Darkness had fallen before we reached the castle. We
went straight to our rooms, exhausted.
I found Teresa waiting in my beautiful new suite. The bed
was turned back, warm water stood waiting to be poured into the hip
bath, and a fresh nightgown was laid out. Grandfather had sent one of
the footmen galloping ahead to announce our imminent arrival. He had
also carried the great news. I expected that Teresa would be
overflowing with questions, but I found she knew as much about the
affair as I did.
If it had not been for Miss Perkins, I probably would
have gone on thinking of the servants as obedient, convenient puppets
instead of as human beings. To think of them in the latter fashion was
not convenient; it raised too many uncomfortable questions. It was
common knowledge that the servants in a great house knew all the
secrets of the house, often before the master did. The masters took
this for granted and joked about it, as they would have joked about the
clever tricks of a pet. It never seemed to occur to them that this
secret pathway of communication might have its dangers, or that the
creatures they disregarded might threaten them. The barriers between
the two classes were unbreachable. Teresa and I were on friendly terms;
I thought she trusted me and liked me. But that night, when I tried to
get her to express her reactions to the dramatic events that had
transpired in Parezzo, she simply shook her head and made noncommittal
noises. She had been taught to hold her tongue--and I was one of the
enemy. I didn't blame her, but it was exasperating. I finally asked her
point blank, "Can he escape? È possible?"
She shrugged tactfully and rolled her eyes.
"Well, I hope he does," I exclaimed. " ll
è un--what is the word for ‘hero'?-- un eroe.
Nobile, bravo, galante…." Here my stock of adulatory
adjectives ran out. Teresa stared at me, her face a well-schooled
blank, and I added, "I will pray for him." For a moment, then, I
thought the girl's black eyes softened.
Teresa tucked me into bed and put out all the lights
except a pair of candles, shielded against drafts by a clear crystal
cover. The slim topaz flames were shaped like little hands lifted in
appeal. I watched them through drooping eyelashes, and although I did
not lift my own hands, I prayed, more fervently than I had every prayed
before.
II
I woke next morning feeling wretched, after a night
troubled by strange dreams. The hovering bird had been a constant
leitmotiv; now soaring high with beating wings, now swooping to strike;
now plummeting earthward, its once powerful wings limp in death. The
last vision woke me. I sat up with a stifled scream. Sunlight was
pouring into my room and my sweatsoaked nightgown clung to me
uncomfortably.
The day was steaming hot, one of the hottest of the
summer. Teresa laid out the coolest frock I owned, a thin barred muslin
of pale green with ribbons of darker green at the waist and
elbow-length sleeves. I tied my hair back, looping the thick waves up
off my neck and binding them with dark-green ribbons. The image that
glowered back at me from my mirror was marred by the sour expression
and by the drops of perspiration on my forehead.
There was no one in the breakfast room when I went down.
I nibbled at a roll, but heat and anxiety had destroyed my appetite. I
asked the steward whether he had seen Miss Perkins. He said she had
breakfasted and left, he did not know where. The eternal, amiable
Italian shrug and outspread hands had never irritated me more. I
finished spoiling my food and wandered through the empty echoing room.
I knew it was cooler inside the house than it would be outdoors, but I
wanted air, so I went into the garden.
There was no sign of Miss Perkins in the rose garden,
which was usually one of her favorite spots. Nor was she in the water
garden, or the arbor, or the fountain room. Increasingly hot and
disgusted, I walked along the path that led to Stefano's retreat.
The flowers were drooping and dusty; the little house was
shuttered against the heat. I leaned on the gate, staring at the closed
door. By that time I would have talked even to Stefano, but I was
afraid to risk a brusque denial. While I stood there, the door opened
and Piero came out. When he saw me he made as if to go in again, but I
beckoned peremptorily.
"The signorina will ride today?" he asked. "I cannot go,
but another groom--"
"No, it is too hot," I said, in my careful Italian. "Is signor
il conte within? Can I--"
"He is within, signorina; he is not well today, he rests."
"I didn't want to see him anyway," I muttered, turning
away. I had spoken in English. Piero said, "Come?"
I smiled and shrugged and walked away, thinking, "There, I am doing it
myself. I wonder if it irritates Italians as much as it does me."
I went back to the rose garden, and there at last I found
Miss Perkins. She had been looking for me; we had missed each other all
morning. She was trying to look cheerful, but my heart took a downward
plunge as I noticed the worry in her eyes.
"Don't tell me there is bad news," I exclaimed. "Have
they--have they captured him?"
"No; in fact there is good reason to believe that he has
escaped from Parezzo. A messenger arrived this morning, early. The
Prince is deeply concerned; I heard him instructing the innkeeper to
send news at once if anything happened."
"But that is wonderful news," I exclaimed. "Why do you
look so serious?"
"The very fact that he is known to have left the town is
cause for concern. De Merode cannot have searched every nook and cranny
by this time, so he must have gotten word from an informer. If the
informer is someone the Falcon trusts, his every move will be carried
back to his enemy."
"I think you are being too pessimistic," I said.
"I hope so; I sincerely hope so," said Miss Perkins, with
a groan. "I am not good at concealing my feelings; I suppose everyone
in the castle knows that my sympathies are with this young man. And,
oh, Francesca--I fear he is badly hurt. How can a wounded man, weak
from loss of blood, travel fast enough to elude a merciless pursuer
like De Merode? What refuge can he find, with a price on his head and
every soldier in the area searching for him? I wish there were
something I could do!"
"So do I," I whispered.
"Why?" We had been pacing slowly up and down the paths
between the roses. Now she stopped and turned to face me. "Is it just a
girl's romantic imagination that makes you so interested in this man?
Or do you know--"
"I know no more than you. But believe me, it is not
only…. Oh, I think any woman would respond to the sheer romance of the
man, but it is more than that with me; I have seen how these people
suffer, from poverty and ignorance and disease. They deserve better.
This man is trying to help them."
"You are not the thoughtless girl you were when you came
to Italy," said Miss Perkins. "You have grown up a great deal in the
last few months."
"Yes, I have. And," I added, trying to smile, "I must say
I find the process very painful."
"Well, we must hope for the best," said Miss Perkins,
beginning to walk again. "That is all women can do--wait and hope. Such
a waste! We have more strength, more ardor than men realize; if they
would only allow us to share in their struggles!"
"Some men appreciate your abilities," I said. "Andrea
once told me--" And then I came to a stop, my hand at my mouth. "Miss
Perkins! I have been so distressed I forgot all about Andrea. Has he
been released from his room? Piero said that Stefano is in his house,
so I assume--"
"Yes, he is free. He went flying off in a perfect rage,
according to the servants. By then it was too late for him to reach
Parezzo in time for the execution, so I don't know where he has gone.
Off to drown his disappointment in some tavern, if I know men."
"That is a relief. Do you know, Miss Perkins, I was silly
enough…. For a while I actually wondered if Andrea might not be the
Falcon."
"Did you," said Miss Perkins thoughtfully. "Did you,
indeed?"
III
For the remainder of the day I haunted the Salone dei
Divi. This formal, seldom-used chamber had one conspicuous
advantage--it was near the library, where Grandfather was brooding like
a lion in his lair. From this salon I would hear immediately if a
messenger arrived, and I vowed that I would brave the lion if necessary
in order to get the latest news. But the morning wore on without event,
and when the colazione, the midday meal, was
announced, I went to the dining room. Grandfather was not present. Miss
Rhoda said he was dining alone. She seemed disturbed about
something--her precious Andrea, perhaps, for he had not returned.
Galiana was silent too. Her eyes were suspiciously red, and from the
way she kept glancing piteously at her mother, I deduced that she had
been scolded for some misdemeanor or other--perhaps for her bold
behavior on the previous day. The Contessa did not look at her.
Obviously Galiana was in disgrace, and I couldn't help feeling sorry
for her.
It was a relief when the meal was finished and the others
scattered to their rooms for the afternoon rest. I lay down on my bed,
but the heat was so oppressive I could not sleep. Teresa had said there
would be a storm before nightfall. I hoped it was true; rain would
break the heat.
But when I arose after an hour or so, the sun still beat
down out of a cloudless sky. My beautiful rooms oppressed me. I could
not help contrasting their elegance with the mean, stifling houses in
the village. I thought of the man who might even now be lying in some
such foul cellar on a bed of verminous straw--feverish, perhaps dying….
The picture was too vivid, too painful; with a stifled exclamation I
ran from the room, snatching up a straw hat as I went. I had not
visited my friends in the village lately. It might distract me from my
painful thoughts to see how they were getting on.
Piero was nowhere to be seen. One of the grooms, a
nice-looking boy who could not have been more than sixteen, accompanied
me.
The village looked like a city of the dead. Only a few
starved dogs lay panting in the shade. The afternoon was wearing on,
though; shortly the villagers would begin to emerge from their houses.
I glanced up at the sun. No, I was not too early; and I was sure of a
welcome at any time.
The groom had to pound on the door for some time before
anyone answered. Finally the door opened a crack. I could see two eyes,
wide with surprise or fear, then the door opened wide and I saw
Alberto, Giovanni's older brother. He was one of my favorites--a frank,
open-faced boy with a beautiful smile. He was not smiling now.
"Signorina?" he said slowly.
"May I come in?" I held up a basket filled with food.
Instead of moving back, Alberto came out onto the
doorstep and closed the door. He spoke urgently, waving his hands. I
caught only a few words, but his gestures made his meaning plain. He
was telling me to go back to the castle.
I stared at him, offended and hurt. He had gestured
toward the horizon, and there, it was true, I could see storm clouds
beginning to darken the sky. But the storm was a long way off. There
was no hurry.
Suddenly there was a stifled exclamation from my groom. I
turned and saw that another man had joined him. They spoke together,
and the groom's swarthy face turned a queer gray shade.
"Signorina," he said urgently. "Subito--al
castello, per piacere--"
"What is happening?" I demanded. "What--no!" For he had
dared to lay hands on me and was pulling me toward my horse. I
resisted, more indignant than frightened.
"Momento!" Alberto ran down the steps
and caught the groom's arm. Another conference ensued; and then the
stranger turned to me.
"Signorina--will you come with me?"
I started. He spoke not the local dialect but pure,
elegant Tuscan. Even his appearance had undergone a subtle change. His
dark face had a stubble of beard which, with his rough clothing, gave
him a villainous appearance; but now I realized that his long, thin
nose and fine-boned face were not those of a peasant. I hesitated. And
then, some distance away, perhaps on the far side of the village, I
heard sounds. Voices were raised, some in alarm, others in command.
"Si, soldati," said the stranger.
"The soldiers who search for the Falcon. Will you come, signorina?"
I picked up my skirts, lifted them high.
"Where?" I asked.
"This way." I followed him into a street so narrow my
hoops brushed the fronts of the houses. Then he stopped before a door
half hidden in a deep archway, and knocked--a strange combination of
knocks, with pauses in between. The door opened.
It was the dark, evil-smelling cellar of my worst
imaginings. A single candle smoked and sputtered, giving off barely
enough light to enable me to see shapes. I saw two people--men. There
might have been others in the shadows, but I did not look farther; my
eyes went straight to the man who was lying, as I had pictured him, on
a bed of straw in the corner. The candle had been placed so that its
dim light would fall on his body. His shirt was open, and rough
bandages covered his breast. His head also seemed to be swathed in
bandages, but he was conscious; when he saw me, he let out a stream of
hissing, vehement speech, and tried to sit up. The effort was too much.
He fell back, his head striking against the earthen floor.
His remarks ended a low-voiced but vigorous debate
between my guide and one of the other men. I did not doubt that it
concerned me, and the propriety of bringing me here, but I cared
nothing for that. Pulling away from the hands that would have held me,
I ran across the room and dropped to my knees beside the wounded man.
As I did so, one of the guards struck out the candle.
"Stupido," I said angrily. "How can I
see?"
A voice spoke close to my elbow. It was that of my guide.
"Signorina, our leader has lived thus far only because
few of us know who he is. Not even your family could save you if the
enemy thought you could identify him."
The reasoning was doubly convincing in its appeal to my
fears for myself and for the wounded man. There was only one flaw in
the argument. I already knew the Falcon's real identity. His head was
covered by a close-fitting hood that concealed even his hair, with
slits for eyes, nose and mouth; but before the light was extinguished I
had seen a mark on his bared chest--the same mark I had seen once
before on the chest of my cousin Andrea.
Not for an instant was I tempted to mention this. There
were traitors everywhere. Besides, there was no time for anything but
the vital question.
"Does De Merode know he is here?" I spoke in French. It
was necessary to communicate quickly and accurately now, and my
assumption proved to be correct. My guide answered in the same
language, and in the accents of a cultured man.
"Perhaps not. This town is known to be his base. It would
be logical--"
I cut him short. "It doesn't matter. What matters is that
the town will be searched, down to the last kennel. We must get him out
of here."
"But where? No place in the village is safe now."
"The castle. I will hide him in my rooms."
"Impossible, mademoiselle! Some of the servants are with
us, others are not. You could not get him to your rooms without being
seen. Besides, the castle is probably being searched now. A troop of
men, headed by De Merode himself, was seen riding in that direction
less than half an hour ago."
This news shook me to the core. Was De Merode already
suspicious of Andrea? Several of his remarks, meaningless at the time,
now took on a new and terrible significance. But Andrea's absence would
prove nothing; only the capture of the Falcon would do that, and that I
must prevent at any cost.
"He can be hidden somewhere in the hills," I said,
urgency quickening my voice. "I'll think of something. But first we
must get him out of town. If he could ride--"
"I can ride, signorina. Or run, if I must."
I had thought him unconscious. My hand was touching his
breast, and at the sound of his voice I must have pressed down harder
than I meant, for he gave a muffled grunt of pain. His voice was
clearly disguised, a soft, hissing whisper. He spoke the local patois,
but clearly and distinctly. He went on, "Where is your groom? Your
horses?"
His men were well trained. With a minimum of speech and
the utmost speed, the plan the Falcon had hinted at was carried out. I
did not inquire whether my groom's cooperation was forced or voluntary.
While the falcon struggled into the jacket and plumed cap that was the
Tarconti livery, I stood biting my nails with nervous excitement. We
did not leave through the door by which I had entered, but followed a
passageway into a tiny piazza nearby, where the horses were waiting.
The storm clouds had come nearer. The sky was a queer
sullen gray. The dim light was a godsend, but we would need more help
than that from heaven. My companion was a grotesque sight, for the
jacket was far too small for him, and his masked face was hardly
inconspicuous. The disguise, if it could be called that, would pass
muster only at a distance; but that was all it was designed to do. Any
soldier who caught a glimpse of us would assume I was accompanied by
the same servant who had come to the village with me. He would not dare
stop me. If he tried--well, we would have to face that if and when it
happened.
My erstwhile guide, looking even more like a bandit,
caught me in his arms and flung me into my saddle.
"Mademoiselle, I beg you, stay with him," he said
urgently. "He will try to send you away; but he is too weak, he can't
go far alone. If I can, I will meet you outside the town--he knows the
place--but if I should be caught…. Promise you will not leave him!"
"I promise." I turned the horse's head to follow my
"groom," who was already disappearing into the roofed passageway.
Though it was past the hour when the town usually
awakened to life after its siesta, there was not a soul to be seen.
Even the dogs had disappeared. We went at a slow walk, the horses'
hooves scarcely audible in the dust that carpeted the black streets. He
led, I followed; never were the vincoli wide
enough to allow two horses to go side by side. It would have been a
wonderful place for children to play hide and seek--winding, narrow,
with culs-de-sac and mysterious low archways leading into unknown
darkness. We, too, were playing hide and seek, but the loser of the
game would pay a bitter forfeit.
I had not known this part of the town existed. It must
not have changed for five hundred years. I would have been lost within
a few minutes, but the man ahead of me seemed to know every foot of the
way. He took a winding, circuitous path--and not always by choice.
Several times he turned suddenly away from a street when the muffled
sounds of activity were heard there. Once I saw a flash of scarlet
passing in the distance.
Finally we came out of the village onto a narrow plateau.
The transition was almost as abrupt as if a wall had separated town
from country, and indeed a few crumbling foundations showed that the
ancient walls had once stood here. From the high point a narrow path
had been beaten through the weeds that covered the hillside. We were
halfway down the path, within a few yards of a grove of trees, when a
shout behind us made me turn my head.
Thunder muttered overhead; the sky was curtained with
low-hanging clouds. But the scarlet coats stood out against the sober
gray stone of the houses on the hill. One of the soldiers raised an
arm, as if in summons; or perhaps he was aiming a musket, I could not
see distinctly. I turned and rode on at the same deliberate pace. If I
had been alone I am sure I would have urged the horse into a gallop. My
hands were wet with perspiration, and my shoulders hunched in
anticipation of a bullet.
No shot came, of course. The soldiers must have known who
I was, and they would not dare to fire. But they would report having
seen me, and if De Merode learned that his quarry had escaped the trap
of the village, he might put two and two together.
I dug my heels into my horse's sides and came up beside
the other rider. We were on level ground now, and under the shelter of
the trees. He turned his head away, and I thought, How foolish men are!
He still doesn't know I have recognized him. I knew I must leave him to
cherish that comforting delusion. He still thought of me as his "little
cousin," too young and irresponsible to be trusted with his deadly
secret. I would show him that a woman could keep a secret, and spare
him the burden of fearing for my safety.
"Sir," I said primly.
His eyes flashed with an emotion that might have been
amusement as he turned his head toward me, but he made no reply. I
persisted.
"You must find a hiding place. If those men report to
their officer--"
"Si." I had spoken French. He replied
in the hoarse Italian he had used before. Then he pointed. "You--" The
extended finger stabbed emphatically. "You go, there. I--" And his hand
swung around in a ninety-degree angle.
"No, I have no intention of leaving you."
His eyes flashed again, but not with amusement. He raised
his hand threateningly. Since I knew he had no intention of striking
me, I stood my ground, my chin raised. After a moment he shook his
head, muttered something under his breath, and rode on.
We must have proceeded for ten minutes, although it
seemed much longer. The sky steadily darkened; the leaves hung still in
the hush of the imminent storm. The air was hot and close. I found it
hard to breathe. The path, such as it was, had disappeared; we twisted
through narrow ravines, between the trunks of towering pines, scratched
and scraped by the brush.
If the Falcon hoped to discourage me, he did not succeed.
My dress was ripped by thorns, stained by berries. Insects bit me,
perspiration poured down my face, but I pressed doggedly onward. The
straight, unyielding figure ahead of me showed no signs of faltering,
but I had not forgotten the promise I had made to the strange man who
looked like a bandit and spoke French like a courtier. I would have
gone on even without that. I myself had seen the Falcon wounded; the
bullet must have passed straight through his body; and he had been on
the move ever since, with no time to rest. The approaching storm was a
further complication. It would be a bad one; the longer it held off,
the greater the ferocity of wind and rain would be. This I knew from my
brief experience with Italian weather. The injured man must have
shelter from the elements as well as from the ferocity of his foes. But
I had no idea where it was to be found.
We were riding through a narrow canyon when a man darted
out from behind a rock. He was middle-aged; his long hair was grizzled
and his face was half concealed by a bushy beard. I don't know which of
us was the more startled, I or my poor nervous Stella. She reared, and
I went sliding off her back. The newcomer ran to help me to my feet. He
was a stranger--a peasant, by the look of him--and badly frightened, to
judge by his pale face and rolling eyes.
It is amazing what resources the mind can command when it
is forced. I was very bad at the local dialect. Now I understood what
the man was saying, thanks, in part, to his eloquent gestures, but
mostly because of the urgent need to understand.
The soldiers were coming. They had not caught…. I did not
recognize the name, but I knew who was meant--my former guide. He was
still at liberty, but he was closely pursued; he dared not meet us for
fear of leading the pursuit in our direction. The horses were now a
danger, we must leave them. He would return them to the castle stables.
We must proceed on foot.
"But where?" I did not expect an answer. But the answer
came--from the Falcon.
"Le tombe," he said.
I looked around.
Straight ahead, where the ravine widened out, a rounded
hill loomed up against the stormy sky. I had thought the terrain was
beginning to look familiar. Now I knew where I was. The valley ahead
was the valley of the Etruscan tombs. And one of those tombs had a
door, whose secret was known only to the members of the family.
"Come," I said, holding out my hand to him. "Hurry."
For a long moment he did not move. Then he slid slowly
off the horse's back and fell into a crumpled heap at my feet.
The peasant cried out. The sound seemed to echo in the
still air--and I realized that it was not an echo at all. Behind us in
the ravine a man had shouted.
"Help me," I gasped. "Aiuto…."
Stopping, I seized the fallen man roughly by one arm and tugged at him.
He tried to help me, but it was not until the peasant added his
strength to mine that we succeeded in raising the Falcon to his feet.
I had stopped thinking sensibly. All I cared about was
reaching shelter with the man I was trying to save. I didn't care about
the horses or the poor unfortunate peasant who was risking his life to
save us. I had forgotten my terror of the tomb. Once we reached it, we
would be saved.
I never knew the name of the man who helped me that day.
He was only an illiterate, untrained peasant, but he was strong and he
was loyal. With the wounded man between us, we stumbled on to the mouth
of the valley of the tombs.
The sight of that desolate place would have daunted even
a confirmed atheist. The livid, rolling clouds closed it in like the
roof of Hades; in the eerie light the shapes of the great rounded
monuments looked like a city of demons. As we stood there gasping for
breath, with the weight of the half-conscious man dragging at us, there
was a rustle of movement among the weeds. Something came out--something
that shone with a pallid white light….
I let out a sound that was half scream, half hysterical
laugh. The spectral form was one of the big white rabbits. Unafraid, it
sat up on its haunches, its paws folded demurely over its breast, and
stared at us with great liquid eyes.
The sight was too much for my assistant. He had faced the
dangers of the rope, the firing squad, without faltering; but this
diabolical vision touched the deeper layer of superstitious terror that
is stronger than courage. He let out a shriek and fled.
I flung both arms around the limp body of the man whose
sole support I now was. His weight made my knees bend, but by a
superhuman effort he managed to keep his feet and we staggered on until
we reached the mound of the princess.
Here a new difficulty arose. I could not remember where
in the vast stone circle the door was located. The mound was at least a
hundred feet in circumference and the door was masked by shrubs. I felt
as if my arms were about to break off. The Falcon had one arm around my
shoulders; as we stood there, it weighed more and more heavily till it
pressed me to the ground. He had fainted at last. I huddled there in
the prickly grass, with my arms around him, and heard voices at the
entrance to the valley.
I was reduced to the precise mental state of a fox, or
any other hunted beast. Survival was the only idea in my mind, for
myself and for the man whose head rested on my breast. His uneven
breathing scorched my skin through the thin muslin of my dress. A
jagged spear-length of lightning streaked across the sky. In its brief
light, objects stood out with eerie distinctness. The unconscious man
stirred, moaning. I thought I had reached the uttermost limits of
terror, but that sound assured me I had some distance yet to go. With
the strength born of panic, I pressed his face against my breast,
stifling his groans. In the abnormal stillness the slightest sound
would carry; our pursuers might have heard him, as I was able to hear
what they were saying.
Perhaps because it was their common language, they spoke
in English. I recognized one of the voices. I had heard it before, the
day of my first meeting with De Merode.
"What a horrible place," he exclaimed. "Are those truly
the graves of unbelievers, those great high mounds?"
He spoke loudly, as men will do to cover up their fear,
and his companion replied in the same tone.
"So it is said. You are not afraid of the dead, are you,
O'Shaughnessy?"
"And was it not my own ancestor, Brian O'Shaughnessy, who
fought from midnight to dawn with a great skeleton shape to win the
treasure of the kings of Tara? Yet," the Irishman added in a lower
voice, "only a fool would challenge the infernal powers. Lie quiet, all
you pagan souls; we'll not trouble you this night, 'tis a living man we
seek…."
His voice rose suddenly in a shriek, and his companion
laughed--but somewhat shakily.
"It's only a hare, you fool of an Irishman."
"To be sure, to be sure. 'Tis only in England, that
heretic island, that the spirit of a witch may take the shape of a
harmless rabbit. Oh, devil take it, Williams, must we go into this
place? No one but a fool would seek shelter here."
"Precisely why it would make an excellent hiding place,"
his companion said. "Come along, let's get it over with. It will rain
any moment."
Dry branches crackled underfoot as they advanced. Another
flash of lightning, brighter than the last, split the darkening sky
apart. In its glare I saw a shape I knew.
The last five feet to sanctuary were almost the worst of
the whole journey. More than once I cursed the inconvenience of female
clothing; those dreadful hoops got in the way of every step I took.
Only the fact that the soldiers were making as much noise as we kept
them from hearing us. But finally my groping hands found the hidden
catch and the door swung open. One last burst of strength tumbled the
two of us over the threshold. I placed the wooden wedge as I had been
shown, and pulled the door back into place.
Time had no meaning in the stifling darkness. It might
have been an hour later, or ten minutes, or a century, before I forced
the slab open once again.
The worst of the storm had passed, but rain was still
falling steadily. I waited for some time, listening, till I was sure
the soldiers had gone. Then I crept out. I was careful to be sure the
catch was wedged before I pushed the slab back into place, so that it
could be opened from the inside--just in case.
I had not gone twenty feet before my soaked skirts were
clinging to me, making every step an effort. I had removed my hoops
before leaving the tomb. I wondered morbidly what excavators of a
future generation would make of those peculiar objects, supposing that
they found them centuries from now.
I knew the way back to the castello, but this was the
first time I had traversed it on foot. I had not realized it was so
far. Nor had I been fully cognizant of the difficulty of the terrain.
Running water turned every slope into a stream of mud. My fragile
slippers gave no traction; I slipped back two feet for every foot I
gained, and my hands were soon scored and bleeding from the branches I
grasped in order to pull myself up. It was a nightmare journey, and the
need for haste made it seem even longer.
How long could an injured man survive in that dank,
airless chamber, without food or medical aid? I had to leave him there,
I had no choice. All my efforts to revive him had been in vain. I knew
where the candles were, but I was afraid to light one. The slab seemed
tight, but a slit of light might betray his presence to searchers. He
was safe from capture there, but he needed help and I was the only one
who could bring it. Blankets, I thought, inching my way up a brambly
slope. Blankets and hot soup; fresh bandages, food…. How I would get
these things to him I could not imagine, but I would have to do it
somehow. I could trust no one--except Miss Perkins.
I believe her name was my last coherent thought. After
that it was a delirium of rain and mud and thorny branches.
When I reached the lowest terrace of the gardens, the
rain had stopped and a single star was visible through the rent clouds
to the west. I stood there swaying with fatigue, and stared stupidly at
the brilliant point of light. Then I saw that the castle was
illuminated like a building on a festal day. Every window was ablaze.
So numbed was I by worry and physical discomfort that I
might have failed to understand the significance of this unusual
illumination. By a stroke of luck, the man in the shadow of the clipped
yew moved so that I saw him before he saw me. The shape of his cap
silhouetted against the sky told me all I needed to know. I dropped
down behind a tree, my heart racing.
The castello had been invaded and occupied. All very
suavely and courteously, no doubt; De Merode could not arouse
Grandfather's open hostility. His excuse would be that he wanted to
protect the inhabitants against the dangerous criminal still at large.
How much did he know? I wondered. How much was only suspicion?
And--more to the point--how many men were there hiding in the gardens?
The Captain seemed to have an endless number of soldiers at his
disposal; a ridiculous number to employ in the capture of a single
local rebel. Of course De Merode was obsessed. His elusive adversary
had become a personal threat. But he must have powerful connections in
Rome to have acquired so many reinforcements.
Avoiding graveled paths and paved surfaces, I crawled on
hands and knees through the wet grass. I had no plan in mind, only an
instinctive need to avoid capture until I had time to decide what to do.
Below, and to my right, I saw the curious little towers
of the garden house--Stefano's retreat. Stefano…. Surely he would help
if he knew the seriousness of the situation. If I could reach him, I
would sound him out, test him…. I suspected there was some antagonism
in his feelings toward Andrea, but family honor, if not affection,
would surely dictate that he come to his brother's aid. It was worth a
try. It was the only scheme I could think of.
I was shivering violently by then with terror and cold.
The night air was cool after the rain, and it chilled my drenched body.
My teeth began to chatter. I clapped my hand over my mouth to stop the
sound, but it was too late. A dark form leaped over the wall and
enveloped me in a crushing embrace.
" Signorina!" The whisper came just in
time to stop me from screaming. " Signorina, sono io, sono
Piero--non gridare, per l'amore de Dio--i soldati…."
"Piero." I clung to him, gasping for breath. "I must see
the Count--take me to him."
He shook me till the coils of my wet hair smothered my
breath.
" Dov' è lui? Where is he?
Quickly, signorina, tell me!"
"In the tomb," I whispered. " La tomba della
principessa."
The bruising hands left my shoulders and I dropped
panting to the ground. Piero was gone as silently as he had come.
He had not given me time to think; but if I had had time,
I still would not have known what to do. It was done now. Either I had
saved the Falcon or I had betrayed him, and only time would tell which.
II
An hour later I was beginning to hope that I had done the
right thing after all. If Piero meant to betray Andrea, he would have
gone straight to the Captain; and obviously De Merode was still waiting
for news. I could hear him storming up and down outside the door of my
sitting room.
I had walked straight into the house after Piero left me.
If I had wanted to avoid the soldiers, I probably would have been
caught at once. As it was, I managed to reach the terrace before anyone
saw me. Then two of them converged on me with shouts and brandished
muskets. I let out a piercing shriek and sank to the ground.
The pretended faint gave me time to think. Even after I
had been "restored to consciousness," I continued to babble and sob
hysterically. As a footman carried me upstairs, dripping water all over
his neat uniform, I heard Grandfather shouting at the soldiers, and
their protestations. They had not touched me, they had not even
recognized me at first. And no wonder. Miss Perkins let out a cry of
horror when she saw me. As she told me later, she had never seen a more
wretched-looked creature.
She and Teresa flew into action. Gallons of hot water,
warm clothing, brandy, medicines internal and external. As soon as I
was tucked into bed, Grandfather burst in and bent over me.
"My child! What happened? Can she speak?" he demanded,
turning to Miss Perkins. "Is she…. Has she…?"
I knew what he meant. Most girls know, although they are
supposed to be ignorant of such things, and I had had one especially
illuminating experience. The idea enraged me--not the idea of being
ravished, but the fact that this was the foremost worry in
Grandfather's mind. Men act as if we are pieces of property, I thought
disgustedly. If the vase is cracked or the diamond flawed, it loses its
value.
Miss Perkins tried to reassure the agitated old man,
telling him that my injuries were superficial.
"But we--I must know what has happened to her!"
"No, no, she cannot speak, she is too badly hurt," said
Miss Perkins, with magnificent inconsistency.
"I think I can talk a little," I mumbled, trying at the
same time to look exhausted and to reassure Miss Perkins, by a
meaningful look, that I knew what I was doing. "Is--is it the Captain I
hear outside?"
"He cannot come in here," cried Miss Perkins. "You are in
bed, in your nightgown."
She was right. I dared not face De Merode's cutting
intelligence just then. But there was something I wanted to say; one
last thing that might help.
"Tell him," I whispered. I held out a frail, trembling
hand to Grandfather. "Tell him…."
"Yes, my dear child." He pressed my hand. His eyes were
wet.
"He captured me…. The Falcon…."
Grandfather gritted his teeth.
"If he dared to lay hands upon you…!"
"Oh, for heaven's sake," I began angrily, and then
remembered that I was supposed to be weak with shock. "No; no, he did
not…. But he made me go with him--as a hostage. He released me near the
quarry, on the road to Parezzo. It took me so long to get here, I was
afraid, and it was raining…."
I began to sob noisily. Grandfather squeezed my hand till
I wanted to shriek with pain. Then he ran out. I heard him talking to
someone in the outer room; both of them rushed out and the door slammed.
The place I had mentioned was as far to the north of the
castle as the Etruscan cemetery was to the south. I had made my story
as vague as possible, since I didn't know what my unfortunate groom had
told the authorities; but if De Merode believed me he would send his
men in the wrong direction, and Piero would have a chance to reach his
leader.
There were too many imponderables in the plan, but it was
the best I could do. I had flung my arm over my face to conceal the
fact that my sobs were not accompanied by tears; I was far too anxious
to cry just then. Now I peered out from under my sleeve and saw Galiana
standing at the foot of the bed. I had not noticed her before, but it
was not surprising that she should be there. She was attracted by
excitement as a moth is by light.
"Get her out," I hissed at Miss Perkins. "I must talk to
you."
Galiana was not anxious to leave, but Miss Perkins rose
nobly to the occasion. As soon as we were alone, I started talking.
Miss Perkins listened without interrupting; only an occasionally sharp
intake of breath betrayed the intensity of her interest.
"Did I do right to tell Piero?" I asked, finally. "I
couldn't think, I was too upset…. If I have betrayed him…"
"No, no; an informer would have gone straight to the
Captain. Furthermore, Francesca, logic suggests that Piero is one of
the Falcon's supporters. We have all been worried about you, ever since
you failed to return from the village…."
"The groom," I interrupted. "The boy who went with me--"
"He has disappeared. Kidnapped? Or perhaps--"
"Another of the Falcon's supporters. It is possible. But
never mind that. What were you saying about Piero?"
"I said that we were all alarmed about you, especially
after De Merode arrived and told us the Falcon was in the area. He
would not allow us to send men out to search for you, however. None of
our servants was permitted to leave the grounds. So--how did Piero know
you had been with the Falcon? He must be in secret communication with
the rebels. I have long suspected that the Falcon has allies in the
castle--"
"His friend said as much," I agreed. "But Miss Perkins,
if we are wrong…. He is injured and alone in that dreadful place."
Miss Perkins pressed me back against the pillow as I
tried to rise.
"I hope you are not entertaining any notion of returning
to the tomb," she exclaimed. "It would be madness to try, Francesca;
you will be watched, be sure of that. The die is cast in any case.
Either Piero has spoken, or he has found a way to relieve our friend.
Try to sleep now. You have done all you could; you have done nobly."
"Sleep! How can I rest when I don't know what is
happening? I am half mad with worry."
"I shall go down and join the others," Miss Perkins said.
"I promise to come at once and tell you if there is any news. You must
stay here, Francesca; you are supposed to be prostrate. You have
displayed admirable courage so far. Don't fail now."
After she had gone I did try to rest, but it was
impossible. Whenever I closed my eyes the scenes of the past hours
repeated themselves, flashing upon the blackness of my inner vision.
Once again I saw the dirty cellar and the man who lay on the bed of
straw; the shadowy valley and the eerie white rabbit; the mound of the
princess's tomb, the gaping entrance hole. Again I held the unconscious
man's head against my breast and felt his uneven breathing….
I flung the covers back and swung my feet out onto the
floor. It was impossible to rest. I had to move about or lose my mind.
The luxurious elegance of my sitting room was an irritant
instead of a source of comfort. The warmth, the candlelight, the soft
carpets reminded me too painfully of the damp hole in which I had left
the Falcon. I began walking up and down the room. But I had not walked
for long when a sound stopped me in my tracks. I stared dumbfounded as
the door of the big painted armoire began to swing out--and was caught
by four small white fingers.
The truth dawned on me before I had time to imagine worse
threats, and it roused me to tigerish action. In a single bound I
reached the armoire and flung the door wide. Galiana had retreated
behind a row of dresses, but I recognized her little black slippers and
dragged her out with a ruthless hand.
"You are hurting me," she exclaimed indignantly. "Let me
go, Francesca!"
"I am tempted to strangle you," I said, between clenched
teeth. "How long have you been there? What did you hear?"
Her chin began to quiver. I relaxed my hold; but not
because I was moved to pity. Quite the contrary.
"Sit down," I said, pushing her into an armchair.
"Galiana, you frightened me half to death. What a silly thing to do!"
She gave me a sidelong look and began rubbing her arms
where my fingers had held her.
"Not so silly as what you did," she muttered. "I was not
in the armoire all the time, Francesca. I was listening at the door. I
knew all along you were lying; I knew there was something you hadn't
told. And I was right!"
"You couldn't have heard anything. We were whispering."
"Yes, you talked too softly," grumbled Galiana. "But--"
Again came that sly sidelong look--"But Miss Perkins has quite a loud
voice when she is excited. She was most excited, wasn't she, when you
proposed going back to the tomb?"
My heart sank. Miss Perkins had
spoken vehemently then, and that single speech would have told a
listener all she needed to know.
Galiana was not the most intelligent of women, but she
was quick at intrigue. She was watching me closely, and she must have
seen the consternation in my face--a tacit admission of the truth.
"You see, I do know," she said triumphantly. "I suppose
it was wrong to eavesdrop; but you are wrong, Francesca, to keep
secrets from me when you know how interested I am. How long were you
with him? Do tell me who he really is. Just think, he might be someone
I know!"
Again I was faced with a terrible decision. It was
impossible to convince Galiana that she was mistaken. The circumstances
were too damning. And once she got an idea into her head, neither logic
nor threats could get it out. I had to persuade her to keep silent. But
how?
The horror of the situation almost overcame me. Of all
the people to discover my secret, Galiana was probably the most
dangerous. She was an inveterate gossip, and too shallow to understand
the seriousness of the situation. Stefano and Miss Rhoda would have
kept silent; even the Prince would betray his principles before he
would betray his son. But Galiana…. There was only one way I could
think of, only one appeal that might control her tongue.
"Yes, he is someone you know," I said. And as she stared
at me wide-eyed, I fell on my knees beside her chair and caught her
plump little hands tightly in mine. "Galiana, it is Andrea. If De
Merode finds out, Andrea will die; he will be hanged in the square at
Parezzo, as Antonio almost was. And this time there will be no Falcon
to rescue him. It is up to us--you and me--whether he lives or dies."
Galiana's eyes seemed to fill half her face. She had gone
quite pale; there was no amusement on her soft mouth now.
"You are lying," she gasped. "It can't be."
"You needn't believe me," I said. "Tell De Merode, if you
wish; I can't stop you. But if you do, Andrea's blood will be on your
hands."
"No, no." Her hands twisted in mine. I held them fast.
"Will you swear?" I asked. "Swear to keep silent?"
"It is true?" Her eyes searched my face. "Yes, I see you
are not lying now. I can't believe it. Francesca, do you think I would
harm him? I would die rather than see him in danger! Is he hurt? Is he
really in that horrible place? I must go to him, I must--"
"You must stay here and act a part, as you have never
acted in your life! We must convince De Merode that we know nothing.
Believe me, Andrea will be all right. Help has reached him by now. You
can do nothing without endangering him; but you can save him by playing
your part."
As I watched in breathless suspense, her lips tightened
and she nodded.
"I understand," she said. "I promise. Francesca, you do
trust me, don't you? You know how I feel about…"
"I trust you," I said, wishing I were as sure as I tried
to sound. "We must begin acting now, Galiana. Go to bed and at least
pretend to sleep. I know this has been a shock to you."
"Let me stay here with you," she pleaded. "You can say
you were afraid to be alone. I need you, Francesca, I am so worried!"
"That is an excellent idea," I said. At least I could
keep Galiana under my eye for the night, and by morning, if she changed
her mind or lost her nerve, the Falcon would hopefully be beyond De
Merode's reach.
Se we went to sleep, side by side, in my big canopied
bed. Galiana dropped off sooner than I expected. As I looked at her
sleeping face, with traces of tears still on her lashes, I couldn't
help thinking how ironic our situation was. Strange bedfellows
indeed--the two women who loved Andrea Tarconti, and who shared his
deadly secret.
III
Galiana was still asleep when I awoke next morning. I am
sure I need not describe my feelings as consciousness returned to me;
any reader of imagination will comprehend them, and will understand why
the look I bent upon the sweetly sleeping girl was not entirely kind.
When Galiana woke up I had my hands full calming her. Her
resolution was unchanged, but her nerves had weakened. I had to
reiterate, over and over, the melodramatic phrases with which I had
convinced her the night before. She was a creature of emotion--and God
knows the situation was as incredible as the language I had used to
describe it. We ate breakfast in my sitting room, and I was still
encouraging her, when we received a summons to appear downstairs. I
could only hope that my persuasion had been effective, because I feared
that the crisis was upon us.
We found the rest of the family assembled in the library.
When I saw De Merode standing by the fireplace, I knew my fears were
justified.
The Contessa was seated in an armchair. She stretched out
her hand to Galiana as soon as we entered, and the wretched girl ran to
her and hid her face in the maternal lap.
I had read somewhere that the best defense is to attack,
so I turned to De Merode and exclaimed angrily, "You see how you have
affected us, Captain! We are all in a state of nervous excitement. Is
this a courtroom, or a meeting of the famous Inquisition?"
"I don't know why you should say that, mademoiselle," De
Merode said quietly. "I have not spoken to you as yet."
"You don't have to speak, you look
threatening. Grandfather, what is going on? I am still shaken, and I
think I have taken cold."
I suppose my cough was not very convincing. Stefano was
smiling thinly, but his smile was no more convincing than my cough. It
was obvious that no one had slept well the night before. Stefano's
eyelids were heavy and his eyes dull. Grandfather looked even worse. He
was wearing riding clothes, and I wondered where he had been so early
in the morning. Had the Captain forced him to accompany a searching
party?
"Be calm, my child," he said heavily. "The Captain has
assured us he will not take much of our time. He wishes to ask a few
questions."
"I told you everything I knew last night," I said.
"This is outrageous," Miss Rhoda added angrily. For once
she was on my side. When I saw her shadowed eyes and the lines in her
face, I wondered how much she knew.
De Merode ignored her, as he had ignored Grandfather.
"What you told us, mademoiselle, was somewhat misleading.
My men scoured the area you described. They found no traces."
"I don't suppose the man would stay there waiting for you
to find him," I retorted.
"No, indeed. He must have moved very quickly, for we did
find certain signs in quite the opposite direction. Bloodstains."
"Bloodstains! But the rain--"
"They were in a sheltered spot. It struck me, you see,
that this terrain contains a number of excellent hiding places, in the
ancient tombs. And when I learned that one of those tombs has a heavy
door, which cannot be moved unless one knows the secret…."
"So you forced the Prince to show you," I said, with a
calm I certainly was not feeling. "You are insulting, Captain. Only
members of the family know the secret of that door."
"But, mademoiselle, always you malign me. There is no
such thing as a secret from the servants of a great household. These
people know everything that goes on. Obviously one of them is in league
with the Falcon, for we found the bloodstains within the tomb."
I had not been absolutely sure till then that Andrea had
made good his escape. Miss Perkins' reasoning had been logical; but
logic does not convince the heart. By a supreme effort I kept my face
and voice under control. Out of the corner of my eye I saw that Galiana
had raised a tear-stained face from her mother's lap and was listening
with parted lips. It was imperative that I hold the Captain's
attention. I even managed, heaven knows how, to laugh.
"Human blood, of course," I said sarcastically. "How
clever you are, Captain, to be sure it was not that of a poor wounded
animal. Once again, I have told you all I know. I am not responsible
for the workings of your imagination. So if you will excuse me--"
"One moment!" De Merode's nerves were beginning to show
signs of wear too. His voice cracked like a whip. "You are quite right,
mademoiselle, I have no proof of anything. I have only my suspicions,
and my orders. Those orders are to capture this brigand at all costs."
He turned to Grandfather, who had started to protest. "Your Excellency
is no doubt aware that the political situation is increasingly grave.
Garibaldi is on the mainland, and if he takes Naples, the Papal States
will be next. Those serpents of Piedmont, Victor Emmanuel and Cavour,
threaten our northern borders. If there should be uprisings in this
area, they will need no further excuse to invade, on the pretext of
restoring order. The aim of the Falcon, and men like him, is to promote
such rebellions. I will stop at nothing--nothing!--to prevent this. The
man must be found, and when he is, he will be shot, no matter who he
is!"
His face was flushed with passion. As a soldier and a
loyal subject, he had good reason for pursuing an enemy of the state;
but it was clear to all of us that the mocking adversary who had
humiliated and defeated him had become his personal enemy as well.
"A neat summary, Captain," Stefano drawled. "But I fail
to see why you are boring us with this information. Some of us know it
already, and the ladies, I fear, are not interested in politics."
"Ah, but this matter of politics may concern them
closely," said De Merode. "Where is Count Andrea?"
Galiana cried out, and Miss Rhoda exclaimed, "What are
you implying? Do you dare suggest--"
"Count Andrea is a known revolutionary," De Merode said.
"He is strong enough and clever enough to play the role of the Falcon.
He is a friend of Antonio--"
But now he had gone too far. Grandfather rose to his full
height and spoke in a voice that quivered with suppressed fury.
"I too am acquainted with Antonio Cadorna, Captain. Do
you accuse me of being the Falcon? I warn you, do not try me. I have
cooperated to the full so far. Now I ask you to leave my house."
"I will go. But I will return, your Excellency, and if I
find that any persons in this household are involved in any way with
the Falcon, not even your influence can save them. If I must, I will
shoot first and answer for the consequences."
He swung on his heel with a clash of spurs and strode out
of the room.
Then Miss Rhoda--Miss Rhoda of all people--began to weep.
"Why did you irritate him, you wretched girl?" she
sobbed, glaring at me. "He is dangerous, horribly dangerous. How could
you be so stupid?"
Our alliance had not lasted long. I didn't entirely blame
her. She needed some object for her fear and rage. I had been
provocative, but I could hardly explain why.
"Be silent," Grandfather shouted. "She was right! Too
long we have endured the insolence of this creature. This is how my
loyalty, my assistance are rewarded! Francesca, my apologies. I should
not have allowed him to speak to you as he did. And if Stefano were
half a man--"
Shame stopped him before he completed this unworthy
speech, but the damage had been done. Stefano's pale lips curled in the
expression I knew so well.
"It is certainly a pity Andrea was not here instead of
me," he agreed suavely. "He would have challenged De Merode and been
neatly killed in the process. It must be such a comfort to the
survivors of these gallant imbeciles to know that they died honorably,
defending a maiden--even an arrogant outspoken maiden like Francesca.
It would have served her right if De Merode had turned her over his
knee."
Grandfather was quivering with rage. "I only regret now
that I did not assist this man who calls himself the Falcon. At least
he is a man, not a smooth-tongued coward!"
Clutching his gray hair in both hands, he went rushing
out of the room. The others followed, Galiana leaning against her
mother, Miss Rhoda with bowed head. Stefano remained seated, balancing
his stick across his hands.
"He didn't mean it," I said. "He is frightened and angry,
or he would never have said it."
"Thank you for explaining the Prince to me," said
Stefano. "If you expect me to be equally noble--to say that I insulted
you because I was distracted by worry--I am afraid you will be
disappointed. I am not at all distracted, and I had excellent reasons
for speaking as I did."
"Oh, you are impossible," I cried. "You have no heart, no
feelings!"
Miss Perkins, who had been sitting quietly in a corner
the whole time, rose and put out her hand, but I rushed past her. I was
not going to give Stefano the satisfaction of seeing me cry.
It was a terrible day. We were like a household waiting
for news from the battlefield. I tried to find Galiana, feeling that
she was in need of all the verbal fortification I could render, but
when I knocked at the door of the suite she and her mother occupied,
Bianca would not let me in. She blocked the doorway like a black
granite boulder. When I asked if she would at least tell Galiana I
wanted to see her she shook her head and made the hoarse cawing sounds
she used only when she was greatly agitated.
Miss Perkins was not to be found either. She and Galiana
were the only ones I wanted to talk with, so I spent the rest of the
day trying to find them and avoid the others. I took my meals in my
room, sending word by Teresa that I was too unwell to come down. God
knows I was unwell; I felt as if I were in a fever, alternately shaken
by fits of shivering and by such restless impatience that I paced the
floor of my room like a caged animal.
Miss Perkins finally came to me late that evening and
insisted that I take a dose of laudanum to make me sleep. I agreed, on
condition that she would do the same.
"You look terrible," I said. "What have you been doing
all day?"
"Worrying. A futile exercise, I agree. There is still no
news. That is hopeful, I think."
"I need more than hope, I need facts. What of Piero? I
looked for him today, but could not find him. You don't suppose De
Merode has arrested him?"
"Oh, no, Piero has been at his usual duties. I tried to
question him, but he pretended he did not understand my Italian."
She looked so indignant I had to laugh feebly, and she
went on, "He is a clever and loyal man; obviously he could admit
nothing, he doesn't know whether I can be trusted. Besides, Francesca,
we know all we need to know. De Merode searched the tomb and the Falcon
was not there. You may be sure he has found a safe hiding place, or he
would have been captured by now."
We went on reassuring one another in this way until the
medicine began to take effect and I thought perhaps I could sleep. Miss
Perkins stayed with me that night. I was in no mood to be alone.
IV
In any crisis one believes that life is unendurable; yet
one can become accustomed to anything, even to constant uncertainty.
Two days passed in the same way, and our nerves began to relax. They
had to; it would have been impossible for them to remain at such a high
pitch of tension.
I managed to catch up with Galiana, who swore she had not
spoken. Of all of us she seemed the most affected. Her nerves were so
strained she would jump at the slightest sound. Stefano stayed sulking
in his house; Miss Rhoda reverted to her usual cold control; and
Grandfather refused to discuss the subject.
He had enough to worry him in the political news, which
continued bad--for him. Garibaldi was advancing on Naples, and the
peasants in Calabria were welcoming him with open arms. At any time we
expected to hear that the weak Bourbon king, Francis II, had fled the
capital and that Garibaldi had entered in triumph. In our own area,
rumors of rebellion were all about. De Merode's troops were arresting
every stranger on suspicion of being a Piedmontese agent. One
unfortunate merchant of Turin had been detained for three days in the
fortress at Parezzo before he was able to prove his innocence. The
incident created a stir, since the man's family was of some
consequence, but it was evidence of De Merode's increasing mania.
In the midst of the furor Andrea came home.
We were sitting in the drawing room after dinner and I
was at the pianoforte. Stefano had joined us for the first time in
several days, but he had refused to play; so, in an effort to relieve
the gloomy atmosphere, I had gone to the instrument myself. I was
stumbling through a Verdi aria when the doors burst open and Andrea
entered.
While the others stared, he came straight to me, scooped
me up in his arms and kissed me soundly on both cheeks.
"I salute the heroine of the day! You look quite healthy
and blooming, Cousin, for a young lady who has faced the mighty Falcon
himself!"
It was all I could do not to throw my arms around his
neck and return his kisses, I was so relieved to see him. He was
blooming and healthy-looking too; apparently his injury had been less
serious than I had supposed. Aware of the watching eyes of the others,
I said primly, "Andrea, I think you had better put me down."
My smile and my sparkling eyes belied my words. I knew
Andrea understood my real feelings--some of them, at any rate. Did he
still believe me to be unwitting? If so, I was willing to continue the
game; I would never initiate the subject, but would wait for him to
drop the first hint. But oh, how I longed to tell him of my relief, my
affection!
Andrea obeyed, with a smile and a wink. Then he went
straight to Grandfather and kissed him, as is the endearing Italian
custom. The Prince was too moved on this occasion to do anything but
return the embrace heartily. He stood smiling and blinking while Andrea
made the rounds, greeting the others. He would have embraced his
brother too, but Stefano put him off with the point of his stick, and
remarked calmly:
"Your exuberance is too much for an invalid like myself,
Andrea. Welcome home. You missed the excitement, but I see you have
heard of Francesca's adventure. Or should I call it a misadventure?"
"But the province is ringing with it," Andrea exclaimed.
"Such wild stories! You must tell me how it really was, Cousin. Did you
confront the Falcon with his own pistol until you could escape?"
He stood with his feet apart and his hands on hips, his
blue eyes twinkling. It was almost impossible for me to reconcile this
vision of manly health and vigor with the fallen hero whose helpless
head had rested on my breast…. And at that thought I began to blush so
furiously that Andrea burst out laughing.
"Ah, I have offended her modesty. Forgive me, Cousin. But
you are famous; the report of your adventures has gone even to
Florence."
"Then you were in Florence?" Stefano asked dryly.
Andrea's eyes shifted.
"And other places…. I have been very dull, I promise you.
Tell me what you have all been doing."
"Andrea, I must talk to you," Grandfather said.
"I am listening, your Excellency."
"Come to the library. You too, Stefano. For once,"
Grandfather said irritably, "I would like to have a serious discussion
without a pack of women interfering."
He stalked from the room. Andrea smiled and followed.
Stefano pushed himself up out of his chair and limped after them.
"Well!" said Miss Rhoda indignantly.
V
I was unable to speak to Andrea alone next day, he was
rushing around so, and in fact I felt flustered and embarrassed at the
very idea. How could I speak freely when there was so much we had to
conceal, even from each other? He had come to mean so much to me, yet I
did not know whether he shared my feelings. He did not even owe me
gratitude. After what he had done for me, the least I could do was
protect his identity. I longed to be with him, and at the same time I
was shy with him.
There was no need for me to warn him. Grandfather had
told him of De Merode's hints. According to Miss Perkins, who knew
everything that went on--perhaps because she unabashedly gossiped with
the servants--according to her, Andrea had responded to this news with
a shout of laughter and a statement to the effect that De Merode did
him too much honor. He only wished he could claim the credit of being
the Falcon. Unfortunately he could not.
So matters went for the next few days. I began to
understand the feelings of the peasants who live on the slopes of
Vesuvius and watch the ominous smoke plume rise into the sky. I felt as
if an explosion were imminent, but did not know how and when it would
occur. I had expected that De Merode would call on us now that Andrea
was back from…wherever he had been. But the Captain was fully occupied
elsewhere. The entire province was seething like a volcano. Garibaldi
had entered Naples in triumph. King Francis had fled. Urbino had risen
in rebellion, the Piedmontese troops were massing on the frontier. The
Falcon had been seen in Parezzo. Andrea was home one moment, gone the
next….
On the third evening after his return, we were again in
the Salone dei Tritone. The evening was cool; there was a fire in the
fireplace. I was at the piano. Grandfather was working in the library,
but the others were all there. Andrea and Galiana were sitting together
on a sofa in a shadowy corner. Painfully conscious of them, I played
even worse than usual. I was amazed at how complaisant the Contessa had
become over their spending so much time together. Surely it was from
her mother that Galiana had derived her ideas about marrying an elder
son; yet now the older woman smiled affectionately at the young pair as
Galiana flirted and Andrea gazed at her with the intent look of a lover.
The Contessa's maid sat behind her, but by now I had
become as accustomed to Bianca as the others were. She was almost part
of the furnishings. Stefano was wandering aimlessly around the room,
something he seldom did. Finally he came to me, where I sat idly
fingering the keys, my short repertoire exhausted.
"Play something," I said. "Something loud. We are all too
quiet."
"Francesca." Miss Perkins looked up from her embroidery.
She did fancy work very badly, but in those days we all found it
necessary to do something with our hands. "Francesca, don't bother the
Count."
"It's all right, Miss Perkins." Stefano sat down as I
vacated my seat. "Francesca is right, we are too quiet."
He played a Chopin ballade--the First. I have heard it
many times since then, but never have I heard it played as Stefano
played it that night. The poignant, passionate chords of the theme
pulsed in the warm air. The music ended in a plunging arpeggio. For a
moment Stefano sat still, his head bowed, breathing quickly. Then he
rose.
"Andrea," he said, and made a beckoning gesture.
Andrea looked bewildered, but he obeyed the silent
command, and the two brothers walked side by side across the room,
toward the Contessa. They looked formidable as they came on, in
silence, and the Contessa's eyes widened. Then Stefano stepped to one
side.
"Hold her," he said, in Italian. "Quickly, Andrea, don't
let her move."
His hand darted out and snatched something from the hands
of Bianca--some small object she was holding under the folds of her
skirt. The woman rose with one of her harsh, unearthly cries, and
Andrea caught her arms as she snatched at the object Stefano had taken.
"Andrea, Stefano," the Contessa exclaimed. "What are you
doing?"
After that first instinctive gesture, Bianca did not
move. Andrea's eyes were wide as he contemplated the object Stefano was
examining.
The rest of us converged on the group. At first I could
not make out what Stefano had in his hand. His fingers were clasped
tightly around the lower part of it. I saw only a rounded thing the
size of a large marble, like a tiny doll's head. A lock of flaxen hair
had been blued to it and it had painted features--crude and
unrecognizable, but identifiable as eyes, nose and mouth. A sharp
shining point protruded from its forehead.
Galiana was the first to speak.
"La strega," she gasped. "Maladetta…."
"Good heavens," Miss Perkins exclaimed. "It is a moment!
At least that is what they call it in my home in Lancastershire. Some
of the foolish old grannies still believe they can harm an enemy that
way, by abusing the doll. Stefano, what person is this image meant to
represent? Let me see it."
"No." Deliberately Stefano squeezed the body of the doll
until the waxen substance of which it was composed oozed out between
his clenched fingers. There was something horrible about the gesture,
as if he were mutilating living flesh. Bianca's eyes focused and she
drew a long, quivering breath.
"You see," Stefano addressed her in Italian. "It does not
work, Bianca. The one you meant to harm is still alive and well,
although I have crushed the image." Turning, he flung the mangled thing
straight into the heart of the fire. A white flame shot up and quickly
died.
As it died, so did the life in Bianca's face. It went
blank and flat, like the face of the crudely painted doll. A thin
trickle of saliva came out of the corner of her slack mouth. Galiana
shrieked. The Contessa put her hands up to hide her eyes.
"Take her away," she moaned. "I tried to teach her of
Christ and the blessed Virgin; and behind my back she practices the
arts of the Devil. Take her away, I beg."
Miss Rhoda rang the bell and one of the footmen came in.
Bianca moved obediently as he put a gingerly hand on her arm and drew
her away. Her chin was wet with the spittle from her mouth.
"Be gentle with her," the Contessa murmured. "She has
sinned, but she did not know…."
"I'll go with them," Andrea promised. "To be sure she is
well treated. Contessa, don't be concerned, she will be cared for; a
doctor, tomorrow…."
Despite his reassurances, the Contessa began to weep
piteously. Galiana and Miss Rhoda had to help her to her room. When
they had gone Miss Perkins shook her head sadly.
"I fear a doctor cannot help her. The poor thing was
always weak-witted. This has destroyed her mind completely. Count
Stefano, how did you know?"
"I thought there might be some basis for the servants'
gossip," Stefano answered. "You knew about it, Miss Perkins, but you
are too rational to admit that such things exist. I know better. I
couldn't believe the creature would actually carry her foul tricks into
the drawing room, but when I saw her clutching something in her lap…."
"Who was it?" I asked. "Why didn't you let us see it?"
"You are too inquisitive," Stefano snapped. "What
difference does it make? The image was too crude; I couldn't tell."
"But I know." I began to twist my hands nervously
together. "Only three people have hair of that pale-blond shade. You
and Andrea--and I. She has no reason to want to harm either of you--"
"She had no reason to want to harm anyone," Miss Perkins
interrupted, in her most robust, common-sense tone. "She is mad,
Francesca; madness does not know reason."
"There, I fear, you are mistaken," Stefano said. "Sempre
una ragione. There is always a reason. The behavior of a
madman is not irrational, it only seems so to us because it is governed
by reasons we do not accept. Always there is an underlying motive; the idée
fixe. Find that and you have the clue to the conduct of the
insane. But in this case I have no idea what Bianca's motive was, or
who her intended victim may have been. And we will probably never know,
since she cannot speak or write."
The incident cast a pall over the household. As if in
keeping with our mood, the weather next day continued to be cool and
windy. Rain threatened all forenoon. Andrea had left early in the
morning to seek medical advice in Parezzo. At least that was his excuse.
"Was it wise for him to go?" I asked Miss Perkins. "If he
encounters De Merode…."
"He can't hide in the castle all his life," said Miss
Perkins. "Goodness, I wish it would rain. I am as nervous as a cat.
Although I don't know why people say that; cats are usually very placid
creatures."
"You are right," I said, smiling. "I think I'll go to the
stable and visit my feline family. Perhaps it will give me something
pleasant to think about. Will you join me?"
"No, this is the sort of day for a book in the library. I
shall read Ovid. He is not calm, but he does distract one."
So we separated--little dreaming under what circumstances
we would meet again.
The mother cat still resisted my blandishments, but the
kittens had become quite tame, thanks to the scraps of food I brought
them. I played with my favorite--a bushy-tailed little tabby with ears
so big he might have had rabbit ancestry--until he tired of chasing
string and fell into the easy sleep of infancy. Then I went back to my
rooms.
The note was waiting for me on the marble-topped table
beside the chaise longue.
"Come to the tomb at once," it read. "There is desperate
danger. Tell no one. Burn this." It was signed, "II Falcone."
Instinctively my fingers closed over the note, crumpling
it. My heart was beating fast and hard. Something had happened. Had
Andrea met the soldiers--had he been wounded again? I did not stop to
think twice. I paused only long enough to burn the note and to snatch
up a hat and a shawl.
I could not ride. The grooms would have wanted to know
where I was going, would probably have insisted on accompanying me. I
had to go on foot, and fear made the path seem twice as long as it
really was. I was panting and disheveled when I scrambled down the last
slope and ran toward the tomb of the princess. Imagine my consternation
when I saw that the door was open. I was sure he had fallen unconscious
within, unable to close the stone. Gathering my skirts closely around
me I descended the steps, calling his name. I had just reached the
bottom when the door closed.
By some strange alchemy of thought the whole truth struck
me in a single instant, and I believe my first emotion was not fear,
but anger at my stupidity. Slowly I went back up the stairs and pushed
at the door as hard as I could, but I was not surprised to discover
that it did not yield a fraction of an inch. Once again I had been
deliberately imprisoned.
My next move was to reach for the ledge on which
Grandfather kept the candles. It was bare.
I sat down on the top step with my back against the stone
slab that would be my tombstone. Oh, there was a faint chance that
someone might look for me here, when my absence was noted; but the
chance was not great. Stefano had come for me the first time because
Miss Perkins had been suspicious of Grandfather. This time Grandfather
was above suspicion. He was not the one who had sent that note. How
could I have been so gullible? I had received a message from the Falcon
once before. He had not signed his name then, he had used a little
hieroglyphic as a signature. Miss Perkins had seen that message;
therefore the writer of this note was not Miss Perkins….
I would not have suspected her in any case. But I could
no more suspect any of the others. Who could hate me so much? There was
no doubt in my mind that I had been the victim of a series of attempts;
the falling rock in this very valley, the bullet in the garden--perhaps
even the rabid bat. But last night, when Bianca had been caught with
her evil little doll, I had assumed it was she who was responsible for
the other attempts. Why she hated me I did not know, unless in some
twisted way she considered me a rival to Galiana's happiness. That made
as much sense as any other theory I could think of.
I wanted to cling to the idea of Bianca as the culprit,
but I realized that even if she had escaped from her prison room in the
castle, she could not be responsible for this. She could neither read
nor write. She could not have manufactured the false note.
The identity of the villain, the motive for wanting me
out of the way…I had a feeling that if I knew one of the answers, I
could probably deduce the other. But both were beyond me. I formed and
discarded theory after theory, for none made any sense.
I daresay this description sounds as if I behaved in a
cool, sensible manner. I was not sensible, I was simply paralyzed with
the hopelessness of it all. There was no way I could get out by myself.
All I could do was wait and pray that someone would think to look for
me before I perished of exposure or lack of air. To sit quietly and use
no more oxygen than necessary was the sensible procedure, but as the
cold began to seep into my bones, I thought it would kill me before the
air was exhausted. Thankful for my shawl, I huddled into it and tried
to remain calm. Eventually I fell into a sort of stupor; it certainly
was not sleep, and I do not like to think it was unconsciousness, but
it had the same result. I was in danger of toppling down the stairs. So
I crawled to the bottom and settled myself on the floor. My shawl was
not much help. I was chilled to the bone.
I had to believe that rescue would arrive eventually.
Without that hope, I could not have kept my sanity. I recited all the
poems I had been forced to learn by my dear old teachers. Little did I
think that the lines of Cowper and Pope would come back to me in such a
setting. I did mathematical problems in my head, but that did not last
long, for I had never been very good at mathematics. I repeated the
capitals of the countries of Europe and the list of the kings of
England from Alfred the Great to Queen Victoria. In a humiliatingly
short time I had exhausted my entire stock of knowledge.
And I had solved the puzzle.
It was so simple, really. De Merode had told the
household he suspected the Falcon had been hiding in the tomb, but only
two people knew that I had been there with him, and that any mention of
the place would fetch me as neatly as a tantalizing bait catches a
fish. Miss Perkins I scorned to suspect. The other person was Galiana.
Once I thought of her and half accepted her guilt, other
facts fit only too well. Bianca might have carried out the other acts
of violence, but the poor simple-witted creature could not have planned
them. She was only the hands; someone else was the brain. And how had
she learned to hate me so? From Galiana, of course; Galiana, who loved
Andrea and feared my influence with him. I knew her callousness, her
indifference to suffering; I knew her ancestry. Was not Italy the home
of the feud? Perhaps the girl hated me for her father's sake. And I had
thought she was fond of me, in her shallow fashion.
Purgatory will be no novelty to me, if I ever arrive
there. The timelessness must be the worst of it; time without measure,
no way of reckoning its passage, no knowledge of when it will end. When
a slit of light appeared at the head of the stairs I could only stare,
thinking that my mind had given way altogether. Then I staggered to my
feet with a cry. They had found me after all.
Incredulously I realized that it was still daylight--a
blustery gray light, but daylight all the same. I had thought I had
been in the tomb for hours. The sharp wind felt like heaven after those
airless depths. It fluttered the long veil of the woman who stood on
the stairs.
Yes, she wore a veil, a black veil. She also carried a
dagger in her right hand. It glittered faintly in the dusky light.
Not rescue, then, but another threat. Why had she come
back, hiding her face with one of her mother's veils? Perversely that
circumstance gave me a moment of hope. If she troubled to conceal her
identity, perhaps she did not mean to murder me after all.
The veiled figure leaned forward and gave its head an
impatient shake. It could not see into the darkness of the tomb with
the muffling folds dimming its vision. With a sudden movement it flung
the veil back.
A coronet of silvery hair gleamed dully like a tarnished
nimbus. Slowly but nimbly, her slim figure undistorted by the hoops
which would have impeded her movements, the woman descended the stairs.
I retreated. My mind, fixed in its preconceptions, still refused to
accept reality. The Contessa must have learned of her daughter's crime,
and had rushed to release me.
I was not allowed to cherish the illusion for long. With
a sudden lunge she came at me. Backed against the wall, I threw out my
hands against the threat of the dagger, and felt a rope drop over my
wrists. The Contessa jumped back; the noose tightened. I tugged at it,
not believing what was happening.
"Stand still," she said sharply. "Don't try to escape. I
need you alive. I was in error. I acted too soon. But I thought he
would take my word--the word of a Fosilini, and that arrogant young
fool dares to doubt! He wants evidence. So you must tell me how you
knew. You didn't tell Galiana the truth. You are the only one who
knows--the only one who can identify the Falcon."
She had been speaking Italian, of course. I ought to have
answered her in the same language, but I was scarcely capable of speech
of any kind, I could only stutter, in English.
"What? What are you saying?"
She shook her head in a very natural little movement of
mild exasperation.
"Stupid girl," she said gently. "How stupid they are,
these English. She can't even speak a civilized tongue."
As some philosopher has said, there is nothing that
concentrates a man's mind so much as knowing he is to be hanged. At
that moment I knew, as clearly as if a celestial voice had announced it
from heaven, that I must be cleverer, quicker, stronger than I had ever
been in my life, or I would die.
The Contessa tugged impatiently at the rope. I pulled
back. The noose around my wrists tightened. A slip knot--of course that
was what it was. I could free myself of the rope easily enough. But she
was between me and the stairs.
Then I seemed to hear, silently repeated, words I had
heard before:
"Madness has its own kind of reason…Always there is an
underlying motive, an idée fixe. Find that
and you have the key to the conduct of the insane."
"Come," she insisted. " Avanti. The
Captain is waiting."
"No, wait," I said. "I will tell you. But first you must
tell me why you are doing this. Sempre una ragione…."
A blast of air, funneled down the stairwell, lifted her
veil around her like great black wings. She made no attempt to
straighten it, but stared at me thoughtfully. I could see her features
clearly now, and what I saw made me grow cold with terror. But the fear
was not only for myself.
" Una ragione," she repeated softly.
"Yes, yes, there is a reason. But you are so dull! You should have seen
it long ago. He must die, you understand. The other times he escaped
somehow. It was the protection of Satan, whom he serves, perhaps. But
this time--"
"The other times? They were not accidents, then. But I
thought I was the one they were aimed at."
Her exquisite old face was distorted, not by anger, but
by a furious contempt.
"You? I would not soil my hands on you. In a sense you
are to blame for his death; if he had not come to love you, I would not
have to destroy him. But he will not marry my darling girl now. So he
must die. He deserves death. He is a traitor to God and his own class,
but I would have spared him if Galiana…. It is better this way, she
will be the Principessa Tarconti; too low a rank for her beauty, but
the best I can do. My darling little girl…."
Her voice trailed off in a crooning travesty of maternal
love, all the more horrible because of the beauty of the emotion that
prompted it. Her speech was confused; even at her best she did not make
much sense, but I had heard enough to confirm my worst fears--and they
were not for myself. She knew about Andrea and she meant to betray him.
The knowledge that I must overcome her for his sake as well as for my
own gave me additional strength and cunning. I spoke sharply, hoping to
capture her wandering wits for a few more minutes.
"If you don't care about me, why did you trap me here to
die?"
"Well, but why not?" She spoke with a chilling
indifference. "The opportunity arose. It was too good to miss. There
was no danger to me, the old man will be blamed. He is mad, you know.
Quite mad. Oh, yes, it was safe, and I will shut you in again when you
have told me. My darling will marry Andrea, he loves her, he always
has."
And her voice trailed off into soft murmurs, in which the
name of her daughter was blasphemously mingled with fragments of prayer.
There was no point in talking to her any longer. I
understood the obsession, underlying her madness, but she was wandering
farther and farther from sense every moment. She couldn't even remember
the name of the man she wanted for her daughter.
I caught the rope and pulled sharply. She had not been
expecting that move. Off balance, she stumbled toward me. One hard jerk
freed my hands, and I struck at her arm with my clenched fist. The
knife fell clattering to the floor.
I thought I had won then, but I had not reckoned with the
horrible strength of the insane. In an instant the frail old woman was
transformed into a raging beast who used teeth and claws as an animal
might. I turned my head just in time to protect my eyes from her
gouging nails; they raked my cheek instead, and the pain made me cry
out.
I had planned to render her helpless, then bind her with
the rope she had used on me. I knew I could never do it. My only hope
was to run.
I reached the stairs before her, but only because she
stopped to pick up the knife. I heard her grunting and scraping along
the floor as I scrambled on hands and knees up the steep slippery
steps. When I reached the top, the full force of the wind hit me. It
was blowing hard; leaves and twigs struck my face and the gusts blew my
skirts about. Immediately I threw myself against the door. But she was
mad on only one subject; she had had sense enough to prop the door with
a stone. My frantic push jammed it. I was tugging ineffectually at its
weight when I heard her on the stairs.
I ran, stumbling over rocks and thorny bushes, holding my
flying skirts out of the way of my feet. The worst thing about that
crazy flight was not the brambles that raked my face and clothing nor
the agonized speed that soon made every breath a piercing stab in my
breast. It was the fact that I did not dare look back. I had to watch
each step for fear of falling, so uneven was the terrain; and at each
instant I expected to feel her hot breath on my neck, or experience the
stab of a knife in my back. The darkening sky, boiling with rain
clouds, was a fitting backdrop for that nightmarish flight.
Yet I reached the gardens of the castle without being
caught, and there, in the shadow of the pines that fringed the lily
pond, I dared to pause for an instant, my hands clasped over my aching
ribs. No time, no time! She was there, some distance behind me but
coming on--a lean, dark figure against the gray landscape. It had been
clever of her to remove her hoops and veil her face. If she was seen,
she might not be recognized. Stefano was right, the mad were not
without powers of reasoning.
His name reminded me that I was not far from his house.
The castle was still some distance away, across the whole length of the
gardens and up a steep slope, but the little house would be inhabited,
by servants if not by Stefano himself. Stumbling, I circled the pool
and ran along the wall of the enclosed garden till I reached the gate.
My goal was the library, whose French doors opened onto the garden.
I burst through them and then my strength failed me. I
clung to one of the bookcases, panting for breath. Stefano jumped up
from behind his desk. He was in his shirt sleeves, his coat hung over
the back of his chair. Then Miss Perkins, who had been pacing
agitatedly around the room, turned and saw me. She let out a shriek. I
realized that my appearance must be alarming--my face white and
scratched, my skirt hanging in shreds. I put up my hand to smooth my
tangled hair and tried to catch my breath.
"Francesca!" Miss Perkins exclaimed. "Good heavens,
child, what has happened to you? The soldiers are here again; they are
searching for the Falcon, and they seem to think--"
"I know," I interrupted. "And so does the Contessa. She
knows that Andrea is the Falcon. She has gone mad, I think; she tried
to kill me--"
My breath gave out, but there was no need for me to
continue. Through the open window burst the stark black figure of the
madwoman.
She had eyes for no one but me. Without pausing, she
rushed forward, knife held high.
My strength had deserted me. I couldn't move. Miss
Perkins ran toward us, but it was Stefano who came between.
The confrontation seemed ludicrous--a frail old woman
against a man who was, despite his infirmity, tall and broad-shouldered
and half her age. But Stefano was handicapped by his inability to
comprehend that he was not facing the gentle lady he had learned to
respect, but a creature without remorse or fear. She struck him with
the full weight of her body, and he went staggering back, trying only
to hold her off; whereas she was intent on murder. Their bodies hit the
wall with such violence that a picture fell with a crash of glass. Then
Miss Perkins picked up a bookend from the desk and hit the Contessa on
the back of the head. No sooner had she fallen than Miss Perkins
pounced on her.
"Your belt, Francesca," she exclaimed, tugging at her
own. "Seconds count now; she must not be found by the soldiers. Hurry,
hurry, we must render her helpless and hide her before they take it
into their heads to search this place."
While she bound the Contessa's hands, I fastened her
ankles together with my belt, and then Miss Perkins gagged her with a
strip of petticoat. I felt contemptible as I held the fragile limbs in
my hand; unconscious, the Contessa looked as gentle as she was before
madness had twisted her mind. But Miss Perkins' hands were steady and
her face was hard. When we had finished she lifted the Contessa in her
arms, quite easily, and carried her into another room. Where she meant
to hide her I didn't know, but she seemed to have some place in mind.
It struck me then that Stefano had given us no help in
this unpleasant business. I turned. He was still standing against the
wall, where the Contessa's rush had driven him, and I thought at first
that the knife must have struck him after all. His face was as white as
his shirt, his eyes were closed; his hands, pressing hard against the
gilded panels, were all that kept him on his feet. As I stared,
thunderstruck, his bright head fell forward and he slid to the floor. I
reached him and was kneeling at his side before I realized that he
could not have been wounded in the brief struggle. I had watched the
dagger with the intense concentration of fear. Never once had it come
near his body.
I knew then, even before I saw the first crimson drops
stain his white shirt. It was the first time I had seen him without a
mask--the muffling folds of a disguise or the equally concealing mask
of conscious playacting. Without its mocking smile, his face was
dignified and gentle. I opened his shirt and saw what I expected to
see--folds of bandaging, reddened by the reopened wound, and the
birthmark--the sign of his race he and his brother shared.
I was still staring, frozen with shock, when Miss Perkins
returned. She dropped heavily to her knees.
"Stefano," I said numbly. "It was not Andrea. It was--"
"Of course it was Stefano," Miss Perkins snapped. "How
could you have thought Andrea was the Falcon? He is a charming,
handsome, quick-tempered fool. It is this boy who has risked his life
and fortune for his dream of freedom, and if we don't act quickly, he
will be made to pay the full price. There is brandy in that cabinet.
Fetch it--run!"
As she spoke, her stubby, efficient fingers were working
at the bandages.
When I returned with the brandy, Stefano's eyes were open
and he was trying to sit up.
"Not yet," Miss Perkins said. "Brandy is a poor
substitute for blood, but it will help. Francesca, support his head
while I--"
"Francesca will do nothing of the kind," Stefano said.
"Get her away, Miss P. Hide her--you know the secret room--"
"The Contessa is already occupying that hiding place,"
Miss Perkins said calmly. "Francesca, do as you are told."
So I sat down on the floor and lifted Stefano's head onto
my lap. I got no thanks from him, only a wicked glance from his blue
eyes. As my hands touched his disheveled fair curls I wondered how I
could have been so deceived, even with an actor of Stefano's skill
deliberately misleading me. I had never been able to reconcile Andrea
with the man I had held in my arms. If I had ever touched Stefano, even
his hand…. There was no mistaking that sort of recognition, the
instinctive knowledge of the flesh. He had been careful to avoid
physical contact in recent days, but heaven knows he had good reason to
shrink from even the gentlest touch. That morning in the library it
must have cost him dearly to sit upright, much less converse so coolly.
Stefano started to speak again. Miss Perkins cut him
short by pushing the glass of spirits against his mouth. He had to
drink it or choke.
"Don't waste your strength arguing," she said. "If De
Merode comes here, you must be on your feet and seemingly uninjured. He
already suspects you. The slightest sign of weakness--"
"Nonsense," Stefano interrupted. "He suspects Andrea."
"He is not such a fool. We haven't fathomed his real
intentions yet, I feel sure. The time is critical. You know that better
than I do."
"The crisis is closer than you think. I have had to move
the time forward; I got word from Turin this morning. Parezzo must rise
tomorrow at dawn, and I must be there."
"You aren't fit to go," Miss Perkins said.
"I am perfectly fit. That damned woman only jarred me."
Stefano rolled his eyes up so that he was glaring straight into my
face. "I forget myself. Forgive my language, ladies--and leave me!
Francesca, if you aren't out of this room in thirty seconds…."
"Where is she supposed to go?" Miss Perkins demanded.
"You are most unfair to her, Count. If she hasn't earned your trust by
now…. You aren't deceiving me, you know," she added cryptically.
A wave of color flooded into Stefano's pale cheeks. I did
not understand its meaning, but I was fascinated by this new display of
emotion from a man I had considered without feelings.
"You are the most frightful busybody," Stefano said with
a resigned air. "Help me up, Francesca, if you please. I assure you, I
am not as weak as you think. That infernal woman pushed me into the
wall, and the frame of the picture struck the wound. It hurt
abominably, but no real damage was done."
As he spoke he was struggling to his feet. He leaned
without reserve on my shoulder, and this demonstration of confidence
pleased me more than I can say. I helped him to his chair, and noticed
that he walked away without any trace of a limp.
"So that was pretense too," I said. "Was it after your
accident that you got the idea of using a counterfeit infirmity to
conceal the identity of the Falcon?"
"I will tell you my life history another time," Stefano
said. "At the present moment we have a more immediate problem. Can't
you do something about her appearance, Miss P.? If De Merode sees her
so bedraggled, he will assume she has had another
tête-à-tête with the Falcon, and he may drag her off
to prison."
So I made use of the basin and ewer in the adjoining
bedchamber and straightened my hair, while I listened to the
conversation going on in the next room. Though the situation was
fraught with peril, I was filled with an emotion that was close to
happiness. This new discovery was so right; it was like finding the
proper fit for a dress that has pinched in an uncomfortable place. I
returned to the next room in time to hear Miss Perkins say, "What are
we to do with the Contessa?"
"There is no need to do anything with her," Stefano
replied. "Don't you understand? In the next twenty-four hours the issue
will be resolved. The uprising in Parezzo has been planned to coincide
with risings in other cities--Urbino, Perugia, others. The papal
mercenaries will fight, naturally; but there are not enough troops to
handle a dozen different rebellions at once. That is why it is
imperative that all the uprisings take place on schedule. Cavour will
demand that the Pope dismiss his hired mercenaries. Pio Nono will
refuse, and the Piedmontese will have the excuse they need to invade.
Louis Napoleon has already agreed, secretly, not to interfere. Our
people will be fighting on the side of Piedmont. At the very latest the
Bersaglieri should be here within five days. But we need not wait so
long to be safe. By tomorrow morning De Merode will be riding
hell-for-leather toward Parezzo, and thereafter he won't have the time
or energy to worry about you here."
Miss Perkins nodded. Her eyes were bright with excitement
and admiration. Indeed, the daring, the skillful preparation of the
plan was the cleverest thing I had ever heard.
"Wonderful," I said. "But, Stefano, there is still
tonight. I share Miss Perkins' worries about the Captain. I have felt
for a long time that we are underestimating him somehow. Can't you get
your men in Parezzo to strike at once?"
"Impossible. The plot depends on a dozen different
people. I couldn't reach them in time. In fact, I myself must start
before midnight if I am to be there in time to lead the fighting."
"You can't go! You aren't fit to ride, much less fight."
"I must be there." His lips set in a stubborn line.
"He is right," Miss Perkins said reluctantly. "They rely
on him and on his reputation. His presence will rally the peasants. And
they need all the help they can get; De Merode's men are the best
trained, the best led in the province. Only Schmidt, in Perugia, has a
greater reputation for ferocity."
"Stefano!" A sudden thought struck me and turned me cold.
"Are you sure De Merode does not know about the uprising in Parezzo?"
"I have arranged for him to receive a message from an
‘informer' early in the morning," Stefano replied. "I want him away
from the castle as soon as possible. I share your distrust of him. But
if he reaches Parezzo before the barricades are in place and the
fortress is taken, our people will be in trouble."
"What if a real informer has already told him?" I leaned
across the desk and looked straight into his eyes. "What would happen
to the rebellion if word got out that the Falcon had been arrested and
shot?"
Miss Perkins struck the desk with her big fist.
"She is right! That is why De Merode is here today. He
knows, I tell you; at least he has a strong suspicion. He means to trap
you. But how did he find out?"
"The Contessa," I said. "Oh, heavens, and it is all my
fault! I told Galiana that Andrea was the Falcon. I had to tell her to
keep her quiet; she knew where I had been that night. She swore she
wouldn't tell, but I suppose she would not think that oath included her
mother…. But the Contessa was not deceived. I don't know how she
learned the truth…."
"I think I do," Miss Perkins broke in. "But there isn't
time to explain now. You think the Contessa has been in touch with De
Merode? Quite possible. But then he can't act without her testimony.
Perhaps we are safe after all."
Just as she arrived at this comforting conclusion, there
were sounds of a disturbance outside. Stefano snatched up his coat and
struggled into it as the door of the library burst open. One of the
footmen came stumbling in; he tried to speak, but was stopped by a
savage blow from the soldier who had followed him. Other soldiers
crowded through the doorway. Their leader--the red-haired Irishman I
had seen before--saluted.
"The Captain requires your presence, Count," he said.
"And that of the ladies."
"Was it necessary to enforce your request so violently?"
Stefano inquired. It cost him an effort to speak coolly; his eyes
flashed as he gazed at his servant, who was leaning against the door
with his hands pressed to his face and blood trickling between his
fingers.
"The man attempted to keep us out," said the Irishman
insolently. "He'll be none the worse for a lesson in manners."
"From you?" Stefano's tone and his raised eyebrows turned
the question into a subtle insult. He rose, leaning heavily on his
cane. "Yes, I think I had better have a word with the Captain. But the
ladies--"
"The Captain said everyone."
The soldiers escorted us to the library, where two men
stood guard with naked bayonets. The castle had been taken, like an
enemy fortress. De Merode must be desperate, or very confident, to have
given up all pretense at courtesy. That this was indeed the case I
realized as soon as I saw Grandfather. His face was grayish white, with
a strained, pinched look about the nostrils. He did not so much as
glance at us when we entered. His eyes were fixed on his younger
grandson.
Andrea stood between two soldiers who held him by the
arms. His hands were bound behind his back, but he was the coolest
person in the room; his head was high, his lips were curved in a smile.
Never had he so closely resembled his brother.
Galiana ran to me. The tears were streaming down her
cheeks.
"He knows," she cried. "Francesca, he knows; but I did
not speak, I swear--"
I put my arms around her. "Hush," I murmured, hardly
knowing what I said. "Hush, Galiana."
De Merode turned to face us. His burning eyes passed over
me and Miss Perkins as if we had been invisible. He looked directly at
Stefano.
"This is a most distressing situation, Count," he said.
"I assumed you would wish to bid your brother farewell before we take
him away."
"Where are you taking him?" Stefano asked.
"To Parezzo."
"I thought that was where he was," Stefano said mildly.
"You confuse me, Captain. My brother started out this morning in search
of a doctor--"
"That is what you were told," De Merode said. "I fear he
deceived you, Count, as he deceived his honored grandfather and a good
many other people. The city of Parezzo is supposed to rise in rebellion
tonight, and Count Andrea is the leader of the revolt. How it grieves
me to be the one to inform you of this blot on an otherwise stainless
family name! Count Andrea--"
"He thinks I am the Falcon," Andrea interrupted.
"How very naïve of him," Stefano said.
"I don't mind." Andrea's voice was quite calm. "Let the
Captain concentrate his attentions on me; it will give the Falcon his
chance to act. I am honored to serve, even in so small a role as this."
"Andrea, you must learn not to be so theatrical," Stefano
said. "You are giving Captain De Merode the wrong impression. Captain,
you are making a mistake."
"Am I?"
For a moment no one spoke. Then Stefano shrugged.
"Very well, Captain. Take my brother to prison--"
"He is not going to prison," De Merode interrupted. "I
have changed my mind. The Falcon deserves death. O'Shaughnessy, take
the Count into the courtyard and select a firing squad."
The guards led Andrea out. It was a strangely quiet
moment. Galiana's tears had stopped. She and Andrea exchanged a long
look as he passed us. Then Grandfather rose to his feet.
"I wish to be with my grandson when he dies."
De Merode nodded. "Escort the Prince," he said to the
soldier who stood by Grandfather's chair.
Miss Rhoda, who had been crumpled in her seat, sat up.
"I, too."
Grandfather stopped. His elbow bent, he offered his old
enemy his arm. She took it. The two walked slowly toward the door,
allies at last, and very touching in their grief and dignity. As they
were about to pass out of the room, De Merode said, "The firing squad
will await my orders, your Excellency."
Grandfather glanced at him. "You know, of course,
Captain, that I will spend my last soldi and my
last ounce of strength to make sure you pay for this."
De Merode bowed. Grandfather went on. The door closed.
Then De Merode turned to Stefano. The moment had come, the moment for
which all the rest had only been preliminary maneuvering.
"Well, Count? The choice is yours. Your life or that of
your brother. Will you let the innocent suffer for you?"
Galiana lifted her tear-stained face from my shoulder.
"What does he mean? Stefano, can you save him?"
"Oh, yes," De Merode said. "If Count Stefano chooses, his
brother can be freed at once--to return to your arms, mademoiselle. Ask
him now what he has done with your mother."
"My mother?" Galiana repeated.
"She is nowhere in the castle. I have searched. Ask him,
mademoiselle; ask him if he will sacrifice your mother and your
lover--his own brother--to his insane ambition. You can help me, if you
will."
Then I saw what the ancient noble house of Fosilini was
made of. Poor Galiana, driven almost mad by suspense and fear, drew
herself up to her full height.
"I don't understand," she said simply. "But I trust
Stefano and Francesca, and I do not trust you, Captain. You are a cruel
man. I know nothing, but if I did, I would not tell you."
De Merode shrugged. He had not expected anything from
this quarter; he was merely testing all the possibilities and, in the
process, giving another twist to the knife. This interview, the threat
to Andrea and the anguish of his family, was part of De Merode's
revenge for the humiliation he had endured at the hands of his foe. The
choice he was giving Stefano was no choice. The Falcon would die in any
case. If Stefano remained silent and let the execution proceed, De
Merode would kill him too. But he wanted a confession, not only to
justify his acts to the board of inquiry which Grandfather's influence
would certainly demand, but to publish in Parezzo. The rebels must know
that their leader was unable to lead them.
"Well, Count?" he repeated.
Stefano had been leaning on his cane. Now he straightened
up.
"You leave me no choice," he said, and began to remove
his coat.
"Stefano," I cried, trying to free myself of Galiana's
clinging arms.
"Stand back," De Merode exclaimed, pulling his sword from
the scabbard.
Stefano laughed. "What, are you afraid of an unarmed man
and a pack of women?"
"Of these women, yes," De Merode said grimly. He pointed
his sword at Miss Perkins. "Did you think I would not investigate your
Englishwomen? The old one is a member of an emigré
secret society in London. The young one has been a thorn in my side
ever since she came. Spies--"
He broke off with a hiss of satisfaction, his eyes
riveted on the breast of Stefano's shirt, as Stefano tossed his coat
onto a chair. The wound had stopped bleeding, but the bloodstains were
damningly conspicuous against the white linen.
"So I was right," he breathed. "That bullet wound will be
all the evidence I need when I take your body to Rome--after I have
displayed it in Parezzo and crushed the revolt."
"Aren't you afraid your firing squad will obliterate the
evidence?" Stefano asked mildly. Passing his cane from hand to hand, he
seemed to be concerned with straightening his cuffs and smoothing his
shirt sleeves.
"Do you think I am such a fool as to let you leave this
room? You have too many tricks, Count."
Without warning he lunged forward, the point of his sword
directed at Stefano's breast.
Stefano had been expecting the move, if the rest of us
had not. He took one great leap backwards, landing on his toes with his
knees bent, as the Captain's blade ripped harmlessly through his shirt
front. He tugged at his cane. It came apart, displaying a length of
shining steel.
De Merode swore aloud. "A sword-stick! I should have
known. It won't save you, though."
I let go of Galiana, who dropped to the floor. Miss
Perkins caught my arms as I moved forward.
"Stay out of the way, Francesca. You can only distract
him. Lock the door."
I did so, just in time. Shouts from the men outside were
soon followed by blows against the door. The heavy panels would
hold…long enough. My back against the door, as if to brace it, I turned
to watch the life-and-death struggle.
If Stefano had been in good physical condition, I would
not have feared for him. But wounded as he was, with a weapon that was
surely inferior to the Captain's heavy sword…. I felt suffocated as I
watched Stefano slowly retreat, his fragile blade bending under the
violent strokes of his adversary. Her advice forgotten, Miss Perkins
circled the fighters like an old mastiff, watching for an opportunity
to rush in.
In actual time the duel lasted only a few minutes. De
Merode defeated himself. His rage was so extreme he forgot caution and,
as Stefano said later, this was no time for chivalry. When the Captain
stumbled over one of Grandfather's prized Persian rugs, Stefano ran him
through.
The struggle had been short but violent. Stefano was
gasping for breath when he turned toward the French windows and flung
them open. "This way," he panted, as the library doors shuddered under
the blows of the soldiers. "Quickly!"
Supporting Galiana, Miss Perkins and I obeyed. As I
passed the fallen body I had a last glimpse of De Merode's face--the
dark eyes glazed, and the white lips still set in a snarl of rage.
II
When we returned to the library an hour later, De
Merode's body had been removed. The castle was in our hands. Stefano
had signaled his supporters, who included most of the able-bodied
servants in the castle, led by Piero. Demoralized by the death of their
leader, the soldiers were easily disarmed.
I will never forget the moment when Andrea, freed of his
bonds, came striding into the library where Stefano was giving orders
to Piero. He went straight to his brother and flung his arms around him.
"Why did you not tell me?" he demanded, his eyes dimmed
by tears. "Couldn't you trust me, Stefano?"
"You know it was not lack of trust," Stefano replied,
trying to free himself of his brother's impetuous embrace. "Andrea, I
am touched by your emotion, but if your aren't careful, you will finish
the job De Merode began. My ribs…."
Then silence fell, as Grandfather came into the room.
Italians are considered by the English to be
overemotional. All I can say is that I have become quite accustomed to
their outbursts of sentiment, and for my part I find them quite
beautiful. There are times, though, when the emotional climate becomes
almost unendurable; and this was one such moment, when the stately old
man tried to kneel to ask the forgiveness of the man he had misjudged.
As Stefano bent to prevent this, I realized how hard it had been for
him to appear as a weakling in the eyes of the old man he loved.
There was little time for prolonged emotion, or for
explanations. Time was passing, and Stefano was not the man to be
distracted from what he considered his duty. A few hours later we stood
on the terrace and watched the little band ride away to Parezzo and
battle. We were all very brave. Grandfather stood straight as a
soldier, his eyes shining with pride, and we women smiled till our jaws
ached. Andrea, riding beside his brother, turned and waved the torch he
was carrying in a flamboyant gesture of farewell. But Stefano did not
turn, and as his tall, erect figure melted in the darkness of the long
avenue, I knew I might have seen him for the last time.
Everyone knows what happened after that. On September 11
the Bersaglieri of Piedmont crossed the frontier, and within a month
Umbria and the Marches were part of the new kingdom of Italy. Only a
small strip of territory around Rome itself was left to the rule of
Pius the Ninth. It was ten years later before Rome succumbed, and the
ancient capital became the capital of the new Italy, ending a struggle
for freedom that had taken almost half a century and cost the lives of
many gallant men.
I fear we were less concerned, in the next weeks, with
the epic struggle taking place elsewhere than we were with our own
selfish concerns. Galiana was lucky; Andrea was slightly wounded in the
fighting at Parezzo and was forced to stay at home after that,
alternately cursing his bad fortune and basking in Galiana's adoring
care. I was not so fortunate. After the papal garrison at Parezzo
surrendered, Stefano joined one of the Piedmontese regiments as a
liaison officer and followed the troops of Victor Emmanuel throughout
the entire campaign. From time to time we would receive messages, or
word of him; he was fighting with the gallantry we expected, and
surviving; that was all we knew for weeks. The suspense was well-nigh
unendurable, particularly because I had no assurance that Stefano ever
devoted a moment's thought to me, while I thought of nothing else. By
the time a week had passed, I was convinced he cared nothing for me. He
had never demonstrated any affection; quite the contrary; he had done
nothing but sneer and joke at me since I came.
The only consolation I had during those weeks was the
love of those around me. Galiana and Andrea, who were awaiting only the
return of Stefano to make plans for their marriage, could not do enough
for me. Andrea's love comforted Galiana during her mother's illness.
The Contessa's mind had given way altogether. She recognized no one
except her daughter, whom she persisted in addressing as the Princess
Tarconti. The doctors said she would not live long, but while she lived
she would have the constant care and supervision her state required. It
was she who had corrupted the mind of poor Bianca; everything the woman
had done had been at the orders of the Contessa. Bianca was not mad,
she was only weakminded and susceptible.
The object of her attacks had always been Stefano. Miss
Perkins explained this to me during the hours we spent together. We
talked over the whole affair, and the first thing I did was take her to
task for deceiving me.
"After all our talk of spies, you were an English spy," I
said, half jokingly.
"I thought surely you would wonder how Count Andrea found
me so easily," Miss Perkins said, not at all abashed. "He told you the
truth when he said Count Stefano had planned the entire business. He
sent Andrea to certain parties in London, sympathizers with the Italian
cause, who recommended me. I fear I did lie to you when I told you the
Count had hired me through an employment bureau. But I assure you,
Francesca, that I was not in Count Stefano's confidence, not until the
very end."
"But you suspected him, not Andrea. I can't see how."
"The Contessa did, too. We older women, unlike you young
girls, were not misled by dashing adventures and brave speeches. When
you told me--and the Contessa, through Galiana--that you had identified
the Falcon as your cousin, it was obvious that you based this on some
physical characteristic. But Stefano and Andrea are twins, though most
of us tended to forget this. It was equally obvious that Andrea was too
heedless to maintain a disguise so long and plan his campaign so
carefully. Stefano, on the other hand, was a perfect candidate--his
habit of seclusion, his cool intelligence, his general character. The
only thing against it was his physical disability, and you had hints
enough, my dear, that that was put on. When he rescued you from the
tomb, for instance. He acted without thinking then, and had to do some
fast talking to cover up. I began to suspect quite early on, but it was
not until after you had helped him escape from the village that I was
sure. I watched Stefano after that, and it was obvious to me that he
was in considerable physical distress. I taxed him with it and demanded
to be allowed to help."
"But the Contessa attacked him long before that," I
expostulated. "I turn hot with embarrassment, Miss Perkins, when I
remember that I believed myself to be the endangered heroine!"
"You read too many bad novels at that school of yours, I
expect," Miss Perkins replied with a smile. "You ought to have read
Miss Austen's Northanger Abbey, in which she shows
another young lady being led astray by sensational fiction."
"I still don't understand why the Contessa wanted to kill
Stefano," I said, blushing.
"It was logical, in a mad way," Miss Perkins said,
shaking her head. "The Contessa was determined to see her daughter
Princess Tarconti. Until you came, she was in a fair way of bringing it
off. She had the poor child under her influence; Galiana would have
married Stefano if she could have. After a time the Contessa realized
that Stefano would never marry her daughter. But if Stefano were dead…."
"His brother would be Prince Tarconti in time," I said.
"Yes, I see. She told me that, in her ravings, but I thought her mind
was confused."
"It was confused," said Miss Perkins dryly. "You must
admit that her methods were somewhat unorthodox. Yet they probably
would have succeeded. Andrea has always loved Galiana, he would have
married her in a moment. The Contessa told Bianca what she wanted, and
the unfortunate woman proceeded to act whenever the opportunity arose.
It was Stefano at whom the rock fall and the bullet were aimed. You
happened to be with him on both occasions, but that was because he was
seldom out of his house, and vulnerable, unless he was in your company.
When he was within his own walls, with his loyal servants around him,
it was almost impossible for an assassin to get at him."
"But the bat," I began.
"Pure accident. You didn't seriously think that anyone
could capture and control a creature like that? If the incident of the
bat had occurred alone, without the other cases, you would never have
dreamed it was anything but bad luck."
"Is there ever any such thing as luck, I wonder," I said
thoughtfully. "I begin to think that life is one great complex pattern
of interwoven acts and counteracts."
"I am a believer in free will," said Miss Perkins firmly.
"Yet, you are right, in the sense that every act has unimaginable and
far-reaching consequences. One of the most astounding results of De
Merode's plotting is the conversion of his Excellency. I do believe he
is a firmer supporter of the cause of liberation than either of his
sons, and he was once its greatest enemy."
"That is because he found himself inconvenienced," I
said. "People often take up a cause when it suits their selfish
motives."
"I do not like to see a girl of your age so cynical,"
said Miss Perkins reproachfully.
Suddenly, to my shame, I felt my eyes flooding with tears.
"I'm sorry," I muttered, turning aside. "But it has been
so long since he left, and he never said…."
"Jumping to conclusions is another fault of yours," said
Miss Perkins unsympathetically. "You have been wrong fairly
consistently, Francesca; but if you still think that young man is cold
and unemotional…."
Well, I knew he was not unemotional. What I did not know
was whether he had any emotional attachment to me.
The last of the papal fortresses, Ancona, fell on
September 24, after a gallant defense. We received the good news a few
days later; but it was not until the end of the month that Stefano came
home.
I was in the rose garden, and I did not know of his
arrival until I looked up from my book and saw him coming down the
path. He wore the dark-blue uniform of a Piedmontese officer. He had
lost weight. His sunbleached hair formed a striking contrast to his
tanned face, which was burned as brown as that of any peasant. I
wondered how I could ever have thought Andrea was handsomer than he,
and how I could have taken another man for him, even for an instant.
His long free stride faltered when he saw me, and he came
on more slowly.
Any woman will understand why I acted as I did. For weeks
I had been in agony over him; since the hard fighting at Ancona I had
been convinced that he must have been killed, since we had heard
nothing from him. Now I saw him safe--and in the reaction of relief I
was absolutely furious with him. So when he stood before me, hat in
hand, I said casually, "How nice to see you, Stefano. I do hope you
enjoyed yourself."
It was the first time I had ever seen him at a loss for
words. The dark blood rushed into his cheeks. I found myself,
perversely, enjoying the situation.
"Men do enjoy fighting," I went on. "Don't they? I
suspect that is behind the heroism and the gallantry we poor women
ignorantly applaud. You don't fight from a sense of duty; you love it!
While we sit at home and worry ourselves--"
Stefano put an end to this tirade, which was developing
rather nicely, I thought, by picking me up off the bench and lifting me
till my eyes were on a level with his. My feet dangled helplessly, a
good ten inches off the ground.
"Just like a man," I said, somewhat breathlessly, because
his hands were squeezing my ribs. "When you are losing an argument, you
resort to physical violence!"
"Oh, no," Stefano said. "The physical violence is only a
preliminary. This is how I counter arguments such as yours."
He kissed me. I felt as if my bones were melting.
It took me some time to recover. We were sitting on the
bench, with his arm around me and my head on his shoulder, before I
could speak sensibly again.
"It was very presumptuous of you to do that," I murmured.
"What made you suppose that I would tolerate it?"
"I wouldn't have dared if I hadn't happened to meet Miss
Perkins in the hall," Stefano said frankly. "She told me to do it."
"Miss Perkins? Oh, come now!"
"Well, perhaps not in so many words. But she implied in
her tactful fashion that you might not be violently opposed to the
idea."
"She was kinder to you than to me," I said. "For days and
days I have been trying to get her--or anyone--to reassure me as to how
you felt about me."
"If you did not know, you were one of the few who didn't.
Andrea taxed me with it weeks ago. Miss Perkins read my thoughts as if
my head were made of glass. Even the Contessa knew. Why do you suppose
she abandoned her schemes for me to marry Galiana?"
"So that is what Miss Perkins meant," I exclaimed. "I
didn't understand her then. But how could I have known? You were horrid
to me."
"As you were to me."
"I have been in love with you for a long time. I can't
imagine why you didn't notice."
"With me--or with that poor mountebank the Falcon?"
Stefano turned me in the circle of his arm and looked straight into my
eyes. "I hope you did not fall in love with a myth, Francesca, for that
person never really existed. I cannot tell you how glad I am to be done
with him at last."
"I don't believe you," I said, half in jest, half in
earnest. "The role you played here was the hard one. You had a
wonderful time being the Falcon; don't tell me you didn't. He is a part
of you, just as the sober scholar is a part. Don't cast him off
altogether."
Stefano's eyes took on a reminiscent sparkle as I spoke;
but he shook his head.
"I am really a very dull fellow, my darling. And you are
so young. God willing, you may have me on your hands for forty or fifty
years. Do you think you can endure it?"
"I don't know how I can convince you," I said helplessly.
He put his arms around me and drew me close.
"Try," he said.
ELIZABETH PETERS (writing
as BARBARA MICHAELS) was born and brought up in Illinois and earned her
Ph.D. in Egyptology from the University of Chicago's famed Oriental
Institute. Peters was named Grand Master at the inaugural Anthony
Awards in 1986, Grand Master by the Mystery Writers of America at the
Edgar® Awards in 1998, and given the Lifetime Achievement Award at
Malice Domestic in 2003. She lives in an historic farmhouse in western
Maryland. You can visit her website at www.mpmbooks.com.
Books
by Barbara Michaels
Other Worlds
The Dancing
Floor
Stitches In Time
House of Stone
Vanish with the
Rose
This Quiet Dust
Into The
Darkness
Smoke and
Mirrors
Search the
Shadows
Shattered Silk
Be Buried in
the Rain
The Grey
Beginning
The Dark Duet
Here I Stay
Black Rainbow
Someone in the
House
The Wizard's
Daughter
The Walker in
the Shadows
Wait for What
Will Come
Wings of the
Falcon
Patriot's Dream
The Sea King's
Daughter
House of Many
Shadows
Witch
Graygallows
The Crying Child
The Dark on the
Other Side
Prince of
Darkness
Ammie, Come Home
Sons of the Wolf
The Master of
Blacktower
This book is a work of
fiction. The characters, incidents, and dialogue are drawn from the
author's imagination and are not to be construed as real. Any
resemblance to actual events or persons, living or dead, is entirely
coincidental.
WINGS
OF THE FALCON. Copyright © 1977 by Barbara Michaels.
All rights reserved under International and Pan-American Copyright
Conventions. By payment of the required fees, you have been granted the
non-exclusive, non-transferable right to access and read the text of
this e-book on-screen. No part of this text may be reproduced,
transmitted, down-loaded, decompiled, reverse engineered, or stored in
or introduced into any information storage and retrieval system, in any
form or by any means, whether electronic or mechanical, now known or
hereinafter invented, without the express written permission of
PerfectBound™.
Wings of the Falcon
ELIZABETH
PETERS
WRITING AS
BARBARA MICHAELS
To Joan and Fred Caroline, Mary
Ann, and Nancy and the four-footed Hartsocks whose number is, at the
time, Indeterminate.
Though all of the characters in this book are completely
fictitious, some of the more improbable events are based on actual
fact. The history of the Risorgimento in Italy is filled with incidents
as dramatic as any writer could invent. The Falcon, of course, is an
invention; but Emilio and Attilio Bandiera are not. The town of Parezzo
is imaginary, but Perugia's insurrection and the retaliation of the
papal troops are factual. Captain De Merode is a fictitious character,
but Schmidt of Perugia and other mercenary commanders supplied the data
on which I based my fanatical soldier. There is not and never was a
family like the Tarcontis. However, their Etruscan cemetery resembles
real ones and the tomb of the princess is based on the historical
Regolini-Galassi tomb. Several early excavators claim to have seen
perfectly preserved bodies crumble as the air entered the tomb. Even
the white rabbits come from a factual account by Mrs. Hamilton Gray.
The historical background of Italy in 1860 is as accurate
as I could make it. I hope I have succeeded in conveying the courage
and dedication of the men who fought to unite Italy and free her of
medieval institutions.
Contents
Chapter 1
Authors who write in
the first person cannot expect their…
Chapter 2
To call my cousin
Andrea impetuous is to do him…
Chapter 3
When I awoke, the
interior of the coach was dusky…
Chapter 4
Girls know when they
are pretty. Mirrors may lie, but…
Chapter 5
"You were never in
serious danger, you know." How he…
Chapter 6
We were late returning,
and the others were just sitting…
Chapter 7
Stefano had sprained
his ankle; he retired to his lair…
Chapter 8
One breathlessly hot
afternoon a week or so after Andrea's…
Chapter 9
No one said anything to
Miss Perkins about the flowerpot…
Chapter 10
Time had no meaning in
the stifling darkness. It might…
Chapter 11
She had been speaking
Italian, of course. I ought to…
Authors who write in the first person cannot expect their
readers to be seriously concerned about the survival of the main
character. A heroine who can describe her trials and tribulations in
carefully chosen phrases obviously lived through those trials without
serious damage. Yet I remember being absolutely breathless with
suspense when the madwoman entered Miss Jane Eyre's chamber and rent
her wedding veil asunder; and I bit my nails to the quick as I followed
the perils of Mrs. Radcliffe's haunted heroines.
Not being Miss Brontë or Mrs. Radcliffe, I have no
hope of engaging my reader's attention to that
extent. Yet some of the experiences that befell me, at a certain period
of my life, were as distressing and almost as improbable as any of my
favorite heroines' adventures. Perhaps my youth and inexperience made
my problems seem worse than they were. But even now, when I am a good
many years older (I prefer not to state how many)--even now a
reminiscent shiver passes through me as I remember Lord Shelton, and
that dreadful moment when he held me helpless in his grasp, with his
breath hot on my averted face and his hands tearing at my gown.
I anticipate. It is necessary to explain how I found
myself in such a predicament; and that explanation must incorporate
some of my family history.
My father was an artist--not a very good one, I fear. It
is a pity, in a way, that his father was able to leave him a small sum
of money, for without it Father would have had to seek gainful
employment instead of pursuing the elusive genius of art. His small
inheritance was enough to keep him in relative comfort for several
years, while he traveled on the continent, ending, finally, in that
artists' mecca, Rome. To a young man of romantic tastes and ardent
spirits, the old capital of the Caesars had many attractions beyond its
artistic treasures--the colorful models who waited for employment on
the Spanish Steps, the companionship of other struggling young artists,
the wine and laughter and song in the soft Italian nights.
Father was a remarkably good-looking man, even when he
was dying. Consumption is not a disfiguring disease. Indeed, that is
one of its diabolical qualities, that it should give its victims a
ghastly illusion of health and beauty just before the end. Father's
slenderness and delicacy of features were intensified by the ravages of
the disease. The pallor of his complexion was refined by soft dark hair
and lustrous black eyes framed by lashes so long and thick that any
woman would have envied them.
Knowing him as he was in his decline, I can imagine how
handsome he was at twenty, when he met my mother, and I can understand
how he won her heart so quickly. Her family did not find it so easy to
understand; for she was the daughter of a noble Italian house. In the
ordinary course of events my father would never have met her. A
romantic accident threw them together. The carriage in which she was
traveling to Rome was delayed by bad weather, and in the darkness was
set upon by bandits. Her attendants fled or were overcome; and Father
happened upon the scene at the most critical moment, just as the
miscreants were dragging the lady from the carriage. As his horse came
thundering down upon them, the bandits thought him the leader of a
troop of defenders, so that there was time for him to lift my mother's
fainting form into the saddle and escape before they discovered their
error.
By the fitful moonlight he had seen enough to make out
the shrinking form of a woman, beset by the men who threatened her
person or her property, or both; but it was not until they reached the
inn, fortunately not many miles distant, that he saw the face of the
girl he had saved.
I resemble her only in my coloring--which some might find
surprising, for I am fair-haired and blue-eyed. In fact, not all
Italians are dark. Those of the northern regions are often fair, and
there was some such strain in my mother's family. My features are more
like those of my father, and although he could not be overly modest
about his looks without denigrating mine, he would never allow that any
woman could equal my mother's beauty.
Of course the circumstances of their first meeting were
romantic enough to dazzle any young man. My mother was in a dead faint
when he carried her into the inn and placed her on a settle by the
hearth. The firelight turned her tumbled ringlets to red-gold; and this
gleaming halo framed a countenance of pure perfection. As he knelt
beside her, supporting her head upon his arm, her lashes fluttered and
lifted. The first thing she saw was his face--young, handsome, glowing
with emotion; the first sensation she was conscious of feeling was the
strength of his arm, tenderly yet respectfully embracing her.
It is no wonder they fell in love at first sight. What is
wonderful is that their love should have won out over all obstacles.
That first night they were both too young and too bewitched by one
another to think sensibly, or they would have realized that their only
hope lay in an immediate elopement. But the practical difficulties were
great. For one thing, it was virtually impossible for them to be
married in a country where Protestants were not even allowed to hold
church services. So the authorities were notified of the attack upon
the carriage, and Prince Tarconti was informed that his daughter was
safe; but not before the lovers had had time to converse for hours in a
language more eloquent than Father's fluent if ungrammatical Italian.
How well I knew each detail of that romantic history! It
was my favorite bedtime story in childhood, and if my mother was the
saint to whom I addressed my childish prayers, a certain Count Ugo
Fosilini was the villain of my youthful nightmares. A remote family
connection, he was the suitor destined for Francesca Tarconti by her
aristocratic father; she had been on her way to visit his parents in
Rome when Fate intervened. It was natural that he should be the
emissary sent by Prince Tarconti to recover his daughter. As soon as
Count Ugo set eyes on my father he knew he had a rival; and he took
care to insult him by offering him money as a reward for the rescue.
Of course Father dashed the gold indignantly to the
ground. The gesture was gallant but ill-advised, for it confirmed what
the Count had until then only suspected. My mother was at once removed
to the Fosilini palazzo in Rome, where she was kept a virtual prisoner.
This was not enough for the Count. He was too arrogant to challenge a
man whom he considered his social inferior, so he hired assassins, of
whom there were plenty to be found in Rome. My father was saved only
through the devotion of his friends, struggling young writers and
artists like himself. Some of them were members of a revolutionary
secret society, so they were more than willing to frustrate the plans
of Count Ugo, whose reputation as a cruel landlord was well known. The
members of one such group aided my father when he followed Mother to
the family estate in the hills of Umbria, and they were instrumental in
assisting in the couple's eventual escape from Italy. That was the most
exciting chapter in the story--Mother's flight from the sleeping
castle, accompanied by a devoted maidservant, through whom she had
maintained communications with Father; their desperate ride through the
night, with Mother in men's clothing, astride her plunging steed; the
fishing boat in Genoa, and the rough patriots who sailed it, carrying,
quite often, other cargo than fish; and the triumphant landing in
Marseilles.
They were married in London. My mother's rejection of all
she had left was total; she even gave up her religion. At first the
young couple lived obscurely, fearing retaliation; but as the months
passed they realized that Mother's family had reacted with the cold
arrogance typical of their class. Finally they learned, through friends
in Italy, that Prince Tarconti had disinherited his daughter and
forbidden her name to be pronounced in his hearing. To her family she
was as good as dead.
Alas, in only too short a time she was. She died at my
birth; and when Father wrote to Italy, to announce the two events, he
received no reply. Since he had acted only out of a sense of common
decency, he was not sorry that the correspondence ended there.
The succeeding years--seventeen of them--may be passed
over quickly. They were not good years for him; but I did not know that
until it was too late. With the selfishness of youth I wore the pretty
dresses, played with the expensive toys, and accepted the presence of
maids and nurses without wondering where the money came from, or why
Father was so often absent from home. He continued to paint and, I
assumed, to sell his paintings. It was not until one winter night, when
he collapsed in a fit of uncontrollable coughing as he bent to kiss me
good night, that I realized he was ill.
I was too young to understand the ominous portent of the
attack. He was quick to reassure me; and the action of a lady of his
acquaintance, in sending him to the south of France, undoubtedly did
prolong his life. I remained in England, in boarding school. I did not
realize that my school fees were part of Mrs. Barton's payment for my
father's services; nor that the term "patroness" was a euphemism for
her real role in his life.
She was not the first of his "patrons"--nor the last. I
understand that now. I do not judge him. I still believe he did it
primarily for me, to give me the comfort and security he could supply
in no other way.
After the incident I have mentioned, his health seemed to
improve, as it sometimes does with this illness. I saw very little of
him, and I was selfish enough to resent his neglect, as I saw it. I
cannot completely blame myself for failing to understand why he had to
keep me from him. He even managed to delude the innocent ladies who ran
the boarding school. It was in Yorkshire, far from the vicious gossip
of London, but the dear old Misses Smith would not have believed the
gossip if they had heard it. They adored my father, and always hovered
over him when he came on his rare visits, accepting him as the
gentleman of means he pretended to be.
Yet I loved him; and I
ought to have sensed the increasing desperation under his smiling
manner.
He had good reason to be desperate that winter before my
eighteenth birthday. The precarious pattern of existence he had built
was tottering on its foundation--and I, like a dweller in a house
riddled with insects, would have lived on in fancied security until the
floor collapsed under my feet. Certainly I would never have guessed
from his manner, when he came to fetch me for the Christmas holidays,
that anything was amiss. He had never looked more handsome, and the
dear old ladies fluttered about him, offering him wine and seed cake.
He was wearing a magnificent new watch chain of heavy gold, all hung
with beautiful little trinkets--carved cameos and lockets and the
like--which I longed to examine.
I sat demurely, though, my hands folded in my lap, as the
Misses Smith had taught me, while my future was discussed. With beaming
pride the ladies told him that my education was complete. I was the
star student, the parlor boarder, accomplished in all forms of
needlework, from broderie anglaise to
cross-stitch. My sampler, a magnificent picture of a lady and gentleman
in a grove of trees--with apples as large as the lady's powdered
head--was proudly displayed. My skill on pianoforte and harp was
praised, my knowledge of French commended. As I was soon to learn, my
father was an accomplished actor, but he found it difficult to
dissemble that day. The elder Miss Smith broke off in the midst of her
speech to comment with concern on the gray shade of his cheeks, and to
press more Madeira on him.
I think it was only in recent weeks that he had begun to
face the truth about his condition. Now he was being forced to face
another unpalatable truth he had tried to ignore. My schooldays were
almost over. I must leave school for…where? That was the problem now,
and it must have seemed to him that everything was collapsing at once.
He had played a role for many years. He carried off the
rest of the visit in style, and we took our places in the handsome
traveling coach, well wrapped in furs and robes against the chill of
winter. Snow was beginning to fall as we drove away from the school,
but I was too happy to care about the weather. I had not seen my father
for almost a year.
I did most of the talking, babbling on about Mary
Wentworth's shocking flirtation with the curate, and Alice Johnson's
cheating at map drawing, while Father listened with a smile. As the
afternoon drew on, my tongue slowed; finally I fell asleep.
I woke with a start. The shadows of early evening filled
the interior of the coach. Father was bending over me. In the dimness
his face shone with a pearly pallor, and something in his expression
filled me with alarm.
"What is it?" I cried, struggling against drowsiness.
Instantly he withdrew into the corner of the seat.
"Nothing, my love. I apologize for waking you. I was
studying your face. You are so like…"
He turned his face away. I was moved, for I thought I
understood his distress.
"Am I really like Mama? I thought--"
"You resemble her more and more as you grow. Do you know,
Francesca, that you are the same age she was when I first saw her?"
"If it distresses you to speak of her," I began, touching
his hand.
Roughly he drew it away.
"No! I must speak of her and of other things I have been
afraid to face. I was not always such a coward, my darling; but when
she died, something died in me too, my manhood, perhaps…."
Then he realized that his mood was alarming me. He took
my hand in his and smiled.
"Don't be upset. I feel the chagrin of a father who sees
his daughter growing away from him, who foresees the time when another
man will win her smiles. You are a young woman now, my love. Is there
no man who has touched your heart?"
This was the sort of talk I found pleasurable, if mildly
embarrassing--the sort of talk we girls indulged in late at night,
after the lights were out. I believe I blushed.
"Mary Ellen's brother is very handsome," I began. "When
he came to visit her last year we talked for a while; I found him so
pleasant! Mary Ellen said he liked me very much."
"Did she indeed." Father's voice sounded tired. I could
not see his features clearly. He went on, as if to himself, "But what
opportunity would you have, in that little island of innocence, to meet
young men? And which of them would offer, if he knew…What am I to do?
What in heaven's name am I to do with you?"
"But, Father," I exclaimed. "I don't want to marry. Why
can't I stay with you?"
My father let out a groan and buried his face in his
hands. Now genuinely frightened, I tugged at his fingers.
"What is it? Father, are you ill? Are you in pain?"
A long shudder passed through his body. Then he lowered
his hands and smiled at me. His voice was calm when he said,
"No…. It is only a little pain, my darling. Of course you
must stay with me. We will not be parted again, until…. Francesca, have
I ever spoken to you of your mother's family?"
"Often. What cruel people they must have been."
"I should not have given you that impression," he said
slowly. "I was wrong. I, of all people, should have understood their
grief at losing her."
"But wicked Count Ugo," I began.
My father muttered something I did not quite catch. I
thought I heard the word "fool," but did not know whether it applied to
the Count, or to me--or to himself.
"Even he must be excused," he said aloud. "I too would
have fought to keep her. And he is an old man now, if he is still
alive. I suppose he married and had children of his own. Let us not
speak of him. Your grandfather--"
"He was cruel," I said firmly. Yet the word struck me
strangely. The stern old man had been one of the villains of the story;
yet he was closely related to me, part of my blood; my mother's father,
the same to her as my adored parent was to me.
Father shook his head vigorously.
"He did what any father would have done. I can understand
him now that I too have a beloved daughter. He was not unkind to her,
Francesca. She loved him."
"She loved you more," I said.
"Yes."
He relapsed into silence after that. I thought he was
remembering the past. I know now that he was struggling with a cruel
decision. That night, after our supper at the inn where we broke our
journey, he called for the paper and ink and sat writing late. I
remember the way the candlelight touched his long, delicate fingers,
and the shadows it cast across his face. The hollows of his eye-sockets
and sunken cheeks became shapes of darkness, like the stark modeling of
a tragic mask.
II
The holidays were sheer delight. We had lodgings in a
fine old house in Leicester, maintained by a genteel elderly widow.
Like most women, she fell genteelly in love with Father, and we made
merry together, decking the house with Christmas boughs and holly. We
even had a Christmas tree. Prince Albert had introduced this German
custom when he married the queen, and the pretty fir trees, decked with
candles and ornaments, were now popular. I had made Father a pair of
slippers embroidered with purple pansies and sprays of an
eccentric-looking vegetable which was supposed to be rosemary--"for
remembrance," as I explained to him. The gifts I received were
magnificent, surpassing even his usual extravagance--a new pelisse,
trimmed with ermine and silver buttons, a tiny muff of gray squirrel, a
coral necklace, books, music for the pianoforte…too many to be
recalled. I went reluctantly back to school, cheered only by Father's
promise that he would come for me soon.
I expected to finish out the term, but to my surprise and
delight the moment of our next meeting came sooner than I dared hope.
It was early in April, when the buds were beginning to swell with green
promise, that Father next appeared. He came without advance warning,
and when I saw him I did not need Miss Bertha Smith's hastily checked
exclamation to be alerted to the change in his appearance.
He was handsomer than ever, if that was possible, with a
fine rosy flush on his cheeks; but he was terribly thin. Father
admitted cheerfully that he had been ill, and was still plagued by a
slight cough. But fine weather would soon set him up.
I accepted this facile good cheer, because I wanted to
believe it. There was nothing I, or anyone else, could have done for
him; yet I am still haunted by remorse when I think….
My boxes and parcels, hastily packed, were loaded onto
the carriage. The Misses Smith embraced me, weeping. I wept too, and
sobbed bitterly as I bade farewell to my friends. When the carriage
drove off and I leaned out the window, waving at the other girls, I was
sure they were a little jealous of me for having such a young, handsome
father. Little did I know that I would never see any of them again,
despite our promises of continued correspondence and future meetings;
or that they, the daughters of small merchants and prosperous
tradesmen, had far more hopeful futures than I.
III
Father had taken a house in Richmond, outside London. It
was a tiny box of a place, but it had lovely gardens. We led a very
retired life; I played for him on the pianoforte he had hired, and
worked at my drawing. I had a small talent for this skill and, with his
help, made considerable progress. I suppose that eventually I might
have become bored with our lack of social life, for we saw no one
except tradesmen and servants, but during those short weeks Father's
company was all I desired. He seemed quite gay; but sometimes I would
hear him coughing at night.
One afternoon I came back to the house after finishing a
sketch of the garden with it beds of daffodils. I was anxious to show
it to Father, I felt it was the best thing I had ever done. I was
wearing a white muslin-gown, with rose-colored ribbons, and ribbons of
the same shade trimmed my broad-brimmed hat. The day was unseasonably
warm, so I took the hat off as soon as I entered the house. I thought
Father was resting, as he usually did in the afternoon.
I came in through the side door, so I did not see the
carriage. I had no warning of guests until I approached the parlor door
and heard voices. Such was my haste, and my stupid innocence, that it
never occurred to me to wait, or even to knock. I merely thought, Good,
Father is awake--and opened the door.
I heard one sentence before they were aware of my
presence.
"But, my dear, surely you did not think you could elude
me forever, after such--"
A cry from my father made the speaker break off. He
turned on his heel, in a quick, violent movement.
He did not look like a man who could move so fast. He was
tall and heavily built; not fat, but with a flabbiness of face and body
that suggested self-indulgence. I was immediately struck by his attire,
with it small, peculiar touches of almost feminine elegance--gloves of
pearl-gray satin, a stickpin that was a single huge opal, and a cloak
lined with sea-green satin.
There was no reason why his appearance should have filled
me with such instinctive repugnance that I actually fell back a few
steps. He was not young, but his fleshy jowls and wrinkled cheeks were
not more unattractive than the faces of other men I had seen. Perhaps
it was his eyes, of a gray so pale that they seemed to blend with the
unhealthy pallor of his cheeks. A slow smile parted his lips, and I saw
that his teeth were stained an ugly yellow. I soon learned that he did
not smile often, perhaps for this reason.
My father, who had stood paralyzed during the few seconds
of time that elapsed, now moved as if to approach me. The other man did
not turn, but one arm shot out to bar Father's way. His lips had
closed, to hide the ugly teeth, but he was still smiling.
"Why, Allen," he said, in a mocking tone. "I understand
now the incentive for your--er--actions of late. No effort is too great
to keep this pearl snug in its little casket, eh? Will you introduce
me? No? Then…" His arm still out-stretched, he made me a courtly bow
and addressed me directly. "I am Shelton, my dear. Allen hasn't
mentioned me? How ungrateful! His oldest and dearest friend--the patron
who appreciates his talents so generously…. But I am a man of broad
tastes, I assure you. My interests are not limited to any single field
of…art."
I didn't understand what he was hinting. I thought him
ugly and unprepossessing, but courteous. Indeed, if he had bought
Father's paintings--for so I interpreted his remarks--he deserved a
pleasant answer. So I made him a curtsy, and said,
"How do you do, sir. I have been at school; you must
excuse my ignorance of my father's business affairs. I hope in future
to be closer to him."
I thought this a rather neatly turned little speech, and
was chagrined to observe that it struck Mr. Shelton quite dumb for a
moment. His eyes narrowed till they were mere slits in his face. Then
he began to chuckle softly.
"Father," he said, between chuckles. "Why, Allen, I would
never have supposed you had a child of…What are you, my dear--fifteen
or sixteen?"
"Almost eighteen," I said.
"Such a great age! (By the by, my dear, I am Lord
Shelton; you must call me ‘my lord,' or ‘your lordship,' eh? That's a
good girl.) Yes, a lovely age; so tender, so untouched…. But, Allen, I
must scold you for concealing this charming young lady. I would like to
be of service to her, as I am of service to her father. The three of us
should get on famously together, don't you think?"
From my father came a horrible, choking gasp. He fell
forward, clutching at Shelton's outstretched arm.
His lordship was quick to act. Lowering Father's limp
body to the floor, he bellowed for the servants in a stentorian voice
quite unlike his normal lisping whisper. The maid came running,
followed by the cook, and they dragged me forcibly from my father. He
was still choking, and from his parted lips issued a bright crimson
stream.
He died three days later. I was with him at the end. So
was my Lord Shelton. There was no way of keeping him out of the house;
indeed, I had no desire to do so, for during those three dreadful days
he managed everything. I would not have eaten or slept if he had not
ordered the meals and directed the servants; and they jumped to obey
his slightest wish as they had never obeyed my gentle, easygoing father.
If I thought of Lord Shelton at all, it was to regret my
first critical thoughts, for he was unfailingly kind, almost paternal,
in his manner. The only thing that bothered me was that he would not
allow me to be alone with Father. He said it would be too distressing
for me; but in fact Father lay unconscious the entire time, breathing
with difficulty.
The night Father died I knew the end was near. The doctor
had come and gone for the last time; there was nothing he could do. I
knelt by the bed holding Father's limp hand, praying for some last word
from him. His lordship sat at the foot of the bed, still as a statue,
his eyes never leaving my face. He did not speak. The sounds that broke
the dead silence were the yawns of the housemaid, who was present "for
the sake of propriety," as his lordship had remarked.
They say that the souls of the dying go out with the
tide, or with the turn from night to day. It was at that moment, when a
promise of dawn indicated the coming of morning, that my father's eyes
opened.
He did not see me. His gaze was fixed on a spot beyond
and above me, outside the candle's feeble light--a spot deep in
darkness. So intent was his look that involuntarily I turned my head to
see what it was he beheld. There was nothing there.
"Francesca," he said. His voice was young and strong. A
faint smile played about his lips. "Soon, my darling; soon."
Then, with horrifying abruptness and a strength utterly
incommensurate with the ravages of his disease, he sat bolt upright.
His eyes turned wildly, passing over me, and focusing finally on the
man who sat at the foot of the bed. His lordship rose to his feet. My
father tore his hand from my grasp and pointed, his finger quivering.
In the same strong voice he cried,
"It is a dead man who speaks to you, Shelton. As you act
toward my defenseless child, may God requite you in kind. Remember!"
A great gush of blood ended the speech. He fell back on
the pillow.
I felt as if some invisible artery had broken in me as
well; as if the vital fluid had escaped, leaving only a shell. With a
steady hand I closed my father's staring eyes. Blind instinct must have
told me that collapse was not far away, and that I must move now or be
beyond the capability of movement. I rose; like a sleepwalker I passed
his lordship, who was still standing, his hands raised as if to ward
off a blow. His face, shining with perspiration, looked like a mask of
yellowed wax. I was able to reach my own room, and my bed, before
unconsciousness claimed me.
IV
I passed the next few days in the same trancelike state.
I don't think I would have moved at all if the housemaid had not told
me what to do. Her name was Bessie; she was a good-natured, rather
stupid girl, and I attributed her care for me to genuine kindness. "You
must eat something, Miss Fran; see the nice soup cook has made for
you." "No, Miss Fran, you must not wear that dress, it is not
respectful to your poor papa to wear colors. Here is a new black frock
his lordship ordered for you."
His lordship was often mentioned. He had ordered the
funeral arrangements and selected the coffin. He paid the bills, too,
although I did not think of that; it never occurred to me to wonder how
the house was being run. But he did not come near me until the day
after the funeral.
There is some purpose to the rituals of death. They allow
a vent for grief, so that it does not turn inward. The services were
short and simple, the mourners few--besides me, there were only the
servants and his lordship. Father was buried in the little cemetery of
the nearby church, St. Margaret's. It was a beautiful spring day. I
stood in tearless calm by the grave, his lordship beside me, but when
the first clods struck hollow on the coffin, I felt an echoing blow in
my heart. I wept that night, for the first time, while Bessie comforted
me in her clumsy way.
Later that night, after she had tiptoed out under the
false impression that I slept, I lay staring into the darkness. I
wished that the comfortable stupor of those early days had not left me,
for the thoughts that now pressed in were not pleasant. I was alone.
What was to become of me? For the first time I thought about money. Not
proper, perhaps, for a newly bereaved daughter; but I was discovering a
hard inner core of practicality which I had not had to draw upon until
then.
It brings a wry smile to my lips now to recall that I
thought of his lordship as my best hope. Had he not promised to be of
assistance to me? Had he not carried out the sorrowful duties attendant
upon death with tactful care? And was he not, by his own claim, my
father's friend? So young, so foolish was I that I even interpreted
Father's dying speech as an appeal to a trusted comrade. I was glad,
therefore, on the following evening, when his lordship was announced.
I was sitting in the parlor; the last gentle light of
sunset was fading in the west. I had asked Bessie to bring my
embroidery, but I was not making much progress with it. Painful
thoughts would intrude.
I rose to greet him, putting my work down on the table,
and despite my feelings of gratitude I did not care for the way his
narrow gray eyes moved over me. I was wearing my only black dress, the
one he had ordered for me; I was suddenly conscious of the way it clung
to the contours of bosom and waist.
"Your lordship." I made him a curtsy. "I am glad you have
come; I wanted to thank you--"
"There is no need for that." He advanced a few steps into
the room and then turned to Bessie, who as lingering by the door. "The
room is abominably dark," he said curtly. "Bring more candles."
When she had obeyed, he seemed to be more at ease.
"There, that is better. You may go now."
Inexperienced as I was, I knew he should not have been
giving orders to my servant in my presence. But it would not have been
gracious to say so, after all he had done. Yet, when the door had
closed after Bessie, I had a panicky feeling of abandonment. I told
myself I was behaving foolishly…. But his look was so odd! He kept
turning his head, searching the shadowy corners. I started to sit down
and then, though I could not have said why, I decided to remain
standing.
"You have been so kind," I said, while he continued to
inspect the room like a tyrant afraid of assassins. "I am glad to have
the opportunity to thank--"
"Your father was my friend." He interrupted again. The
word "thank" seemed to vex him. "Yes, my dearest friend. I feel his
loss."
"So do I," I said softly.
"As his friend…" He hesitated for a moment and then
seemed to take courage. "After all," he said loudly, "what other choice
is there? I am doing the chit a kindness."
I felt as if he were not addressing me, but some
invisible third person. It was not a comfortable feeling.
"Your lordship," I said distinctly.
He looked squarely at me, and a light came to his narrow
eyes.
"A kindness," he repeated. "Yes; it would be a crime to
let such beauty fade, in a factory or on the streets. Someone will
enjoy it, she is too young, too naïve…. Why not I? I have the best
right. I'll protect her. I'll crown that golden hair with rubies,
though it is like a crown itself…."
He began advancing toward me. His face was horrible,
flushed and swollen; his tongue darted in and out like that of a
serpent, moistening his lips. I backed away. He stopped and his eyes
narrowed cunningly.
"Wouldn't you like rubies, sweetheart? Emeralds, if you
prefer; by God, you are worth it, you'll be a sensation if I choose to
display you instead of keeping you all to myself. And pretty clothes,
my love; gowns of satin and silk instead of that ugly black; fine lace
around those pretty white shoulders…."
With one of those quick, serpentine movements, so
unexpected from a man of his bulk, he darted forward and caught me in
his arms.
No man had ever held me in that way before. His gross,
flabby body against mine sickened me. Although he was not heavily
muscled, he was so much bigger than I that my frantic struggles were of
no avail. I tried to scream. Only a faint cry came from my straining
throat, and he laughed aloud and pressed me closer to him.
"Don't waste your breath calling for Bessie, sweetheart.
She's too busy counting the gold I have given her. It is my money that
has paid her wages all along--or didn't you know that?"
I stopped struggling for a moment as the sense of his
words penetrated my mind. His head struck, as a snake's might; I turned
my own head to avoid his lips and felt them hot and wet against my
neck. He continued to mumble, between kisses, saying horrible things,
things that hurt even more than the pressure of his arms.
"Paid her wages--and everything else, the food that went
into your pretty little mouth, my love…. How do you think Allen got his
money, my darling? I gave him everything, the ungrateful--" I don't
remember the word; it was one I had never heard. He went on, gasping,
"Ungrateful. Ran away; stole…. You owe me for that, little love, you
must pay your father's debts. Doing you a favor. Kindness on my part.
Haven't had a woman for…. Almost a new experience, an interesting
change…. You're like him, you know. Except for that golden crown of
hair…."
The dreadful, mumbling monologue went on and on.
Understanding only a small part of what he meant, I felt my senses
falter. Coward that I was, I almost welcomed the merciful anesthesia of
unconsciousness, but when his clawing hand closed on the collar of my
dress and ripped it down over my shoulders, the cool air struck my bare
flesh like a dash of ice water. I revived; I struggled again, and tried
again to scream. The sound was muffled by his lordship's mouth closing
over mine. His touched filled me with such loathing that I summoned up
enough strength to bite him. He swore, but he freed my mouth long
enough to enable me to give one last despairing cry.
I do not believe that miracles occur in this modern age,
at least not to unworthy persons like myself. What happened was not a
miracle, it was surprising only in its timing. But there was one
strange thing; I cannot account for it even now. The cry that came to
my lips, the name I called upon, was not Bessie's, nor that of my
father, so recently gone from me.
"Mother!" I screamed.
I had one glimpse of his lordship's face looming over me,
filling all my vision like a devil's mask; I closed my eyes, knowing
that I was lost, praying for unconsciousness. Then suddenly I felt
myself falling. I tried to scream again but there wasn't a scream left
in me; I could only gasp for breath, and give an undignified grunt as I
landed on the carpet in a sitting position. Momentarily I expected to
feel Lord Shelton's arms grasping me again. When nothing happened, I
dared to open my eyes.
I will never forget my first sight of him.
Under the circumstances any man would have looked like an avenging hero
to me--Saint George, Apollo, Perseus rolled into one. And he was so
handsome! Tall and broad-shouldered, his hair a mass of clustering gold
ringlets, his features strong…. He appeared larger than life as he
towered over me. His face was set in a scowl and his strong brown hands
held Lord Shelton by the throat. He shook him as a terrier might shake
a rat; and then, with a gesture of magnificent contempt, he flung the
limp body away. His lordship struck a chair, which collapsed under his
weight and let him roll ignominiously to the floor amid the broken
splinters.
Then my rescuer turned to me. He dropped to one knee. His
eyes were blue; they blazed like pools of deep water with sunlight in
their depths. My hands flew to my breast in an effort to gather the
rags of my dress around me. At once the young man turned his eyes away.
"Are you hurt?" he asked, in a deep, reverberant
baritone. "If he has harmed you, I will kill him."
I was hurt, certainly; his lordship's fingers had left
aching spots that would be bruises in a few hours, and his nails had
raked my shoulders. But I knew what my rescuer meant. I had acquired
worldly wisdom quickly and painfully.
"No," I croaked. "No, you mustn't kill him, he didn't….
You will only get into trouble."
"Bah," said my hero vigorously. "Who cares for that? This
cretino, this vandal has dared to touch you…. Do
you allow--may I have the honor to carry you to your room? Then I will
return to deal with this creature."
He had the most beautiful hands. Long-fingered and
slender, yet utterly masculine in their sinewy strength, they
hesitated, giving me time to withdraw, or protest. I did neither. As he
gathered me gently into his arms I let my head fall against his broad
chest. He rose effortlessly to his feet. Then he turned to his
lordship, who was crawling toward the door.
"He glides, like the serpent he is," remarked my hero
with satisfaction. "Will you not arise, villain, and let me kick you? I
am sorry now that I dirtied my hands on such trash."
His lordship gathered himself together and staggered to
his feet. He would have looked pathetic--his clothing disordered, his
age very apparent--had it not been for the naked malevolence in his
eyes.
"Nor do I use my hands to avenge an injury," he snarled.
"There are better ways. You have no right--"
"I have the best right," said the strange young man
emphatically. "Old rascal, I would challenge you if you were worthy of
the honor. Those of my race do not fight with low persons.
"Your race?" His lordship sneered. "I am Lord Shelton--"
"And I am the Conte Andrea del Baldino Tarconti. My
father is Prince Tarconti; and we trace our ancestry back three
thousand years to the kings of Etruria. Yes…." he went on, as his
lordship turned an ugly purplish shade, "Yes, you see that I do have
the right. I am this lady's cousin, and her natural protector; and
since you claim to have a few drops of gentle blood, I may trouble
myself to kill you after all, my lord."
To call my cousin Andrea impetuous is to do him no more
than justice. The circumstances of our first meeting necessitated
behavior that might not have been characteristic; as he afterwards
said, the sight that met his horrified eyes when, in response to my
desperate cry, he burst through the door could only be answered by
immediate, vigorous action. I was soon to learn, however, that such
action was habitual to him; he was enthusiastic, forthright, direct.
When I opened my eyes the morning after his dramatic
appearance, it was his hearty voice outside my door that had awakened
me. Without that assurance of his reality I think I should have
considered that I had been dreaming. Then I turned over in my bed and
received further confirmation; my body ached from head to foot.
From the tones of Andrea's voice I gathered that he was
expostulating with someone, but I was unable to hear another voice, he
spoke so loudly and so continuously. Finally the door opened and
Bessie's head came in--only her head, no more. Seeing me awake, she
allowed the rest of her person to follow her head.
"Miss?" she quavered. "Are you ready to get up, miss?"
"Yes," I said shortly. I had not forgiven her for her
part in my betrayal, although Andrea had reduced her to tears and howls
of repentance, the previous night, when he heard what she had done.
"Female Judas," was the mildest of the epithets he applied to her. He
had proposed flinging her out into the night, but it was obvious that I
could not remain in the house without an attendant, so Andrea had
allowed her to stay, promising to spend the night himself in order to
ensure my safety. Whether he had done so or not I did not know. I had
not expected to sleep at all that night, but I fell into oblivion as
soon as Bessie had put me to bed. Now, except for my bodily aches, I
felt amazingly cheerful. I wondered if my cousin was really as handsome
as I remembered.
I did not find out for some time, since Andrea refused to
come into my bedchamber, even after Bessie had wrapped me in my
dressing gown. It covered me from my chin to my toes, and seemed to me
quite a respectable garment; but when I came out of my room Andrea took
one look at me, blushed deeply, and looked elsewhere. Even when we were
seated at the breakfast table, with Bessie serving us, he found it hard
to look directly at me.
It may seem strange that I was able to eat, and heartily,
devouring eggs and chops with my usual appetite. Our social system
makes hypocrites of women, but I was not old enough to pretend to
feelings I did not have. The growing admiration in my cousin's blue
eyes assured me that I had nothing more to fear. It is easy to accept
miracles when one is seventeen. As the meal progressed, Andrea grew
more at ease, and finally he said naïvely, "In England, a young
lady may appear in her nightclothes without impropriety, is it so?"
I stopped eating, a forkful of food halfway to my lips,
and contemplated the ample folds of my dressing gown in some dismay. It
had not occurred to me that that was the cause of his embarrassment;
Father and I had always breakfasted so.
"It is not my night attire, really," I said. "I don't
think…. Surely, since you are a member of the family--a cousin--"
"A half cousin only," said Andrea, with what seemed to me
to be unnecessary precision. "Your mother and my father were only half
brother and sister."
"I know nothing of the family," I said.
Andrea started to speak and then looked significantly at
Bessie, who was standing by the sideboard, her hands folded and her
eyes fixed on him with the anxious appeal of a dog.
"Send her away," he said, indicating Bessie with a toss
of his head. "She spoils my appetite."
At which Bessie let out a howl and, without waiting for
my order, bolted from the room.
I looked at Andrea, whose broad forehead had smoothed out
and who was eating with every evidence of pleasure. It was obvious that
Bessie's feelings for him included more complex emotions than simple
fear. No wonder. With my newborn sophistication, I thought that my
cousin's path through life must be strewn with heartbroken females of
all ages and social classes. He was even more handsome than I
remembered. Despite his northern coloring and beautiful blue eyes, one
might have known him to be a foreigner; his fair hair was a little
longer than an Englishman might have worn it, although he was
clean-shaven.
He looked at me, and it was my turn to blush. I had not
meant to stare so rudely. To cover my confusion I said, "What did you
mean, we are half cousins?"
"But it is very simple. Our grandfather married twice. My
father and your mother were children of different mothers. My
grandmother was an English lady; that is why I speak English so well."
"Ah, I see. Your grandmother taught you."
"Not my grandmother; she died before I was born. Her
sister, who came to Italy when Grandmother married into the family, was
my teacher--if it is teaching to shout a word very loudly, and then
strike, very hard, when the young pupil does not understand."
"She sounds horrid," I said indignantly.
"She is horrid," said Andrea,
smiling broadly. "She is una tipica--how do you
say it?--a typical English old maid. That is a term she did not teach
us, but we learned it, my brother and I, and used it to torment the
poor lady. Our parents died of fever, within two weeks of one another,
when we were infants, so Aunt Rhoda had the task of bringing us up.
However, I do not know that she did such a good job of it. We learned
English only because she refused to learn Italian. She despises the
language, the country, and all its inhabitants."
"I am so confused! You mention a brother…."
"Did not your mother speak of the family? But no, her
resentment--"
"She died when I was born," I said. "But she was not
resentful; it was my grandfather who refused to forgive her, or
acknowledge my existence."
Andrea flung his head back and laughed heartily,
displaying a set of splendid white teeth.
"Yes, he would do that. He is horrid, too--a horrible old
man. But he is mellowing; I think he will receive you kindly."
"You think so? Didn't he send you?" I put my hand to my
head, which really did feel as if it were whirling around. "I must be
more confused than I realized. I didn't even ask how you happened to
appear so miraculously. It was like an answer to a prayer."
My cousin's keen blue eyes softened.
"Perhaps it was. Who knows? Although I am not a likely
agent of the heavenly powers. But, of course, I forget; you did not
know of your father's letter; he said he was writing without your
knowledge."
"I didn't know."
"It was a fine letter," Andrea said. "He wrote that he
was dying, that you would be left alone, with no money and no
protector; and he suggested that you might have need of protection. How
he knew this…. But I distress you. Forgive me."
I had bowed my head, remembering the night in the inn
when Father had sat writing, his face set and tired. It must have hurt
him to be forced to appeal to the cruel old man--to admit his failure
and face the knowledge of his imminent death. But what an eloquent
letter it must have been, to overcome my grandfather's long-cherished
resentment.
I said as much to Andrea, and was faintly amused to see
my cousin look uncomfortable. As I had already learned, his face
reflected every passing emotion; he was not a guileful man.
"Well, to be truthful, he did not--that is, he…. How can
I say this?" Andrea demanded of the empty air.
"Be candid," I said. "You can't hurt my feelings; I have
none for my grandfather, so why should I care what he thinks of me? You
don't mean to say that you acted without his knowledge or consent? My
dear cousin--"
"That is not quite how it was." Andrea sighed deeply and
ran his fingers through his bright curls. "I think I must explain about
the family. You should know about them if you are to live with them."
"But I don't know that I shall. If I am not welcome in my
grandfather's house--"
"But of course you are welcome! Besides, where else is
there for you to go?"
I was silent.
"So," Andrea resumed cheerfully, "I will explain the
family. There is Grandfather, of course. He is…ah, but it is impossible
to describe him. Only stand up to him, don't let him bully you, and you
will get along. Then there is Aunt Rhoda. She is our great-aunt,
really, but we call her ‘aunt.' I have told you about her. She and
Grandfather fight constantly."
He smiled reminiscently. It was clear that he found his
brawling relations quite entertaining. I was not at all sure I would
find them so. Nor was I getting a very clear picture of them.
Description was not Andrea's strong point.
"Your brother," I said. "Is he older or younger than you?"
"We are twins. He is the heir, however; he was born
first. Though you would not think so; he is not strong, poor Stefano.
But he is very clever. He reads a great deal. He has nothing better to
do, being so sickly. It is he you must thank for my coming. I would
never have had the sense to think of it, or the intelligence to plan
things. I have the strength in the family, but Stefano has the brains."
I had already conceived a girlish admiration for my
cousin. Now, suddenly, I liked him too, liked him very much. His
modesty and good nature were as irresistible as his handsome face.
"I will look forward to meeting your brother and thanking
him," I said. "But I can never forget that it was you who actually--"
"No, no, you must not thank me, what else could I do?
Only what any gentleman would do. After all," he added, his eyes
twinkling, "that is what Aunt Rhoda taught me to be. A poor imitation
of an English gentleman, as Stefano says. Now you know about the
family--"
"Is that all of them?" I asked, overwhelmed with a
premature attack of stage fright.
Andrea laughed again.
"Oh, there are always relatives visiting. Cousins and
aunts and other people. You will like them. And they are sure to love
you, Cousin. But we have talked enough. Time is passing. We must leave
this house as soon as possible."
He flung his napkin down and bounded to his feet. I was
beginning to find his energy a little overwhelming.
"But," I began.
"No buts! That is one of Aunt Rhoda's favorite sayings.
In this case she would be right." His hands braced on the table, he
leaned toward me. His face was serious. "I don't understand your
father's way of life; it is not my business to understand. But in his
letter he said he had nothing--no property, no money. I do not know who
has paid the rent for this house, Cousin. I do not say this to hurt you
or make you afraid, but I do not think you should stay here. I have
many things to arrange; you will forgive me if I leave you? You shall
be packing while I am gone so that we can be away from here by
nightfall. Do not worry," he added, kindly, while I gaped like a fish
out of water. "Stefano has planned it all, he told me what I must do."
Not being acquainted with the admirable Stefano, I did
not find this information as reassuring as he meant it to be. But out
of the chaos into which his words had thrown me, one thought came to
the fore.
"Wait," I cried, for he was already striding briskly
toward the door. "Cousin--I am ashamed to confess it, but I am afraid.
What if his lordship should return?"
"His lordship? Ah, the villain of last night." Andrea
turned. The sunlight pouring in through the windows of the breakfast
room turned his golden curls into a shining halo. His face was as
beautiful as an angel's and as benevolent as a saint's. "I have taken
care of him, there is nothing to fear. I was out early this morning.
And I did it myself," he added, with obvious satisfaction. "Stefano did
not instruct me, for of course he did not know of that
matter."
"Did what?" I gasped. I think I knew the answer before he
spoke.
"Killed him," said Andrea calmly. "These meetings always
take place at dawn. Hurry with your packing, little Cousin."
II
By the time I had recovered from my shock at his last
speech, he was gone. I could hardly pursue him along the street in my
dressing gown, so I did the only thing I could do--I began my packing.
I cannot say that I did it neatly. Weeks later, when my trunks were
unpacked, I was provoked at the jumble of clothing and ornaments, books
and fancy work that had been tumbled in anyhow. Yet it was a wonder I
was able to do anything at all. I suppose my brain was numbed by the
series of stunning surprises I had received in such a short time.
Certainly I felt no regret at his lordship's death, nor any horror at
Andrea's act. But as the day wore on and he did not return, I began to
be frightened for him. There were laws against dueling. He was a
stranger, and his lordship was a peer of the realm, with powerful
friends.
Late in the afternoon, when the doorbell finally rang, I
flew to answer it without waiting for Bessie. My disappointment was
extreme when I saw, not my cousin, but a stranger--an elderly woman,
stout and gray-haired, who stared severely at me through her gold
pince-nez. I was about to tell her that she had the wrong house when
she asked if I was not Miss Fairbourn. I admitted that I was. She
nodded.
"I am Miss Perkins. Alberta Perkins. I was sent by Count
Tarconti. May I come in?"
"I suppose so," I said stupidly. "Where is the Count?"
"I presume his letter will explain." She withdrew an
envelope from her large handbag, but withheld it from my eager fingers.
"It would be better, would it not, to peruse your letter within?"
I led the way to the parlor. She immediately handed me
the letter. Rudely, I left her standing while I ripped it open.
The handwriting was characteristic of my cousin--bold,
dashing, and ill-spelt. Apparently Aunt Rhoda's tutelage had not
extended to the writing of English. I do not attempt to reproduce the
exact words, but the general sense was as follows:
Dear Cousin.
Here is Miss Perkins, your companion, who will bring
you to us in Italy. She is highly recommended, and speaks Latin!
Forgive me that I do not escort you; but friends have told me that your
stupid English law [the word "stupid" had been scored out, but I could
still read it] makes it necessary for me to leave without delay or risk
prison. I will greet you on the happy day of your arrival.
Your devoted cousin,
Andrea
I looked at Miss Perkins, who was studying me through her
pince-nez.
"I don't understand," I said weakly.
"I'm not sure that I do, either," said Miss Perkins. "But
perhaps we might sit down and talk about it."
My immediate anxieties about Andrea being relieved, I was
able to study Miss Perkins with more attention. She was--well, not to
put too fine a face upon it, she was ugly. Short and stout, with square
shoulders and a massive bosom, she had features of almost masculine
prominence--a jutting nose, a protruding chin, and bushy gray eyebrows.
Except for her bosom and her hair, which was worn in an untidy bun, I
might have taken her for a man. Her clothing, though feminine in
design, was quite severe except for one item--her bonnet. The ribbons
that tied it under her chins were bright crimson, and this color
matched the feathers that were attached, somewhat insecurely, on the
left side.
I liked that bonnet. I could not have explained my
reaction then, in so many words. Now I know that I recognized in it a
hidden, almost shamefaced romantic streak, a love of soft feminine
things that Miss Perkins was unable to indulge in otherwise.
There were other attractive features about her. Her eyes,
though narrow and light gray in color, had a mild, benevolent
expression. And her voice was beautiful--a soft, deep contralto. I
smiled tentatively at her, and she responded with a broad, beaming grin.
"Please sit down," I said. "And forgive my inattention.
Would you care for refreshment? A cup of tea, perhaps?"
"I would dearly love a cup of tea," said Miss Perkins.
Within five minutes we were chatting like old friends.
One thing we had in common from the start was our amazement at Andrea.
Apparently he had simply walked into the employment bureau where she
had come to apply for a new position, and, finding her at liberty, had
hired her on the spot. He had given her only the briefest explanation
of the problem, and then had pressed a huge roll of bills into her
hand. Her protests were waved aside--"I am a judge of character,
madame, and I saw at once you are someone to be trusted. Besides, I am
entrusting to your care my beloved young cousin; what is mere money
compared to that?"
I could not help laughing as she repeated this
characteristic speech, with a roll of her eyes and an inimitable
imitation of Andrea's delightful accent. Immediately she sobered.
"Pray don't think I mean to mock the Count," she said
earnestly. "I, too, fancy myself a judge of character, and I have
seldom been so impressed by a young man's kindness and honesty. If he
has a fault--forgive me if I appear to criticize--I would judge him to
be somewhat impetuous."
"He certainly is that," I admitted. "Miss Perkins, I
think it is only fair to you to tell you why Andrea found it necessary
to depart with such haste."
"Lack of candor is not one of his failings," Miss Perkins
said. "He told me why. And if his version of the story is accurate…. It
was only the barest outline he gave me; don't think I mean to inquire
into a subject which must be exceedingly painful…."
Never would I have supposed myself capable of recounting
such embarrassing details to a stranger. But there was something about
that woman…. I even told her as much as I could decently say about
Father's difficulties. Miss Perkins made no comment, but her eyes
flashed and her big hands clenched as she listened. If she had
expressed sympathy, I might have broken down. As it was, I was able to
complete my account fairly calmly. I felt a strange relief when I had
done so.
"Your cousin did quite right," said Miss Perkins
energetically. "Well, my dear, you have had a difficult time, but that
is over and done with. You must start thinking about the future."
Different as they were in every other way, Andrea and
Miss Perkins had one characteristic in common. When they acted, they
acted with dispatch. Miss Perkins agreed with Andrea that I should not
stay in the house. She moved me out that very evening to respectable
lodgings, and we remained there for the three days that passed before
we found passage on a steamer going to Civitavecchia, the port of Rome.
It was with indescribable emotions that I stood on the
deck of the ship and watched the roofs of London fade into a black
smudge on the horizon. My old life was over. What would the new one
bring? I felt a qualm. Then I looked to my right, where Miss Perkins
stood, her big hands clutching the rail and her crimson plume blowing
bravely in the breeze; and I had a feeling that things were going to
work out after all.
III
I had immediate cause to be grateful for Miss Perkins'
presence. As soon as we entered the Channel, I became horribly seasick.
She had not a moment's discomfort. In between tending to me she made
frequent expeditions onto the deck, from which she would return with a
beaming face and animated accounts of the conversations she had had
with other travelers, the sailors, and even with the captain. She was
insatiably curious, and I felt that by the time we reached Italy she
could have commanded the ship herself, and steered it into port. Her
example shamed me so that I was finally persuaded to drag my miserable
body on deck. There, as she had suggested, the air did me good, and it
was not long before I was over my discomfort.
Although my physical ailments were overcome, I became
more and more prey to other worries as the voyage went on. I had not
had time to brood, in the hurry and confusion of departure; but now, at
leisure, I began to wonder what was in store for me. To say that I was
going to my mother's family sounded well enough, and yet it was like
entrusting myself to utter strangers, in an alien land. As for the
country to which I was traveling, I knew nothing of it except for some
of the heroic deeds of the ancient Romans. Oh, yes; I could also sing,
accompanying myself on the pianoforte, two Italian songs.
Miss Perkins did her best to remedy my ignorance. She had
managed to obtain a small grammar and spent several hours a day
teaching herself Italian. But as she herself admitted, the Tuscan form
of the language was apt to be of limited use. The long Italian
peninsula contained many dialects, unintelligible even to natives of
neighboring districts. It also contained many kingdoms and states.
There was no Italian nation.
Yet, according to Miss Perkins, the dream of unity had
animated patriots for half a century. It was from this amazing woman,
who seemed to know something about every subject under the sun, that I
first heard the names of Mazzini and Cavour, of King Victor Emmanuel
and Garibaldi--and of Pius the Ninth, called Pio Nono by his subjects,
who was not only the reigning Pope, but the temporal monarch of the
country in which my grandfather's estates were situated.
Miss Perkins had a habit of rubbing her nose vigorously
with her knuckles when she was agitated. I believe I have implied that
her nose was quite large, possibly the result of this process. When she
mentioned Pio Nono, the gesture became almost violent.
"They called him il papa liberale
when he first assumed the throne of Peter," she said. "He began well; a
general amnesty freed hundreds of political prisoners whom his
predecessors had punished without trial. He even relaxed the strict
press censorship. But if Italy is to be unified, the Pope must give up
his temporal powers, and that he refuses to do. He rules now in a most
tyrannical manner. Of course we cannot expect other nations to enjoy
our English liberties; but there is no such thing as freedom of speech
or of the press in Rome--the cradle of the republican form of
government! As for freedom of religion--"
She would have gone on, her indignation rising, but I had
not interrupted.
"I don't understand what you mean by temporal ruler. Is
the Pope a king, then, with his own army?"
"Exactly. Not that his army is much good," said Miss
Perkins, with a sniff. "He had to flee from Rome during the rebellion
of 1849, and it took a French army to restore him. He would not be
there now if the French and the Austrians did not keep troops in Italy
to maintain the status quo."
"But what do France and Austria have to do with Italy?"
he asked.
"A very good question!" Miss Perkins struck the rail with
her fist. "They have no moral right to interfere. But neither Louis
Napoleon nor the Emperor wants a strong united Italy challenging them
in Europe. By supporting the Pope they keep the country permanently
divided, for the Papal States lie directly across the center of the
peninsula, between the kingdom of Piedmont in the north and the Kingdom
of the Two Sicilies in the south."
"There are three countries in Italy, then," I said,
thinking I had got it straight at last.
"There are more than three. But these are the most
important. Victor Emmanuel, king of Piedmont, is the hope of the
liberals. He would rule constitutionally, with legal safeguards for the
liberties of his subjects. Francis the Second, the king of Naples and
Sicily--for that is what is meant by the ‘Two Sicilies'--is a tyrant
even worse than the Pope. His opponents are flung into prison without
trial--"
One of Miss Perkins' few weaknesses was that she was apt
to lecture at length, especially when her indignation was aroused. I
therefore interrupted her again. I had learned that I could do this
with impunity, for under her forbidding exterior she was as mild as a
lamb, and never scolded.
"I had no idea you were such a fiery revolutionary, Miss
P. You spoke of this man Garibaldi with great enthusiasm yesterday; I
think you must be one of his disciples."
"We have mutual friends," said Miss Perkins primly.
I had to laugh; the idea of my friend and the
swashbuckling Italian adventurer having any acquaintances in common was
ludicrous. But Miss Perkins was quite serious.
"Mrs. Roberts, with whom he stayed in London five years
ago, is an acquaintance of mine. I was fortunate enough to meet the
General at her house."
"I suppose he is very handsome," I said slyly.
"Yes…no." Miss Perkins considered the question. "I
suppose he isn't really handsome. He is only of medium height, rather
stocky, and his face is pleasant rather than beautiful. But one doesn't
think of his looks when one meets him. His charm lies in his
simplicity, his humility--and one's knowledge of the lion-hearted
courage that animates him. All his life he has fought for freedom, even
as an exile in South America. In Rome, he and his volunteers carried on
an epic struggle against the French; when finally the city fell,
Garibaldi refused to surrender. His devoted wife fled with him; she
died in his arms as they hid in a fisherman's hut, with enemy troops
hot on their trail. Last year he fought with the Piedmontese against
Austria, and they say that he is about to set sail for Sicily, where
the oppressed people have risen against their government. If he--"
One of the ship's officers came by at that moment and
invited us to come along and see how the ship was steered. I was
relieved at the interruption. I was not much interested in the workings
of the ship, but I was even less interested in the cause of Italian
liberation. Little did I realize that this dull, abstract subject, as I
thought of it, was to become one of burning interest to me, and soon.
By the time we landed I knew more about modern Italian
politics than I wanted to know. Miss Perkins also lectured me on Roman
history and antiquities. If someone had heard us in conversation, they
would have thought her the excited young woman on her first voyage
abroad, and me the world-weary sophisticate. She fairly bubbled with
excitement at the prospect of seeing the land of Michelangelo and
Raphael, of Julius Caesar and Brutus--whom she admired much more than
she did Caesar. I could not share her raptures. As the moment of
confrontation approached, I became increasingly nervous. What if
Grandfather refused to receive me? What if Andrea was not there to
support me?
When we steamed into the harbor of Civitavecchia on a
bright spring morning, Miss Perkins could hardly contain herself.
Clutching the rail, she muttered Latin verses interspersed with
comments to me.
"Precisely as it was in imperial times; the verses of
Rutilius might still apply! ‘Molibus aequoreum concluditur
amphiteatrum….' Yes, yes, the amphitheater of water within,
and the twin moles stretching out toward the island…. Dear me, how
fascinating! ‘Interior medias sinus invitatus….'"
And much more.
The town itself dampened even Miss Perkins' enthusiasm.
Every traveler who has approached Rome through this, its major port,
has spoken of its filthy streets and inns and its thieving inhabitants.
Miss Perkins took one look at it and took measures to get us out of
there as quickly as possible.
Unfortunately it was necessary for us to spend the night
in Civitavecchia. Modern transportation, like everything else modern,
was frowned upon in the Papal States; there was no railroad in the
region we must reach. So we sought out an inn, where we might hope to
hire a carriage and driver. Such had been Miss Perkins' efficiency
throughout that I was not surprised to hear her direct our driver to a
particular albergo, which turned out to be
somewhat less filthy and run-down than the others we had seen from the
carriage. We were received by the host without much show of courtesy
until Miss Perkins mentioned our destination. The Tarconti name wrought
a miraculous change; we were shown to the best chamber the place
afforded and, with a deep bow, the host begged our indulgence while he
went to see what could be done for us in the way of transportation. In
the meantime, if we would honor his inn by partaking of refreshment,
however inadequate for persons of our quality….
As soon as we were alone, Miss Perkins dropped into a
chair and pursed her lips in a silent whistle--a habit she had ordered
me not to emulate, since it was not ladylike. The crimson plume was
drooping, but Miss Perkins was still undaunted, as her first comment
proved.
"Heavens, how exhausting it is to make one's wants known
in a mixture of three languages and a series of frantic gestures! I
believe I am beginning to grasp the local dialect, however."
"You are amazing," I said sincerely. "I shudder to think
of making this trip without you. I could never have done it."
"You would have managed somehow," said Miss Perkins. "It
is surprising how efficient one becomes when one must. As for my
abilities, you may thank me when we reach the Castello Tarconti.
Congratulations at this point would be premature."
It was not long, however, before the host returned with
good news. He had found a coach and a driver who knew the road, and we
might set out first thing in the morning. Cheered by this information,
we sought our hard and lumpy bed and slept soundly.
We were up early next morning and had to wait for the
carriage, which was late. Miss Perkins badgered the host until he threw
up his hands and fled, promising to make inquiries. Miss Perkins then
turned her attention to some of the other guests who were awaiting
breakfast and transportation in the inn parlor. After conversing with
one of them, a pleasant-looking gentleman wearing modish checked
trousers, she let out a cry of excitement.
"È vero?" she demanded
eagerly. "Is it true?"
The gentleman nodded and handed her the newspaper he had
been reading, as if this would verify the statement she had questioned.
"What is it?" I asked curiously. I thought I had
recognized a familiar name amid the torrent of Italian the two had
exchanged.
"Garibaldi," exclaimed Miss Perkins, proving me correct.
"He has landed in Sicily! He sailed a few days ago, secretly, from
Genoa, with a thousand volunteers."
"I'm glad to hear it," I said with a smile. "At least I'm
glad if you are."
"More than glad--delighted! He will easily conquer that
Bourbon tyrant and free the oppressed people, first of Sicily and then
of the Neapolitan kingdom. That region will join the kingdom of
Piedmont, as Tuscany has just done, and the Papal States will be next--"
At this point the host returned to tell us our carriage
was ready. His timing may not have been entirely fortuitous; Miss
Perkins' loud enthusiasm was making people look askance at us, and the
kindly gentleman in the checked trousers had moved away. It was not
wise to speak with favor of General Garibaldi, or of invasion, in His
Holiness's domain.
The carriage was a shabby equipage, but after inspecting
it closely, Miss Perkins pronounced it sound. The driver was subjected
to an even more piercing scrutiny. What could be seen of his face,
between his shock of untidy black hair and a ferocious moustache,
looked amiable enough. His name was Giovanni, and he assured us, with
expressive gestures, that he was prepared to lay down his life to
defend us and get us safely to our destination.
Miss Perkins muttered, "Typical Italian braggadocio; but
I think the fellow is trustworthy." We had just taken our places within
the carriage when a pair of riders came quietly out of the stables and
took up positions behind the coach. They looked like the bandits in the
wild tales some of the girls at school had read surreptitiously. They
were heavily bearded; wide-brimmed slouch hats and neckerchiefs hid
even more of their faces; they wore blouselike shirts and loose
trousers which were tucked into their boots. From the belt of one man
protruded something that looked, even to my inexperienced eye, like the
handle of a pistol.
Miss Perkins put her head out the window and shouted for
the host. At first he pretended not to understand her, but her
gesticulations were not to be ignored. They exchanged further gestures
and shouts; then Miss Perkins withdrew into the coach and looked
doubtfully at me.
"He says they have been hired to protect us. The roads
are infested with robbers."
"Oh, dear," I exclaimed.
Miss Perkins rubbed her nose thoughtfully.
"The danger of robbers may not be great, but the country
is certainly in a disturbed state, and a guard might not be a bad idea."
"But they may be robbers themselves," I protested. The
fierce aspects of the two men frightened me.
"There would be no sense in that," Miss Perkins said; and
I was relieved to see she had stopped rubbing her nose, which meant
that she was satisfied in her own mind. "If the host meant to set
thieves on us, he would keep them out of sight until we were in the
countryside, with no witnesses about. I think we may proceed, and be
grateful for the guards."
Soon we were out of the city and bumping along a rough
road through a flat region covered with heath and low bushes. The
landscape was uninteresting, with only an occasional ruined tower or
broken bridge to break the monotony; but after a time we left the coast
and headed inland, toward a range of undulating hills. The scenery grew
wilder and more rugged, and as the sun sank lower, we had fine views of
hillsides covered with dark foliage, shining in the westering rays.
We stopped for the night at a village called Palo, where
the inn had been recommended. It was a simple place, but clean, and the
food was fairly good. There were no other travelers, so we had the
place to ourselves; and wearied by the activities of the day, we soon
fell asleep.
The sun was barely above the horizon when I awoke next
morning. Miss Perkins was not in the bed. I had come to rely on her so
much that at first I was panic-stricken by her absence; but I forced
myself to be calm. After all, I could not have her with me forever…. I
paused in the middle of dressing, one foot half into my stocking; and I
really believe this was the first time since Father's death--the first
time in my life, in fact--that I thought about someone else's problems.
Miss Perkins had been hired to accompany me on my
journey; no doubt she would be sent home afterwards. Her expenses would
be paid, I thought I knew Andrea well enough to be sure of his
generosity; but what would become of her after that? I had already
observed that her clothing, though once good, was shabby, and her
wardrobe was far from extensive. Even the brave red plume showed signs
of wear. She had been "available" when Andrea sought a companion for
me. Perhaps she had long been available for a paying situation. No
longer young, far from prepossessing in appearance, eccentric in her
habits…. I could see that she might not easily find another position.
Not that she had hinted, even indirectly, of being in need….
It was this cheerful courage that endeared her to me,
among other qualities. I was very young and not very sensible, but
thank heaven I had sense enough to value these qualities. Was it
possible that my unknown grandfather might let her stay with me as a
sort of governess-companion? Perhaps if we both made ourselves very
useful to him…. There was another English lady, Andrea's great-aunt, at
the castle; she might enjoy Miss Perkins' companionship.
At least it was something to think about. I finished
dressing and went out in search of Miss Perkins and breakfast. I could
hear the normal cheerful morning sounds of any country house--chickens
clucking, the splashing of water, voices calling out, a burst of
laughter.
I found Miss Perkins in the courtyard, where the chickens
strutted and scratched and a flat black cat sunned itself on a pile of
broken stones. Miss Perkins was sitting on a block of wood, her skirts
hitched up, talking animatedly to one of our guards. Which one I could
not have said; they looked very much alike, with their fierce black
whiskers and swaggering, piratical clothing. I stood listening for a
moment, unnoticed. The conversation seemed friendly, and I was amused
to observe that Miss Perkins was using her hands freely, in quite an
Italian manner. Then I caught a word or two that I thought I
understood. Interested, I moved forward, and the guard caught sight of
me. He gave a start, and Miss Perkins turned.
"Ah, good morning, Francesca. I hope you slept well. A
beautiful morning, is it not? I have been chatting with this young man.
Antonio is his name."
Antonio's broad-brimmed hat was already in his hand. He
swept it toward the ground in a low bow. When he straightened, I saw
that the fierce beard was deceptive. His eyes were big and brown and
gentle, with long, curling lashes, and his cheeks--what I could see of
them--were as soft as a girl's. He was much younger than I had thought;
and now that I had time to study it, I rather liked the effect of his
casual costume. The loose shirt set off his broad shoulders and the
scarlet sash was tied tightly around his slim waist. He smiled shyly at
me, said something I did not understand, and began to back away. As he
turned I saw something that made me gasp. Miss Perkins pinched my arm;
not until Antonio had gone into the inn did she speak.
"He understands a little English. You would not wish to
speak tactlessly, I am sure."
"But his hand," I exclaimed. "It was his left hand that
held his hat; his right is…. Did my eyes deceive me?"
"They did not. He has lost his right hand."
"Poor young man! What an unfortunate accident."
"It was no accident. That is the punishment the Holy
Father's troops deal out to rebels. Do you remember my telling you
about the risings last year in the Papal States?"
"I have forgotten," I muttered, still staring horrified
at the door through which Antonio had gone.
"You should pay closer attention. This is not ancient
history, Francesca; it happened last year, in 1859 of the Christian
era. Last summer, when Piedmont persuaded Napoleon to join in a war
against Austria, the patriots in the central parts of Italy rose
against the occupying Austrian troops. They hoped Piedmont and France
would aid them against a common enemy; but Louis Napoleon betrayed his
allies. He made a separate peace with Austria. The Italian state of
Tuscany gained its freedom, and won union with Piedmont. However, the
rebellions here in the Papal States were crushed by Pio Nono's
mercenaries. The most notorious of these soldiers is Schmidt, the
commandant in Perugia. That is where Antonio fought. Most of the
captured rebels were executed. Antonio's family has some influence; he
was only condemned to lose the hand he had dared raise against his
lord. They plunged the stump into hot tar afterwards, to stop the--"
"Don't!" I begged.
"Oh, it would be very convenient if we could live our
comfortable lives without hearing of such horrors," Miss Perkins said
angrily. "But so long as they happen, it would be cowardly to hide our
heads. You are not in England, Francesca. Life has many perils, and it
is better to be prepared for them."
The words struck home with a force I am sure she had not
intended. If my father had not tried to shield me from the unpleasant
facts of life--if he had let me share his difficulties--who knows, he
might have been able to break free of the horrible bonds that held him.
At least I would have been better prepared to deal with Lord Shelton. I
had been saved then by a miracle; I could not count on a second one.
Seeing my stricken face, Miss Perkins became repentant.
"Forgive me for speaking so roughly. Really, I must learn
to watch my tongue, there is no excuse--"
"No," I said. "You were right. How does Antonio…. I
suppose he trained himself to use his left hand?"
"Yes, doesn't he do beautifully? I had quite a good talk
with him; such an opportunity to improve my Italian. He speaks the
beautiful Tuscan dialect. And he told me about some interesting
antiquities which we will see on today's trip. Did you know that your
grandfather's estates are situated in the old kingdom of the Etruscans?
A fascinating people! They are frequently mentioned by Roman writers,
but only in the last thirty years have their ruins come to light. I had
no idea…."
I thought she had dragged the Etruscans--whoever they
were--into the conversation in order to distract me from my painful
thoughts. But I did Miss P. an injustice. The Etruscans were just as
interesting to her as the other subjects she had mentioned since we
met, and during the course of the day I learned a great deal about
them. According to Miss Perkins, the country through which we were
passing had once been part of their powerful empire, which had
dominated central Italy in the seventh and sixth centuries B.C., and had later ruled Rome. She babbled on
about Mr. Dennis and Mrs. Hamilton Gray, who had written books about
Etruscan antiquities; and once I thought she was going to fall out the
coach window when we passed a rugged cliff in which we could see
strangely regular openings, like doors cut into the rock. Miss Perkins
explained that they were just that--the doors to ancient Etruscan
tombs, which, like many dwellings of the dead, had been built in
imitation of real houses.
"Fascinating!" she exclaimed, after I had pulled her back
into the coach and, with difficulty, persuaded her to retain her seat.
"I do hope there are tombs on your grandfather's land. He may allow me
to do some digging, if indeed he has not excavated himself, like Prince
Buonaparte and the Duchess of Sermoneta. Only imagine, dear Francesca,
the thrill of discovering a princess's tomb, like the one General
Galassi found in 1836. You know of it, of course?"
"No," I said, with affectionate resignation. "But I
suspect you are going to tell me about it."
She did, and at some length. My initial prejudice soon
gave way to interest; for what girl could resist the allurement of
buried treasures, rich jewels, and mystery?
Like all pagans, who did not possess the Christian's
assurance of a spiritual heaven, the Etruscans placed the vain
adornments of life in the tombs of their dead--food and drink,
cosmetics, weapons, jewels. Naturally most of the tombs were robbed;
and although one must condemn the robbery as morally reprehensible, one
must also admit that the thieves had common sense, on their side. They
could eat the food and sell the gold, which was more than the dead
person could do.
However, the tomb to which Miss Perkins had referred
somehow escaped discovery until modern times. There had been two
burials in the sepulcher. One had been that of a warriors. His weapons
were buried with him, along with many other beautiful and curious
objects. In the inner chamber of the tomb there had been another body.
It had long since fallen into dust, but the ornaments it had worn to
the grave still lay on the ground, where they had fallen when the flesh
and bone crumbled. They were all of massive gold--headdress,
breastplate, necklaces and chains, earrings and bracelets and brooches.
The delicacy of the workmanship was unsurpassed in its skill; indeed,
according to Miss Perkins, modern jewelers would not have been able to
duplicate some of the work. I could not help being thrilled by the
description of the long-dead princess's parure, and for a while
afterwards I peered from the window as eagerly as Miss Perkins, looking
for Etruscan tombs.
As the day waned, so did my enthusiasm. Even Miss Perkins
fell silent; and after we had dined on the contents of a basket
prepared for us by the innkeeper, she dozed off. I have to confess that
she snored. But this did not prevent me from following her into slumber.
I was awakened with a shock as the carriage gave a
violent lurch and stopped, so suddenly that I was thrown from my seat.
Dizzy with sleep, I struggled to right myself, hearing a medley of
sounds that filled me with alarm. The rapid pound of horses' hooves
mingled with shouts and curses and the explosions of firearms. Before I
had time to recover my wits or my upright position, the carriage door
was wrenched open. I couldn't see who had opened it; Miss Perkins, her
bonnet askew but her courage high, blocked my view.
"How dare you?" she demanded indignantly. "What is the
meaning of--"
The speech ended in a gasp as she fell forward. A man's
hand had seized her and unceremoniously pulled her out of the carriage.
Now seriously alarmed, I followed her out with more haste than dignity.
Poor Miss Perkins, blinking and rumpled, was held by the
arm by the ruffian who had removed her from the carriage. He was tall
and redheaded; his crimson jacket, dirty white breeches, and tall
plumed hat matched the costume worn by half a dozen other men who
surrounded the carriage. All carried muskets. One of these weapons was
leveled at our driver, whose rotund face had lost its healthy pink
color.
The fact that the men were soldiers did not reassure me
as to their intentions. I had never seen more villainous faces.
I had removed my bonnet earlier; my hair curled damply
around my face and neck. I pushed it back, knowing that I did not
present a very imposing appearance, but too angry to care.
"Let go of her at once," I cried.
The man did so; but as his eyes swept over me I realized
that he had not been responding to my order. He had simply found a new
interest.
"Be careful," said Miss Perkins in a low voice. Then, as
the man reached out for me, she stepped between us and spoke to him in
a sharp voice. She spoke English; to my surprise the man answered in
the same language, and in a rich Irish brogue.
"Will you be listenin' to the tongue of the old bitch,"
he exclaimed. "Don't be interfering now, you lads; I saw the little
darlin' first…. Only see the golden hair of her!" And, pushing Miss
Perkins rudely aside, he caught a strand of my hair in his dirty
fingers.
At that interesting moment another of the soldiers called
out--not in English, but in French--and the Irishman released me. A man
on horseback appeared from beyond the carriage.
The rider was obviously an officer. His uniform, in
contrast to those of his men, was a model of military neatness. His
cuirass and helmet had been polished till they shone. The waving plume
in his helmet was as snowy white as his tightly fitting breeches. The
gold epaulets and the gold-hilted sword slung at his side confirmed his
rank, and even the dust of the road did not hide the fact that his
boots were of the finest leather.
"Thank heaven," said Miss Perkins, with a sign of relief.
At once she cried out to the officer, in French. "Your assistance, sir,
if you please! Or does the Holy Father allow his soldiers to molest
helpless Englishwomen?"
Leaning forward, one arm on the pommel of his saddle, the
officer inspected us with insolent deliberation before replying.
"You travel, madame, through a troubled country at a
troubled time. You must expect some slight inconvenience. We are on the
track of a dangerous criminal. Have you seen such a man?"
"We have seen no one," Miss Perkins replied.
"Then you will not object if we search your carriage, to
make sure no one is hidden there?"
"You doubt my word?" Miss Perkins demanded. "I had always
been led to believe that Roman officers were gentlemen."
"They are soldiers first," was the curt reply. "Even now,
madame, some of my men pursue two suspicious characters who are
following your carriage. They must have been guilty, or they would not
have fled at the sight of us."
"Yet I have heard that the sight of papal soldiers is not
always welcome," said Miss Perkins. "Even to the innocent."
The officer's lips tightened.
"Stand aside, madame. Corporal, inspect the carriage."
One of the men saluted and moved forward. With a shrug
Miss Perkins stepped out of his way.
"A helpless woman must yield to bullies," she said. "Be
assured, sir, that the British consul will hear of this."
"The British consul is some distance from here," said the
officer. "I advise you not to be so free with your tongue, madame."
I thought this very good advice, and dared to poke Miss
Perkins in the ribs, a gesture she ignored. I couldn't imagine why she
was being so belligerent. Her speeches were provocative; yet my anxious
ear seemed to detect an underlying note of uncertainty, as if she were
worried about something other than the perilous situation in which we
found ourselves.
The search of the carriage was quite thorough. The
soldier even lifted the seats. Finally he descended and saluted again.
"No one, sir."
"I told you so," said Miss Perkins.
The clatter of approaching hoofbeats prevented the young
officer's reply. He turned as several other soldiers rode up. It was
not necessary for them to report failure; they had no prisoners. I
heard Miss Perkins give a soft sigh.
The officer turned back to us.
"It is necessary, madame, for me to ask you the identity
of the two men who rode with you."
"I have no idea," said Miss Perkins calmly. "Until you
mentioned them, I was unaware that we had any such escort."
The officer was not stupid. When he asked the question,
he watched me, not Miss Perkins. As he had hoped, my face betrayed my
surprise at her answer.
"Indeed," he said softly, his eyes still on me. "Then I
fear, madame, that you must come with us."
"Impossible," said Miss Perkins angrily. "We are already
late. I do not wish to be delayed. It is dangerous to be out after dark
on these roads."
"More dangerous than you realize. It is no use arguing
with me, madame; you have no choice. Get into the carriage, or my men
will assist you to do so." As she hesitated, sputtering angrily, he
added in a soft voice, "I myself will assist mademoiselle. She has said
nothing; perhaps she is less foolish than you, and is amenable to
persuasion."
He began to dismount. I looked at Miss Perkins, making no
attempt to conceal my alarm. She nodded at me, and said clearly.
"Perhaps, sir, you will send a messenger to Prince
Tarconti, telling him that you are holding his granddaughter a prisoner
and that she will, therefore, be delayed."
The officer's reaction would have been amusing if I had
been in any mood to find humor in the situation. He stood motionless,
one foot still in the stirrup. Then he finished dismounting and came
toward us. His expression was no longer hostile.
"This young lady is the granddaughter of Prince Tarconti?"
"You may accompany us to the castle and see for yourself,
if you doubt," said Miss Perkins.
"But, madame--why did you not say so at once?"
"You gave me no opportunity, sir," said Miss Perkins, now
in control of the situation and enjoying it immensely.
"But then--you will accept my apologies, madame? My
apologies, and my escort. The roads are dangerous; I would not have any
relation of the Prince in danger through my negligence."
"Certainly, sir," said Miss Perkins graciously. "Would
you care to join us in the carriage?"
The officer accepted the invitation with alacrity. His
name, he informed us, was Captain Raoul De Merode. He was not a
bad-looking man, though I thought his features too sharp and his dark
eyes too close-set. When he removed his helmet his appearance was
improved, for his face was softened by thick brown hair, scarcely
darker in color than his tanned countenance. But I was not misled by
his smile. He had been ready enough to be rude--perhaps worse than
rude--to two undefended women when he thought them unimportant. I knew
Miss Perkins was no more deceived by his present courtesy. She had some
hidden motive behind her actions, but what it was I could not guess. I
could only follow her lead, trusting to her better understanding.
One thing she certainly wanted was information. Adjusting
her plume to its former cocky position, she leaned forward and asked,
"Who is this dangerous criminal you are pursuing, Captain? A
murderer--a brigand?"
"One might call him a brigand. Or a traitor. He is quite
a famous character in these parts; you would not have heard of him,
being strangers here…."
His voice was as smooth as cream, his face guileless, but
suddenly I had a feeling that he and Miss Perkins were playing a game
of wits, in which I was only a spectator.
"If you would tell me his name I would know whether I had
heard of him," said Miss Perkins, showing all her teeth in a broad
smile.
"They call him Il Falcone," said De Merode. This time he
got no reaction from either of us. I had never heard the name, and if
Miss Perkins had, she was too clever to betray the fact.
"The Falcon," she translated, unnecessarily. "How very
romantic!"
"Childish," De Merode corrected, with a snap of his even
white teeth. "These people are like that--like spoiled children who
don't know what is good for them. But the games they play are sinister,
dangerous games, and one day they will be punished as they deserve."
"By their fond papa," said Miss
Perkins gently.
"His Holiness is the spiritual father of us all," the
captain said sternly. "He is also the ruler of these peasants. By
disobeying him they offend God twice over."
"How you must dislike your present service," said Miss
Perkins. "For a daring young officer to pursue ragged peasants…."
"A soldier does not question his orders. And, to be
truthful, it is not the peasants who give us trouble. Without the
anarchists to stir them up, they would be docile enough. The rebels are
men of the so-called educated classes, who have read too much and
thought too little."
His thin lips curved in a smile, as if he appreciated his
own bon mot.
"Is this Falcon person an educated man, then?" Miss
Perkins inquired.
"I don't know who he is, or what he is. If I did…"
I could contain my curiosity no longer. "Do you mean that
this man's identity is unknown? How can that be?"
"He is an elusive creature," De Merode said. "And he
commands a certain loyalty--though to use that word of the brigands who
make up his guerrilla troops is to do them too much honor. We have
caught and--er--questioned several of his men. They died without
divulging his name.
Miss Perkins' face grew stern, and despite the warmth of
the day I felt a sudden chill.
"They--died?" I repeated.
The captain's eyes turned to me.
"They were executed, mademoiselle. The price of treason
is death--even in your country."
Under the concealment of her skirt Miss Perkins' fingers
found my hand and pinched it warningly. I subsided; but there was no
doubt in my mind that De Merode had tortured the unfortunate men who
had fallen into his hands.
"You spoke of guerrilla troops," said Miss Perkins. "Does
this man have his own army, then?"
De Merode's thin lips curled.
"They are not soldiers, they are bandits. They hide
behind rocks and pick off my men as we ride. They rescue the prisoners
we arrest--men who have spoken out against His Holiness or printed
derogatory articles in their underground newspapers. They encourage the
peasants to resist taxation, they plaster the walls with inflammatory
posters. Wherever there is trouble in this province, you may be sure
that Falcon is behind it."
"Tell us about him," said Miss Perkins persuasively.
"The man himself? I wish I could. He doesn't always wear
a mask, and yet although he has been seen dozens of times, we have no
consistent description of him. Sometimes his hair is gray, sometimes it
is black; sometimes he is bearded, and then again he will appear with a
patch over one eye and flowing moustaches. He is always well mounted.
He rides like a centaur, and on at least three occasions he has escaped
capture by outriding his pursuers. Like his own person, his horses
change appearance." De Merode spoke as if he had forgotten we were
present. He must have recapitulated this information again and again,
in the hope of discovering some clue to the unknown's identity.
"Despite his gray wigs, he must be young; no elderly man could
accomplish the physical feats he had performed. A man who had access to
horses of such quality, and so many of them, must be a man of wealth.
And if the proclamations issued in his name are written by him, he is
well educated."
"Young, rich, well educated," Miss Perkins repeated.
"Forgive me, Captain, but you paint a portrait which is irresistible to
impressionable females. Don't tell me that he is also handsome, or we
will lose our hearts to your rebel."
"I don't know what he looks like," said De Merode
sharply. "And I would advise you not to say such things; I know you are
joking, but in these parts we have lost our sense of humor where Il
Falcone is concerned. Anyone who is suspected of assisting him is
subject to arrest. That is why--forgive me--I was suspicious of you.
One of the men who was following you looked like a certain Antonio
Cadorna, who is known to be one of the Falcon's lieutenants."
"But surely you don't suspect us now," said Miss Perkins.
"Hardly. There is no more loyal subject of His Holiness
than Prince Tarconti."
"Indeed," said Miss Perkins thoughtfully.
She pinched me again when I started to speak. Thereafter
she lapsed into silence, broken by ostentatious yawns. I decided she
had learned what she wanted to know.
If the yawns were meant as hints, they had their effect.
Soon the captain excused himself and resumed his place on horseback.
"Miss Perkins," I exclaimed, as soon as the carriage
started up again. "What on earth has--"
"Sssh." Miss Perkins gestured toward the carriage window.
One of the soldiers was riding close by. I didn't see how he could
overhear, but Miss Perkins' grave face kept me silent. She said aloud,
"Sit next to me, my dear, put your head on my shoulder and try to
sleep. We still have some distance to go."
I obeyed. We could then converse in soft tones without
being overheard.
"Are these ruffians really soldiers?" I whispered. "One
of them was Irish--"
"They come from all the Catholic countries of Europe,"
Miss Perkins replied. "Pio Nono has enlisted an army of crusaders, as
he calls them, so that he won't have to depend on the support of
Napoleon, whom he hates. Some of them are honest fanatics, but many are
only unemployed scoundrels who enjoy violence for its own sake. This
young captain is one of the fanatics. He must be related to the Belgian
De Merode who organized this army at the pope's request."
"And the Falcon--I have never heard such a wild tale! Why
did you deny knowing Antonio?"
"Because he warned me this morning that he and his friend
were wanted by the authorities. They accompanied us in order to protect
us from ordinary bandits, of whom there are plenty, but I knew that if
we should encounter a troop of soldiers, our guards would have to
retreat. They were no match for so many armed men."
"But why should they bother to protect us?"
"I'm not sure," Miss Perkins said. "But the rebels hope
for aid from England; they know they have English sympathy for their
cause, since they are fighting for freedom. Your grandfather seems to
be an important person; they may think you can influence him."
"He sounds like a man whom it would be hard to
influence," I whispered. "A hard man."
"We must not judge him…. I liked Antonio. I convinced him
that I sympathized with his cause, so he was ready to confide in me--up
to a point. I do not think he was completely candid with me. He
certainly did not tell me he was one of the Falcon's men."
"Then you had heard of this mysterious adventurer?"
"Oh, yes. I have followed the cause of Italian liberation
with some interest. Il Falcone is not one of the well-known heroes of
the movement; he seems to limit his activities to this province. Yet in
his own way he is famous enough."
"He sounds very romantic," I murmured.
"Don't be misled by the romantic trappings," said Miss
Perkins dryly. "If what I have heard of that young man is correct, he
is a very shrewd person indeed. The mystery and the swashbuckling serve
several practical purposes. They conceal the Falcon's identity and they
appeal to the peasants. As the Captain said, the poorer classes are
apathetic, and yet no revolution can hope to succeed without their
support. By playing the role of an Italian Robin Hood, our friend the
Falcon hopes to win them over. I don't envy him the job. The poor
creatures are so downtrodden, so wretchedly poor, so uneducated that
they are afraid to rebel."
"I think it is very exciting," I said.
Miss Perkins was silent for a long time. I began to think
she had no more to say on the subject. Then she spoke in a voice I had
heard from her once before.
"Exciting? Yes, I suppose it seems so to you. To me it is
noble and terrible and pitiful. They are so young, these boys like
Antonio, with their brave moustaches and their shining courage…. But I
have seen so many noble causes fail, Francesca. The race is not always
to the swift, and virtue does not always triumph. Not on this plane of
existence, at any rate."
This time, when she fell silent, I had no wish to pursue
the subject.
I fell asleep finally, but my sleep was troubled. I
dreamed of a rider, a man on a big black horse, who fled before me as I
tried to follow him. It was important to me that I catch up with him,
but although I seemed to be running faster than any mortal could run, I
made no progress for a long time. Then slowly I began to shorten the
distance between us. I still could not see the rider's face. Finally I
was close, so close that I had only to stretch out my hand to touch
him. As I did so, the figures of man and horse shifted, and changed
outline. It was no longer a rider I followed, it was a bird--a falcon,
with a cruel hooked beak, made for killing, whose flight took it
straight up into the sky out of my reach.
When I awoke, the interior of the coach was dusky with
twilight. It took me a moment to realize where I was. I was stiff and
aching with the discomfort of travel, and my dreams had left me in a
state of depression. Or perhaps it was not the dreams. I was now close
to the climax I had dreaded for days--the meeting with the unknown
people who would decide my fate.
The view from the window of the carriage was not one to
lighten dismal spirits. The sky was still bright, but I could not see
much of the blue heavens; towering hills, shrouded thickly by
underbrush, closed in around us. There was no sign of human habitation,
only trees and an occasional strange rock formation. The road, which
had never been good, had deteriorated even more, and the carriage
jolted badly. It was this rough motion that had awakened me, in spite
of the fact that Miss Perkins had wedged me into my corner of the seat
with a variety of bundles and bags.
"Ah, you are awake," she said, as I stretched my cramped
limbs and yawned. "I was about to rouse you; we are almost there."
"Oh, dear," I said involuntarily. "I hope--I do hope
Andrea is there to welcome us."
"Well, well, I daresay we will manage somehow even if he
is not. What interesting country this is! Quite picturesque in its
natural wildness. I noticed several tumuli--mounds, you know--that may
be Etruscan tombs."
Her cheerful voice put me to shame. I sat up and tried to
straighten my clothing and smooth my hair. It was impossible to see
anything out the window now, for trees lined the narrow road so closely
that their branches scraped the sides of the coach.
"Where is our escort?" I asked.
"They left us a few miles back--when Captain De Merode
was satisfied that we were really going toward the Castello Tarconti.
He promised, however, to call on us soon."
"He is a suspicious man, isn't he?"
"Yes, I fear he is not interested in your charming blue
eyes."
"I'm glad of that! I have never met a man who gave me
such an impression of cold cruelty."
Miss Perkins' reply was an anguished grunt, as the
carriage lurched into and out of a deep hole. Then she let out an
exclamation.
"Look, Francesca."
Through the window on her side of the coach I saw a view
that made me catch my breath. The trees and shrubs had vanished; we
were traveling along the edge of a deep ravine, with nothing between
the chasm and the wheels of the carriage. The slope was not really
sheer, and the rock face was broken by innumerable hardy plants and
small trees that clung tenaciously to the rough surface, but it was an
alarming sight. How far down the cleft descended I could not tell; the
lower slopes were hidden in vegetation. The sun's rays, striking down
through a break in the western hills, cast a strange and brilliant
light on the upper levels of greenery, and I had an impression of
uncontrolled, almost savage, exuberance--of vines and creepers and
brambles twined in a tangled mass.
Then I realized that Miss Perkins had been looking, not
at the ravine, but at what lay beyond, on the crest of the hill.
Only my nervous apprehension made Castello Tarconti
appear ominous as it sprawled across the hilltop. With the rich light
of evening gilding its stone and plastered walls, it really was quite
an attractive sight; the outline of the towers and chimneys and quaint
turrets against the evening sky had considerable charm. As I was to
learn, it was even larger than it appeared--a jumble of wings and
additions from different centuries, as multichambered as a beehive. The
Princes of Tarconti had palaces in Rome and Florence, and a villa in
the lake country, but this was their ancient family seat, and they
preferred the bucolic pleasures of the country to the pageantry of
cities and courts. So the original fortified tower had grown into a
great château, surrounded by extensive gardens and provided with
every modern comfort.
"A large place," remarked Miss Perkins, rubbing her nose
vigorously.
Neither of us spoke as the carriage strained up the last
steep approach and passed under a sculptured arch into a long avenue
lined with towering cypresses.
"At least the gate was open," I said, as we rolled along
a graveled avenue that was much smoother than the road.
Miss Perkins chuckled. "That's the spirit. We will regard
the open gate as a good omen."
The carriage emerged from the tree-bordered avenue into a
broad park with fountains and flower beds. The facade of the house,
immediately before us, was staggering in its sheer size. At each end
were towers topped by turreted spires. A great staircase mounted
superbly to a terrace whose balustrades were adorned with flowering
plants in pots--roses, orange trees, gardenias and geraniums, all in
bloom, perfuming the dying day.
To my relief we did not stop before the monumental
ascent; I was sure I could never get up the steps without stumbling.
Instead the carriage turned to the left and passed through a gateway
into a walled courtyard.
With the assistance of the driver we descended from the
carriage and stood looking about us. The courtyard was clean and well
kept, its surface neatly paved with stone set in geometrical patterns.
Shrubs and flowers fringed the perimeter and grew about the edges of a
small fountain. The doorway of the house was surmounted by a carved
stone crest, presumably that of the Tarcontis, but I could not make out
its details, for it was badly worn by time and weather.
Interesting as these features were, they were
overshadowed by the strange collection of objects that littered the
courtyard. Broken columns and headless statues stood all about;
fragments of sculpture were fastened to the stuccoed walls. Even the
pots that held the plants were of antique vintage. In a spot of honor
near the stairs, sheltered under an awning, was the strangest object of
all: a great stone box, carved all over with reliefs, and surmounted by
the semire-clining statue of a man. He was raised on his elbow, and his
loose robe had fallen away from one shoulder. In his hand he held a
cup, lifted as if in salute. The intimate gesture, the warm terra-cotta
brown of the material, and the stiff, almost sinister smile that curved
the carved lips gave the figure a frighteningly lifelike appearance. He
seemed to be looking straight into my eyes; and I felt as if we had
been greeted, if not welcomed, by the presiding genius of the place.
Miss Perkins let out a cry of delight. "It is Etruscan--I
have seen engravings like it. An Etruscan sarcophagus, no less!"
"Yes," I said. "No less, and no more. Do you suppose he
is the only one who is going to greet us?"
I was learning to speak coolly in order to hide my real
feelings--which, if I had displayed them, would have made me turn my
back on the Etruscan gentleman's unpleasant smile and scramble back
into the shelter of the carriage. I might have done it--for Miss
Perkins, abandoning me, had made straight for the carved coffin and was
peering at the reliefs on its side--had not the door of the house swung
open.
Our driver, who had been unloading our belongings,
straightened and called out.
The person in the doorway came trotting down the stairs.
It was not my grandfather, or any of the other members of the family,
but a stout, elderly woman whose face was the color of oak and who wore
a peasant costume--a white apron brightly embroidered, a laced bodice,
and a high, fluttering cap. She came straight to me, dropped a stiff
curtsy, and broke into a flood of speech. My Italian was improving, but
I understood only a word or two of her dialect--enough, however, to
believe that my arrival had been expected. Miss Perkins understood a
little more. She looked as relieved as I felt.
"It is not courteous, though," she remarked, as we
followed the servant into the house. "One of the family might have come
to welcome you."
"To be truthful, I am too tired to care," I
replied--though not quite truthfully. "If there is a room prepared for
us, and some water with which to wash off the stains of travel, I will
be content."
Tired and worried though I was, my first impression of
the place was not unpleasant. There was no Gothic gloom in the entrance
hall, with its broad flight of curving stairs, nor in the handsome
drawing room into which the servant escorted us. It was a room of
considerable grandeur, in the French style, with large windows and
light-painted paneling. There were paintings on the ceilings and on the
paneled walls, and fine carpets covered the floor. The furniture was
upholstered in rich velvets and brocades. A pianoforte of rosewood and
a great gilded harp stood in a bay formed by the curved windows. Before
the fireplace, like a throne, stood a big red velvet chair. The servant
indicated the person who was sitting in this chair and immediately
withdrew, closing the door behind her.
For some time no one spoke. I realized that the person
who had received us was deliberately postponing speech in order to
increase our discomfort. We stood there weary and travel-strained, like
beggars come to ask a favor of a great lady.
It was a lady who sat there, and I had no doubt as to her
identity. I had seen women of her type often; she was as typically
English as the old servant had been typically Italian. We were in the
presence of Andrea's Aunt Rhoda.
She was extremely thin and, I thought, tall, although the
fact that she was seated made it hard for me to ascertain her exact
height. Her face was long and narrow, her hair gray. Her eyes were gray
too, almost colorless. She wore a gown of heavy black wool, with the
latest-style hoops puffing out her skirts. Her hands, holding a piece
of needlework, were so long and thin and white they looked like naked
bone.
"Good evening, Aunt Rhoda," I said.
The lady, who had been staring curiously at poor Miss
Perkins, turned her icy gaze on me.
"I am not your aunt," she said. "You may address me as
Miss Rhoda."
I bowed my head without replying. I was beginning to be
angry. She might at least have the courtesy to ask us to take seats!
Like a subaltern making his report, Miss Perkins
introduced herself and explained how she had come to be employed by
Andrea. She concluded by asking after his health.
"My great-nephew is quite well," said Miss Rhoda. She
sounded a little less hostile, as if she had decided that this
strange-looking female did know how to behave, even if her bonnet was
not à la mode. "Unfortunately he is not here at present. He is
an irresponsible young man. It was only last week that we learned of
your coming. I have had rooms prepared for you. You will be shown to
them shortly. I detain you now because it is necessary that you should
understand the basis on which you are to be received here."
"Then," I said, "perhaps you will allow Miss Perkins to
sit down. We have had a tiring journey."
Miss Perkins made a deprecatory noise. Miss Rhoda ignored
her, she looked at me, if not with warmth, with a little more interest
than she had hitherto displayed.
"She may sit. You, miss, will remain standing before your
elders. And I suggest that you do not adopt that tone with me. Your
status is not so secure that you can afford to be insolent."
"What is my status?" I inquired. Miss Perkins did not sit
down. She shifted a little closer to me, and I was conscious of her
approval and support. I knew I could not allow this woman to bully me
or she would continue to make my life miserable. After all, she had
less standing in the family than I. She was not even related by blood.
"That of a dependent," said Miss Rhoda bluntly. "You have
a certain moral claim, no doubt; but it was not that consideration that
prompted the Prince to receive you here. I pointed out to him that his
family honor demanded that you be rescued from the disgrace and infamy
into which you would descend without his charity. Your father--"
"My late father," I interrupted.
I could say no more. I hoped that would be enough to
remind Miss Rhoda of the newness of my bereavement, for I knew if she
spoke disparagingly of my father I would cry. I did not want to cry in
front of her. As I was to learn, she was hard, but she had a strong
sense of propriety. She nodded grudgingly.
"We will say no more of that. I only mean to warn you
that your grandfather does not wish to see you. Avoid him. Do not
expect from him affection or kindness. He means to support you and
shelter you, but that is all."
"I understand," I said. "And now--pardon me, but it has
been a tiring day."
"Very well." Miss Rhoda rose. She was even taller than I
had thought; she towered over me. "Follow me."
As she swept toward the door, I glanced at Miss Perkins,
who shook her head warningly. We would talk later--and, I imagined,
with considerable warmth. Now at least we were assured of shelter for
the night, and both of us were too tired to think beyond that.
But the surprises of the day were not yet over. As we
crossed the entrance hall, preceded by the dignified black form of Miss
Rhoda, I heard footsteps on the stairs. Miss Rhoda stopped with a start
and muttered something under her breath. She turned quickly, as if to
speak to me; but there was no time. A man came into sight around the
curve of the stairs. Preoccupied with his private thoughts, his eyes
fixed on the steps, he did not catch sight of us until he was almost at
the bottom of the flight. He recoiled, so suddenly he had to catch with
both hands at the railing to keep from falling; and there he remained,
staring until the whites showed around his pupils.
He was elderly, but not old and fragile, as I had
expected him to be. His figure was still broad-shouldered and vigorous,
his gray hair thick. His features were marked by pride and temper, with
harsh lines scarring his brow and framing his thin-lipped mouth. Yet
there was something in the expression of his eyes--some vague
wildness--that did not fit the general impression of severity. At the
time I attributed this expression to surprise, for he certainly was not
expecting to see us.
After Miss Rhoda's warning, and what I already knew of
him, I would not have been surprised to see him turn his back in silent
disdain, or hear an angry tirade. Instead, incredulously, I beheld the
stern face soften. It took on a look of radiant joy.
"Larthia!" he whispered. His voice was that of a man
welcoming back to life a loved one whom he has given up for dead.
II
The room that had been prepared for me was not good
enough, my grandfather declared. Only one of the grand state apartments
would suffice. Miss Rhoda's furious objections were brushed aside, and
only my own insistence that I would prefer this smaller, cozier room to
the dust-enshrouded grandeur of the great bedchambers persuaded
Grandfather to leave matters as they had been arranged, until the
larger room could be properly cleaned and redecorated. Another
advantage to the original arrangement, in my eyes, was that Miss
Perkins' room was next to mine. They were not quite servants' rooms;
not quite. But it was clear that Miss Rhoda was not anxious to see me
comfortably settled. She expostulated loudly with Grandfather. It was
grotesquely comical to see them shouting at one another, for she did
not use a word of Italian, and he answered only in that language. Yet
they seemed to understand each other well enough. Finally Miss Rhoda
was shouted down. She withdrew, and the angry look she gave me
suggested that she blamed me as much as she blamed the old gentleman
for criticizing her arrangements.
My grandfather followed her out, after summoning an army
of servants, who were ordered to supply us with every possible comfort.
He was oddly formal, almost shy, with me. There were no warm embraces;
he bent over my hand, touched my hair; yet the affectionate smiles and
glances he gave me were a welcome I had not hoped to receive.
At last Miss Perkins and I were alone. She dropped into a
chair, her booted feet extended, and I followed her example. For a few
moments we stared at one another; there were so many things to say, I
hardly knew where to begin. Finally she sat up and examined the
contents of the tray that had been brought for us, and a smile of
pleasure spread over her weary face.
"Tea. Good India tea, I believe. We have Miss Rhoda to
thank for that, at any rate."
"We haven't much else to thank her for," I said.
"Imagine, her daring to tell me that Grandfather didn't want to have me
here. She must have known I would see him sooner or later, and that his
affectionate behavior would prove her a liar."
"Precisely why I suspect she was not lying," said Miss
Perkins, pouring tea. She took a sip and sighed luxuriously. "Our first
decent tea since London."
"But nothing could have been fonder than his treatment,"
I protested.
"Yes. Therefore we must conclude that between the time he
gave her her orders and the moment when he saw you something happened
to change his attitude. I observed that he addressed you by a name that
is not your own."
"Name?" I frowned. "I thought it was an Italian word for
welcome, or a term of affection."
"My knowledge of the language is fairly good, and I
assure you that is a word I have never heard. It was not your mother's
name?"
"Her name was also Francesca."
"Most peculiar. I don't know why I am so sure it was a
name, unless…. Yes; I am sure I have seen or read it, in that context.
But where?"
"I don't know." I drank my tea and felt the warmth relax
my taut nerves. "Nor do I really care. I am limp with relief, Miss
Perkins. I confess I was very much afraid of how we would be received."
"I know you were." Miss Perkins smiled at me. "You
controlled your anxiety very courageously. And see how well it has all
turned out! Now I suggest we make use of those basins of hot water the
servants have provided. The Prince said he would see us at
dinner--supper, I suppose I should call it--and we mustn't be late."
I agreed; and Miss Perkins retired to her own room,
where, I hoped, she would have time for a rest before we were called to
supper. I was no longer tired. The joy of finding that I was welcomed
and wanted had restored all my energy.
It was a pleasure to loosen my tight stays and remove my
travel-stained clothing. While I was doing so, one of the maids came to
unpack for me and help me with my toilette. By means of gestures I
persuaded her to return later. I wanted to be alone for a while--to
think, and to explore my new surroundings.
As I have intimated, the room was small and somewhat
shabby. However, the bed linen had been aired, and the huge armoire had
been cleaned out, ready for my clothing. I hung up my few dresses,
trying to decide what to wear. I had little choice, for there had been
no time to have mourning made before we left London, and only three of
my gowns had been dyed a suitable black. Then, unable to contain my
curiosity any longer, I went to the window.
The room was on the third floor of the castle, so the
view was splendid. Daylight still lingered, though the light was gray
and melancholy in the deeper recesses of the uneven ground. The distant
vista was empty of life; only steep hills, completely covered by dark
pines and tangled underbrush, lined the horizon. Nearer at hand the
castle grounds descended in a series of terraced gardens to the valley
below. On the left, half hidden behind a clump of trees, was a small
building too ornate for a shed or a servant's cottage. The roofline was
like that of a miniature castle, with battlements and a tiny tower. As
I contemplated this structure, straining my eyes to make out details
through the gathering darkness, a light sprang up in one of its
windows. So the little house was inhabited. I wondered by whom. It was
the sort of place that might have belonged to one of the faerie knights
in the French romances.
A knock on the door signaled the return of the maid, so I
tore myself from my musings and let the girl go to work, unpacking and
helping me dress. Teresa--for that was her name--was a pretty child,
with the coal-black hair of the Roman native and a rounded figure that
would one day be fat. Now it nicely filled out the short-sleeved white
blouse and laced bodice she wore with a brightly embroidered skirt and
apron.
Before long Miss Perkins joined me, and fell into
conversation with Teresa, hoping to improve her knowledge of the local
dialect. Her painstakingly learned Italian was of limited use, since
the accent and vocabulary were so different. Miss Perkins' attempts to
imitate her speech reduced Teresa to red-faced gasps, as she tried to
restrain her laughter. Miss Perkins soon put her at ease by chuckling
loudly at her own errors, and the two of them had quite a merry time.
Teresa was an efficient maid, as I would have expected a
servant trained by Miss Rhoda to be. She would not allow me to do
anything for myself, even taking the brush gently from my hands when I
started to do my hair. As she brushed, she murmured, "Bella--molto
bella…" and I smiled at her, for I recognized that word.
When I indicated that the brushing had gone on long enough and started
to pin my hair up, she objected, and indicated, by gestures, that I
should allow it to flow loose down my back. I shook my head. I had not
worn it so casually since I was a child.
Miss Perkins, who had followed the discussion with
interest, said, "Do as she says, Francesca. She would not make such a
suggestion on purely aesthetic grounds; either it is the local style,
or it has been requested by someone who has a right to do so."
"Do you think Grandfather--?"
"We will soon find out," said Miss Perkins, for Teresa
was indicating that we should follow her.
We would surely have gotten lost without a guide. The
room into which Teresa finally ushered us was not the formal parlor we
had seen before, but a smaller, more pleasant chamber on the ground
floor. It had French doors that stood wide open, admitting the perfumed
breeze from the gardens. Darkness was almost complete, but the room was
brilliantly lighted with dozens of wax candles. Two men occupied chairs
on either side of a low table, where a chessboard was set out.
My grandfather rose quickly to his feet as we entered.
His clothing was that of an earlier, more colorful era-knee breeches of
brown velvet and a matching coat trimmed with gold braid. The hand he
extended to me twinkled with jewels.
He frowned slightly at the sight of my somber bombazine
dress with its simple white lace collar. My only ornament was a
mourning brooch of jet with a lock of hair under glass. Father had had
the brooch made years before, with Mother's hair. I had prized off the
back and added one of his brown curls.
Grandfather's frown turned to a smile as he touched my
hair, and I knew it had been by his orders that I was wearing it loose.
His hand resting gently on my shoulder, he turned me to face the other
man.
He had not risen from his chair. In the first moment of
seeing him I had been misled by his curling fair hair, but my start of
joyful recognition was premature. A second glance told me that this was
not Andrea after all. It must be Stefano, his brother; the resemblance
between the two could only be that of close kinship. Stefano's features
were like his brother's, but his face was thinner and not so tanned.
His eyes had the same sapphire sparkle, but their expression lacked
Andrea's cheerful candor. His dress was quietly fashionable; the stark
white-and-black evening garb contrasted with Grandfather's more
flamboyant suit. He was balancing a slim black stick between his hands,
and as I returned his critical stare with interest he lowered this to
the floor and started to rise.
Then I realized the truth, and felt my cheeks turn warm
with embarrassment. He was lame. Without the stick he would not have
been able to stand up, and even with its aid he leaned noticeably to
one side.
During the slow and obviously painful movement his eyes
did not leave my face. Now the corners of his narrow lips curved
slightly. I had the ridiculous impression that he had deliberately
delayed rising from his chair so that I would have time to misjudge
him, and then feel guilty for doing so.
When Grandfather introduced us, I found that my tentative
identification had been correct. Stefano greeted Miss Perkins in
English, and with perfect courtesy. Then he turned a satirical eye upon
me.
"My dear Miss Perkins, are you sure you and Andrea found
the right Miss Fairbourn? This infant doesn't look old enough to be out
of the schoolroom. What on earth am I to call her? I don't know her
well enough to use a pet name, and the more formal mode of address--"
"Francesca will do nicely," I interrupted. I had felt
sorry for him when I saw his infirmity, but his sarcastic manner of
speaking about me, as if I were the infant he had called me, irritated
me very much.
His thin smile broadened.
"I see you have a mind of your own--and a tongue to go
with it. But pray be seated, Francesca, and you too, Miss Perkins.
There are several matters to be explained before you meet the rest of
the family. From now on regard me merely as a voice. I am here to
translate; the sentiments I express will be those of his Excellency. He
understands English--better, I sometimes think, than any of us
realize…."
He turned his sardonic smile on the old gentleman, who
glowered back at him without making the slightest indication that he
had comprehended; but I rather thought that he did understand quite
well.
"In any event," Stefano went on, "he refuses to speak the
language. It is his way of annoying Miss Rhoda. So, I am here. And I
must first tell you that initially he was opposed to your coming. When
your father's letter arrived he was unbearable for several
days--muttering curses like a stage Shylock. It was Andrea who
persuaded him to behave sensibly. Andrea is the favorite here; Andrea
can persuade him to do almost anything. It is to your advantage,
Francesca, to keep on the good side of Andrea."
"I only wish I could," I replied. "I had hoped he would
be here."
"Oh, he has gone off on some jaunt or other," Stefano
replied, with a curl of his lip. "He is quite a gay blade, my handsome,
athletic brother…. But he was here long enough to tell us of the
unfortunate situation in which he discovered you."
The tone and the implication were cruel. I felt tears of
shame and vexation rise to my eyes. Before they could spill over and
disgrace me completely, Grandfather burst into a torrent of agitated
Italian. He even went so far as to shake a fist under his grandson's
nose. Stefano laughed.
"The Prince says I must apologize. He also remarks that
Andrea's conduct was worthy of his name. You see how it is? By
murdering a man, my brother has raised himself in our grandfather's
esteem. But"--as the old man began sputtering again--"perhaps we should
abandon that subject. Andrea, in short, insisted that you could not be
abandoned; and the Prince agreed that you might come here so long as
you kept out of his way. Is it clear now to whom you owe your
reception?"
I nodded and exchanged a meaningful glance with Miss
Perkins, who had been listening as interestedly as I. She had been
quite right about Miss Rhoda; however antagonistic the woman might be,
she would not have risked a direct lie. Again Andrea had been my good
agent. It was like his modesty to have given so much of the credit to
his brother.
Stefano continued to watch me with the same fixed smile.
His mouth was a contradiction; the lower lip was full, a sign of
passion and sensuality, while the upper lip was so narrowly cut as to
be almost invisible. If the laws of physiognomy were true, his was a
nature in which the emotions warred with the intellect--and his sour,
cynical look showed that resentment had overcome both his intellect and
his other emotions.
"Very well," he said, after a moment or two. "The next
question is this: Why did our esteemed ancestor change his attitude
toward you? For I am to inform you that you are the new favorite. If
Andrea doesn't take care, you will supersede him. I am myself in the
dark as to this. Do you have any ideas?"
I said nothing, and after a moment the keen blue eyes
moved from me to Miss Perkins. She shook her head.
"Hmmm," said Stefano. "The Prince refuses to explain
himself. He always does. Well, then, I am to inform you that you are
his dear granddaughter and the beloved daughter of the house. Pleasant,
is it not? But I fear you must face some hostility, Francesca. Miss
Rhoda is not well disposed toward you. She dislikes almost everyone,
and she was very jealous of your grandmother, the Prince's second wife.
Then there is Galiana--"
Here he was again interrupted by Grandfather, who had
been listening with increasing signs of impatience. I had suspected
that we were getting quite a few of Stefano's personal opinions, in
spite of his claim to be merely a translator. I thought the Prince said
much the same. Stefano continued to smile.
"I am relieved of my duties," he said, with mock
distress. "We are to go in to the others now. What?" He turned to the
Prince. "Oh, yes, I am to assure you of his affection; you are to come
to him with any difficulties, and you are to tell him that you
understand what I have told you."
I turned to the old gentleman, who was leaning forward in
his chair watching me with affectionate anxiety. Words seemed too
flat--especially English words--so I smiled and put my hand on his. He
clasped it tightly, then raised it to his lips.
"A touching moment," said the dry voice I had already
learned to dislike.
A footman appeared out of nowhere, as a good servant
should, and opened the door. I cast an appealing glance at Miss
Perkins. Imagine my surprise when I saw that Stefano was offering her
his arm in a most gentlemanlike fashion. He walked with a perceptible
limp, but more nimbly than I had expected, though he leaned heavily on
his cane.
The hall was very long, lighted by candles set in heavy
silver sconces. Grandfather chatted cheerfully, smiling down at me and
patting my hand as we walked side by side. Stefano and Miss Perkins
were behind us. They were speaking, but I was unable to overhear them.
At least Stefano had been courteous to Miss Perkins. She
had been unusually silent during the interview; but then she had not
been given a chance to speak. I was somewhat surprised that no one had
questioned her about the trip and the arrangements Andrea had made with
her. Well, but we were here, safe and sound; there was no need to go
into unnecessary detail.
I was occupied with such speculations as we walked the
length of the long, quiet hall, my hand on my Grandfather's arm. With
his affection to support me I was not afraid of meeting the other
residents of the castle, but if Miss Rhoda was an example of what I had
to expect I was not looking forward to the others.
Then the footman opened a pair of doors at the far end of
the corridor, and stood back. There were several people in the great
drawing room. Miss Rhoda I knew. The other two were strangers. My eyes
fixed themselves on one of them. She was the most beautiful girl I had
ever seen.
Girls know when they are pretty. Mirrors may lie, but the
eyes of young men do not, and even in our unworldly school atmosphere
we had not been totally deprived of masculine company. Brothers,
fathers, and uncles had been allowed to visit; the Misses Smith had
entertained us with occasional evening soirees at which gentlemen of
under thirty might appear; even in church, when our minds ought to have
been on higher things, we had not been unmindful of the young men who
took advantage of those occasions to survey the Misses Smith's students.
I knew I was not ugly. My complexion was the favored pink
and white, my features were regular, my eyes blue. I also knew that my
flaxen hair would be appreciated in a country where the people are
predominantly brunette. I was, as my cousin had mockingly observed, of
small stature. I had no reason to become stout. I must confess that I
had a fairly good opinion of myself when I walked into the drawing room
that night.
But this girl! A mass of coal-black hair, shining in the
candlelight; great black eyes, soft as velvet, framed by feathery
lashes and brows that might have been shaped by the brush of a master
painter; a mouth…. Well, in my jealousy I thought her mouth a little
too small, a little petulant. But it was a perfectly shaped Cupid's
bow, and the features I have not mentioned were no less exquisite.
As we entered, she moved her embroidery frame out of the
way and rose. Her height and her figure were as perfect as her face.
She bent in a curtsy that displayed the grace of her movements and the
abundance of her flowing locks.
The older ladies had to be presented first. I was forced
to turn my eyes away from the girl, but I was conscious of every move
she made.
Miss Rhoda had not risen in deference to my grandfather's
rank. From her expression it was clear that nothing less than the
presence of royalty--British royalty--would have brought her to her
feet. She wore a magnificent gown of plum-colored velvet with skirts so
wide they completely hid the chair in which she was sitting, giving her
a startling appearance of sitting on air. A Gorgon would have looked
less grim.
The other elderly lady's gentle face was in pleasing
contrast to Miss Rhoda's. She wore mourning that was extreme even by
the severe standards of her class. Not a touch of white or color, not
even the deepest purple, lightened the somber black of her gown. Her
jewels--bracelets, rings, and a collarlike necklace--were of jet beads.
From her widow's cap hung a heavy black veil that framed her
magnificent pure-white hair. Her face was almost as pale as her pearly
hair, without a trace of color in lips or cheeks, but her eyes, though
sunken, were as bright and black as the jet beads. She was a striking
study in moonlight and shadow, and I could see that once she must have
been as lovely as the dark girl--her daughter, if resemblance was any
clue.
So fascinated was I by this study of past and present
beauty that I was slow in hearing the name by which the two were
introduced. When I realized what Grandfather had said, I started. The
lady of pearl and jet smiled faintly.
"It is a pleasure to meet you, signorina," she murmured.
"Contessa." I made a rather clumsy curtsy and turned to
acknowledge the introduction of her daughter. "Contessa…."
I could not say the name. I knew it well from my father's
stories of the past. Count Fosilini, the pursuer of my mother, the
cruel rival of my father…. Could these two be his widow and daughter?
The two families had been friendly, distantly connected, if I
remembered correctly. This was a shock I had not expected in all my
worst forebodings.
Then I told myself firmly that I was being foolish. The
old rivalry was far in the past. Neither of the Fosilini ladies showed
any signs of recalling it. The younger countess smiled in a
particularly friendly manner and indicated a chair near her own, which
I took. She did not speak at first; but after the others had begun to
converse, she leaned toward me and said softly in French,
"I hope you will be happy here, Mademoiselle Fairbourn.
It will be a pleasure for me to have a young lady of my own age to talk
to."
Her French was not very good, but her accent was
adorable. I thought she seemed shy. I was soon to learn that this
impression was erroneous, and that the young lady was far from subdued
when her mother was not present.
"You are very kind," I said, returning her smile. "If we
are to be friends, as I hope, you must call me Francesca."
"Ah, a good Italian name! Mine is Galiana. It was the
name of a famous beauty of olden days, a lady so lovely that her native
town went to war to keep her safe from the evil man who wanted to marry
her against her will."
Her tone was so complacent, and her pretty face so smug
as she told this little anecdote, that I was forced to laugh. I laughed
too loudly; Miss Rhoda broke off her interrogation of Miss Perkins and
stared balefully at me. I lowered my voice.
"How nicely you embroider," I said admiringly, leaning
forward to examine the square of ivory satin on which Galiana was
working a design of flowers in bright silk thread.
"Thank you. My mother has tried to teach me, but I will
never embroider as well as she. That is the second altar cloth she is
making for the chapel."
Then I realized that the Contessa had been watching us.
She smiled sweetly as I looked at her, and turned her embroidery frame
so that I could see what she was doing. The work was certainly
marvelous. The background was a rich crimson velvet, on which her
ingenious fingers had fashioned little figures of saints and prophets.
Their robes were done in gold thread, with such intricate stitchery
that the folds of the drapery looked three-dimensional. Tiny pearls and
brilliants adorned the crowns of the female saints, and a border of
Latin verse surrounded the whole.
"It is lovely," I said respectfully. The Contessa
inclined her head but did not reply, and I was groping wildly for some
means of continuing the conversation when the door opened and a servant
announced that the meal was served.
Just at that moment, when I ought to have been relaxing
and appreciating the fact that still another apprehension had proved
groundless, I was conscious of a strange sensation. It was almost
physical in its intensity, like an insect sting squarely between my
shoulder blades. I had risen; now I turned, unconsciously defensive,
and met the intent stare of a woman who had appeared as if by magic
behind the chairs on which Galiana and I had been sitting.
She was short and squat, with a broad peasant face. Her
features were coarse and unprepossessing; they were rendered even less
attractive by the abundance of hair distributed about her countenance.
The hair on her head was as coarse as black wire and as lusterless as
the fur of a dead animal. Her eyebrows were half an inch thick; they
grew together in a single bar and were paralleled by a distinct
moustache. She was clad all in black, of a peculiarly rusty appearance,
and her expression, as she stared at me…
I decided I must have been mistaken about her inimical
look. As soon as I turned, her black eyes lowered submissively. Moving
with a stealth surprising to so large a woman, she picked up the
Contessa's embroidery frame and workbag. She moved bent over at the
waist, as if in a perpetual state of obeisance, and the Contessa paid
her no heed whatever. No one else seemed to see anything out of the
way, either, except for Miss Perkins, who was staring at the woman as
openly as I was.
Grandfather had offered his arm to the Contessa, while
Stefano escorted his aunt. That left Galiana and me and Miss Perkins to
go in together. As we followed the others, I whispered to Galiana, "Who
is that woman?"
"What woman?" said Galiana.
"The one in black, who took your mother's work for her."
"Oh, Bianca," said Galiana indifferently. "She is the
Contessa's maid."
"That unsightly creature?" Miss Perkins exclaimed. "Not
that I mean to be unkind, but--"
"Oh, she is ugly, very ugly," Galiana said cheerfully.
"She is also dumb, and very stupid. But she adores my mother; she would
do anything for her."
"One of the Contessa's charities?" said Miss Perkins.
"How good it is of her to protect someone whom no one else would
employ."
"My mother is a saint," Galiana said seriously. "She
would have entered a convent after Father's death, if it had not been
for me. As it is, she works endlessly for the Church. Her charities--"
But here she was forced to stop. We had entered the
dining salon and were shown to our places.
The main meal of the day was in the early afternoon, so
this was supposedly only a slight repast before retiring. As course
followed formal course, I began to think that if this was a sample of a
light meal, I should soon become plump. Fish, soup, game, poultry,
salads of all kinds, fruit, elaborate sweets…. We were waited on by
half a dozen footmen and served a different wine with each course.
I sat next to Grandfather, who kept urging me to eat.
Conversation was general and rather stilted because of the presence of
the servants; but there was one lively exchange, when Miss Perkins, in
response to a question about our journey, described our encounter with
Captain De Merode. She censored the account considerably, avoiding any
mention of acquaintance with the two "brigands" whom the Captain had
been pursuing, but even in its abridged version the story produced
shocked exclamations from the audience. Grandfather was indignant until
I explained that the Captain had been quite courteous after he learned
who I was.
"Ah," Grandfather said, somewhat mollified. "Then it is
excusable. I will speak to the Captain, all the same."
"He is a man of good family, devoted to His Holiness,"
said the Contessa, who had scarcely spoken up to that time. "His zeal
is excusable--admirable, even--your Excellency."
Miss Rhoda demanded a translation of the last two
speeches. That is how I know what was said. When Stefano had obliged,
Miss Rhoda shook her head.
"Such rudeness could never happen in England," she said.
"Do tell me, Miss Perkins, what is being worn at court these days."
"That should be a safe topic," said Stefano. "We don't
discuss serious matters at table, do we, Aunt? Only dull banalities. I
feel sure Miss Perkins can hardly wait to describe the latest fashions."
Miss Perkins did her best, but this was one topic on
which she was not well informed. The rest of the meal passed in
comparative silence, and finally we returned to the drawing room.
I could hardly wait to be alone with Miss Perkins, to
talk over these new people and experiences. Before long, however, the
fatigues of the day caught up with me. A yawn which I was unable to
suppress drew Grandfather's attention, and he immediately dismissed me.
The military term is appropriate; it was clear that this household was
run on patriarchal terms. Swaying with weariness as I was, I was amused
to observe the nightly ritual, as each person stood before the Prince
to bid him good night. The ladies curtsied and Stefano bowed formally.
Grandfather acknowledged these gestures with as much condescension as a
reigning monarch might have exhibited; but after I had curtsied he took
me by the shoulders and kissed me gently on the brow.
Teresa was waiting for me when I reached my room, and I
was glad of her help. I could barely keep my eyes open long enough to
undress, and I slept instantly, without dreaming.
I always slept well in that cozy little room, and it was
as well that I did, for the next days were so busy and so full of new
impressions that I needed all my strength to keep up with the plans
Grandfather made for me. He had the energy of a young man and the
arrogance of an emperor.
He was also a busy man. The life of a leisured dilettante
was not to his taste, and much of his wealth came from various business
enterprises which he himself controlled. But he spent considerable time
on my concerns. First and foremost was the refurbishing of the
apartment he had selected for me. It had been my mother's, and since it
had not been touched since the day of her elopement, considerable work
was necessary to make it habitable. The rooms--bedroom, salon, and
several smaller chambers--were to be completely redecorated. Servants
were sent riding posthaste to Urbino and Parezzo carrying the Prince's
instructions to linen drapers, cabinetmakers, and painters; and the
following weeks were enlivened by the arrival of huge wagons bringing
the new furnishings. In the meantime servants cleaned, painted,
plastered; a wispy-looking little man arrived from Florence to restore
the ceiling paintings, which had been damaged by rainwater.
I also had to have an entire new wardrobe. My
grandfather's vigorous criticism of my drab clothing required no
translation. Among the battalions of servants--who were tucked away
when not required, somewhere in the sprawling attics like unused
tools--was a resident seamstress who was immediately set to work. It
was during this long and, I must confess, most enjoyable procedure that
I became better acquainted with Galiana.
I couldn't help liking her. Her dark, somber beauty did
not match her personality, which was as cheerful and gay as she was
dark. We communicated in an odd mixture of languages, mostly French,
although she did know a few words of English and helped me to improve
my Italian.
"From the first I knew we should be friends," she told
me, in her prettily accented French. "You cannot know how good it is to
have another girl here. Always when I come I am bored, bored!"
"Then you and your mother don't live here?" I asked.
We were rummaging among the fabrics in a storeroom,
trying to select something for a morning gown. I held up a length of
rather faded lilac print.
"No, no," Galiana exclaimed. "That, it is for housemaids,
peasants." She snatched the fabric from my hands and threw it on the
floor with a theatrical gesture of disgust. "Live here? No, we have a
house over the mountain; but we come here often to stay, since our roof
leaks--is that the word?"
"That is the word," I agreed, smiling. "But why don't you
have the roof mended?"
Galiana opened her big black eyes even wider.
"But there is no money. My father was not a sensible man.
He spent it all, all. He was your mother's lover, you know."
I would have remonstrated with her regarding this term,
but I realized that Galiana did not know its implications, in English
or in French. So I said nothing, and she went rattling on.
"I am glad your mother did not marry him, for then I
would not be here, eh? Perhaps I would have been you! Ah, but that is
funny, is it not? I would be you, and you--you would not exist."
The oddest little chill ran through me when she said
that. For a moment I almost fancied that the merry black eyes had lost
their sparkle and were regarding me with cold dislike.
But the next moment she was laughing heartily as she
draped herself in a piece of heavy gold brocade, and stalked up and
down the chamber pretending to be Cleopatra.
The castle was a vast storehouse of treasures, including
enough fabric to clothe an entire boarding school, but Galiana declared
that most of it was too old-fashioned, or too worn, or inadequate in
some other way. So another messenger was sent off to merchants in
Florence. Of course I should not have expected to wear colors for
another year; but I told myself it would not hurt to have the fabric on
hand. If Grandfather should insist that I disobey society's rules about
mourning--which he was quite capable of doing, since he preferred to
ignore my poor dear father's very existence--then filial duty would
require that I obey.
I don't like to think how shallow and vain I was at that
age. In fact, when I look back on my behavior during those first weeks
in Italy, I am heartily ashamed of myself. My painful experiences ought
to have taught me that the vanities of this world are not to be relied
upon, but I did not want to think about the past. All the happy
memories of my father had been overshadowed by the final revelations,
as a spreading ink stain can spoil a pretty gown. There were moments
when--I confess it with shame--I thought of him almost with hatred. It
would have been better for my character if I had been received by
Grandfather as he had originally intended to receive me; then I would
have had to win his affection with patience and good behavior. But he
gave me his love and I accepted it complacently--as we always accept
things we have not earned.
I am glad to say I had enough decency to be concerned
about Miss Perkins. It was not selfishness that prompted my interest in
her--not entirely--for by then I had smugly decided that I needed no
companion. Was I not the spoiled darling of a wealthy prince? I had a
friend of my own age in Galiana; and if there was some patronage in my
attitude toward the girl, I wasn't aware of it. I thought of myself as
being very kind…. Oh, dear. It is so depressing to look back on one's
past failures.
At any rate, I saw little of Miss Perkins in the days
immediately following our arrival. I wasn't worried about her, for I
knew she could amuse and entertain herself anywhere; if she went to
Purgatory instead of Heaven, she would poke her head into all the dark
corners and interrogate the attendant imps about the various methods of
torture. Of course we met at meals, but I did not speak to her at
length until one bright afternoon a week or so after we arrived.
Galiana was with her mother, who spent many hours in her room reading
and meditating and praying. I went out into the courtyard looking for
amusement, and there I found Miss Perkins seated on a fallen column.
Her hands rested on her knees and she was staring solemnly at the great
sarcophagus with its statue of a reclining Etruscan.
"Did you know that his Excellency your grandfather
excavated that object himself?" she demanded, motioning for me to take
a seat beside her. "Your cousin the Count informs me that there is an
entire Etruscan cemetery not far from here. I do hope I shall have time
to see it, and your grandfather's collection of treasures, before I
leave."
"Leave?" I stared at her. "But, Miss Perkins--"
"Well, my dear, I was hired to bring you here and I have
done it," said Miss Perkins.
She turned her cheerful smile on me. I was conscious, all
at once, of paler streaks in her iron-gray hair, and of the deep lines
in her face. Impulsively I threw my arms around her.
"Miss Perkins, please stay. There is a great deal more
for you to do. I need you. Please don't leave me alone."
"But, Francesca, you are not alone. You have a whole new
family, and you are the pet. Why do you need me?"
"I don't know," I mumbled. "That is--I know I have been
very fortunate. But I would like you to stay. Unless you have duties,
connections, in England--"
"No, I am quite independent. However--"
"Oh, splendid. I will ask Grandfather now."
"Wait--Francesca, don't be so impetuous--"
I paid no attention. Leaving her staring after me, I ran
up the steps and into the house. I did have the courtesy to knock
before I entered the library; and the gruffness of my grandfather's
voice as he shouted " Avanti!" made me think that
perhaps I ought to have waited. But it was too late to retreat now; I
opened the door.
As soon as he saw me, Grandfather's scowl turned into a
beaming smile. Stefano, who was seated beside the desk, did not look so
pleased. He lifted his black cane in a mocking salute.
"How charming," he exclaimed, as I stood with
Grandfather's arm around me. "Curls flying, frills and ribbons
fluttering, the fresh young face flushed…. We must have your portrait
taken in just that pose, Cousin."
Grandfather's right hand moved in one of those eloquent
Italian gestures, and Stefano subsided, with a vulgar wink at me.
The relationship between my cousin and my grandfather was
a curious one. Grandfather regarded Stefano with a mixture of respect
and contempt--respect for his cool intelligence, contempt for his
physical weakness. There were times when his infirmity troubled Stefano
a great deal, and then he kept to his own rooms, not even appearing for
meals. At other times he served as a useful adviser to Grandfather in
business matters. The two of them spent long hours in the library. The
discussions were not always amicable; one could often hear voices
raised in anger, even through the heavy carved door. Voices, did I say?
No; Grandfather was the only one who shouted. Stefano never lost his
temper, he only incited other people to lose theirs.
I was determined not to let him incite me, so I ignored
the wink and plunged into my speech. I knew some Italian by then, but
in my excitement I forgot what little I knew. Grandfather always seemed
to understand me anyway.
"It is about Miss Perkins," I exclaimed. "I would like
her to stay here. Couldn't she be my governess or companion, or
something like that?"
For once Grandfather didn't understand. He turned a
bewildered look on Stefano, who was watching me with his familiar
narrow smile. He translated what I had said and added, in English,
"What a high-handed young person you are, Francesca. It is in your
blood, I suppose. Interesting, how quickly personality can adjust to
changes in fortune."
He would have gone on with more sly digs at me if
Grandfather had not waved him to silence.
"You may have anything you wish, child," he said. "If you
want her to stay, it is settled."
"Just a minute," said Stefano. "You can't dispose of a
lady's person so easily. Suppose Miss Perkins doesn't want to stay."
"Oh, she does," I said eagerly. "She told me she had no
relatives in England and she is fascinated by Italy--especially by
Grandfather's antiquities. Couldn't she help you with that,
Grandfather? La vostra collezione--antichità--er--"
" Sì Sì, carissima. She
will be very useful."
" Grazie!" I stood on tiptoe and
kissed his cheek.
He patted me on the head. Courteous as he was, I could
see he was anxious to get back to his interrupted work. Before I could
take my leave, Stefano spoke again.
"One more question, Cousin. Why are you so anxious to
have Miss Perkins remain? She can't be of any use to you."
"It is just barely conceivable that I might be of use to
her," I replied sharply. "She is not young. I don't suppose she is
rich--"
"Ah, it is sheer benevolence on your part, then." Stefano
nodded. "What a beautiful thing to see."
That was the day when I realized how thoroughly I
disliked my cousin Stefano.
It was also the day when we received a formal call from
Captain De Merode. I had almost forgotten about him; and when he was
announced, I was fool enough to be flattered. He must be interested in
me after all, I thought.
We ladies were sitting in the main drawing room--the
Salon of the Sybils, as it was called, from the paintings that covered
the ceiling. This was a penance I paid daily, unless I could think of
some excuse for not joining in the teatime ritual--a ritual long
established and insisted upon by Miss Rhoda. I must say that she had
trained the servants to prepare the beverage and its accompaniments
quite nicely, and I found the delicious little sandwiches and cakes
some compensation for the dull conversation. I don't know what moved
the Contessa to join us; it couldn't have been the food, for she ate
like a bird. She displayed no especial warmth toward Miss Rhoda, only
her usual gentle courtesy, and since she spoke no English and Miss
Rhoda no Italian, conversation between them was severely limited.
Galiana told me that teatime was much less dull since Miss Perkins had
arrived, for that indomitable lady did her best to converse with
everyone, translating when possible, and carrying on a cheerful
monologue when no one else spoke. She found it heavy going, however;
Galiana was too intimidated by her mother to risk a remark often.
Usually the gentlemen did not join us for tea, but on
this particular afternoon Grandfather and Stefano were both present.
The latter, seated next to Miss Perkins, was discussing antiquities
with her, and Grandfather was giving me an Italian lesson, to our
mutual amusement, when the Captain was announced.
Grandfather rose. He was usually punctilious about such
courtesies, but I could see that he was honestly pleased to see the
young man. De Merode was in full dress uniform, and looked quite
handsome. His spurs, sword hilt, and decorations shone brilliantly; his
boots had been polished to a mirror finish, and his tall helmet, which
he held under one arm, had a lovely white egret plume.
He bowed over the hand of each lady, leaving mine till
last. There was design in that, I thought, and when his warm lips
lingered on my fingers, instead of brushing the air above them, I was
sure.
Grandfather--who could speak adequate French when he had
to--immediately took De Merode to task for his rudeness, but his
smiling manner showed that he was prepared to forgive and forget.
"My dear Prince--have pity!" De Merode covered his eyes
with his hand in mock repentance. "Credit me only with too much zeal in
my profession. I have come to beg forgiveness. I would have come
earlier, but we have been on duty day and night this past week."
"Ah." Grandfather leaned forward, forgetting his mock
displeasure in his curiosity. "Then the tales I hear are correct? That
wretched mountebank has appeared again?"
"You mustn't refer to our hero so rudely, Prince." De
Merode smiled meaningfully at me. "I believe the ladies find him very
romantic."
"Oh, certainly we do," Galiana exclaimed. "I am sure he
is young and handsome; aren't you, Francesca? I wish I could see him!"
"Galiana." The poor girl jumped at the sound of her
mother's soft voice. The Contessa went on, "I know you speak in jest,
but on this subject mockery is profane. This wretched man is defying
not only the law of man but God's vicar on earth. You should pray for
his soul and deplore his actions."
"Yes, Mama," Galiana muttered, lowering her eyes.
"What has he done now?" I asked.
"Rescued his printing press," said the Captain.
I had been expecting some tale of human interest--a poor
peasant freed of his taxes, a bandit snatched from prison--and this
anticlimax, I regret to say, struck me as very funny. I began to laugh,
and after a moment Galiana joined me. The Captain frowned.
"The press is more important than you realize," he said.
"An informer--that is to say, a patriotic peasant--gave us information
which enabled us to locate the abandoned hut in which the machine was
concealed. Unfortunately we arrived too late. Oh, the press had been
there, the evidence was unmistakable; but that demon had somehow gotten
wind of our intentions and anticipated us."
"But most of the peasants can't read," Grandfather
protested. "How stupid these revolutionaries are, to waste print on
such animals."
Stefano coughed gently. All eyes turned toward him.
Sitting at ease, dressed with his usual severe elegance, his only sign
of disability was his black cane.
"The gentry can read. It is this class, one supposes,
that your bird of prey wishes to convert."
"Precisely," De Merode agreed grudgingly. "Besides, it is
not only words he prints. I suppose, your Excellency, that your people
don't want to show you this inflammatory nonsense, but you ought to
know what your peasants are seeing." With a flourish he pulled a scroll
of paper from the breast of his tunic and unrolled it.
It was a drawing. Crudely done, but immediately apparent
to the meanest intelligence, it showed a figure dressed in flowing
robes and a papal tiara. One hand was raised in blessing under a
celestial glory (in the shape of a fat cloud). But the other hand was
employed in snatching a loaf of bread from the hand of a
miserable-looking peasant. A dead or dying child lay at the feet of
this man; beside him crouched a woman, menaced by a leering figure in
the same uniform Captain De Merode wore with such distinction.
Someone, I did not see who, gasped sharply. My
grandfather's face turned purple with rage; he snatched at the drawing.
"Wait," I said, putting out my hand. "May I see it,
Captain? I know something of drawing, and I think…. Yes; this sketch is
a piece of deception in itself. Its first impression is one of crude
vigor, effective but unsophisticated. Yet this is not the drawing of a
man untrained in art. The perspective, and the anatomy of the figures,
is quite good."
I had forgotten myself in my interest and had spoken in
English. Stefano tapped his stick on the floor and gave me a mocking
smile.
"Clever," he said condescendingly. "But I fear your
analysis doesn't help the Captain. This need not be a masterpiece from
the hand of the Falcon himself. He numbers educated men among his
followers."
He then proceeded to translate my comment. The only one
who seemed to be impressed or interested was Galiana, who looked at me
admiringly. The Captain merely nodded.
"As the Count has said, this tells us nothing."
"I fail to see, however," said Stefano, "why you brought
it here. Surely my grandfather needs no urging in his dedication to the
cause?"
"But, my dear Count, how can you even mention such a
thing?" De Merode's eyes widened. "I desire only to be of service to
his Excellency."
I doubted that, and so, from his skeptical expression,
did Stefano. What the Captain's real motive was I could not be sure,
but the result was disastrous. Grandfather was very upset. Before his
anger could subside, De Merode introduced another sensitive topic.
"I had hoped to greet Count Andrea," he said, accepting a
sandwich from a tray that was offered to him. "Where is he?"
"You know Andrea," Stefano said casually. "Always the
gadfly. Actually, he has been in Rome on family business."
"Really? That's strange. A mutual friend mentioned to me
that he had seen the Count in Genoa a few weeks ago."
Genoa, as everyone knows, is a northern Italian city.
There was no apparent reason why the name should have struck that
assemblage of gentlefolk like a cannonball. Grandfather's face had lost
some of its ominous color; now the blood rushed back into his cheeks.
Stefano's eyes narrowed; Miss Rhoda made a sudden movement, her skirts
rustling; and Galiana let out a little squeal.
Thanks to Miss Perkins' interminable lectures, I knew why
they had reacted as they did. From the northern part, in the darkness
of night only two weeks before, the Thousand volunteers had set forth
with Garibaldi for the liberation of Sicily. That they had landed, and
had had some military success, we all knew, for Grandfather subscribed
to the official Roman newspaper. It was always several days late in
reaching us; and, as Miss Perkins liked to point out, its reporting was
far from unbiased; but even the papal press was forced to admit what
all the rest of the world knew--that Garibaldi's ragged forces were
making amazing headway against the trained troops of King Francis of
the Two Sicilies.
"But surely," I said--careful now to speak French, so
that everyone would understand--"surely it is possible to visit Genoa
for innocent reasons. Your zeal carries you too far, Captain."
The Captain, of course, made quick disclaimers, and the
conversation turned to harmless topics. Miss Perkins had been reading
Manzoni's novel I Promisi Sposi, which had become
a minor classic in thirty years since its publication. She and Stefano
managed to carry on a dialogue about the book. The rest of us were
silent, for the most part; Galiana and I because we had not read the
book, the Contessa because she seldom spoke at any time, and
Grandfather because…. Well, I thought I knew his reasons.
When the Captain took his departure, he bowed gracefully
over my hand, but this time I did not let it linger in his. The man was
somehow sinister. I was forced to admit that my foolish vanity had led
me astray. This tight-lipped fanatic, as Miss Perkins had called him,
had no interest in me as a woman. He had barely glanced at Galiana,
whose beauty would have held the admiring gaze of most men. He cared
only for the cause in whose name he was willing to commit acts of
horrible cruelty. But why had he come to visit us? Unless…
Knowing Andrea's ardent temperament, I could imagine him
taking up the cause of liberation, even though it was anathema to
Grandfather. Had not Miss Perkins said that some young aristocrats
followed Garibaldi? Yes, I could admit the possibility; and I am
ashamed to say that my reaction to the idea was of irritation. Surely
Andrea wouldn't be so foolish! Life was pleasant here in the castle;
would he risk losing all that comfort and luxury for a hopeless cause?
Now was that all he stood to lose. I had not forgotten young Antonio.
II
I found the Captain's visit even more disturbing in
retrospect than it had been in actuality. Thoughts of Andrea wounded,
lying in pain on the dusty plains of Sicily haunted me. The weather did
not help my mood. Wind and rain brought unseasonable cold, and darkness
set in early. My little room, once so cozy, seemed cramped and shabby.
When Teresa had finished dressing me for supper I paced restlessly
around the small chamber. Then it occurred to me that I would see how
the repairs in my new rooms were progressing. I was anxious to move
into them. Perhaps Grandfather would let me do so before the work was
finished, if the rooms were all habitable. The bedchamber, at least,
might be ready for occupation.
Snatching up a candle, I set out along the corridor. A
stair, another long hallway, a second stair--all gloomy in the
half-light, melancholy with the sound of the wind moaning around the
windows. The rooms themselves, unlighted and desolate, only increased
my gloom. It was clear that they were a long way from finished. Wood
shavings, pots of paint, stained cloths lay all about. The
high-ceilinged, empty rooms echoed to my footsteps. A gust of air from
one of the uncurtained windows lifted a corner of a dust sheet and I
started nervously. Imagine, then, my horror when I heard the sound of
footsteps rapidly approaching. There was no reason for anyone to come
here at this time of night, and in such frantic haste. The workmen had
left long ago.
I worked myself into a regular melancholy fit, and was
prepared for the worst. My relief was exaggerated when I saw a familiar
form in the doorway.
"Grandfather," I cried, with a nervous little laugh.
"Heavens, how you frightened me."
He was as pale as a sheet; the candle he held trembled
violently. He said nothing, only stared at me with a wild, haggard look.
Then I realized why he looked so. The doorway of the
sitting room was visible from his own room. Seeing a light where there
should be none--a frail, flickering shadow of light--in a room that had
not been inhabited since his adored daughter left, never to return, he
had thought…. I dared not contemplate what he may have thought.
"I came to see how the work is going," I explained,
taking his arm. "Come, let us go; it is dark here, and cold."
"Sì, Sì," he muttered,
yielding to the pressure of my hand as a child might. "È
molto fredo qui…." And he accompanied me into the corridor
with a faltering step quite unlike his usual brisk stride.
Once out of the room, he recovered some of his spirits,
but as we went on I saw that he was studying me with a frown. Suddenly
he said, "Your gown. It is not right."
Puzzled, I looked down at my frock. As I had half
expected, Grandfather had objected to my wearing black all the time, so
I had allowed myself to be persuaded to relax the rules just a little.
I was proud of this dress, which the seamstress had finished only the
day before. It was of gleaming white satin with an overskirt of black
lace and scallops of the same shadowy fabric around the sleeves.
Grandfather touched my jet mourning brooch, which
fastened the lace bertha.
"Jewels," he said slowly. "A princess should wear jewels.
Come. I will give you the ones that are yours."
"But--" I began.
"Yes, yes, it is necessary. I have wanted so long to see
you wear them. For me, carissima?"
It was impossible to refuse him; and, to be honest, I was
vain enough to be easily persuaded. I assumed he meant to offer me,
only for that evening, some of the family jewels that would have been
my mother's. Few women are strong enough to resist the lure of gems,
and I was no exception.
We strolled arm in arm to the library, and there he
seated me in a chair while he went to the Raphael madonna that hung
between the windows. I watched while he lifted the picture. Behind it
was the utilitarian gray face of a wall safe.
From the aperture Grandfather withdrew box after box of
crimson leather stamped with the family arms in gold. They were of all
sizes and shapes, and my anticipation mounted as he piled them on the
desk. Not until all had been removed and the safe closed and hidden
again did he begin opening the boxes.
The first was almost a foot square. When he took out the
contents I caught a great solemn flash of gold, and eagerly put out my
hand. Grandfather shook his head and with his own hands put the
ornament around my neck. I had no opportunity to examine it before he
came toward me with the next--a large golden brooch, which, with some
fumbling, he fastened to the lace at my breast. They came thick and
fast after that--a bracelet several inches wide, carved all over with
tiny figures of crouching animals; other armlets of sheet gold; a
second necklace, from whose woven gold chain hung the head of a fanged
dragon; gold filigree earrings so heavy they dragged at my earlobes…. I
held up my hand, filled with a mounting sense of oppression as the
massive gold pressed against my flesh.
"Please, Grandfather…. It is so heavy!"
"One more." And on my brow he placed a diadem of twisted
gold wires.
I knew the jewels were not family treasures, but the
parure of an ancient Etruscan lady, excavated, no doubt, from one of
the tombs on his property. The chill I felt from them was not solely
physical; it was eerie to reflect that the last warm flesh they had
touched was now dust. But I told myself not to dwell on such thoughts,
which were, after all, pure superstition. Had not the Princess of
Canino created a sensation by appearing at the ambassador's fete in the
parure of Etruscan jewelry excavated by her husband?
Grandfather's strange mood had lightened as he took out
the jewels; now, standing back to admire the effect, he smiled and said
something I did not understand. When my hands went automatically to my
head, to adjust the diadem, he laughed and spoke again; this time I
recognized the word "mirror."
There was a tall, gilt-framed mirror on the wall. It had
been chosen for the beauty of its carved frame, and the silvering of
the glass was somewhat worn. Perhaps it was this quality, or the dim
light--for the room was lighted by only a few candles--but the sight of
myself in the muddy surface of the mirror made me start back.
My face was annihilated by its frame of gold--around my
throat, at my breast, on my brow. For the most part the ornaments were
far too massive for modern tastes. But the workmanship was superb. The
first necklace was my favorite. The chain was composed of half a dozen
tiny individual chains woven into an intricate web. From it hung loops
of even finer chain, and a series of flower pendants, each covered with
the minute balls of gold, tinier than grains of sand, which were a
distinctive sign of Etruscan gold work. It was quite lovely, and by
itself would have been a charming ornament. I touched it gently and
said aloud,
"This must have been her favorite. Oh, Grandfather, may I
wear this tonight, just this one? I promise I will take the greatest
care of it."
I gave another start as Grandfather's face appeared in
the mirror next to mine. The distorting surface gave him such an odd
look--all staring eyes and smiling mouth. He understood my request, but
I did not find it so easy to understand his answer. He wanted me to
wear the entire parure to dinner! I expostulated. Not only was the
jewelry quite uncomfortably heavy, but I felt I should look ridiculous.
But Grandfather did not brook argument. So we started down the hall, my
hand on his arm; and the well-trained servants who lighted our passage
showed no sign of surprise at the sight of me.
Our entrance into the drawing room was sensational. The
others were gathered there waiting for dinner to be announced, and when
we came in Galiana bounced to her feet, knocking her embroidery frame
over. Even the imperturbable Miss Perkins exclaimed in amazement, and
Miss Rhoda let out a snort.
"How vulgar," she said loudly.
Grandfather took my hand and stepped back; he was
displaying me, like a newly purchased statue, and for a moment I
resented his possessive attitude. But the admiration in Galiana's face
reassured me; I made a careful curtsy, so as not to disturb the weight
that dangled from me. While Galiana fluttered around me, touching the
ornaments with greedy little fingers, I looked at the others. The
Contessa might have been in another room; she had not lifted her eyes
from her embroidery. As for Stefano…
I had not expected we would see him that evening, since
he had favored us with his presence for tea, but there he was, with
that black stick balanced in his fingers, looking me over with a cool
stare. Well schooled as his face was, I thought I detected an even more
fiery emotion than usual in his blazing blue eyes, and I made him a
mocking little bow. As the heir he probably regarded everything in the
castle as his own property. He would not like to think that Grandfather
would give me objects of such value.
"Well, Miss Perkins," I said, turning to that lady, who
was walking around me with her head cocked, in the same style in which
she was wont to examine works of art. "Have you ever seen anything so
lovely?"
"Hmph," said Miss Perkins, rubbing her nose. "Rather
overpowering, don't you think? Those earrings will tear your flesh,
child."
"Not for one evening. They are only a loan, Miss P. After
all," I added, as she still seemed uncommonly sober, "what better way
to display jewelry than on a model? I thought you were anxious to see
these."
"True, true." Miss Perkins stopped abusing her nose and
looked more cheerful as her antiquarian zeal overcame whatever scruples
had vexed her. "They are fascinating! Even lovelier than the Regolini
jewelry, if the description I read is to be trusted. This giant brooch,
or fibula, as it is called, is an amazing piece of workmanship. Look at
these rows of tiny animals, sphinxes and lions…."
A servant came to announce supper; I swept in on
Grandfather's arm, feeling like a queen. It wasn't easy to eat, since a
jangle of gold accompanied every movement I made, and the bracelets
kept slipping down over my hand. And throughout the meal, whenever I
turned to Miss Perkins, I found her watching me with the same puzzled
frown.
III
There was rain in the night, but morning dawned clear and
bright. By noon the sun had dried all but the deepest puddles, and I
decided to go out. I was restless and bored. Miss Perkins was in the
library pursuing some antiquarian search; Galiana had excused herself
to attend her mother, whose health, always delicate, seemed to be worse
that day.
I wandered out into the gardens in search of amusement,
but found none, only the usual small army of gardeners at work clipping
and raking and weeding. The acres of formal planting required constant
attention, especially at this time of year. The roses were at their
best, exquisite blooms of every shade from silvery white to a crimson
so deep as to be almost purple. This garden, less formal than the
others, had been laid out as a compliment to the Prince's English wife.
I could picture her, in the softly flowing gown and broad-brimmed hat
of half a century ago, walking along the graveled paths with her
spaniels, or sitting on one of the marble benches breathing in the
scent of the blooms.
The other gardens were in the Italian or French style,
with flowing water ingeniously employed to create a feeling of
coolness, not only in innumerable fountains but in water stairs and
quiet pools where lilies bloomed. There were artificial grottoes, with
statues standing in mosaiced niches. Peacocks strutted along the
terraces, shattering the somnolent summer air with their harsh cries.
The gardens were so extensive that I had not yet explored
them completely. I was in no mood to do so that morning--fountains and
flowers are not exciting enough for restless youth--but in lieu of
anything better to do I went on through alleys of close-grown box
higher than my head, under fantastic arches of greenery. Passing along
a tunnel of vines, I suddenly found myself in an open area bathed in
sunlight. All around were flowers growing in delightful
confusion--phlox, stock, roses, snapdragons; the tall blue spikes of
delphinium, carnations of mammoth size. Their spicy perfume filled the
air, which rang with the hum of insects seeking the nectar.
Before me were the walls and turrets of a little house,
which I recognized as the one whose fantastic roof I had seen from my
bedroom window that first night. Several times since I had watched the
distant casements turn gold as lights sprang up within to combat the
dark of evening, and I had idly wondered about the identity of the
occupant, but had never had the time or the inclination to pursue the
question.
Now I started along the path between beds of pansies and
dahlias. The little house was quite charming. Leaded windows broke the
austere lines of the stone facade. An octagonal tower at the left front
corner had a steeply peaked roof, like a dwarf's cap, and a quaint
little carved balcony. My curiosity aroused, I lifted my skirts in
order to ascend the steps leading up to the front door. Before I
reached it, the door opened and a man came out.
The dreamlike, fairy-tale look of the place had me half
convinced that it was unoccupied. I fell back with a cry of surprise.
Stefano--for it was he--also started violently.
"What are you doing here?" he demanded.
"I was unaware that this was forbidden territory," I
replied, recovering myself. "Even Bluebeard warned his wife not to
intrude on the chamber of horrors; if you wish to be undisturbed, you
might have said so."
"I am saying so now," Stefano replied, in a tone of
haughty irony. He folded his arms and leaned against the doorjamb.
"So this is where you hide, like a cross old hermit," I
said. "It is a pretty little cell, Cousin."
"I'm glad you approve," Stefano said, still blocking the
door.
"Aren't you going to invite me in?"
"No."
"You aren't very polite."
"That is a virtue I am seldom accused of possessing.
Don't sulk, Cousin, it spoils the shape of that charming mouth. I am
not discriminating against you in particular. No one comes here without
an invitation from me."
"Not even Grandfather?"
"Not even he. There is nothing to see," he added,
shifting his weight carefully from one foot to the other. "Only
bachelor quarters, austere and extremely untidy. No murdered brides,
hanging by their hair, no evidence of weird, evil rites; not even a
woman's forgotten shoe or ruffled garter, little Cousin."
I blushed furiously. I don't know which I resented
more--the crudity of the hint, or the fact that he had read my
unladylike thoughts with such precision. Stefano smiled.
"I'll give you a proper tour some other time, Francesca.
At my convenience."
"But I'm bored now," I said.
"Then you are a young woman with very few resources.
Read, embroider, play on the pianoforte, sketch, ride…. The Prince has
given you the gentlest mare in his stables."
"I can't ride alone. Why don't you come with me?"
There was some malice in the question. I wanted revenge
for his rudeness. But I swear I had no idea that I would be probing
into such a tender spot. Stefano's smile vanished; his face grew dark
with anger.
"Oh, well done, Cousin. However, lest you think your
triumph too complete, I must tell you that I did remount the horse that
threw me--two years ago, after my bones had healed in the inadequate
fashion you see. But I ride, in my own clumsy way, privately. I
certainly do not intend to give you the pleasure of jeering at me."
And with a lurch that almost threw him off balance, he
plunged into the house and slammed the door.
The echoes were still reverberating as I ran down the
flowery path. Tears of shame and anger clouded my vision. I had
assumed--though I don't know why I should have done so--that Stefano
had been crippled for years, perhaps since birth. That was bad enough;
but for a man to be struck down in the full flush of his youthful vigor
was certainly tragic. How he must rage against the cruel fate that had
injured him and left his brother untouched!
As I have said, I am not proud of my thoughts during this
period. As I went on, dabbing at my eyes, rage won out over shame.
After all, he had mocked me first; no gentleman should even hint of
such matters to a lady! And how was I to know he was so sensitive about
his affliction? A truly noble character would have risen above it!
I went into the yew garden, where Alberto, the head
gardener, was delicately clipping the bushes which had been shaped into
fantastic animals. It was precise, exacting work, one clip for every
fifteen minutes of concentrated study; and it was very boring to watch.
I wandered on in the direction of the stables.
One of the stable cats had recently had a litter of
kittens. She was a lean, wild black beast, who was extremely suspicious
of my overtures. The cats were not pets, but working animals, tolerated
because they controlled the rats and mice that infested stable yards.
But the kittens were adorable, and I had hopes of winning their mother
with time. I thought I might also pay a social call on Stella, the
little mare that had been assigned to my use. Not being accustomed to
horses, I was only an indifferent rider, and I had managed to postpone
the lessons Grandfather wanted to give me by pointing out that I had no
proper riding costume. A very elegant one was even now in the hands of
the seamstress, and I looked forward to appearing in the high plumed
hat and black wool jacket, which was to be cut like a man's military
coat, with gold buttons and a high collar. I had no intention of riding
that day, certainly, but as a soft breeze stirred my hair, I rather
wished I could.
I was delighted, therefore, when I found Grandfather in
the stableyard, booted and spurred, watching his favorite steed being
saddled.
"Where are you going, Grandfather?" I asked eagerly. "May
I come with you?"
His stern face lightened at the sight of me, but he shook
his head.
"I am going to the tombs."
"The tombs from which my lovely jewelry came? But I want
to see them. You promised you would take me one day; why not now?"
"It is bad country," Grandfather said slowly. "Rough and
wild. Your pretty dress…."
"I'll change into an old dress. Please wait for me!" And
since he said no more, I turned impetuously to the groom and asked him
to saddle my horse. Then I ran quickly back to the house.
I put on one of the muslin dresses that had been dyed
black, and found a bonnet and gloves. On my way downstairs I passed the
room occupied by Galiana and her mother and heard from within the soft
drone of the Countess's voice invoking the Virgin. I am sorry to say
that instead of admiring her piety, I pitied her daughter. Poor
Galiana; how weary she must be of so much praying.
The library doors opened as I passed them, and Miss
Perkins appeared, blinking and rumpled like a sleepy owl. She had a
great thick book in one hand, with her forefinger inserted in the pages
as a marker.
"Where are you off to?" she asked, seeing my outdoor
attire. "Don't go far, Francesca; you still don't know the area well."
"It's all right, I'm going with Grandfather." I paused
before a mirror to adjust my bonnet. "He is taking me to see the tombs."
"The Etruscan tombs? Oh, Francesca, I don't think--"
"I know you would like to see them too, and I would ask
you to come, but I don't want to keep Grandfather waiting. He was ready
to leave when I asked if I might go with him. Another time, perhaps."
"Wait." As I turned away, my skirts flaring, she caught
my arm. I turned in some surprise, and saw that her face mirrored the
urgency that had been expressed in her tight grasp. "Wait, child, I
must talk to you. I have just found something--"
"I can't wait." I was not stronger than she, but I was
more impatient; I pulled away. "Excuse me, Miss Perkins, but I really
must run. As soon as I get back you can show me your great discovery."
I ran away, laughing, leaving her standing with her hand
outstretched and her lips parted in a frustrated appeal.
The horses were saddled when I reached the stableyard,
and Grandfather was pacing up and down switching at his boots with his
whip. He said nothing, only swung into the saddle and turned the
horse's head toward the gateway. Clumsily I followed suit. He seemed to
be in a bad mood, and I thought it best not to annoy him with questions.
Conversation would have been difficult in any case. There
was a trail, of sorts, but so narrow and overgrown and rocky that we
had to go single file. I had sense enough to let the reins lie loose.
My little mare had been chosen for her docility and intelligence, and
she picked her way through the brambles with delicate steps. The shade
of olives and firs softened the warmth of the sun, and the sky overhead
was as blue as my cousin Andrea's eyes. The could shadows lay cool on
the hillsides, dulling the brilliant green of the foliage.
Then we began to descend. Before long I regretted my
enthusiasm and began to wish I had not come. The slope was so steep in
places that I closed my eyes and clutched the pommel with both hands.
Branches plucked at my bonnet. When at last the track leveled out, I
dared to open my eyes and saw that we were riding slowly through a
green twilight. The trees here were evergreens in whose perpetual shade
the ground was damp and slippery. It was a strange, haunted place; one
would not have been surprised to see the slender form of a wood nymph
slipping through a ray of diffused sunlight.
The end of the ravine opened up into a wider area, though
it was still below the surface of the upper plateau, and I began to see
the gaping square-cut holes that opened into ancient tombs. The ground
here was not so overgrown, so I ventured to urge my horse into a faster
walk until I was beside Grandfather.
"Those are tombs, are they not?" I asked, in my careful
Italian.
He turned his head. From under his frowning gray eyebrows
his eyes contemplated me blankly, as if I had interrupted some train of
thought.
"Yes," he said. "Tombs. But these are poor--the tombs of
peasants. It is not here, the place we seek."
As we went on I was amazed at the extent of the ancient
cemetery. There were tombs of all types; small primitive rooms cut into
the rock, and larger ones of the tumulus type, in which mounds had been
raised over the burial chamber. Bushes and small trees grew thickly
over the swelling green slopes. In some places I could see the scars of
digging, but vegetation had covered all but the most recent holes. It
was not a place I should have liked to visit alone. The concealed
shafts were like traps into which one might easily tumble. The
atmosphere of the place was rather uncanny too. It was so still. No
bird sang, no small animals rustled through the coarse grass. I
remembered something Stefano had said the previous night at dinner,
when he and Miss Perkins were talking about the cemetery. The peasants
thought this was a haunted place, sacred to the dead. The poor
superstitious creatures believed in ghosts, and curses, and all manner
of pagan horrors. We, of course, were above such fears….
A little to the right of the rough path rose the towering
slope of the biggest mound I had yet seen. It must have been thirty
feet high. Around its curved base was a circle of masonry, big, roughly
hewn blocks of pale tufa, like a stone girdle.
"Is that it?" I asked. "The tomb of the jewels?"
"Sì, sì. La tomba della principessa."
Grandfather dismounted and came around to help me down. For a moment he
stood looking about with a puzzled air, as if he could not remember the
way. Then, taking my hand, he struck off at an angle, straight through
the weeds, toward the base of the mound.
It was hard for me to keep up with him. Once I tripped
over a stone and would have fallen if he had not been holding my hand.
We had gone halfway around the circumference of the mound before he
stopped.
The bushes were thicker here, obscuring the masonry at
the base of the mound. Grandfather pushed into them, tramping down
weeds with his heavy boots, thrusting branches aside. While he
searched, I tried to catch my breath. It was hot in the sun, and I felt
all tumbled about. I took off my bonnet and pushed the heavy hair back
from my face.
Grandfather turned. "Here," he said.
He had torn away some of the underbrush. There, in the
slope of the bank, the horizontal blocks of the surrounding stonework
had been cut out to form an entrance in the shape of a Gothic arch. A
single monolith filled the opening like a great stone plug. So
precisely had it been cut to fit the rounded sides that one could
scarcely see the crack between door and frame.
I wanted to ask if this was the original door, or one he
had placed there to keep vandals away. There were other questions I
might have asked, for I was genuinely excited at being so close to my
first ancient tomb. But my meager knowledge of the language failed; I
determined to ask Miss Perkins, when I returned. How thrilled she would
be by such an adventure! I felt a little guilty at having run off
without her. Well, but I would tell her all about it, and we would come
again another day.
I watched, fascinated, as Grandfather tugged at the
stone. There was no denying his antiquarian zeal; his suit was becoming
dirty and snagged by the rough stone. I wondered if a man his age ought
to be engaging in such heavy work. The stone must be weighted or
balanced in some clever fashion, or he could never hope to move it. It
must weigh hundreds of pounds--tons, perhaps, if it was very thick.
I didn't see the trick of the door, since his body was in
the way, but apparently he found a catch of some kind, for the heavy
block began to move. Without speaking or looking at me, he stepped
through the opening.
It was as if he had vanished, so black was the interior.
But when I peered inside, I saw him standing at the top of a flight of
stone steps. On a shelf inside the entrance was a box of candles. He
lighted one of these and held it up.
"Come," he said.
I hesitated. The candlelight was feeble; I could see
nothing beyond the stairs. From the pitch-blackness came a breath of
thick moist air, clammily cold and reeking of damp.
"Avanti," Grandfather repeated,
beginning to descend. His voice came back, echoing hollowly. With a
shiver I picked up my skirts and followed.
The stairs were few in number but slippery with damp. I
touched the wall once for support, but pulled my hand back at once; the
stone was slimy and cold.
At the foot of the stairs was a chamber some thirty feet
long, but so narrow it was hardly more than a broad passageway. The
walls were of stone. At shoulder height they curved sharply inward, so
that the ceiling gave the impression of a long, high vault. The room
was empty except for scraps of stone and rusted metal on the floor.
The candle burned blue in the dank air. I had already had
quite enough of tombs, and would have retreated then and there--after
all, there was nothing much to see--but Grandfather stalked on, holding
his inadequate light high like an ancient priest. At the far end of the
corridor-room were three openings, one straight ahead and one on each
side. The side openings were quite low; peering through one, I saw a
tiny stone-cut chamber, as empty as the first. The doorway straight
ahead had been filled with blocks of masonry, which now lay broken and
tumbled. Grandfather stepped over these blocks and passed into the
inner chamber. I followed; but I wished he had given me his hand.
Climbing over the rubble was not easy with my voluminous skirts.
The far chamber was also the last; there was no other
exit. It was a little smaller than the first, and had the same steeply
vaulted ceiling, smeared with lichen and mold. At the very end was a
low stone platform.
I think the musty air had dulled my wits; it took me
several seconds to understand the function of this rude bier, and when
I did, I felt a chill--a foolish qualm, since, after all, the purpose
of the structure had been funereal.
"It is very interesting," I said, with a brightness I
certainly did not feel. I didn't like the way my voice echoed in that
chamber of the dead; when I spoke again, it was in a whisper. "Can we
go now, Grandfather?"
"Here is where she lay," Grandfather said, his eyes fixed
on the low platform. His hand was trembling. The candlelight flickered
wildly across the stained ceiling. "Here…." And then he said something
else I didn't understand, something about remembering. He began to back
away, as if he were retreating from the presence of a monarch--or from
something he was afraid to turn his back on. I took one step after him,
and then what I had feared happened: his shaking hand lost its grip on
the candle, which fell to the floor and went out.
I cried out. The echoes of the scream went on for an
inordinately long time. When they died, I heard Grandfather stumbling
over the loose stones around the inner doorway. I was afraid to move,
for fear of falling and hurting myself, or touching the foul slime that
covered walls and floors. Naturally I assumed Grandfather was going to
get another light. I could see the tomb entrance, or at least part of
it--a square of brightness against the black of the interior.
Grandfather's body blotted out much of the light as he climbed the
stairs. And then--then…. The light disappeared. I stared into
blackness, unable to believe what had happened, although the dull,
grating thud of the closing door confirmed the evidence of my eyes.
I don't know how long I stood there, waiting…. For the
door to open, the beautiful glow of daylight, the sound of
Grandfather's voice apologizing, exclaiming, explaining how the
accident had happened…. I don't know how long it was before the truth
dawned on me.
I didn't really believe it. If I had done, I would have
gone into hysterics. Instead, I began making my slow, careful way back
toward that closed slab of stone. I couldn't bring myself to touch the
wall, so I had to move an inch at a time, sliding first one foot and
then the other along the slippery floor, stepping carefully over
obstacles as my toe touched them, balancing for long moments on one
foot while the other probed. Strain my eyes as I might, I could not see
even a crack of light. Those ancient artisans who sealed the bodies of
the dead away for eternity had known their business. Yet there was
light in that dreadful place--patches of lichen that glowed with a
faint greenish pallor, like the ectoplasm produced by mediums.
The tomb seemed very noisy. It wasn't until later that I
realized that the hollow reverberation, like the beating of a far-off
drum, was the pounding of my heart. My brain was too numbed to feel
fear, but my body was wiser.
When I reached the steps, my knees gave way completely,
somewhat to my surprise. But it was better to crawl up the stairs; they
were deep and slippery. One patch of lichen on the right-hand wall
looked exactly like the print of a giant, crippled hand. I thought, in
the stupor arising from terror, that the twisted fingers pointed the
way out. I followed their lead and crouched on the topmost step with my
palms flat against the unyielding surface of the stone. I thought for a
moment that it moved slightly. It was my arms that gave way; I was
close to losing consciousness, and too benumbed to realize it. But the
illusion gave me a moment of renewed hope. I rose cautiously to my
feet, careful not to trip over my skirts, and threw all my weight
against the slab. At least I meant to push. My body refused to obey me.
A curious lethargy had seized my limbs.
Leaning against the stone, cheek and hands pressed
against the roughness, I suddenly remembered what Grandfather had said
just before he dropped the candle.
"Here is where she lay…." But the Italian word for "she"
is lei; and that is also the word for the formal
version of the pronoun "you." One would use the formal version when
addressing royalty--a princess…. And with that realization other
unnoticed clues fell suddenly into place. The last, and most formidable
of them, was the very fact of my entombment. It had not been an
accident. If he had dislodged the slab by some ill-judged movement, he
would by now have opened it again.
I realized that I was being overcome by some miasmic
atmosphere in that long-sealed place. I seemed to feel the door move
again, and knew this time that my senses must be deceiving me.
The door swung open.
Sunlight blinded me. A rush of warm, sweet air--how
heavenly sweet, after the horror of the tomb--filled my straining
lungs. For a moment I stood swaying on the threshold. I thought I must
have fainted, and that this was a dream; for before me, his white shirt
dirt-smeared and torn, his eyes wide with horror, his fair hair curling
damply--was Andrea. With a long sigh of relief I fell forward into his
outstretched arms.
"You were never in serious danger, you know." How he knew
I was awake I could not imagine. I lay still, my eyes closed,
sensuously enjoying the touch of the sun on my upturned face. There was
something soft under my head, but I did not mind the hard ground, or
even the pebbles that pressed into my back. I would have endured
greater discomfort and felt myself fortunate.
I did not need to open my eyes to know that my first
impression had been incorrect. It was not Andrea, but Stefano, who had
released me. I had made that error once before--stupidly, for the
brothers were not that much alike. Certainly no one could confuse their
voices. Stefano's cool ironic tones were unmistakable.
I opened my eyes. He was sitting on a rock a few feet
away. The soft bundle of cloth under my head must be his coat. He was
in his shirt sleeves. Perspiration streaked his face and his bared
throat.
"If I was not in danger, why are you so pale?" I inquired.
"Exhaustion," Stefano replied coldly. "The exertion of
moving the stone was strenuous, for a cripple."
"I can't imagine how you did it," I murmured, letting my
eyes linger on the breadth of shoulder, displayed by his wetly clinging
shirt. Unperturbed by my regard, Stefano smiled.
"Because my leg is injured does not mean all my muscles
are atrophied. Can you stand?"
"No."
"I can lift you," Stefano said, "but I cannot carry you
any distance. So, unless you wish to remain here all day…."
"Oh, stop baiting me," I cried. "It was a horrible
experience! You may say I was in no danger, but I am still shaken; I
must rest a little…."
I turned my head so he wouldn't see me crying. Now that
the danger was over, I felt drained of all strength. After a moment
Stefano spoke in a gentler voice.
"I know it must have been frightening, Cousin. You are no
coward, I'll say that for you; I expected to find you screaming with
hysterics, or in a swoon. Rest a while. But Miss Perkins will be pacing
the floor until she sees you safe and sound."
"Then it was Miss Perkins who sent you? Or did you know
he would do this?"
"In God's name, how can you suggest such a thing?"
Stefano demanded in a rough voice, quite unlike his usual smooth tones.
"Do you suppose I would not have warned you if I had suspected for an
instant…. It was an accident," he added, controlling his voice. "You
can't believe it was anything else."
I raised myself on one elbow and looked earnestly at him.
"Stefano, you must tell me the truth."
Stefano studied me thoughtfully. Then he nodded.
"You are right. The truth is probably less frightening
than the things you are imagining. It all began here, you see--five
years ago, when he excavated this particular tomb. It is a very old
one, dating back to the early days of the Etruscan kingdom--the seventh
or eighth century before Christ. How it remained hidden so long, I
don't know. Many of the other tombs had been robbed. But this was
untouched; the rich treasure was still here. Weapons, lamps,
pottery--and the jewels you wore the other night. Also--the bodies of
the dead.
"Those in the outer chamber were mere heaps of dust. But
the inner chamber had been sealed. The Prince had to demolish the
barricade himself. He had difficulty forcing his people to come here at
all. Only a few of the bravest entered the tomb with him, and at the
sight of that enigmatic, walled-up door, they fled, screaming of curses
and vampires. So Grandfather took up chisel and hammer and attacked the
wall. His imagination had been fired by the fine things in the outer
chamber; as soon as one block had been removed, he thrust his head and
one hand, holding a candle, into the aperture.
"The air in such places is usually bad. One might expect
that the candle would not burn. But this one flared up, and the scent
that reached his nostrils was not noxious; it was dry and strangely,
spicely perfumed. As the candle flame leaped, he saw--her.
"She was lying on the stone bier at the far end of the
chamber. At first he thought it was a statue he saw, one of those
marvelous chryselephantine statues of gold and ivory, like the great
Minerva of Phidias described by ancient writers. She was all gold, from
her glittering gown and jewels to the golden hair streaming over her
shoulders, down her ivory arms and breast. Her face was one the great
Phidias might have claimed as his masterpiece, pale and unmarred. The
Prince stood transfixed; and as he watched, her pure perfection
suddenly crumbled. She fell into dust before his very eyes. The golden
scales of her gown collapsed, with the faintest of musical chiming, and
her diadem dropped into the hollow that had been her face."
I let out a little sound of horror, and Stefano nodded
gravely.
"It must have been an appalling sight; I remember my own
reaction when he described it to us, days later. He fell into a swoon
after that dreadful vision. One of his most courageous attendants,
venturing into the tomb in search of his master, found him lying on the
floor, cold and still as a dead man. He was ill for days, but as soon
as he could move, he insisted on returning to the tomb. We helped him
demolish the wall, Andrea and I--for the story had gotten about and not
a man on the estate would go with us, threaten as we might. There was
nothing on the slab, only the eerie suggestion of a vanished form,
outlined by the positions of the jewels that had fallen from it."
"I don't believe it," I muttered. "Such things don't
happen. He must have been dreaming. He was ill. He saw the jewelry,
fallen, as you saw it, and collapsed. In his delirium he imagined the
rest."
"That is what I myself believe," Stefano said. "But it
doesn't matter, does it? What matters is what he
believes. And he believes he saw her--the Etruscan princess, the
ancestress of our race."
I lay back, flat on the ground, and stared up at the blue
vault of the sky. Never before had I so appreciated the simple joy of
being alive, under the sun.
"There is one more thing," Stefano said slowly. "Among
the objects we found in the inner chamber were some silver jars that
had contained perfume or cosmetics. They were inscribed with a name."
"And that name was--"
"Larthia."
"So," I said, after a moment. "It was
Miss Perkins who sent you in search of me."
"Yes. She had no real cause to fear for you, only a vague
foreboding. But when she told me he had called you by that name, when
you first arrived…. You have the golden hair, the family blood. Such a
fancy might explain his sudden reversal of feeling toward you. He has
had…odd spells since the discovery, times when he doesn't seem to be
himself. They don't last long, they are infrequent, but…. I thought he
looked strange last night, when he had decked you out in his treasure.
And so I came. I--I met the Prince between here and the castle. When I
asked him where you were, he looked surprised and said he had not seen
you since breakfast."
"You saved my life," I said. "If I had been there longer,
I would have broken down."
"Don't thank me, thank your Miss Perkins. She has quite
redeemed my opinion of the English--which has been somewhat prejudiced
by Aunt Rhoda. A remarkable woman! She told me she had been haunted by
that name since you came. Seeing you wearing the jewelry last night
revived her memory. She spent the morning in the library looking for
the reference. Dennis mentions the tomb and the name in his book on
Etruria."
I sat up. My head spun for a moment, but soon I was able
to get to my feet. I felt exhausted.
"Can you mount without help?" Stefano asked, still seated.
"I am afraid not," I said apologetically.
He rose. Limping badly, he came toward me. He did not
have his stick. I knew, by the fact that he had forgotten this
essential aid, that he had been more alarmed than he implied; but his
face had settled back into its usual cold mask.
He helped me into the saddle, not without difficulty. His
horse was cropping the sour grass nearby, but he made no move to
approach it.
"Ride on," he said curtly.
I started to object, and then I understood. He did not
want me to see him struggling to mount. So I turned the mare's head and
set her into a walk. I heard nothing and I did not look back. After an
interval Stefano came up beside me, and, as the trail narrowed, went
ahead. We did not speak again.
I was not so resilient or so brave as I had thought. For
some time I had horrible dreams of being shut into dark places or being
pursued through underground passages by invisible horrors. I said
nothing to Galiana about the experience. In fact, no one knew about it
except Stefano--who never again referred to it--and Miss Perkins, who
brushed aside my emotional thanks with gruff embarrassment. Grandfather
behaved as if no such thing had happened and when, several days later,
he made a casual remark about taking me to the cemetery, "…which you
have not yet seen," I realized that the episode had been wiped from his
mind. I did not need Miss Perkins to tell me not to go in that
direction with him again, yet strangely I was not uneasy with him.
I had plenty to occupy my mind, and before long the
incident had faded in my thoughts, except for the occasional dreams.
The work on my new suite of rooms proceeded apace, and the dressmakers
from Florence arrived with cartloads of lovely fabrics. Galiana and I
forgot our other concerns when that rainbow assortment was carried in;
we reveled in India muslins and silver lace, in flame-colored taffeta
and azure moiré.
I had become fond of Galiana, although I often thought in
my smug way how typically Italian she was with her volatile moods--one
moment convulsed with mirth over some schoolgirl joke, the next pensive
and sad as she described her mother's failing health. Her black eyes
could snap with anger when one of the servants failed to obey quickly
enough, but her rages passed as quickly as the summer storm, leaving
her sunny and cheerful again.
Some of her traits annoyed me, however. One of the most
annoying was the way she behaved toward Stefano, when he chose to grace
us with his presence. It would not be quite accurate to say she flirted
with him, for she seemed a little in awe of him; but she hung on his
words with a breathless attention I found disgusting. He was not
particularly responsive; in fact his attitude was reminiscent of the
way a man might look at a favorite puppy or kitten, if the little
creature should suddenly break into human speech.
One evening she chose a seat on a footstool next to his
chair and never took her big black eyes off his face as he discussed
antiquities with Miss Perkins. Stefano left early that evening; and
next morning, as Galiana and I were preparing to go out, I spoke to her
about it.
"I didn't realize you were so interested in ancient
history, Galiana."
"I am not." Galiana giggled. She had a sweet,
high-pitched little laugh. "No, not at all."
"Then it must be Stefano who interests you," I said,
concentrating on tying my veil.
"But he is the heir," Galiana said calmly. "One day he
will be Prince Tarconti."
"Isn't that rather mercenary?" I exclaimed.
She didn't understand me at first. Neither of us spoke
French all that well, and we often had slight difficulty in
communicating. I was somewhat hesitant about explaining myself; my
exclamation had been made in the warmth of surprise; but when she
understood my meaning, she laughed and shrugged.
"It is always done," she said. "Oh, to be sure, I'amour--c'est
belle, certainement, mais n'est pas pratique. Perhaps I will
have a lover after I am married. And Stefano is not ugly. He is not as
handsome as Andrea, but he will do quite well."
I found this terribly cold-blooded, but I had to admit it
was the acceptable attitude for her nation and social class. In fact,
it was the common attitude in England as well. I had often listened to
the older girls at school discussing marriage; the question of dowries
and settlements and titles entered into the matter pretty frequently.
Galiana hummed to herself as she studied her reflection
in the mirror. I felt a stab of jealousy run through me. My new riding
costume was finished and I had thought I looked rather well. The black
wool was becoming and the dashing cut of the jacket set off my too-slim
figure quite nicely. The swoop of the plume and veil against my fair
hair was good too. But next to Galiana I looked like a child. She was
deliciously plump. I knew her neat little waist owed a good deal to
tight lacing, but the effect was excellent. Her riding costume was a
daring shade of crimson that set off her vivid coloring. It was a
little shabby, and if I had been more generous I might have been moved
to suggest that she share in the bounty of new clothes I was getting.
Grandfather would never have objected. But I was not noble enough to
rise above the challenge of her bouncing black ringlets and rosy
cheeks. Feeling a little out of sorts, I turned from the mirror.
"Let's go," I said. "The sky is clouding over; I don't
want to be caught in the rain."
We were going to the village. It was not far away, at the
foot of the hill where the castle stood, and I couldn't see why we were
not allowed to go alone; but whenever I rode out, a groom in the
Tarconti livery followed at a discreet distance. This was not only a
question of propriety, but also of safety; for there were bandits in
the hills, not only the mysterious Falcon's followers, but men who had
taken up a life of crime as a result of poverty or their own vicious
inclinations.
A trip to the village was a treat only because we got out
so seldom. According to Galiana, it had little to offer. We had hoped
of getting to Viterbo, or even Florence, eventually, but in the
meantime even Isola Turna was a novelty to me. The shop in the village
(there was only one of importance) had ribbons and buttons, sufficient
excuse for two bored girls to seek it out.
The sun had gone under the clouds by the time we reached
the town, making it look even more somber than it ordinarily appeared.
The houses were of dull gray stone, with narrow, suspicious-looking
windows. There were no trees and no flowers, not even window boxes,
such as I had seen in other Italian towns. A few lean dogs sprawled in
the dust of the main street. The central square was not unattractive,
but it was very dirty. The fountain had floating debris of all kinds in
the water, and the statue in its center was streaked with bird
droppings.
The church, dedicated to Saint Sebastian, had a facade of
the same gray stone. A single window and a flight of stairs leading up
to the door were the only features that broke the monotony of the flat
front wall. Even the bell tower was short and squat. Apparently the
church wall served as a sort of public notice board; a few tattered
papers flapped loose corners in the wind.
One side of the piazza had houses a little more
pretentious than the others we had seen, with stone balconies and
handsome windows. There were also a few small shops. One was a
café with rusty iron chairs set out on the stone paving. When we
came into sight the chairs were pushed back, conversation stopped, and
the patrons--roughly dressed, bearded men--stared at us as hard as they
could.
The shop we entered was dimly lighted and so filthy that
no respectable English merchant would have admitted to owning it. I
found Signor Carpaccio, the owner, unpleasantly obsequious; and I could
not help contrasting him with crusty old Mr. Peters, who had owned the
sweetshop in the village in Yorkshire.
The ribbons were not very pretty, but we bought several
yards of lilac twill, just to be buying something, and Galiana found a
crude little statue of Saint Sebastian for her mother. Poking around on
a shelf filled with carved stone figures, I selected a rather nice
little image of a cat. So we had several parcels when we came out of
the shop.
The clouds had thickened, and we made haste to remount.
Galiana shivered. She was a creature of the sun, and often complained
of the cold at temperatures I found pleasantly mild.
"Brrr! It is going to rain, I think. Let us hurry,
Francesca."
She set her horse into a canter at once and I followed,
with the groom behind me. We were almost out of town when a child
darted out of a side street, no wider than an alley, right under my
horse's feet.
I jerked on the reins so suddenly and so awkwardly that
even my gentle Stella was forced to rear, and I came close to tumbling
off. I dismounted as quickly as I could, without waiting for the groom
to help me. The child lay still, face down in the dirt.
I should not have moved it. Miss Perkins told me that,
later, but I was too frightened to be sensible. I caught the little
thing up and lifted it onto my lap. I use the indefinite pronoun
because I couldn't tell whether it was a boy or a girl. It wore the
loose robe-shirt all tiny children wore before they graduated to skirts
or trousers, and its hair was cropped crudely around its ears. It was
very slight; its bones felt as fragile as a bird's under my hands.
Its face was pale under a solid coating of dirt, and its
eyes were closed. My heart gave a great leap and seemed to stop. Then
the eyes opened.
"Thank God," I cried, forgetting my hard-won Italian in
my agitation. "Are you hurt, child?"
The groom, a stocky young fellow named Piero, was now
beside me. His Italian was difficult to follow, he spoke only the harsh
local dialect; but after he had passed his hands over the child's body
and limbs, he smiled reassuringly and spoke slowly. I caught the word "bene."
That, and his smile, made me feel better. The child continued to lie in
my lap, staring up at me with great velvety eyes. It looked very solemn
for such a young child. It was also very dirty.
Galiana had not dismounted.
"Come along, Francesca," she said impatiently. "It will
rain any moment. We will be soaked."
"But the child," I began.
"You heard Piero say it is not hurt. Put it down and
hurry."
Angrily I gathered the child into my arms and stood up.
It weighed nothing at all. I was looking around, wondering how to ask
Piero if he could locate its home, when the door of a nearby house
opened and a woman ran out. The shawl had fallen back from her gray
hair, and her lined face was anxious. She limped as she ran. I thought
it must be the child's grandmother. The small face came alive at the
sight of her. Stretching out two bony little arms, it cried, "Mamma."
The woman took the child, an operation made slightly more
difficult than it needed to have been because she was simultaneously
trying to curtsy. When the exchange was effected she pressed the infant
to her bosom and wrapped her shawl around its bare feet and legs. I was
still stunned by the revelation of the child's cry; the woman looked
far too old to be the mother. When the woman looked up at me she was
smiling, and I saw, with another shock, that her teeth were brown and
broken. I had expected her to rail at me, and I wouldn't have blamed
her; the child had moved too quickly for me to avoid it, but a mother's
concern is inexcusable. Instead she snatched at my hand and tried to
kiss it. I fumbled in my purse and pressed a coin into her hand.
"For medicine," I said. "Or a doctor, if…. Oh, Galiana,
tell her, will you, she doesn't understand me. A doctor should see the
child."
"Doctor?" Galiana looked baffled. "There is no doctor in
the village, Francesca. Do come! Such a fuss over a peasant child. They
are just like animals, my dear, they aren't easily hurt. If you don't
come now, I shan't wait for you."
Tossing her head, she rode away.
The woman was retreating, bowing with every step. The
child lay in her bosom; it was placidly sucking its thumb and still
staring at me. I looked helplessly at Piero. With a smile, he bent and
held his hands for me to mount. There seemed to be nothing else to do,
so I clambered back onto Stella and followed Galiana.
I made no attempt to catch up with her immediately. I was
puzzled and shocked by her attitude. It made me feel quite unfriendly
toward her. But she reined up and waited for me with an angelic smile
on her pretty face.
"I have just thought of something very amusing," she
said. "Did you hear what the woman said to you when she was mumbling
over your hand?"
"I couldn't understand her," I said shortly.
"Why, she called you by the name these ignorant people
give to the harvest goddess. They have a festival in the autumn, with
games and feasting; one of the girls is chosen to be the Principessa
Etrusca, as they call her. Stefano says it is a…What did he call it?"
She frowned prettily. "Oh, yes. It is a survival of the old religion,
and the girl who plays the goddess must bleach her hair yellow if it is
not that shade already. I suppose they confuse her with his
Excellency's princess--the one he found in the tomb with all her
jewels."
I jerked on the reins so hard that Stella stopped.
"What are you talking about?" I demanded.
"You must have heard of the princess," Galiana said.
"Everyone in the village knows about it, that's why they won't go near
the old tombs. You have yellow hair, like hers."
I looked sharply at her, but her smooth face was quite
innocent.
"Yes, I have heard about her," I said. "How strange. I
don't think I want to be taken for a goddess."
"It's your own fault," Galiana replied. "Getting involved
with these people. You'd better take a bath as soon as we get back,
Francesca. You look a fright, all covered with dust. And--" Her eyes
narrowed with malicious laughter. "I'll wager you have fleas, too. The
villagers all have them."
I lifted my chin in my most dignified manner and said
nothing. I had been about to apply my nails to a spot on my neck that
had developed a suspicious itch; but not for worlds would I have given
Galiana that satisfaction.
II
The poets say that beauty is in the eye of the beholder.
I never realized the truth of the statement until I next rode to the
village. This time Miss Perkins was with me, and I felt as if I were
seeing the place through new eyes.
Galiana insisted on coming. Any excursion was better than
staying at home. She had taken a fancy to Miss Perkins, although the
way she laughed at that poor woman's manners would have infuriated a
less amiable person. Miss Perkins didn't mind. "There is no harm in the
girl," she said, after I had indignantly described Galiana's callous
behavior toward the child. "She is the product of her class, Francesca;
she has never been taught to think of others. You mustn't blame her.
Perhaps you can help educate her feelings and tastes."
I couldn't be so tolerant. But I had to admit that
Galiana was not beyond hope. She came with us even though she knew my
reason for going was to inquire after the child.
We stopped in front of the house and Piero went to knock
at the door. A strange woman answered it. But she knew who I was, and
what I wanted; in a moment the child's mother came running out of the
house, whose windows and doorway were now fringed with staring faces.
She tried to kiss my hand. I could hear Galiana giggling as I hastily
pulled it away. There was no use trying to explain to her that it was a
sense of fitness, not fear of fleas, that made me reluctant. I had been
taught that one bowed the knee only to God and the Sovereign.
With Miss Perkins to interpret, I found that the child
had taken no harm. It was even then at play in the piazza. So we rode
that way, after I had given the woman a few coins. Her gratitude was so
exaggerated that I was reminded of Galiana's remarks about the
Principessa Etrusca.
I had told Miss Perkins about this theory and she was
inclined to agree. As we rode off, she looked thoughtful.
"I am afraid, Francesca, that you are about to become a
local saint. You must control your benevolence."
"Don't be sarcastic, Miss P.," I said sulkily. "You know
I am not benevolent at all. Only the cruelest brute could be
indifferent to an infant--and anyone would look like a saint next to
Galiana."
The other girl was a few feet ahead, and I was speaking
English, so I had no fear that she would overhear me. Miss Perkins
shook her head.
"It isn't only Galiana. This country is ripe for a
revolution. It is not quite as bad as France used to be; but the
tumbrils and the guillotine, tragic as they were, arose out of bitter
injustice on the part of the nobility."
She was surveying the mean little street as we rode, and
her face was both sad and angry.
"Look about you," she went on. "There is no school in
this town, no hospital, not even a doctor. Oh, yes, we have far to go,
even in England; but this country is still in the Dark Ages. Do you
know how old the child's mother is? Thirty-one! She looks sixty. She is
so badly crippled with rheumatism she can scarcely walk--the result of
living in damp, filthy old houses. Those houses belong to your
grandfather, Francesca. How long has it been, I wonder, since he
repaired any of them? Yet he is considered a kindly lord in comparison
to others in the province."
I was too shocked to answer at first. Miss Perkins rode
on, muttering angrily to herself, and I let her draw ahead.
I could hardly blame Galiana for laughing at the way Miss
Perkins rode; she was a figure of fun on a horse, for she had never
learned to post, and rolled around in the saddle like a two-year-old.
But she rode as she did everything else, with a grim determination that
overcame lack of skill, and that day her generous indignation lent her
dignity. By the time we reached the piazza she had forgotten her
libertarian sentiments, and the face she turned to me was beaming with
admiration.
"What a beautiful old town!" she exclaimed. "Look at the
carved stonework on that balcony, Francesca. The church cannot be later
than the fourteenth century. See the shape of the Gothic arches in the
rose window."
When she had finished exclaiming over the beauties of the
piazza, it looked quite different to me. The sun was shining brightly,
which may have helped. The fine weather had brought the townspeople out
into the air. Women filled great jars at the fountain. A group of
little children sat in the dirt playing some sort of game with pebbles
and bits of stick. I saw my small acquaintance among them, but did not
go to him (Miss Perkins had ascertained that the infant was of the male
sex and was named Giovanni), fearing that my attentions might alarm
him. I pointed him out to Miss Perkins, adding,
"His mother says there is nothing wrong with him; but see
how quietly he sits there. Surely small children should be running
around, shouting…."
"They are all too quiet," Miss Perkins replied, her face
darkening. "A diet of macaroni and vegetables gives one little energy.
Even the women move slowly, with effort. As for the men…" and she
snorted contemptuously.
There were certainly a number of men lounging about doing
nothing, while the women were carrying the heavy jars. Now that Miss
Perkins had pointed it out, I could see the lethargy that affected all
of them, even the busy women. They were not pale; no one who lived
under the hot Italian sun could help but be burned by its rays. But
they had a sickly look under their tans, and most of them were too thin.
Galiana was already before Signor Carpaccio's shop,
calling impatiently to us. Miss Perkins paid no attention. She jerked
her horse's head around and went bouncing across the piazza toward the
church. Laughing, I followed her, leaving Galiana to do as she pleased.
Miss Perkins rolled out of the saddle before Piero could
come to her assistance. He gave me a grimace of mingled amusement and
chagrin. I grinned back at him (Galiana was forever reproaching me for
my informal attitude toward the servants) and accepted his help in
dismounting.
Miss Perkins was standing at the top of the steps, her
head tilted back and her bonnet hanging by its ribbons as she
contemplated the carved Gothic window.
"What is the interior like?" she asked.
"We didn't have time to visit the church before."
Miss Perkins shook her head. "Tsk, tsk. People come all
the way from England, even from America, to see historic beauty of this
sort. You should not ignore--"
Luckily for me, we were interrupted by Galiana at that
point in the lecture.
"What are you doing?" she demanded. "Let us go to the
shop."
"I want to see the church," Miss Perkins replied coolly.
"What for?" Galiana asked.
"Have you ever seen it?"
"No, of course not. There is a chapel at the castello;
we hear Mass there, with Father Benedetto. Even you heretics must know
that…."
Galiana was beginning to learn that she could say such
things to Miss Perkins, but her expression was rather wary until Miss
Perkins burst into a shout of laughter.
"Heretics, are we? Well, for a good Catholic, you are
singularly ignorant about your own faith, my dear. This heretic will
help educate you, and we will begin by visiting this most interesting
and ancient church. Ha--but, what is this?"
She turned and peered near-sightedly at one of the
yellowed placards fastened to the facade of the church.
"It is a notice of taxes," Galiana said. She could
read--barely.
"So I see." Miss Perkins adjusted her pince-nez. "An
inappropriate notice for a church, is it not?"
Galiana sighed impatiently. Miss Perkins proceeded to
read all the notices, while we fidgeted. Finally she walked toward the
door. We were about to follow when there was a shift of movement all
over the piazza. For a second everything froze. The women stopped in
midstride, balancing their jars; the men looked like statues caught in
a dramatic gesture; even the children stopped pushing the pebbles
around in the dust. The next moment--it was amazing, how quickly it all
happened--the piazza was half empty. The women and children had gone.
The troop of soldiers came into the piazza two abreast.
They must have filled the narrow street from wall to wall. They carried
long muskets, with bayonets attached. Behind them came the cavalry, a
dozen or more mounted men--and Captain De Merode.
"What miserable-looking soldiers they are," I said,
remembering the Queen's Household troops whom I had seen on parade in
London. In comparison to their spotless uniforms and military
precision, these slouching rascals looked like scarecrows.
Miss Perkins shook her head. "Don't you remember the
Swiss mercenaries we saw in Civitavecchia--lazy, fat men whose muskets
were rusted with disuse? These men may look dirty, but their bayonets
are freshly polished…. Look at their faces--their eyes. The peasants
call them ‘lupi'--wolves."
"How do you know all that?" I asked in surprise.
"I talk to people," said Miss Perkins. "What is more, I
listen."
I took a closer look at the soldiers, who had spread out
around the piazza like troops occupying a hostile city. The villagers
had melted away; the chairs before the café were empty. But I
was aware of watching eyes, flashes of movement in doorways and
windows. The soldiers sensed the invisible watchers too. Now that Miss
Perkins had alerted me, I saw the ferocity of the bearded faces, the
animal keenness of the eyes.
The mounted men rode straight toward us. The Captain
lifted his hand, and the little troop came to a ragged stop around the
curving steps of the church. De Merode dismounted with a jingle of
swordbelt and spurs. He swept off his helmet.
"Ladies, what a pleasure to meet you here. I would not
have thought this wretched hole had any amusement to offer ladies of
your sort. And you, Mademoiselle--Parker? I was under the impression
that you had returned to England."
"Were you?" Miss Perkins did not bother to correct his
mistake about her name. "You do your spies less than justice, Captain.
I am sure you know everything that goes on in this district."
The word was ill-chosen--deliberately, if I knew my Miss
Perkins. The Captain scowled.
"My spies"--he emphasized the word--"are less efficient
than I could wish. I have not yet succeeded in the task my commander
honored me with."
"Honored?" I repeated, glancing at his unkempt soldiers
with a curling lip. I had learned this gesture from watching Stefano.
Apparently it was just as annoying on my face. De Merode's cheeks
reddened.
"Any service of His Holiness is an honor," he snapped.
"To be assigned to clean out this viper's nest of traitors is a duty
worthy of a soldier. There is no more dangerous post in the Papal
States, I assure you."
"I can see that," I remarked, glancing around the empty
square. "What dangerous mission have you come to perform, Captain?"
"Since you are here, you may watch," said De Merode.
Turning, he snapped out an order. Two of his men came forward. One was
carrying a roll of paper, the other a pot and a brush. Before long, the
facade of the church bore a new notice. From where I stood I could see
only one line of the printing--the number 10,000.
Miss Perkins scrutinized the notice. "So much money for
the capture of one local rebel? But I suppose you need not pay it, eh?"
"The money will be paid," De Merode said. "It is a small
price to pay for peace in this province; but a large sum for a poor
man."
His voice carried across the quiet piazza. He spoke
Italian, instead of the French he had been using; and Miss Perkins
answered in the same language and in the same loud tone.
"Larger than the thirty pieces of silver Judas earned….
You will excuse us, Captain. I have brought these two young ladies to
see the church. It is of great antiquarian interest."
She swept us before her through the heavy doors.
The interior was so dark, after the sunlight of the
piazza, that I stopped short, gripped by a wave of panic. The darkness
reminded me…. Then Miss Perkins caught my arm.
"Straight ahead. There is a heavy leather curtain between
this entrance and the body of the church."
It was not much lighter inside; the high narrow windows
were so encrusted with grime that little sunlight struggled in. Toward
the altar, some distance away, a few tiny candle flames burned bravely.
Galiana muttered, "I want to go."
"So long as you are here, you may as well say a prayer,"
said Miss Perkins. "If I do not mistake my saints, that statue is of
the Holy Sebastian; you observe the arrows protruding from his side,
like the quills of…. Say a prayer, Galiana, while we examine the
church."
Galiana obeyed reluctantly, falling to her knees before
the statue. It was a horrid-looking thing, of painted wood,
unpleasantly lifelike despite its crudity. Streaks of garish red
streamed down the saint's body from his manifold wounds, and his face
was contorted by a spasm of anguish.
Still holding my arm, Miss Perkins drew me to the far
side of the church.
"The reward," I said. "Was it for the Falcon?"
"Yes."
"But why make such a great show of putting up the notice?
One soldier could have done it."
"I don't understand that myself," Miss Perkins admitted.
"I think perhaps we should go back to the castle. I have an uneasy
feeling."
But when this proposition was put to Galiana, she made a
loud outcry. She had followed our desires with regard to the church;
the least we could do was let her visit the shop. Miss Perkins gave in,
but I could see she was still uneasy.
I began to share her feelings as we crossed the square
toward the shop. The mounted men had gone, but many of the foot
soldiers were still there, relaxing like men released from duty. Some
occupied the chairs outside the café. A waiter, wearing an
exceedingly filthy apron, was serving them wine. The others strolled
two by two or sat on the edge of the fountain.
At first the shop seemed to be deserted. Galiana called
the proprietor's name and after a moment Signor Carpaccio appeared from
behind a curtain at the back of the shop. He greeted us with his usual
obsequiousness and ran to show Galiana a tray of trinkets newly arrived
from Florence. They were cheap-looking things, shiny silver rings and
pendants set with mosaic, but Galiana's tastes, like those of a magpie,
were all for the cheap and shiny. She poked at the trinkets, bartering
like a fishwife. I joined Miss Perkins, who was examining the ceramics
I had seen before. The animal figures were rather appealing.
"Strange, how the talent survives," said Miss Perkins,
holding up a small glazed statue of a stag. "The Etruscans were
particularly skilled in the art of terra cotta."
While we were standing there we heard a burst of coarse
laughter from one of the soldiers at the café next door.
"I can't understand why they are still here," Miss
Perkins muttered. "They are stationed at Parezzo; from what I hear of
that city, there are wine shops and--er--entertainment of other sorts
more interesting than anything this poor hamlet can supply."
"Ask him," I suggested, indicating Signor Carpaccio.
When the question was put, the man shrugged.
"It is only this wretched outlaw, this Falcon. He has
sworn to tear down a reward notice if one should be put up. The
soldiers are waiting for him to come. But," he added quickly, as Miss
Perkins made a movement toward the door, "there is no reason for the
signorina to run away; the villain will not dare appear. He will
certainly be captured if he does."
"Of course he will appear," Miss Perkins snapped. "His
reputation depends on his keeping such rash, stupid promises.
Girls--come, we must go."
"But surely, Miss Perkins, he will wait till nightfall,
or till tomorrow, when the soldiers are less alert," I exclaimed. "It
would be madness for him to come now."
"Publicity is his aim, not caution," Miss Perkins
replied. "Where is Piero? We must leave at once."
Galiana, her eyes sparkling, joined me in pleading for a
delay. She was as anxious as I to catch a glimpse of the romantic
bandit. Unlike myself, she seemed to believe he would appear soon. I
could not believe any man, even a romantic bandit, would be so stupid.
No; the Falcon would steal into town after dark, that would be the
sensible thing to do.
However, Miss Perkins was adamant. She herded us out into
the piazza, where we found Piero waiting by the fountain. He was
chatting with one of the soldiers. The mood had relaxed. The drinkers
were still drinking, and some fluttering skirts could be seen among the
uniforms. The girls--for they were all young--did not seem to share the
fear of their fellow townspeople. They were giggling and flirting. One
bold-faced, black-haired beauty was strumming a stringed instrument and
smiling up into the face of the soldier who bent over her. As we stood
waiting for Piero to bring the horses, the girl struck a ringing chord
and raised her voice in song. It was a strange, wild strain in a minor
key, like a lament. I expected Miss Perkins would want to listen, but
she urged us to mount, and we turned toward the narrow street that led
to the castle.
We had almost reached it when a thunder of pounding
hooves was heard. A shot rang out. The voice of the singer rose to a
scream, and broke off. I tried to stop and turn around. The horses
reared and danced; and for a few seconds all was confusion. However, I
saw him come.
Like a bullet from a pistol barrel, the great black
stallion came plunging out of one of the narrow vincoli,
or alleyways--a space so confined it was a wonder a horse could pass
through it, much less at that speed. The soldiers, still milling about,
were not expecting anyone to come from that quarter. Before they could
aim their weapons, the rider had reached the church steps. Swaying
sideways in his saddle, he thrust at the newly affixed placard with the
blade of his sword. The glue had not yet set; the paper pulled free and
wrapped itself around the blade. The rider whirled it once around his
head with an indescribable air of mockery and disappeared into another
alleyway, as narrow as the first.
It transpired in far less time than it takes to describe
it, yet I was left with an indelible memory of horse and rider. The
bandit's clothing matched the ebon hue of his steed. Even his head was
covered with a close-fitting black hood. The only touch of color was
the blood-red sash tied around his slender waist--the scarlet badge of
rebellion. The somber colors were not depressing or sinister, however;
on the contrary, I had never seen anything more vigorously alive than
the man and his beautiful stallion.
I was still staring at the narrow orifice into which the
rider had vanished, his dark attire blending with the gloom of the vincolo,
when something struck Stella on the flank. She might have bolted if
Piero had not snatched the bridle. I turned to see a jostling mass of
horsemen filling the street behind me. The papal cavalry had been lying
in ambush somewhere along that main thoroughfare--which, though narrow,
was considerably wider than any of the other streets that led into the
piazza. But the riders had been unable to follow the Falcon because of
the impediment presented by our group. De Merode, his face livid with
anger, was trying to lead his men through. It was he who had struck at
Stella.
A few of the foot soldiers, less scatterbrained than
their fellows, were already running in pursuit, but of course they had
no hope of catching a rider--and such a rider!
We got ourselves straightened out finally, after
considerable pushing and shouting. De Merode gave me a furious look
before gathering his troop together and galloping off. I knew he must
suspect us of deliberately barring his way, and I couldn't entirely
blame him. Considering the circumstances of our first meeting, he had
some reason to wonder whose side Miss Perkins and I were on. Doubly
reassured by my awareness of my innocence and by my grandfather's
unassailable position, I was quite willing to be the object of his
mistrust rather than have that dangerous young man turn his attentions
to the real conspirators--the girls who had been so friendly to his
soldiers, distracting their attention and preventing them from reaching
their weapons in time.
I expressed these ideas to Miss Perkins, not without
difficulty, for we were trotting along at a rapid pace.
"Quite right," she gasped. "The girl who sang--a signal--"
She broke off with a grunt as our horses, urged by Piero,
broke into a gallop. She had said enough, however; and I contemplated
this new idea with growing amazement and indignation. Had our romantic
bandit had the cold-blooded effrontery to use us as a shield? The
girl's song might well have been a signal; and if so, then the Falcon
must have been lurking in the immediate vicinity, perhaps in one of the
walled courtyards of the houses near the piazza. That would suggest
that he lived in the town, or very close to it. What really disturbed
me was the fact that he must have known of our trip to the village in
order to plan his strategy. He must have spies in the very stronghold
of his enemies--in the castle itself.
We were late returning, and the others were just sitting
down to tea. It was in the Salon of the Nymphs that day; Miss Rhoda
preferred to use the formal rooms in turn, to make sure they were
properly kept up. This, one of the smaller salons, was particularly
pleasant on hot days, for the water theme suggested by the ceiling
paintings had been carried out in the color scheme and ornaments. The
bas-reliefs of flowers and vines twining across the pale-green paneling
had been done in soft silver gilt instead of the garish gold prevalent
elsewhere. The draperies were of silvery green satin. The chandeliers
of Murano glass, in delicate shades of blue and green frosted with
crystal, suggested waves breaking in sprays of foam. The rugs, which
had been specially woven in Persia, were of the same cool sea shades.
Even the Nereids on the ceiling sprawled languidly in aquamarine
shallows, although their curves were rather more prominent than slender
sea nymphs ought to have had. As Miss Perkins once remarked, the
artists had used mythological themes only as an excuse for painting
unclothed female forms.
Galiana was the first to enter, rudely pushing past Miss
Perkins in her anxiety to tell the exciting news. I thought Grandfather
would have a fit. He turned an unbecoming shade of scarlet that clashed
horribly with his mauve smoking jacket, and rushed from the room.
"Profanity is so useful to gentlemen in relieving their
feelings," remarked Miss Perkins, gazing after him. "No, Francesca,
don't follow him; he will not be able to express himself freely in your
presence."
"My daughter," said the Contessa gently, "you should not
have told the Prince."
Galiana, who was so brash and assertive with others,
never contradicted her mother, so I came to her defense.
"He would have heard it sooner or later. The village must
be buzzing with the news, and Piero will spread it among the servants."
"It is certainly a most inappropriate time, however,"
sniffed Miss Rhoda. "He was on the verge of a tantrum already, after
reading the newspaper."
"Ah," said Miss Perkins, reaching eagerly for the copy of
Monitore, which lay on a table. "What is the news?"
"The worst possible," said Miss Rhoda, as the Countess
sighed and shook her head. "That bandit Garibaldi has captured Palermo."
Miss Perkins, her face aglow, read of her hero's exploits.
"All of Sicily must be in his hands by now," she
muttered. "The newspaper is a week old."
"Much good may it do him," snapped Miss Rhoda. "The
largest Bourbon army is on the mainland; if Garibaldi dares to cross
the straits, he and his hobgoblin crew will be annihilated."
"On the contrary," cried Miss Perkins. "This is only the
beginning. The kingdom of the Two Sicilies will fall into his hands
like a ripe plum. It is rotten with discontent. And then--"
"He would never dare attack the realm of His Holiness,"
said the Contessa in a strangled voice. "God would not permit such
blasphemy!"
"God and Cavour," said Miss Perkins dryly. "The Prime
Minister of Piedmont does not want Garibaldi to claim credit for
liberating the Papal States as well as the Two Sicilies. Cavour is
jealous of Garibaldi--"
"For heaven's sake, must we discuss politics?" demanded
Miss Rhoda. "It is a most inappropriate subject. At least, Miss
Perkins, I beg you to be silent in the presence of the Prince."
"But his Excellency and I have had several good heated
discussions," exclaimed Miss Perkins. "I think he enjoys them."
"Well, I do not," said Miss Rhoda; and that was the end
of that.
However, Miss Perkins received support from Stefano, who
joined us for dinner that evening. He immediately introduced the
subject of Garibaldi's success, with a sly sidelong look at
Grandfather; and although the old gentleman fumed, it seemed to relieve
his spleen to pound on the table and shout. Stefano egged him on; but
he didn't agree with Miss Perkins either. Like all moderates, he
incurred the ire of extremists on both sides, and bore it with amused
condescension.
The latest exploits of the Falcon amused him even more.
Galiana, always eager to gain his attention, described the incident in
her breathless fashion; and Stefano shook his head, with a sneering
smile.
"The fellow is a clown. But how typically Italian.
Conspiracy is in our blood. For the last fifty years the country has
been crawling with secret societies, petty groups with poetical names,
noble aims, and very little effect. The Sons of Mars, the Carbonari,
and the White Pilgrims were just as absurdly theatrical as the Falcon.
He is obviously ignorant of our history, or he would remember what
happened to other incompetent idealists. Emilio and Attilio Bandiera,
for instance."
He paused, sipping his wine; and although I knew he had
done so deliberately in order to whet out curiosity, I could not
refrain from asking the question.
"Who were they?"
"Young officers who took it into their heads to liberate
the peasants of Calabria," Stefano replied. "They landed--if you can
believe this--with sixteen men! They assumed, of course, that the
peasants would flock to join them. The peasants did not object to being
liberated, but they were not about to risk their skins for that
illusory good…."
"Pardon me, Cousin, if I object to your rhetorical
style," I said, trying to imitate Stefano's tone of cool irony. "I
think I can anticipate what you are about to say; the young idealists
were caught and executed, is that right? How can you speak so callously
of a noble aim, however misguided?"
My attempt at coolness failed; my voice broke on the
final words. I don't know why--at least I did not then know why--I was
so moved, but my emotion silenced the others for a moment. Stefano's
fixed smile never left his face, but the look in his eyes indicated
that I had touched him--probably evoked his contempt and annoyance.
Surprisingly it was the Contessa who spoke first.
"The signorina is right about one thing, Stefano. You are
too frivolous about serious matters."
Stefano bowed his head without replying, and Miss Perkins
hastened to break the awkward silence.
"You are unfair to our friend the Falcon, Count Stefano.
There is reason in what he does. The people here are not the peasants
of Calabria, and this is 1860. A rebellion at this time might well
succeed; at least it might produce more lenient laws, kinder treatment."
"Not at all," Stefano replied. "Last year's rebellions in
Tuscany and Aemelia succeeded, to be sure, but only because they had
support from Piedmont. No local uprising here can possibly succeed
without outside aid, and Victor Emmanuel cannot challenge the Pope
without risking war with France. Napoleon must defend Pio Nono; the
clerical party in France is strong, and he needs their support, usurper
that he is."
Once again Grandfather proved that he understood the
abhorred English tongue quite well. He interrupted this speech with a
growl and a comment about the valor of the papal troops. Stefano's lip
curled.
"Oh, as for that, I consider De Merode's international
rabble a greater danger than your foolish Falcon. The gutter scrapings
of Europe and Ireland--"
"The De Merode family is one of the best in France,"
Grandfather interrupted.
"Impractical dreamers, like the other refugee nobles who
fight for Pio Nono," Stefano said curtly. "They still dream of a
restoration. France has seen the last of its kings. Not that the
Buonapartes are any improvement over the Bourbons."
"Then you would support a republic?" Miss Perkins asked.
Stefano raised his eyebrows until they almost touched his
exquisitely arranged curls.
"Heaven forbid, Miss P. The tyranny of the mob is as bad
as the tyranny of a noble class. Look at what happened to France when
she tried that solution."
At that point Miss Rhoda let out a loud "hem!" and rose.
The other ladies followed, leaving Stefano and Grandfather to their
argument. The only one who was reluctant to depart was Miss Perkins.
II
I remember the following Thursday for three reasons. It
was Galiana's saint's day, and we were to have a little party; one of
my lovely new dresses was finished; and Andrea returned.
I was trying on the dress when he arrived and he made
such an uproar that all of us flew downstairs to see what was
happening. We followed the sound of music--the grand piano in the Salon
of the Sybils, which was being played in great crashing chords. The
music was more notable for volume than for beauty, but it had a fine
martial ring; and somehow I was not surprised when I ran into the room,
with Galiana on my heels, to see my cousin seated at the instrument
pounding away at a great rate. He bowed when he saw us, but did not
rise. Instead he began to sing.
"Si scopron le tombe, si levano i morti,
I martiri nostri son tutti risorti!…"
I needed no interpreter to understand. The ghosts of the
martyrs were rising, with swords in their hands, to join in the fight
for Italy's freedom. They were thrilling words. Andrea fairly shouted
them, his golden curls tossing, his eyes shining. He ended with a
mighty crash and bounded to his feet. He seized my hand and planted a
hearty kiss upon it; then he turned to Galiana and caught her up in his
arms. She shrieked with delight, her little feet dangling.
Still the same impetuous Andrea--but there were several
significant differences. The blond moustache was new, and so was the
bronzed hue of his skin; but the most striking change was in his
attire. The loose red shirt, and the bandanna tied rakishly around his
throat--how well I knew them, from Miss Perkins' descriptions! Not an
official uniform, but as distinctive as any regimental facings, this
was the costume worn by Garibaldi's soldiers--by the Thousand (as they
were called) who had set sail from Genoa for the liberation of Sicily.
I was endeavoring to assimilate this startling new
development when an outraged exclamation made me turn. Miss Rhoda stood
in the doorway, her lavender satin skirts filling it completely. Over
her shoulder I saw the pale face of the Contessa; her eyes were fixed
on her daughter, still clasped in Andrea's red-shirted arms. And behind
the Contessa was her omnipresent shadow--the maid Bianca.
Andrea lowered Galiana to the floor as Miss Rhoda swept
into the room and bore down on the young pair like a battleship. The
Contessa swayed, as if seized by faintness. Bianca's muscular
black-clad arms supported her mistress instantly. After a moment the
Contessa recovered herself and waved the maid away, but Bianca
continued to stand in the doorway, her eyes fixed on her mistress with
a look of doglike devotion that was very curious to see.
Andrea grasped Miss Rhoda's hand and pumped it so
enthusiastically that her intended lecture turned into a series of
stutters. His manner changed completely as he greeted the Contessa; he
took her hand gingerly, as if it would break, and raised it to his
lips. Then, with obvious relief, he turned to me.
"Cousin, it is good to see you. I am sorry I could not
greet you on your arrival; but as you see, I had more pressing matters
to attend to."
"I do see." I could not help smiling at the twinkle in
his eyes. "But what a way to announce yourself, Cousin. Is that the new
anthem of Italy?"
"It may well be that. A stirring song, eh? We call it
Garibaldi's Hymn."
"Sing it again," Galiana begged.
Andrea was willing to comply, but as he went to the piano
the Contessa said softly, "Galiana, you forget yourself. Andrea, you
must not offend your grandfather in his own house."
Galiana drooped, as she always did when her mother
reprimanded her. Andrea looked abashed.
"Where is my grandfather?" he asked.
"Here!"
He entered the room as he spoke. His face was set in a
scowl that would have daunted most erring children, but not Andrea; he
ran to greet his grandfather with outstretched arms, as is the Italian
custom. The old gentleman received him with an arm extended, not to
embrace, but to repel. He gave Andrea a hearty shove and burst into
speech. I caught references to the red shirt, and words like, "traitor"
and "rebel."
Smiling, Andrea again tried to embrace the Prince, who
swung his fist in a blow the younger man easily avoided. Then the old
man turned and rushed out of the room. Andrea winked at us and followed.
III
They made it up, somehow, before dinner, which was a gala
meal in honor of Galiana's saint's day. But Andrea was the center of
attention. He had abandoned his red shirt in favor of formal evening
attire, which was only to be expected; but I fancied that the
disappearance of the uniform of insurrection was a concession on the
young man's part. As for Grandfather--well, men are very peculiar. He
glowered at Andrea from his position at the head of the table, and
spoke in a gruff voice, when he spoke at all; but the light in his eyes
as he looked at this grandson gave him away. I suspected that in spite
of his lack of sympathy with the cause of independence he thought all
the more of Andrea for fighting.
The meal was a succession of elaborate dishes, including
Andrea's favorites, and it was the gayest supper I had enjoyed since my
arrival. Andrea's bubbling good spirits infected almost everyone. Even
Miss Rhoda smiled now and then, and Galiana was transformed. Her eyes
shone and her mouth was constantly curved in laughter. Andrea directed
his wittiest jokes at her.
The Contessa was silent, but then she always was. And
Stefano, at the foot of the table, watched his brother with an
enigmatic smile. I wondered what he was thinking. Did he return the
love and admiration his brother felt for him, or did he resent the fact
that Andrea was the favorite, even with his grim English great-aunt?
Did he, too, yearn for the excitement of battle? It was impossible to
tell for sure; but I thought it would not be surprising if Stefano
failed to relish his role as business adviser.
After dinner we retired to the Salone dei Tritoni and had
an evening of music. Both brothers played; I had heard Stefano once
before, and had admired his precise touch with Bach and Vivaldi. Andrea
played with more bravado and less finesse; he did not repeat the
stirring hymn, but sang a series of romantic ballads in a rousing
baritone, rolling his eyes at me during the most sentimental passages.
It was all in good fun, and I enjoyed it as such; but as the evening
went on I wondered if Andrea was not becoming overexcited. His cheeks
were so flushed he looked feverish.
The Contessa was the first to rise. Her departure--with
Galiana, of course--ended the entertainment, and soon afterwards we all
said good night.
It seemed to me that I had hardly fallen asleep when I
was awakened by sounds outside my door. I heard Miss Perkins'
voice--subdue it as she might, it was a resonant, resounding voice--and
footsteps moving quickly. I got up and slipped into a dressing gown.
Miss Perkins' door stood open. Her bed was not occupied.
Now I began to be alarmed. I went to the end of the corridor, and
below, at the bottom of the stair, I saw light. I descended into the
west wing. The family apartments were on that floor, and there were
more lights in that direction. I felt sure now that something had
happened.
The door of one of the bedchambers was open and a beam of
yellow candlelight spilled out into the hall. The room was filled with
people. One of them was Miss Rhoda, almost unrecognizable with her hair
up in curl papers and her bony figure undisguised by the limp folds of
her dressing gown. As I peered in, she gave a sharp order.
"Get out, all of you. I don't need any of you except the
signora."
The signora--a courtesy title--was Miss Perkins, who was
looking down at the bed with an expression of concern. I could not see
the occupant of the bed for the servants who stood around--two of the
footmen and several maids. These people obeyed the order to leave, and
as they came toward the door, I saw Andrea.
His eyes were half closed and their blue brilliance was
dimmed. On his brow and his bared breast were white cloths; as I
watched, Miss Rhoda removed one of these and replaced it with another,
which she had wrung out with water from a basin. I caught a glimpse of
Andrea's tanned body before the cloth was replaced, and at first I
thought he must be wounded; there was a small reddish mark, roughly
circular, on his right side just under the collarbone.
As I moved aside to let the servants out, Miss Rhoda saw
me. "This is no place for you, Francesca," she said sharply. "Go back
to bed."
"Is he wounded?" I asked anxiously. "Can't I do something
to help?"
"No, no, child." Miss Perkins was helping to place the
cold cloths on Andrea's head. "He isn't wounded, but he is feverish;
some illness he contracted in Sicily. It is very unhealthy country. He
may be infectious, so don't come any closer."
"But you," I began, unwilling to leave the poor sufferer
until I had been assured he was not in danger.
"I sent for Miss Perkins because she told me she had had
nurse's training," Miss Rhoda said. It was quite a condescension for
her to explain anything; I knew she must be too worried to maintain her
usual haughty dignity, and that increased my anxiety.
"I am too tough to catch anything," said Miss Perkins
with a smile. "Go back to bed, my dear. There is nothing to worry
about. The Count is in no danger. He is young and healthy; I have
seldom seen so splendid a physique."
With that I had to agree. I gave the handsome invalid one
last look and reluctantly departed. I would have liked to nurse him; it
would have been a fitting return for his gallantry to me. If we had
been in a novel, no doubt that is how it would have transpired. Instead
he had two middle-aged ladies working over him, and I am sure he
recovered much more quickly as a consequence.
He was better next day and on his feet again within the
week, seemingly unhurt by his illness and as energetic as ever. Our
quiet lives became full of activity, as Andrea invented schemes for our
amusement. He took me to task, in his quaintly humorous fashion, for
being so lazy about my riding, and under his brisk tutelage I soon
became a fairly competent horsewoman. Scarcely a day went by that we
did not ride out, visiting various beauty spots in the neighborhood.
Andrea was quite a keen naturalist and knew a lot about the flora and
fauna of the region. To see him holding a delicate flower in his big
brown hand, earnestly discoursing on its beauty, was a most engaging
sight.
Sometimes Galiana accompanied us. More often her mother
found reasons for her to remain at home. The poor girl's morose face,
on these occasions, should have cast a slight shadow over my selfish
pleasure, but I'm afraid I didn't let it bother me much. I wondered if
the Contessa suspected that the two young people were becoming too
attached to one another. I could see no basis for such a suspicion.
Andrea was charming to Galiana, but he was charming to everyone. Of
course I fancied myself in love with him. Why not? He was a delightful
companion, he had saved me from a fate worse than death and had risked
his life to avenge me; he was incredibly handsome, brave as a lion,
romantic as a hero of legend. I yearned to see him again in his dashing
red shirt, and I tried to question him about his adventures in Sicily.
But on that subject Andrea's facile tongue failed him. He
told me about Garibaldi, whose men thought of him as superhuman--about
the General's courage, his tenderness toward the wounded, his cheerful
acceptance of danger and discomfort. He narrated comical little
anecdotes about the camp and the soldiers. But he would not talk about
the fighting, and I finally came to realize that his memories were not
the sort he could share with a young girl. I had sense enough to leave
off questioning him when his face assumed an uncharacteristic
expression of grim sorrow. But I did not have sense enough to realize
that there was depths in him that I had not fathomed; that I had fallen
in love with a handsome face instead of studying the real man.
Being in love is great fun, however, and I had a
wonderful time. Miss Perkins often accompanied us on our expeditions;
even Stefano joined us when the activity was not too strenuous for him.
On the occasions when he was present, Galiana usually made one of the
party too, but I could not decide whether she was allowed to go with us
because Stefano was there, or whether it was he who sought out her
company. Frankly, the subject did not interest me. It was no pleasure
to have Stefano along; whenever he came there was an argument, usually
about politics.
It was a dangerous topic at that time, and in our house.
The Prince's method of dealing with what he regarded as Andrea's
criminal folly in fighting with Garibaldi was characteristic of him; he
simply ignored the subject as if no such thing had ever happened.
Andrea went along with this. The brave, bright uniform did not appear
again, nor was Garibaldi's Hymn heard within the castle walls. He even
shaved off his moustache. Outside the walls Andrea spoke freely enough
especially when Stefano egged him on.
Grandfather might be able to erase unpalatable truths
from his mind, but I suspected that the rest of the world might not be
so accommodating. Ever since Andrea's return I had been worried for
fear the soldiers might ride up and arrest him. But when I expressed
this worry, the others laughed at me. Andrea laughed loudest of all.
Stefano was more explicit.
"Andrea is protected by the outmoded feudal system he
fought against in Sicily," he said, with a mocking glance at his
brother. "The Princes Tarconti are above the law; one might even say
that, like ancient Roman tyrants, they are the
law. Andrea had sense enough to misbehave outside the borders of
Umbria. His actions would not be precisely favored in Rome, but they
can't be ignored--for favors rendered. Now if he had chosen to lead a
band of rebels against Pio Nono, he might be in serious trouble. Not
even our grandfather's influence could protect him."
Andrea's eyes flashed blue fire.
"I do not expect the Prince or anyone else to answer for
me," he exclaimed. "Nor will I subdue my conscience to his. You may
make jokes, Stefano, but you know Italy must be unified. Dismembered as
we are, we are the plaything of the great powers. If you had seen the
arrogant Austrian soldiers strutting down the streets of Florence,
ogling the women--"
He broke off there, whether from delicacy or indignation
I did not know. For a short while no one spoke.
We were sitting on the ground--or rather, on a handsome
rug spread on the grass--in the sunshine. Galiana's tumbled curls shone
like a blackbird's wings; the wild daisies she had twined in her hair
looked like little stars in the night sky. Andrea, his coat discarded,
his shirt sleeves rolled up to display his muscular brown arms, was
flushed and handsome in his enthusiasm. Miss Perkins, too, was flushed,
but not with enthusiasm. She had gotten sunburned on our last outing,
and her nose was peeling.
Only Stefano sat upright, on a small chair that a servant
had brought for him. His controlled features showed little emotion, but
I thought he had frowned slightly when Andrea mentioned the Austrians
in Florence--perhaps because he did not like being reminded that he was
no longer free to travel about as his brother did.
"What a tiring fellow you are, Andrea," he said, with an
affected yawn. "Do try to control your zeal; you are boring Galiana and
Francesca--"
"He doesn't bore me at all," I broke in. "And I agree
with everything he has said."
"How can you agree with something you don't understand?"
"I do understand!" I rose to my knees--and had to snatch
at my skirts as my hoops bounced higher than decency allowed. Stefano
laughed, and I went on indignantly, "This country is still in the Dark
Ages, it is ripe for revolution! Why, I heard of a case, this very
year, in Civitavecchia. Some young men had asked permission to show
their respect for a deceased friend by carrying his coffin to the grave
instead of allowing it to be carried by the religious society in
control of funerals. They were granted permission, but several days
after the funeral they were all arrested and sent to the state prison
without trial. Such a stupid petty offense--even if it had been an
offense, which it wasn't, because they had asked and been granted--"
"Yes, yes, I heard of the matter," said Stefano, speaking
with difficulty through his laughter. "If you would stop to take a
breath occasionally, Cousin, your speeches would sound more
professional. The voice is the voice of Francesca, but the words, I
suspect, are those of Miss Perkins. Dear lady, you mustn't turn my
little cousin into a revolutionary. Life is very pleasant here; why
don't you both enjoy it and forget your radical ideas?"
That ended the argument for the day; Galiana began to
pelt Andrea with daisies, and a mock battle ensued. But it did not end
the subject, for Stefano seemed to delight in stirring up controversy,
and Miss Perkins was always ready to debate her favorite cause.
We received several newspapers. Grandfather pretended to
read only the official organ of the Roman government, but occasionally
he might be caught peeking into the Tuscan Monitore
or even the Gazzetta Piemontese. Miss Perkins read
them all, from front page to back. As the summer wore on, she became
more and more excited. Garibaldi had been proclaimed dictator of
Sicily, and there were rumors that he planned to attack the mainland.
King Victor Emmanuel of Piedmont and his wily Prime Minister Cavour had
spoken out against this move. Cavour was reluctant to have Naples owe
its freedom to the guerrilla leader. He wanted his king to be the
liberator of Italy. But there was a report that Victor Emmanuel, though
publicly forbidding Garibaldi to cross the Straits of Messina, had
privately written to the General encouraging him to go ahead. At the
same time Piedmontese agents were trying to promote an uprising in
Naples, so that Victor Emmanuel would have an excuse to march into
Neapolitan territory himself in order to restore law and order.
Ironically, we were less well informed about what was
happening in our own province than we were about events as far away as
Sicily. The reasons for this were obvious; censorship ruled with an
iron hand in the Papal States, and the wildest rumors flew about in
lieu of facts. "Our busy friend the Falcon," as Stefano sarcastically
called him, was busy indeed; his illegal newspapers and pamphlets blew
about the province like snowflakes. They reached a wider audience than
one might have supposed. When we rode to the village we would sometimes
see a group of people clustered around one of the tables at the
café, listening intently as one of their number read aloud from
a crudely printed paper. The paper would disappear and the group would
disperse as we approached, but none of us doubted what the subject of
the paper had been.
A few of the posters even reached the castle. They were
found in the most unexpected places; one morning the major domo
discovered one pinned to the front door. There was a tacit conspiracy
to keep these papers from Grandfather, but the rest of us read them
avidly, and Miss Perkins was loud in her admiration of the writer's
skill. Stefano enjoyed reading them aloud and commenting on the
grammatical and rhetorical errors of the text.
Politics were not our sole concern, of course. Miss
Perkins was almost as interested in antiquities, and one day, at her
urging, we agreed to make an expedition to the Etruscan cemetery. I
shrank from returning to the place where I had had such a terrifying
experience, but I could hardly have avoided going without appearing
conspicuous, for the entire household was to take part in the plan.
Grandfather was eager to display his family treasures to Miss Perkins,
and even the Contessa agreed to make one of the party. It was possible
to reach the spot by carriage if one followed a long roundabout road
through the hills. The older ladies and Stefano took this route,
accompanied by a wagonload of servants carrying all the requisites for
a formal meal alfresco. The rest of us rode by the direct path.
We set out early in order to do our exploring before the
greatest heat of the day. It was a glorious morning, sunny and bright;
but as we rode along the rustic trail, one could see the first hints of
autumn in an occasional branch of reddening leaves. Taking a shorter
path, we riders reached the spot before the others did, but agreed to
wait for them before exploring the tombs.
Grandfather was in fine spirits. It was obvious that he
had no recollection of having been here with me. I knew I had nothing
to fear; Galiana and Andrea were with us, not to mention half a dozen
servants. But I confess I felt a cold chill as I saw the high green
mound that concealed the tomb of the princess.
Galiana looked lovely in a gown of white printed with
scarlet flowers and a wide-brimmed straw hat tied under her chin with
scarlet ribbons. Andrea was teasing her because this was her first
visit to our celebrated cemetery.
"All these years," he exclaimed, "and you have never had
the energy to come. Shame!"
"But how could I come alone?" she asked, fluttering her
eyelashes at him. "Besides, I don't see anything very nice about the
place. What is so exciting about weeds and broken stones?"
"I will have the honor of showing you, my dear," said
Grandfather kindly. "But we must wait for the others. Sit down and be
very still, and I will show you something that may interest you more
than broken stones."
The servants spread rugs on some flat rocks so that
Galiana and I could sit without spoiling our dresses. Then they
withdrew, at the Prince's command, and for a long time we sat in
silence.
In the warmth and the pastoral stillness my nerves began
to relax. My earlier impression of the place as uncanny and frightening
must have come from my sensitivity to Grandfather's strange mood. It
really was quite a pretty place. Wildflowers bloomed everywhere. Birds
sang in the trees; as we continued to sit quietly they began to flutter
about and swoop from branch to branch. Then a rustle in the underbrush
made Galiana start. Andrea put his fingers to his lips and shook his
head, smiling. A rabbit hopped out into the clearing.
It was the biggest, fattest, whitest rabbit I had ever
seen, and the least timid. It hopped out onto the path and stood still;
it was so close that I could see its whiskers quiver as it sniffed the
air. It must have scented us or seen us, but it did not seem at all
disturbed by our presence. With a negligent air it began to nibble at
the rank grass.
Galiana broke the spell by giggling. The rabbit gave her
a sideways look and retreated, but not in a blur of motion as these
wild creatures usually exhibit when startled. It bounced along in a
leisurely fashion, as if it had just remembered a not very important
engagement.
"How tame it is," I exclaimed. "Was it a pet at one time?"
"No," said Andrea. "All the rabbits here are wild; all
are white; all are as unconcerned about man as that one you saw. It is
because they have never been hunted. The peasants think they are
supernatural creatures--the souls of the old Etruscans, perhaps."
"You don't hunt them either?" I said. "I'm glad, Andrea.
They are so pretty and so trusting."
"They do not challenge a hunter," said Andrea, with a
laugh. "Besides, the Prince has a fondness for them; eh, Grandfather?"
Grandfather shrugged; he disliked being accused of
sentimental weaknesses, though he had quite a few.
"They are a curiosity," he said.
It was not long before we were joined by the rest of the
party. They had to come the last few yards on foot, leaving the
carriage at the road, and it was an amusing sight to see Miss Rhoda
being respectfully propelled along by two sturdy footmen. The Contessa
leaned on the arm of her maid, who lifted her over the rougher parts as
easily as a man might have done. Stefano brought up the rear. He
obviously found progress both painful and difficult, but no one
volunteered to help him or expressed sympathy.
The tomb of the princess was the greatest attraction, so
we went there first. Miss Perkins was fascinated by the monolithic
stone door.
"How wise of you to have left it in position, your
Excellency," she exclaimed. "So many excavators simply blast their way
through by means of battering rams and explosives. I am amazed at how
clever these ancients were in devising such things."
"It is a curious structure," Grandfather said. "You see
how carefully it is balanced. Once the trick of opening it is known, it
can be moved by one man. This crevice in the rock…" He slipped the
fingers of his right hand into a crack that was in no way distinguished
from other irregularities in the rock facing. "This crevice is the
point of pressure. There is a rude catch, a sort of lock. One
pushes…and voilà!"
And with the word--like the "Open Sesame" of the fairy
tale--the great slab slowly swung out.
We were standing in a semicircle before the entrance, at
a safe distance from the swing of the door, but as the great stone
moved, several of us involuntarily stepped back. A breath of cool, dank
air issued from the opening.
Stefano was watching me with his faint sardonic smile. He
and Miss Perkins were the only ones who knew of my brief incarceration
in this dreadful place, and I was determined that no one else should
know of it. I thought I concealed my agitation rather well. I might
even have forced myself to descend into the tomb if Grandfather had
not, in all innocence, made a fatal gesture.
In our exploration of the tombs we had to manage without
the assistance of the servants. They were reluctant to come into the
valley at all; into the tombs they would not go, not even under threats
of the direst punishment. The only exception was the Contessa's maid,
who followed her mistress like a squat black shadow--counting, I
suppose, on that lady's saintly character to shield her from spiritual
dangers.
So, when the door of the tomb swung open, Grandfather
assumed the role of guide, lighting one of the candles and preparing to
lead the way. It was then that he struck down my faltering confidence
by simply holding out his hand to me. Of course he meant to assist me
on the narrow slippery stairs. His face was wreathed in a kindly smile.
I had actually extended my own hand to take his when suddenly I
realized that I was unable to move.
"No," I gasped. "No, I cannot--"
"Moi, aussi," said Galiana, putting
her arm through mine. "Oh, that horrible dark hole! We will stay here,
Francesca; you brave gentlemen may descend into the dirt and the dark
without us."
Thanks to her, my refusal was considered no more than a
typical feminine weakness. The others tried to persuade us. Grandfather
demonstrated several times the method of blocking the door so that
there was not the slightest danger of our being trapped inside. A
wooden wedge, inserted into the crevice, prevented the stone catch from
slipping into place; the door could thus be completely shut and still
yield to pressure from within. I watched this demonstration with
shivering interest, wishing I had known of it on that other occasion;
but even this, and Andrea's offer to carry her, did not persuade
Galiana to risk her embroidered skirts on the stairs.
In the end only Grandfather and Miss Perkins, assisted by
Andrea, made the descent. Miss Rhoda declined with a sniff; I doubt
that she could have squeezed her crinoline into the space anyhow. The
Contessa stood watching. The beads of her rosary, which was always in
her hands when they were not occupied with embroidery, slipped slowly
through her fingers.
The others stayed underground for quite some time. We
could hear their voices, grotesquely distorted, and an occasional laugh
from Andrea. When they finally emerged, Miss Perkins was beaming and
repeating her favorite word.
"Fascinating. Absolutely fascinating. Your Excellency, do
you consider the date of 800 B.C.
reasonable for this tomb?"
The two of them continued their discussion while we
visited several other tombs. I found that I was able to enter these
without a qualm, although they had stairways even steeper and narrower
than those of the tomb of the princess. These tombs were later in date
than the first, being of the fifth and fourth centuries before Christ,
and I found them more interesting. The rock-cut ledges on which the
bodies of the dead were laid had been carved in the shape of beds, with
stone pillows and posts. One of the tombs had walls ornamented in
bas-relief; shield and spears, helmets and pieces of armor showed that
the occupants had belonged to a family of warriors.
Interesting as it all was, it was also a dirty,
depressing experience, and even Miss Perkins had had enough when we
emerged from the tomb of the warriors into the pleasant sunlight. While
we explored the tombs, the servants had set out a magnificent repast,
covering a stone slab that served as a table with snowy damask cloths,
and bringing chairs from the wagon. We all ate too much--except the
Contessa, who nibbled in her birdlike fashion--and after dining we were
glad to sit or recline for a while before returning to the castle.
The Contessa decided to return to the carriage, where her
embroidery was awaiting her attention. She and her maid went off, the
slight form of the older lady leaning on the arm of the younger. They
were both wearing their usual unrelieved black, yet no two persons
could have been more different. Bianca's rusty black skirts were like
molting plumage, and even the hoarse caw which was the poor creature's
only mode of expression resembled the cry of a crow. As for the
Contessa…. There was one black swan among all the white ones that swam
in the pond in the garden. The Contessa was like that swan, in her
slenderness, her gliding movements.
After a while Miss Rhoda followed the Contessa, declaring
that she had had enough of picnics and was ready to return to
civilization whenever the rest of us were. Miss Perkins begged for a
delay; she was ready to explore again, and Grandfather, flattered by
her interest in his ancestors, offered to show her another tomb at a
little distance. They invited me to join them, but I was having trouble
with one of my boots and said that if I could fix it I would catch them
up. So they went off; Grandfather offered Miss Perkins his arm, but she
was gesticulating so animatedly that she failed to observe the gallant
gesture. I looked about and realized that Galiana and Andrea were no
longer with us. Even the servants had gone, after tidying up the
remains of the banquet. Stefano and I were alone.
He had settled himself in the only patch of shade, under
an overhanging rock ledge, so I joined him. It was too hot at this hour
to sit in the sun.
"I wonder where Andrea and Galiana have gone," I said,
lifting my foot and inspecting my boot. The heel was loose. There was
nothing I could do about it; makeshift repairs would not serve.
Stefano, leaning against the rock with his arms folded
and his eyes closed, said shortly, "Leave them alone. They have few
enough opportunities to be by themselves."
"Do you think they are--er--fond of one another?" I
asked, conscious of a strange little pang.
"What gossips women are," Stefano said irritably. "Of
course they are fond of one another. They have been friends since
infancy."
"That isn't what I meant."
"I know." Stefano opened his eyes and stared at me. "Are
you jealous, Cousin? I suppose that like all the females who pass
through Andrea's life you fancy yourself in love with him."
"If I were, I certainly would not confess it to you," I
replied angrily.
"Very wise of you," said Stefano, and closed his eyes
again.
We sat in silence after that. I knew Stefano was not
asleep, but I had no intention of arousing his biting tongue. After a
while the heat and the quiet made me sleepy. I was beginning to doze
when suddenly Stefano flung himself at me, knocking me off my rocky
seat onto the ground and falling heavily upon me. A loud crash shook
the air.
For a few seconds I was too dazed to move or cry out. The
weight of Stefano's body robbed me of breath. Then he rolled to one
side and I struggled to a sitting position. The angry words I was about
to say died on my lips as I saw the heap of tumbled rock on the stone
where we had been sitting.
"Good heavens," I exclaimed, putting my hand to my
stinging cheeks. My fingers came away red.
"It is only a superficial cut," said Stefano. He was
sitting up too, in a strange, twisted position. One leg was bent under
him.
"You are quick to minimize other people's injuries," I
snapped; and then, seeing his pallor, I repented of my sharp tongue.
"Are you hurt, Stefano?"
"How should I be hurt when you cushioned my fall so
sweetly?" inquired my cousin.
His acrimonious reply did not wound me this time. I
looked at the great heap of rocks, several of which were large enough
to have dashed out my brains, and began to shiver.
"What a miraculous escape! I must thank you again,
Stefano. How were you able to move so quickly?"
"I happened to glance up and see the rock tremble." With
a grimace he could not repress, Stefano tried to straighten his leg.
"It was foolish of me to sit there. Such rock falls are not infrequent."
"It was an accident then?" I asked in a small voice.
Stefano's eyebrows lifted.
"What else could it have been? Oh, but perhaps you are an
heiress in disguise or an agent of the British government, so that some
unknown villain is trying to destroy you…."
He would have gone on in this vein if the others had not
come running, alarmed by the crash. My only injuries were scrapes and
bruises on the left side of my body, where it had struck the ground; so
I was not too distracted to fail to notice that Galiana and Andrea
returned together; nor too alarmed to wonder where they had been and
what they had been discussing to make Galiana's cheeks so rosy red and
her eyes so bright.
Stefano had sprained his ankle; he retired to his lair,
as I called it, and we saw nothing of him for several days. Our
accident had one other consequence. The near fatality confirmed the
servants' abhorrence of the valley of the tombs. To a man--and
woman--they regarded it as an unlucky place and refused to enter it
again.
Grandfather would never have admitted to being
superstitious, but the incident had shaken him. That very day, pleased
by her enthusiasm, he had given Miss Perkins permission to do some
archaeological digging. But after the accident he refused to allow her
to dig in the valley. He had a reasonable excuse, since the sinister
reputation of the place made it virtually impossible to hire workers.
Instead he suggested that Miss Perkins should attempt an excavation at
the base of the hill on which the castle was situated. He had observed
unusual rock formations there and had meant to investigate them himself
at some future time. Miss Perkins accepted the suggestion with
pleasure. Oddly enough, there was no problem about hiring workers.
Apparently it was not the ancient tombs themselves but one particular
cemetery the peasants feared.
This new pursuit amused all of us for a few days. We
visited the excavations and I derived pleasure from watching Miss
Perkins enjoy herself so thoroughly. She was always disheveled and
dusty, since she was perfectly capable of snatching a shovel and
digging at a promising spot. Her complexion was one of the unfortunate
sort that burns but does not tan, so she was usually peeling. None of
these inconveniences disconcerted her in the least. She actually
discovered a few tombs, for my grandfather's calculations had been
correct; the rock formations were manmade. The
tombs were all poor ones, though, and all had been robbed in antiquity.
By the end of the week all of us had lost interest except Miss P., who
went out every morning to her excavations with her skirts hitched up
and her eyes shining.
Toward the end of that same week, if my memory serves me
correctly, our social life was enlarged by a rare event. Stefano
invited us all to supper.
He had been speaking the literal truth when he told me
that no one visited him without a formal invitation. Andrea often joked
about his misanthropic tendencies and declared that he himself had not
set foot inside the garden wall for months.
"He has traps set," Andrea said solemnly. "Last year he
caught two poachers and Aunt Rhoda. She limped for weeks. The last time
I attempted to call on him, a bullet narrowly missed my head. His
servant, Piero, is one of the best shots in the neighborhood. I do not
accuse, you understand, but--"
He broke off, throwing up his hands in pretended terror
as his brother fixed him with a cold stare.
"Someone will shoot you if you
continue to make such bad jokes," said Stefano. "I insist on my
privacy, it is true. I can enforce it only by being rude. If I did not,
Aunt Rhoda would be bustling in every day to make sure the servants
were cleaning properly, and all the bored inquisitive young ladies in
the neighborhood would find pretexts to interrupt me."
Galiana turned red at this remark. So she, too, had
attempted to invade Stefano's citadel! Stefano was not looking at her,
however, he was smiling nastily at me.
"I can't imagine who would want to bother you," I said
loftily.
"No? Unfortunately, Cousin, not everyone has your
delicacy. At any rate I am giving you a chance to exorcise your
curiosity. I will show you over my domain and my servants will give you
an excellent meal. Will you come?"
"Oh, certainly," said Andrea. "We must encourage your
coming out of seclusion, Stefano. You are becoming very social."
In truth we had seen a great deal of Stefano since his
brother returned. I couldn't imagine why he spent so much time with us,
for he didn't seem to enjoy himself.
I did look forward to seeing his house, and that evening
I dressed with special care. I had given up my mourning altogether. It
was not hard to find an excuse for doing so; there had not been a
single bolt of black fabric in the collection from Florence, and
Grandfather himself had assisted in the selection of my new gowns.
Between fear of his displeasure and simple vanity--and other reasons--I
had not objected to the pale-green silks, the ivory brocade, or the
blue satin. Now I had a dozen lovely gowns to choose from, and even
with Teresa helping me I wavered between a rose taffeta with flounces
trimmed in lace and narrow black velvet ribbons, and a white satin
embroidered with tiny rosebuds. Finally I decided on the taffeta, and
then there was the difficult decision of what ornaments to wear.
Grandfather had given me my mother's jewels. Among them was a lovely
seed-pearl set--bracelets and necklace and earrings, and a set of
ornaments for the hair. I decided to wear this, and at last Teresa had
me turned out to my satisfaction.
Miss Perkins was the only one of the older people who was
having supper with us. Grandfather seemed to like to see us four young
people together; he had declined the invitation and overruled Miss
Rhoda's protests, saying that it was foolish to talk of propriety when
four cousins dined together on the family estate. Besides, Miss Perkins
would be more than sufficient as a chaperone. Stefano had insisted on
her coming, since she had never seen his house. The two of them got on
well; she was one of the few people who was never disturbed by his
sarcastic tongue. In fact, she made herself popular with everyone.
Grandfather found in her an antiquarian as learned and as enthusiastic
as he was, and even Miss Rhoda had succumbed to her countrywoman's
amiable willingness to be of service.
When I was dressed I went to see how Miss Perkins was
progressing with her own toilette. I had finally persuaded her to
accept a new dress, since her wardrobe was not adequate for the state
Grandfather kept, even en famille, and I was
looking forward to seeing her in the soft gray silk we had selected. I
found her seated before her mirror, her mouth screwed up, as one of the
maids tugged at her hair.
"This is ridiculous," she remarked, as I entered. "I feel
like a figure of fun. Every time I move my head, this young person
swears at me in Italian."
"You look lovely, I assure you," I said, laughing. "The
Queen herself has not more presence."
"Humph," said Miss Perkins. "Well, I suppose I must
suffer in order to be presentable. That will do, that will do. I can't
stand any more hair pulling."
She did look nice. The crinolines then in fashion were
becoming to the slender and the stout alike. They gave older ladies
dignity, and the modest hoops Miss Perkins wore balanced the
considerable size of the upper part of her body. The gown was trimmed
with bunches of artificial violets, and it had long pagoda sleeves and
a white embroidered collar; for Miss Perkins had shouted with amusement
at the very notion of a decolletage.
Galiana and Andrea were waiting for us in the drawing
room. They sat stiffly in two chairs separated by the entire width of
the room, under the watchful eyes of the Contessa and Miss Rhoda.
Galiana also had a new dress. The color was stunning on her--pale
yellow-gold trimmed with bands of darker gold velvet. I assumed her
mother had provided it, since I certainly had not, and I wondered where
the money was coming from.
The Contessa was in unusually good spirits. With a warm
smile she bade us enjoy ourselves, and she even patted Andrea
affectionately on the arm as he bent to kiss her hand. Miss Rhoda
grumbled, as she always did; this evening she predicted rain and
remarked that my gown was cut too low.
We set out across the gardens. Miss Rhoda's fears of rain
were all in her own mind; it was a beautiful evening. Andrea had given
Miss Perkins his arm and was amusing her by his florid compliments.
Stefano met us at the door of the house. He wore
immaculate evening dress, with bloodstone studs and amethyst cuff
links. We went over the house before dining, and my expressions of
admiration were quite sincere. Everything was in miniature, but in
perfect taste. My favorite room was the library. It was a perfectly
proportioned chamber, with lovely stucco reliefs of classical figures
on the ceiling instead of the usual paintings. There was a big hooded
fireplace, with the family arms above it. Wide French doors opened onto
a terrace beautifully planted with rose bushes and gardenias, and the
little courtyard beyond was enclosed by high brick walls hung with
vines.
"Bluebeard's den," said Stefano, glancing at me. "You
see, ladies, how harmlessly I occupy my time. I am working on a family
history for the Prince, and I amuse myself by writing on philosophical
matters."
As we went through the other rooms, we had evidence of
the other occupations with which he filled his time. An easel and a
model's throne showed his interest in painting, but he refused to show
us his work, saying it was too amateurish. The grand piano in the
drawing room was frequently used, as I knew from hearing him play. He
even had a small laboratory fitted up. We left this place hurriedly,
wrinkling our noses against a strong smell of chemicals.
We saw only the ground floor. One of the rooms had been
fitted up as a bedchamber, and none of us needed to ask why Stefano did
not use the upper chambers.
We were to dine on the terrace. It was an exquisite
setting, with a tiny fountain tinkling in the courtyard. The food was
excellent, as Stefano had promised. I noticed that all the servants
were men, and could not refrain from commenting on this.
"I told you he was a misogynist," said Andrea. "Even his
housemaids are men! That is why the furniture is not dusted, eh,
Stefano?"
"I defy Miss Perkins, wearing white gloves, to find a
speck of dust," said Stefano, who was in an unusually amiable mood.
We had almost finished the meal, and the light was dying
fast, when the peace of evening was broken by the sound of a gunshot.
"Poachers again," said Andrea calmly, as I turned a
startled look on him. "I have told you, Brother, that you must enforce
the laws. We may sympathize with the poor devils needing food, but they
have no right--"
"It is not sympathy, but lethargy, that keeps me from
enforcing the law," said Stefano, scowling. "The Prince is strict
enough about his rights; I am surprised that any of the peasants dare
invade his grounds."
All evening Miss Perkins had nobly refrained from talking
politics, but this reference to an outmoded feudal right was too much
for her; we were treated to a forceful lecture on the unfairness of the
hunting laws. "You aristocrats hunt for pleasure," she exclaimed
indignantly. "As if it were a pleasure to inflict pain on other living
creatures! At the same time you forbid starving men to hunt for food
for their families, when you have deprived them of the means to earn an
honest livelihood by monopolizing the means of production."
"Don't scold me, Miss Perkins," said Andrea pathetically.
"I don't deserve it. You know I agree with you."
"And you know I do not," Stefano remarked with a smile.
"But I won't argue with you, Miss Perkins. You are too clever for me."
He did argue, though, and the two of them went at it
hammer and tongs, while Galiana yawned and Andrea laughed. But Andrea
was conscious of his pretty cousin's boredom, and as soon as possible
he offered to escort her on a walk through the gardens. Stefano waved
them away without interrupting the point he was making. I don't think
Miss Perkins even noticed that they had gone.
When the moon rose in its silvery splendor, bathing the
courtyard in pale light, Stefano finally ended the argument.
"That was refreshing," he said. "But now I think we had
better find Galiana and Andrea. Shame on you, Miss Perkins, for failing
in your duties as chaperone."
"I could do with a walk myself," said Miss Perkins
calmly. "I am afraid I made a glutton of myself."
The young pair were not to be found in Stefano's small
enclosed garden, so we went out into the grounds of the castle. As we
passed into the rose garden, Stefano leaning heavily on his cane,
another shot sounded. This one was much closer, and Stefano stopped
with an angry exclamation.
"I must put an end to this. Moonlight is tricky light to
shoot by; the fool may injure someone."
He had scarcely finished speaking when something buzzed
through the air, passing between us so closely that I felt the wind of
it on my hair, followed by a third explosion.
I would have stood there staring stupidly if Miss Perkins
had not wrapped her arms firmly about me and dragged me to the ground.
"Lie still," she said, as I struggled to free myself.
"That was a bullet. Another may follow."
"But--Stefano--" I began, and then saw that my cousin had
disappeared. Almost at once I heard him calling out, and the voices of
the servants answering. Lights flared up and began to move through the
darkened gardens.
Before long Stefano came back to us, accompanied by one
of his grooms, who was carrying a lamp. His lips curved up when he saw
us sitting on the ground in an undignified jumble of skirts and hoops.
"You can get up now," he said, gesturing to the footman,
who extended a hand to help me and then hoisted Miss Perkins to her
feet.
"Oh, dear," she said, looking at her skirts. "My pretty
dress. I fear I caught my foot in it; there is a sad tear."
"Better your skirt than your scalp," said Stefano. "I
think the danger is over; my people are searching the grounds, but the
idiot who fired those shots will not linger when he realizes how close
he came to murder." Then he turned to me. "Really, Cousin, I begin to
think you are bad luck for me. Are you sure you
have not stolen the crown jewels, or kidnapped the heir to the throne?"
II
I knew Stefano's words were one of his peculiar jokes,
but a few days later I began to wonder myself if someone had not
mistaken me for the object of a family feud. Two accidents in one week
might have been coincidence, but a third….
A few days earlier I had moved into my new rooms. The
dilatory workmen had finally finished; the suite gleamed with fresh
gold paint and smelled of varnish and beeswax. I had never lived in
such luxury. The great canopied bed was draped with silk finer than
anything I had ever put on my back, and the carpets were so deep I
enjoyed walking barefoot on them. Two great carved wardrobes bulged
with pretty clothes, and the dressing table held new toilet
articles--silver-handled brushes and heavy crystal bottles.
However, the castle had a few inconveniences that I have
not mentioned. One of them was the variety of animal life that infested
it. Not noxious insects--Miss Rhoda would never have tolerated the
degree of dirt that breeds such creatures. But there were flies and
wasps; and even Miss Rhoda's British housekeeping could not keep down
all the mice, or the bats that hang about the eaves of such old places.
I was not especially afraid of these creatures, but no one likes
animals that are apt to swoop or scamper out at one unexpectedly. Once
before, in my old room, I had fled screaming from a bat that came
through my open window. The poor thing was as frightened as I was, I
suppose; at any rate, it blundered back out the window before Teresa
and Miss Perkins came running in, to find me in the wardrobe with the
door shut.
Mercifully, Teresa was with me, helping me dress for
dinner, when my second encounter with a bat occurred. The heavy
draperies were pulled back from the balcony windows, which were open
because of the heat, but the light inner curtains had been drawn, since
the light attracted moths and other insects. Teresa was brushing my
hair when the curtain suddenly billowed out. We both turned to look,
and I saw the flapping black shape behind the thin white fabric.
"Oh, dear," I exclaimed, in more annoyance than fear. "Do
chase it away, Teresa, before it gets in, I cannot stand…."
As I spoke, the bat came in through the opening in the
curtains. It was enormous, much bigger than the others I had seen, and
at once I realized that there was something wrong with it. Unlike the
other creature, which had fluttered in aimless panic, this one seemed
to be moved by a demonic energy. Instead of seeking the window, and
freedom, it flung itself across the room in a series of swooping loops
and then darted straight at me.
With a shriek I fell to the floor, my arms over my head.
Teresa's face had gone white as dirty paper. I could have excused her
for fleeing; instead she ran toward me, swinging the hairbrush like a
club. It was luck, not skill, I am sure, that enabled her to hit her
target. The solid silver of the brush struck the creature down. It fell
to the floor not three feet from me, but it was not dead; its wings
continued to flap feebly, and I could have sworn that, crippled as it
was, it tried to crawl toward me. I had one horrible, unforgettable
view of its evil little face--the eyes glowing red, the fanged mouth
open--before Teresa grabbed my shoulders and dragged me away.
Our screams--for Teresa had been shrieking mindlessly the
whole time--finally attracted notice. Galiana was the first to burst
into the room. She fell back with the most earsplitting shriek of all
as she saw the black horror flapping on the floor. Andrea was right
behind her. He did not hesitate; thrusting Galiana roughly behind him,
he snatched a poker from the fireplace and began beating at the fallen
animal.
I didn't faint, but I certainly lost control of my limbs
and my powers of speech for a brief time. When I regained them I was
lying on the chaise longue, with Teresa crouched at my feet, her teeth
chattering like castanets. Miss Perkins was bending over me. My eyes
went at once to the spot on the floor…. A towel had been thrown down
there.
"It is gone," Miss Perkins said. "The Count took it away.
Francesca, did it touch you?"
"I don't think so," I said. "Teresa…" She looked up when
I spoke her name, and I smiled and touched her shoulder. "Teresa hit it
with my hairbrush. Really, Miss Perkins, I am ashamed to have been so
silly. It was only a bat."
Teresa, still paper-white, muttered something I did not
understand.
"Nonsense," Miss Perkins said sharply.
"What did she say?" I asked. I felt better, and was about
to sit up when Miss Perkins pushed me back.
"The word means ‘vampire,'" she said. "Foolish; there is
a variety of bat in South America that drinks blood, but it has never
been seen in Europe. However…. Francesca, are you certain it did not
touch you, not even brush you in passing? Lie back and let me examine--"
"I am quite sure, really. What is all the fuss about?
Where is Andrea?"
He returned at that moment and came to my side.
"The rug will be burned," he said, addressing Miss
Perkins. "Is she--did it--"
"I will scream in a minute if you don't explain," I
shouted. "Good heavens, you are all talking as if it were really…."
Miss Perkins and Andrea exchanged glances. "Tell her, if
you think it wise," he said.
"It had hydrophobia," Miss Perkins said. "If even a drop
of its saliva had touched you…."
Then I did feel faint. Andrea smiled reassuringly.
"The danger is over, Cousin. You were almost the victim
of a rare and unusual accident. I can only recall one other case of a
bat having this dreadful disease. As you know, it is more common in
dogs, but occasionally other creatures are afflicted by it. Only
occasionally; you will never see such a thing again in your lifetime, I
am sure."
"Good God," I said faintly. Again I put out my hand and
touched Teresa. "She saved my life, then. If she had not struck it with
my brush…. Ask her, Miss Perkins, make sure she was not hurt. She is
the one who took the risk."
Miss Perkins insisted on examining the girl, but her
plump bare arms and round face were free of punctures. The color had
returned to her face and she was about to get to her feet when suddenly
she let out a shriek and fell back, her eyes staring.
The Contessa had just come in accompanied by Miss Rhoda
and the ever-present Bianca. They had been attracted by the noise and
confusion; now Andrea explained the situation, and both expressed their
horror and their relief. Then the Contessa went in search of Galiana,
who had returned to her room, overcome. Bianca followed her, as a
matter of course, and as they left I saw that Teresa had extended one
hand in a strange gesture, her fingers rigid.
Andrea saw it too. With an angry exclamation he struck at
the girl's hand.
"Andrea," I cried. "What are you doing? After what she
has done for me--"
"Forgive me," Andrea muttered. "You don't understand.
I--you had better rest now. I will have the servants remove the rug."
And he ran from the room.
"Send Teresa away," said Miss Perkins. "She should rest
too, she has had a shock."
I did so. When we were alone I turned a look of
bewilderment on my friend.
"I don't understand."
"It is simple enough," Miss Perkins said with a sigh.
"Superstition; the curse of the uneducated. These poor peasants explain
everything that is uncommon as supernatural. The gesture Teresa made
was the ancient defense against the evil eye. Afflicted persons such as
hunchbacks and cripples are often regarded by the ignorant as agents of
the devil. In medieval times women like Bianca were burned as witches.
This country is still in the Middle Ages in many respects. I understand
that the Contessa actually saved the poor creature from persecution in
her home village. I think she is weak-witted, perhaps as a result of
her affliction. It is no wonder that she regards the Contessa as a
saint."
"I still don't understand why Teresa should have made
that gesture."
"It is only a theory, of course," said Miss Perkins
modestly. "But I suspect that Teresa, like her ancestors, believes in a
world which is infested by malevolent spirits. There is no such thing
as accident. Therefore the rabid bat was a demon in animal form, a sort
of witch's familiar. And since Bianca is regarded as a witch…."
"That is ridiculous," I said. "I must talk to Teresa. But
I can't forget, Miss P., how brave she was in defending me."
"She deserves even more credit for facing what she
believed to be an emissary of Satan," said Miss Perkins with a smile.
"Well, thank God it turned out as it did. We can forget the incident
and go down to supper."
We went down, but I did not quickly forget the incident.
Of course I did not believe in witches or curses or vampires. It was
equally impossible that any human agent could have sent the infected
creature to attack me. All the same--three "accidents"…it was surely
stretching coincidence rather far.
III
Some day--if I should live to see it--I will probably
tell my grandchildren that the accident of little Giovanni was the
turning point in the development of my youthful character. It may be
so. But I suspect the change was more gradual, the result of a series
of incidents, each one of which wrought a small but meaningful
alteration, until finally the accumulated influence exploded into my
consciousness.
I well remember the day when the explosion occurred. It
was a hot afternoon in August, and I was drowsing over a book in the
rose garden when the summons from the village reached me.
I had been to the village several times, driven by I know
not what vague impulse; I hesitate to call it kindness or charity, for
charity should be more courageous. I crept there surreptitiously,
fearing Galiana's mockery; and the things I took, small baskets of
food, worn-out clothing, were pilfered from the kitchens and
storerooms, though I might have asked Grandfather for anything in the
castle. The villagers were so poor that they accepted anything
gratefully, and even as I was handing out my scraps I felt guilty for
not doing more.
I spent most of my store on little Giovanni and his
family, since I had a particular interest in them, and also because of
the mother's delicate condition. Heaven knows there was nothing
delicate about the conditions of her life; she worked like a man,
hoeing and harvesting in the fields when she was not working in the
house. In spite of my contributions she did not look in good health, so
when the messenger--one of Giovanni's innumerable brothers--came
running to me, I had a premonition of what had gone wrong. The child
was gray-faced and incoherent in his alarm, but Piero, who was
ubiquitous in those days, popped out from behind the shrubbery and
explained enough to make me anxious to leave at once.
With Piero to accompany me I needed no other escort, and
I wanted none. I did not even want to search for Miss Perkins; time was
already of the essence, if the urchin was to be believed, and I was
afraid--oh, God, my stupid vanity!--I was afraid of being found out by
the others. As I was mounting my horse, however, I remembered Miss
Perkins' skill in nursing, and paused long enough to scribble a hasty
note, which I gave to one of the stablemen--who would hand it to one of
the scullery maids, who would hand it to an upper maid, who would pass
it to a footman…. Eventually it would reach the recipient, and I urged
haste with as much eloquence as I could command.
With Piero behind me and the child on his saddlebow, I
galloped to the village. The main street was drowsing in the heat of
afternoon; most of the dwellers were taking the siesta that is common
in this country. But there was a group of silent watchers before the
door of the house where Giovanni lived, and they all turned, their
faces brightening, as I dismounted and flung my reins to Piero.
I had been inside the house before, and had found it hard
to conquer my aversion to the foul filth of the interior of what had
once been a comfortable medieval townhouse. But never had the abysmal
poverty of the place struck me so forcibly as when I entered the
darkened chamber where the mother lay. The windows were tightly shut
and the stifling heat was enough to make me giddy. I tried to tell the
hovering women to open the shutters (there was, needless to say, no
glass in any of these houses); but they only stared blankly.
I managed to get one of the shutters open. The rush of
clean air was unbelievably welcome. It roused the sick woman; as I
knelt beside her, she opened her sunken eyes and smiled feebly. But I
had seen death before. I knew its signs, and I saw them on the
bloodless face.
Then I cursed my selfishness. If I had brought Miss
Perkins, she might have been able to do something. I was helpless. I
could only take the woman's gnarled hand in mine. That seemed to please
her. She was beyond speech; but she tried to raise my hand to her lips.
That gesture broke me down. I knelt, sobbing, with bowed head, while
the woman died.
Miss Perkins found me there, only minutes later. Her firm
hands on my shoulders roused me and lifted me to my feet. She sent me
out of the room. One of the women had to go with me, I was so blinded
by tears.
It was considerably later when Miss Perkins came out of
the house. Her shoulders were bowed and she looked more than her actual
age; but when she saw me she straightened up and tried to smile.
"Come now, Francesca, tears accomplish nothing. You did
your best for the poor soul. You did what she wanted."
"I could do nothing," I exclaimed angrily.
"You came when she called. I don't think you realize how
these simple folk think of you; your presence gave that woman comfort.
No one could have done more."
My eyes were so swollen I had difficulty in seeing. The
sunlight made them ache. I covered them with my hand, and heard myself
saying,
"It is not right. They shouldn't live this way. I want to
do something, Miss Perkins. Show me how to help! I have been selfish
and stupid, but I will be different from now on."
Miss Perkins was far too sensible to respond to this
outburst--genuine though it was--with sympathy or sentimentality.
"Splendid," she said, in her most matter-of-fact voice.
"If you really feel that way, then stop crying, wipe your eyes, and
think how you can help that orphaned family. Come, take your hand from
your eyes; watch me try to mount, that ought to make you laugh."
I think she was clumsier than usual, on purpose.
So began my first exercises in benevolence. As I had
expected, Galiana was very much amused by it all. Grandfather made no
objections; charity, after all, was a suitable occupation for a lady.
He let me rummage through the cupboards and storerooms for food, and
watched with a smile while I laboriously sewed smocks and shirts for
the children. I was a poor seamstress, and Giovanni wore my ill-made
garments with a look of indignant suffering, but he did not complain.
He was always a silent child. I think he was so used to having his
thumb in his mouth he did not know that feature could be used for the
purpose of speaking.
On one of my visits to the village, a strange thing
happened. I had gone down with a basket of bread, fresh from the oven.
I was greeted with the usual smiles and genuflections (which I was
frail enough to enjoy more than I should) but I was also conscious of a
sort of bustling in the background that I had not encountered before.
As I entered, I saw the figure of a man slip through a door at the back
of the house. For a moment he was silhouetted against the sunlight, and
I had an impression of someone unusually tall, wearing a slouch hat
pulled down low on his head. Then the door closed, and the people of
the house seemed to relax. When I went up to the room occupied by the
Messana family I found then eating a haunch of veal. I knew these
people never saw meat unless they were given it; and I certainly had
not brought this roast. Poaching did occur, but it was extremely
dangerous and was usually limited to small game such as rabbits. They
would never dare kill a calf.
When I asked, they looked at me with the bland expression
oppressed people learn in order to conceal their feelings. Finally
Alberto, the eldest boy, said something about the priest. I knew
better, of course. Father Benedetto was a good man, who tried to
relieve his flock; but he was as poor and uninfluential as any of the
villagers.
I could not help connecting the unusual food with the
mysterious visitor. A thrill ran through me. Surely I had seen that
tall, agile figure before. The twist of his body as he slipped through
the door reminded me of a similar movement--a sideways slip from the
saddle, a sword arm extended…. I needed no further evidence to be
convinced that I had seen the Falcon on one of his errands of mercy.
I was learning a little sense, though; so I said nothing
to the Messanas. Miss Perkins was my only possible confidante. I sought
her out as soon as I returned home, and she listened to my story with
interest, but with a twinkling eye.
"My dear child, you are hopelessly romantic. It is very
unlikely that your hero would occupy himself with such trivia. I know
he is said to help the villagers whenever possible; he seems to have a
special interest in this district. But surely he would send one of his
men on such an errand."
"I suppose so," I said, disappointed. "He has been very
quiet these last few weeks, hasn't he? Since Andrea came home, in fact."
Andrea's stay was about to end, however. According to
Galiana, he had already remained longer than he usually did. He found
the castle very boring and went off frequently to seek amusement
elsewhere.
"It is you he came to see," said Galiana, looking at me
slyly. "I think he will marry you, eh?"
"Why should he?" I inquired.
"It would be most suitable. The two parts of the family
united; the two pets of your grandfather. He would be happy to see it,
I think."
"Would you be happy to see it?"
Galiana turned away, her face unusually sober.
"He is not for me. I must marry an elder son. We have no
money, it is for me to restore the family."
"That's silly," I said. "Andrea won't be a pauper; he
will have quite enough to live comfortably. Do you--do you care for
him, Galiana? Lately I have thought…."
"If I did, it would make no difference," said Galiana
sullenly. "I must marry an elder son. But you--you love him too."
The betrayal in a simple three-letter word! I couldn't
smile, she looked so sad; and in fact her statement made me consider
the question more seriously than I had done.
"I love him," I said thoughtfully. "Certainly I do. But
do I love him as a cousin, a kind friend--or as a man? I don't know,
Galiana."
"Then you are a fool," said Galiana. "Sometimes I wish
you had never come here. Sometimes I almost…" And as I stared at her in
shocked surprise, she burst into tears. "Oh, pay no attention to me, I
never mean what I say," she sobbed. "I am not in love, I must marry--"
"I know," I said, putting my arms around her. "An eldest
son. You are a bigger fool than I am, Galiana, if you really believe
that."
Andrea left us the next day, to visit a friend whose
villa was located near Lake Como. I was sorry to see him go, and yet,
after my conversation with Galiana, it was almost a relief to have him
out of the way for a while. We slipped back into our old quiet ways.
When the blow finally fell, it came all the more painfully for the calm
that had preceded it, like a thunderclap out of a smiling blue
sky--that unheralded thunder that was regarded by the Romans, and their
Etruscan mentors, as a sign of the gods' displeasure.
One breathlessly hot afternoon a week or so after
Andrea's departure we were having tea in the drawing room. I remember
thinking--how ironically, as events were to prove!--that the day was
very dull. The heat seemed to have stupefied our wits, and the group
that had never been noted for vivacity seemed even duller after having
known Andrea's laughter.
Then the bombshell fell. It was heralded by the bursting
open of the great doors, and the appearance of Grandfather, flushed and
panting. He was waving a paper. At first he was too breathless to speak.
The face of a scandalized footman appeared over his
shoulder. I don't think I had ever seen one of the family open a door
since I arrived; a servant always appeared when he was needed. This
time Grandfather's unusual haste had anticipated the servant, but the
man consoled himself by slamming the doors smartly after Grandfather
had entered the room.
I rose and went to take his arm.
"What is it, Grandfather? Is something wrong?"
"No, no; it is good news, excellent news." He waved the
paper, his face aglow. "They have caught him! At last the rascal is
behind bars!"
Miss Perkins made a queer gurgling sound and rose slowly
to her feet. The others stared. It was Galiana who exclaimed.
"Il Falcone? I don't believe it. Who is he, then, your
Excellency?"
Some of the color faded from Grandfather's face.
"Most unfortunate," he said gruffly. "One of our best
families…. It is the Cadorna boy--Antonio."
I caught Miss Perkins' glaring eyes in time to suppress
my cry of distress. I had forgotten; I was not supposed to be
acquainted with Antonio Cadorna. But Galiana did cry out.
"Antonio? Non è possible! He
came to my parties, when I was small…. Is he not a friend of Andrea?"
"I am afraid it is only too true," said Grandfather,
ignoring the last question. "Yes; unfortunate; a fine old family. But
the wretched boy deserves his fate. He was lucky to escape from the
affair in Perugia so easily. Apparently he did not learn from that
experience."
"Oh, dear."
I thought it was Miss Perkins who had emitted that
particularly English expression of well-bred regret. Then I realized
that the speaker was Miss Rhoda. The Contessa looked at her
disapprovingly.
"I, too, regret the shame of a respectable family," she
said. "But Antonio deserves his fate. They will execute him, your
Excellency? His family's prominence will not excuse him this time?"
"No. He is to be hanged in the square at Parezzo in three
days. This letter, from Captain De Merode, informs me of the facts;
quite proper of him, to notify me so promptly. He invites me to witness
the execution." Grandfather spoke firmly, but he avoided our eyes. "I
must go, it is fitting. As you know, I own the inn in Parezzo; we will
have a fine view from the front balcony. You ladies can visit the
shops. You will enjoy that, eh?"
His air of forced cheerfulness told me he was not as
callous as he sounded. All the same, the idea that we could be bribed
by a shopping expedition into witnessing such a dreadful thing made me
angry. I turned away.
"No, I won't go."
"You may please yourself," said Grandfather stiffly.
"I will be honored to go, your Excellency," Galiana
exclaimed. "That is, if Mama--"
"But of course," said the Contessa. "It is proper, my
child; he is an old playmate. You must pray for his salvation."
"Good God," I burst out, and would have said more; but
again Miss Perkins caught my eye.
"I think we should all go," she said.
I knew her so well by then I could understand the way her
mind was working. She was right. There were good reasons why we should
go. In my first horrified reaction I had not thought clearly.
"Very well," I said.
Grandfather smiled. He took my acquiescence for obedience
to his will, and was relieved, like all domestic tyrants, that he did
not have to reprimand someone he loved.
"Excellent," he cried, rubbing his hands together. "I
will go and tell Stefano the good news. He is in the library."
As soon as the doors had closed after him, Miss Rhoda
rose to her feet. There was so little extra flesh on her bones that it
was almost impossible for her face to wrinkle, but she looked extremely
agitated.
"I don't understand this," she said. "I remember that
boy; he was here for a visit a few years ago, at Andrea's invitation.
He cannot be the bandit they are looking for."
"No, no." Miss Perkins was pacing up and down; her
knuckles beat a veritable tattoo on her nose. "No, it is a trick--a
trap. They mean to execute the young man, no doubt, but they hope to
catch a bigger fish with him as bait."
"Good heavens," I exclaimed. "You have it, Miss P. The
Falcon--the real Falcon--will not allow his friend to be murdered!"
Galiana clapped her hands; her face glowed with
excitement.
"Il Falcone will come to his rescue," she cried. "Do you
suppose he will ride into the piazza on a great black horse, as he did
in the village? Only think, we will have a perfect view! The albergo
faces on the piazza, and the balcony--"
I could endure no more. I ran from the room, out of the
house, into the gardens. I needed air. As clearly as if I had seen it
only the day before, the face of the young man came back to me--his
soft brown eyes, the bravado of the big moustaches hiding his gentle
mouth.
Antonio could not be the Falcon. All other factors aside,
there was one overriding objection to the identification. I myself had
seen the rebel leader rip the proclamation from the church door. He had
held his sword in his right hand. Antonio had lost that hand. De Merode
must know this as well as I did. Miss Perkins was right, the execution
was a trap; it was just the sort of diabolical scheme De Merode would
invent. The Falcon would not allow his friend to be hanged. Honor and
affection alike would demand an attempt at rescue. No such attempt
could possibly succeed, for De Merode would take every precaution. And
we, as unwilling witnesses, might have to watch not one, but two, brave
men die.
I was young enough to find the Contessa's character quite
inexplicable. I had seen her weep over a dead canary, and she was
unfailingly kind to poor clumsy Bianca; yet this same woman had once
described, with vindictive pleasure, the torments meted out by the
Inquisition to heretics and unbelievers. I know now that human nature
is not consistent, and that morbid fanaticism is not limited to any
single faith; but I still find such an attitude horrible. At seventeen
I was not only horrified, I was incredulous.
Galiana's callousness concerning a boy whom she had known
and played with as a child was just as repugnant. Miss Perkins would
say that her upbringing was at fault, but to me it seemed like a
complete lack of moral character. She was like her father, who had been
a cruel, arrogant man. How could I have considered her my friend?
I was pacing up and down the terrace in a state of great
agitation when Andrea came in sight on the path that led to the
stables. He was in riding costume; his dusty boots and flushed,
perspiring face betrayed the haste with which he had traveled. He came
to me with long, angry strides.
"Is it true?" he demanded. "I heard the news yesterday
and came straight back. Is it true about Antonio?"
"Yes," I said miserably. "Andrea, I'm so sorry."
"Others will be sorry," said Andrea between his teeth. He
ran into the house.
I stared after him. A new, monstrous suspicion had leaped
into my mind. Was it possible…. No, I told myself; it could not be. All
the same, Andrea was not the man to stand idly by while a friend went
to his death. Now I had a new fear to haunt me.
II
We were to leave early next morning, in order to be in
Parezzo in good time. A messenger had been sent off to warn the
innkeeper of our arrival, so that he could prepare the rooms required
for the family and its servants. I assumed that the persons who
occupied those rooms would be summarily evicted The privileges of
aristocracy are very convenient--for the aristocrats.
I had a long talk with Miss Perkins, but came away
without being much encouraged. It seemed impossible for two women to do
anything to aid the condemned man; yet we decided we must attend the
ghastly ceremony on the remote chance that something might occur.
Besides, now that I had had time to think it over, I knew I would die
of suspense if I had to wait at the castello for
news--even though the news would almost certainly be bad.
Later in the afternoon I went looking for Grandfather in
order to ask which of the maids would be coming with us. There was
really no need for me to ask him, for the servants were expected to
move at a moment's notice, without any regard for their feelings or
plans. However, my newly aroused social conscience had made me more
aware of the servants' personal lives. I had learned, to my surprise,
that Teresa was married to one of the footmen and had an infant whom
her aged mother tended during the day. Teresa had to run back and forth
to give the infant the nourishment only she could supply, and I thought
she might like advance notice in case alternate arrangements had to be
made.
At that point in my thinking I felt both amused and
embarrassed. Were alternate arrangements possible? I assumed they were;
but if Teresa would prefer to remain near her child, I might ask
Grandfather to let me take someone else.
When I reached the library I found the door slightly
ajar. This was so unusual that I paused and looked about, and saw the
slightest movement, no more than a breath of displaced air, at the far
end of the corridor. So one of the servants had been listening at the
door. Galiana had told me they did, but this was the first time I had
had any real evidence of the fact.
I was about to enter the room when I heard a voice I had
not expected to hear, and the words it spoke were so startling that I
stopped where I was and listened myself, quite unashamed.
Miss Rhoda was the speaker; soon I heard Grandfather's
low growl, and also Stefano's voice. He was speaking English, as he
always did with Miss Rhoda. Grandfather's grunts were in Italian, but I
understood most of them.
"He will be killed!" This was the comment made by Miss
Rhoda that had reduced me to eavesdropping. "So ill advised, so
reckless--"
"It was certainly ill advised of him to rush in here
bellowing threats and curses," said Stefano's dry, drawling voice. "But
very characteristic of Andrea, you must agree. If he had kept his
opinions to himself, he might have gone to Parezzo and done something
equally ill advised--challenging De Merode, perhaps, or attacking the
executioner."
Andrea must have gone straight from me to Grandfather and
expressed himself with his usual vigor. I was afraid that if I went
into the room, the speakers would not go on. Carefully I pushed the
door open a little wider until I was able to see them. Stefano sat in
his usual chair, his neatly shod feet extended, his cane balanced
between his hands. Miss Rhoda leaned against the desk, her hands
pressed to her flat bosom; her face was turned away, but distress was
evident in every line of her body. Grandfather was trying to look
unconcerned. He did not succeed.
"Something must be done," said Miss Rhoda. "He must be
prevented from going."
Grandfather muttered something I did not hear; and
Stefano, infuriatingly, burst into a laugh.
"Don't worry about your pet, Aunt Rhoda. Something has
been done. The Prince has given instructions to two of the larger
footmen. How I look forward to watching Andrea trying to kick down his
door! His comments should be very amusing."
"Thank God," said Miss Rhoda, with a sigh.
"What are you saying?" snarled Grandfather, turning on
Stefano as if he needed some object on which to vent his anger. "You
will not see him, or hear him; you are coming with us."
"Oh, no." Stefano shook his head. "Unlike my impetuous
brother, I know there is no hope for Antonio, but I am not sufficiently
depraved to enjoy the spectacle of a former acquaintance choking his
life out at the end of a rope. Besides, my presence will be needed
here. You may lock Andrea in his room, your Excellency, but I am the
only person who can keep him there. Andrea is appallingly strong when
he is in a rage; he is quite capable of battering the door down and
massacring several footmen--even if they are not susceptible to
bribery, which they probably are."
"Hmph," Grandfather grunted. "Very well. Suit yourself."
He turned to the window and stood there with his hands
clasped behind his back. Stefano looked at the tall, unyielding figure;
and for a moment his face had an expression I had never seen on it
before. Then he shrugged and gave his cane an expert twirl, catching it
in his hand.
"Your commendation and thanks touch me deeply, your
Excellency."
"Oh, Stefano, don't be so rude," snapped Miss Rhoda.
"Can't you see we are all upset today? Your plan is a good one. I
approve of it. I count on you to keep Andrea here, it would be
disastrous if…. Well, then, I will go and pack."
As she surged majestically toward the door, I picked up
my skirts and fled. Considering Grandfather's mood, it would be better
for me not to talk to him. It is said that listeners hear no good of
themselves; but my eavesdropping had been quite useful. It had relieved
one worry. Andrea would be prevented from helping his friend. Did that
mean, I wondered, that the mysterious Falcon would not make an
appearance?
III
We reached Parezzo late on the following afternoon. It
was a hot, dusty ride, through the heat of the day, and even with the
windows wide open the great traveling coach had the approximate
temperature of a baking oven. The first sight of the old city would
have aroused a cry of admiration from people less preoccupied than we
were. Like San Gimigniano, Parezzo is a city of towers. Square and
massive, they are a grim reminder of the troubled days of yore, when
only the thickness of a man's walls protected him from the avarice and
cruelty of his neighbors.
Frowning and formidable despite their age, the medieval
walls followed the steep contours of the plateau on which the city
stood. Only in one section, where a precipice plunged sheer into the
green valley below, did the walls disappear, as if admitting that here
man's handiwork could not improve on nature's own defenses. On a higher
ridge above the town was the silhouette of battlemented walls--the old
fortress, built in a remote age by a tyrant who commanded the streets
of the town from that impregnable site. As a state prison and military
barracks it still dominated the unfortunates who lived in its shadow.
After a steep ascent we passed under a great stone
archway whose fourteenth-century masonry was guarded by modern
soldiers. A crowd of people eddied around the gate. The soldiers were
stopping everyone who sought entry to the city, checking papers and
identities. The Tarconti arms on the side of our coach were a
sufficient passport; we were waved on without delay.
Miss Perkins continued to point out architectural and
artistic attractions until Miss Rhoda irritably asked her to stop
blocking the window and cutting off what little breeze there was.
We were all crumpled and cross when the horses stopped in
front of the Albergo Tarconti. It had once been a town house. One of
the earlier Tarcontis, alive to the commercial interests of the family,
had converted it into a hotel. We had the entire first floor to
ourselves. It was a large, rambling structure, so there was more than
enough room. Grandfather and his valet occupied one wing, while another
was assigned to us ladies. A large central chamber, handsomely
decorated, was to be used as a communal sitting room. It overlooked the
piazza and had a long stone balcony running its entire length. The
furnishings were amazingly fine for an inn--velvet settees and
armchairs, marble-topped tables, porcelain lamps and a crystal
chandelier. The beams of the ceiling had been carved, painted and
gilded; one motif, repeated over and over, was the crest of the
Tarconti family--a boar rampant on a field of blue.
A sponge bath and a change of clothing restored me to the
state in which I had begun the day--one of physical ease and extreme
mental disquiet. I went at once to the sitting room, where refreshments
had been set out. Miss Rhoda had brought not only her favorite tea, but
a maid who knew how to prepare it, and the scene that awaited me was,
except for the setting, quite like the normal afternoon ritual. Miss
Perkins, cup in hand, was standing at the window, so I joined her.
"Tomorrow they will carry chairs and tables out onto the
balcony," she said quietly. "The pots of flowers on the balustrades
will be put on the floor so as not to impede our view. It is a
beautiful old town, Francesca. The municipal hall is particularly fine,
and so were some of the houses we passed on the main street."
"Yes, I particularly remember the butcher shop," I said
bitterly. "Bloody carcasses hanging at the open door…."
But the piazza was beautiful. Of considerable extent,
irregular in shape, it was virtually walled in by buildings of at least
six stories in height. The cathedral, Santa Maria della Consolazione,
was directly across from the inn. The communal palace dominated the
eastern side of the square. Under its Romanesque arcade the town market
was held twice a week. Its square tower rose high in the air, higher
even than the campanile of the church. In the
center of the piazza was a handsome fountain with a group of life-sized
statues--Neptune, trident in hand, with dolphins at his feet.
On this day the spectator's eye was held, not by the
ancient beauties of the piazza, but by newer structures. The broad
steps before the duomo were hidden by rows of
wooden seats. Most were not more than long planks raised on temporary
supports; but in the center was a sort of loggia, with luxuriously
cushioned chairs shaded by a striped canopy. I was reminded of Miss
Perkins' description of the emperor's box at the Colosseum, from which
the cruel Caesars watched the murder of the early Christian martyrs;
for the canopied loggia was situated so that its occupants would have a
direct view of the gallows.
It was almost finished. Workmen were hammering at the
high crossbeam from which the rope would hang. The platform was ten or
fifteen feet off the ground, so that everyone could see well….
After supper, which was served in the sitting room, the
nervousness that afflicted us all became increasingly apparent.
Grandfather sat stolidly in the great velvet armchair that had been
reserved for him; he was pretending to read a newspaper, but he never
turned the pages. Miss Rhoda's embroidery made no more progress than
his reading, but the Contessa stitched steadily at the great
altarcloth. The gold thread in her needle flashed in the lamplight as
she drew it in and out of the velvet.
The rest of us didn't trouble to conceal our feelings.
Miss Perkins tramped steadily back and forth the length of the room,
from the fireplace to the windows and back. Galiana was on the balcony,
leaning over the railing and calling back descriptions of the progress
being made on the gallows. It wast not quite dark outside, but soon the
situation--especially the rhythmic pounding of hammers from
outside--got on my nerves to such an extent that I determined to go to
my room. I doubted that I could sleep, but at least the dreadful
hammering would be muffled by distance.
I was gathering my work together when the landlord came
to announce a visitor. I immediately sat down again. I would not have
missed this visitor for the world. It was Captain De Merode.
I had never seen him so impeccably turned out. His boots
shone almost as brightly as his gilded cuirass, and the beautiful white
plume in his helmet would have graced any lady's bonnet.
He accepted a glass of wine and sat turning the crystal
goblet slowly in his hands.
"Well," barked Grandfather. "How is it going, Captain?"
"Bien, très bien," was the
tranquil reply. "A pity that the young man must die; but he seems
determined to end on the gallows. This is not his first offense."
"And is he really the Falcon?" Galiana asked.
"It seems so." De Merode sipped his wine.
"You know he is not," Miss Perkins exclaimed; and then
abruptly turned her back as De Merode glanced at her.
"I don't know anything of the sort, mademoiselle.
Naturally, he denies that he is. But one would expect Il Falcone to do
that, even under the most strenuous questioning…."
"You have tortured him," I burst out.
Grandfather crumpled the newspaper and hurled it to the
floor.
"Francesca, be silent. Such matters are not…. It is
sometimes necessary…. Whether the boy is or is not the man in question,
he is a criminal who deserves death. Captain, what measures have you
taken to prevent a rescue? For, no matter what the man's identity--"
"Oh, of course we have taken precautions," said De Merode
readily. "The Falcon has a motley band of adventurers at his command;
some of them might be foolish enough to attempt a rescue. To date, no
such effort has been made. We have the prisoner in the deepest cell of
the fortress, where he is guarded day and night by a dozen men."
The Contessa raised her head from the cloth she was
making for the glory of God.
"His men must know the impossibility of rescue," she
remarked. "The oubliettes of the fortress have guarded prisoners
securely for centuries. The dangerous time, surely, is when the
prisoner is removed to the place of execution."
"Your intelligence is admirable, madame la comtesse,"
said De Merode. Naturally we know that, and have taken steps. May I
say," he added, turning to Grandfather, "that I am honored to see you
here, your Excellency. But I am sorry not to see the Counts Stefano and
Andrea. Are they, perhaps, abroad in the town?"
I was certain that De Merode knew quite well where my
cousins were; but he accepted Grandfather's palpably false explanation
without the flicker of an eyelash.
"What a pity they are both indisposed," he remarked. "I
had hoped that Andrea in particular would attend; his
recent--er--indiscretion has been overlooked, thanks to the favor of
His Holiness, but some small demonstration of enthusiasm for our holy
cause might be well advised."
Grandfather stiffened.
"My grandson's indiscretions, as you call them, are my
affair, Captain."
"I hope so, your Excellency. I sincerely hope so."
De Merode drained his glass, put it on a table, and rose,
adjusting his sword.
"I must take my leave. There is much to do, as you can
imagine; but I could not neglect your Excellency. May I bid your
Excellency good evening? Ladies…."
Finally he was gone. I felt as if some oppressive
presence had left the room.
"What did he mean?" Miss Rhoda demanded. "About Andrea?
You assured me, Your Excellency, that you had arranged--"
"This questioning is intolerable," shouted Grandfather. I
will retire. I suggest you ladies do so too."
He went storming from the room.
IV
During the night, servants moved some of the furniture
from the salon onto the balcony. Grandfather's crimson velvet chair
occupied the central position. There were other armchairs, footstools,
and several low tables. Because of the orientation of the albergo,
the facade was in the shadow when I went out at nine o'clock, but the
air was already uncomfortably warm and Galiana, who had been in her
chair since eight, was complaining about the heat.
"It will be an oven by noon," she grumbled. "What a silly
time for an execution! I thought dawn was the traditional hour."
"The Captain wants the greatest possible degree of
publicity," said Miss Perkins. "He has a good eye for drama, you must
agree."
The scene was certainly lively and colorful. The viewing
stands on the steps of the cathedral had been decked with tapestries
and cushions. In stark contrast, the gallows was draped in black cloth.
The strands were as yet unoccupied; presumably these favored seats were
reserved for dignitaries. I saw one man, with a gaudily dressed woman
on his arm, turned away from them by a soldier.
The troops were already in position. The vivid reds and
blues of their uniform jackets, the flashing brilliance of their
weapons formed a continuous barricade all the way around the piazza.
The poorer spectators, who did not rate seats in the stands, were
beginning to congregate. One would have to come early for a good view.
I felt a little faint and turned away from the piazza
with its ghoulish crowd. The servants were serving breakfast. I watched
Galiana bite into a roll thickly smeared with preserves, and for a
moment I thought I would be sick.
Then Miss Perkins, who was watching me, remarked, "You
must eat something, Francesca. Unless you mean to fast as a religious
exercise?"
Sarcasm was not one of her habits. I looked at her in
hurt surprise. She gave her head a little sideways twitch, so I went to
the serving table and took a roll. After a moment she joined me.
"Look at the stones in the facade of that house," she
said, leading me to the far corner of the balcony. "Unless I am
mistaken, they are ancient Etruscan tombstones. One sees many such
examples of building materials being reused."
We stood with our backs turned to the others. Miss
Perkins glanced around; then she reached into her ample bosom and
produced a scrap of paper. Pantomiming silence, with her fingers to her
lips, she unfolded it and showed it to me.
There was a single line in writing--emphatic, spiky
handwriting, clearly disguised.
"Courage," it read. "He will not die."
Down in the lower-right-hand corner was a tiny
hieroglyphic--a bird with a hooked beak.
Despite Miss Perkins' warning I almost let out a cry.
"What does it mean?" I whispered. "Where does it come
from?"
"I found it under my door this morning," Miss Perkins
replied softly. "The meaning is clear, I think."
"Yes, yes, but…" Hope and astonishment closed my throat.
I crumpled the uneaten bread in my hand. "It is kindly meant, a
gracious thought; but why should he take the trouble to reassure you?
Miss Perkins, are you--"
"No." Her gray eyes were steady; I could not doubt her.
"I swear to you, Francesca, I know no more about the Falcon than you
do. I was about to ask you the same question. If he knows me well
enough to be aware of my sentiments on this matter, he must have known
that I would confide in you. It would be easier to reach me, in my
cubbyhole near the stairs, than to get to your room; and you have a
maid who might have found it first. Are you--"
"I am sure of only one thing, and that is that I am sure
of nothing. Miss Perkins, I will go mad of suspense!"
"We must keep our heads, my dear. I was not joking when I
said you should eat. Keep your strength up and be on the alert. One
never knows."
And this amazing woman then proceeded to eat the note,
washing it down with a long swallow of tea. I began to giggle
hysterically, though I knew she had done what had to be done.
Encouraged by the note, though utterly bewildered by its
import, I forced down some bread and tea and then took my chair,
determined to miss nothing. My heart was pounding so hard I thought
everyone must hear it; but no one was completely calm that day.
Except perhaps the Contessa. Dressed in her usual black,
looking icy cool despite the heat of the day, she had for once
abandoned her embroidery. Her head was bent over her prayer book, and
her lips moved continually. It should have been an edifying sight--this
saintly woman praying for a man she despised--but I found it chilling.
Galiana's giddy comments were scarcely less horrible. For
once she had found enough excitement. Bouncing up and down in her
chair, her bright eyes darting from side to side, she saw everything
that went on, and commented on it.
As the sun mounted higher, the gaily bedecked stands
began to fill up. As I had suspected, the occupants were distinguished
persons; their clothing spoke of their wealth and social position, for
all were dressed in their best. Several men wore gaudy uniforms with
yards of gold braid, huge epaulets, shiny buttons, and the most
fantastic hats. One portly gentleman, whose stomach was so large he
could rest his folded arms on it, had a tricorne hat as large as that
of the great Napoleon I, and rows of medals decorated the breast of his
bright-blue coat. There were even a few ladies among those present.
Some carried ruffled parasols to protect themselves against the sun.
There were so many soldiers that they stood literally
shoulder to shoulder. The bright bayonets on the muskets formed a
shining wall behind which the humbler townsfolk pushed and shoved for
position. The central part of the piazza was kept clear, but the
perimeter, behind the barricade of soldiers, was a jostling mass.
Beyond the spire of the duomo, on
the high westward promontory, the stone walls of the fortress could be
seen. I looked at them, thinking of the young man who lay there, in the
deepest dungeon. Would they send a priest to him, before the end? I
shuddered to think of the torments he had endured, of the mental
torture suffered by one so soon to die. As the morning wore on with
horrible slowness--yet so quickly for the condemned man--the hopeful
mood inspired in me by the note began to fade. The Falcon might boast
of his intentions, but how could he possibly succeed? The piazza was
swarming with soldiers, all armed to the teeth. If the Falcon was
contemplating a dramatic last-second rescue from the very foot of the
gallows, he must be desperately foolhardy. There was no way out of the
piazza. The stone-walled houses around it were like a barricade.
Mounted soldiers barred the exits into the narrow streets and vincoli.
Even the doors of the cathedral and the entrances into the other
buildings were guarded. There were six soldiers at the inn door, under
our balcony. Galiana, leaning over the balustrade, was exchanging
remarks with them. Neither her mother nor Grandfather reproved her;
they were too occupied with their own thoughts to notice, and she was
taking full advantage of this unusual freedom.
I decided we had all been misled by the Falcon's earlier
demonstrations of reckless action. There was no reason to suppose he
would wait until the last minute to attempt a rescue. No, he would
perhaps attack the party while it was on its way to the place of
execution, from the fortress. The streets were narrow, walled in by
houses; from one of these a party of determined men might rush out and
snatch the prisoner.
Then Galiana straightened up.
"Ah, but the Captain is a clever fellow," she said,
addressing me. "Guess what he has done now. The soldier just told me.
He has moved poor Antonio from the fortress; it was done last night, in
secret. He is now guarded in the new barracks, on the east of the town.
The soldiers will bring him from there to the piazza, and now all the
inhabitants of the houses along the route are being taken from their
homes and imprisoned in the fortress until after the execution."
She returned to her conversation with the soldiers, and
Miss Perkins and I stared at one another in consternation.
"The Captain is a brilliant fiend," she exclaimed. "Even
if the Falcon learns of the change in plan, he will be unable to
arrange an ambush. Oh, dear, oh, dear; this is dreadful!"
The blazing golden orb of the sun lifted slowly toward
the zenith. The stands were completely filled. In the central box sat a
stout, mustachioed man dressed in a bright uniform. There were other
dignitaries with him, wearing formal clothes and top hats, with ribbons
stretched across their breasts.
The piazza was now a solid mass of people, except for the
cleared space in the middle. Almost all of the standing spectators were
men. Their cheap dark clothing made a somber frame for the brilliance
of the decorated stands. Some of the windows and balconies of the
houses were crowded with spectators. Other windows were significantly
shuttered; soldiers stood guard on certain of the balconies, and even
on the lower roofs. De Merode had not missed a trick.
Suddenly there was a disturbance in the crowd under the
arch at the opening of the Via della Stellata. The instantaneous
response of the soldiers in this vicinity showed their alertness; they
pushed ruthlessly at the crowd, ignoring the cries of pain, until a
small space had been cleared. In the midst of this open area two
officers, armed with swords instead of muskets, were struggling with a
single figure which looked very small and slight between them. It wore
a long dark habit and hood like that of a friar; but as the soldiers
roughly grasped it, the hood fell back; and I, like the other watchers,
let out a cry of surprise. The face displayed was that of a woman--not
the sunburned skin of a peasant, but the pale, proud profile of a
handsome young lady. I caught only a glimpse of it, and its expression
of anguish, before the uneven struggle was quickly ended and the
slender figure was borne away. But Galiana had recognized her.
"Santa Maria, it is Elisabetta Condotti. How did she get
here? Her family has had her locked up for weeks."
"Who is she?" I asked.
"Antonio's betrothed. At least she was betrothed to him
before he became a revolutionary. She is supposed to be married next
month to a rich banker in Florence."
"Good heavens," I whispered. "That poor, poor creature."
"They will lock her up again, on bread and water," said
Galiana, staring with interest at the spot where the struggle had taken
place. "How foolish it was of her to do that."
"She hoped to see him, one last time," I said softly.
"Perhaps even to speak to him, or touch his sleeve…. And he would see
her, and know that she had courage enough to be with him at the end."
Miss Perkins looked at me curiously but said nothing.
Through the long hot hours, Grandfather had sat like a
graven image, moving only to accept a glass of wine or a biscuit from
his valet. Even the incident of the young woman had not wrung a comment
from him. I knew he was not as unkind as he seemed; I knew he was not
completely happy about what was going on. But in the conflict between
his natural kindness and his pride of caste, the latter had to conquer.
Just when I thought my stretched nerves could not bear
the waiting any longer, there was a stir and eddy among the crowd
across the piazza. Here, under a lichened stone archway, the Via di
Guistizia entered the square. The soldiers there were shoving at the
crowd, clearing the way.
"But surely it is not time," I exclaimed, turning to Miss
Perkins. She consulted her watch.
"It is twenty past eleven. That cunning devil De Merode
has thought of everything."
"And the Falcon has not made his move. It is too late; he
can never reach Antonio here."
Unconsciously we had both risen to our feet. So had the
others. Only Grandfather sat stolidly, staring straight ahead. Even the
Contessa was standing; her lips still moved and her rosary slipped
through her slender white fingers.
The soldiers had cleared a path into the center of the
piazza, a passageway walled with naked steel. Mounted men, a dozen or
more of them, guarded the archway. Through it came the procession.
Two men on horseback led it. De Merode was not one of
them. Then I saw him; his tall white plume stood up bravely above the
caps of the soldiers who surrounded the condemned man. As they drew
nearer, our vantage point above the heads of spectators and soldiers
allowed us to see every detail. De Merode, his unsheathed sword in his
hand, walked immediately behind the prisoner.
Antonio's head was bare. His arms were bound behind him.
His white shirt was open, the collar turned under, in order to
facilitate the hangman's work. There was a soldier on either side of
him, half supporting him, for he could barely walk. His face was
unmarked, but I did not doubt that De Merode had used all the methods
at his disposal to wring a confession from his prisoner--not of his
identity, but of his leader's plans. The torture had an additional
subtle cruelty in its results; physical weakness deprived Antonio of
the ability to walk proudly to death with his head held high. He was a
pitiful sight, but not a gallant or inspiring one, as he was dragged
along between the two soldiers. From the crowd came a low, sullen
sound, like the rumble of far-off thunder. It died as De Merode's voice
cracked out an order and fifty bayonets rose to position.
In the quivering silence the little cavalcade approached
the steps of the gallows. A black-robed priest walked beside the
condemned man; a low mumble of Latin reached my ears, but the priestly
exhortations were wasted on Antonio, whose head had fallen onto his
chest.
The sunlight was so bright it hurt my eyes. The heated
air distorted objects; they seemed to quiver and sway…. No! It was not
an error of vision; the stands before the cathedral really were
swaying. Slowly the whole massive structure folded, as if a giant
invisible knife had cut straight through the center. It collapsed in a
horrible mixture of wooden planking and torn cloth--and human flesh. A
great scream went up; dust and splinters flew into the air.
Before the dust had time to settle, another sound rent
the shaken air--not human this time, the roar of an explosion. A cloud
of smoke rose behind the roofs of the town in the direction of the
barracks.
This second catastrophe, on the heels of the first,
completed the demoralization of the crowd. There was no longer a
cleared space in the piazza; it was jammed with screaming, struggling
bodies. Some of the spectators tried to get away, others ran toward the
wreckage of the stands, where fallen bodies writhed.
Above the din one voice rose--that of De Merode, shouting
orders. By sheer force of personality he had managed to keep a few of
his men under control; they stood fast around the prisoner. De Merode
had Antonio by the arm. A new ray of hope had given strength to the
injured man; he stood upright, swaying with weakness but alert, looking
from side to side. Yet, his position was still hopeless; the point of
De Merode's sword touched his breast, announcing as clearly as words:
One move at rescue and I myself will perform the execution.
The piazza began to clear as the terrified spectators
fled. The place was like a battlefield, with bayonets flashing, horses
plunging out of control, blood and fallen bodies everywhere. I had
heard no shots. The soldiers could not fire into the turmoil for fear
of hitting an ally; and indeed, at this point there was no enemy to be
seen, only utter confusion. So far as I could see, the only ones
injured were those who had occupied the viewing stands, and I thought
vindictively: It serves them right, the ghouls. Yet the sight was
terrible. Some of the soldiers were pulling away the debris in order to
free those pinned beneath. Those who had not been caught were
staggering or crawling away from the scene of the disaster. One very
fat young woman did not appear to be badly hurt, for she was scuttling
along quite fast on her hands and knees. The angle of her crushed hoops
gave us a shocking view of ruffled pantalets and plump pink legs. She
was more comical than terrible, but another person--the military
gentleman I had noticed earlier--was a frightful sight as he reeled
across the square clutching his head. He had lost his tricorne hat, his
blue coat was torn, and his features were almost obscured by blood. The
crimson streams must have blinded him, for he plunged straight at the
little group that still stood fast--the condemned man and his guard….
Where was the guard? The soldiers had disappeared as if
blown away by a magician's spell. It must have happened very quickly,
for De Merode recognized that fact at about the same time I did. A
great flash of light shone, as his sword arm moved. It was crossed by
another flash--the sword of the bloodstained man in uniform, who was
staggering no longer. Straight as a spear, the padding that had
disguised his body flung aside, he struck the Captain's point away
before it could pierce the prisoner's breast. Antonio went staggering
back and was caught by a man garbed in the same rough dark clothing the
poorer towns-people wore. This man helped him into the saddle of a
horse whose uniformed rider had vanished like the other guards.
The piazza was still a melee of struggling bodies, but
the struggle was purposeless no longer; for every bright crimson
uniform there were several dark-clad men--some of them masked--and a
dozen miniature battles were going on. A few of the mounted soldiers
still kept their seats, but one by one they went down before the
assaults of those grim dark figures. Demoralized, virtually leaderless,
the soldiers were no match for opponents who were obviously acting in
accordance with a brilliantly detailed plan. The sharpshooters on the
roofs and balconies dared not fire; the struggling bodies were too
close together. Speed was on the side of the attackers, too. The entire
attack was begun and ended within the space of a few minutes, and the
plunging horses galloped away with their new riders.
One struggle still went on, at the very foot of the
gallows. De Merode's face was contorted in a wolflike snarl, his sword
struck sparks every time it moved. The other man's face was obscured by
the ghastly crimson mask, but it obviously did not affect his eyesight.
Every stroke was neatly parried, every step calculated. Now that
Antonio had been saved, the Falcon's design was to keep the Captain
occupied while his men made good their escape. How he knew when the
moment arrived I cannot imagine, but at a certain time he moved to
attack instead of passively defending himself. De Merode was no mean
antagonist. The two were evenly matched, and the unknown was unable to
penetrate that flashing guard. I let out an anguished shriek as the
Captain's blade barely missed the other's body. The piazza was clearing
rapidly; soon the soldiers would get their wits together, and it would
be a hundred to one….
Miss Perkins snatched up one of the pottery jars, planted
with a lovely trail of salmon geranium, lifted it high above her head,
and threw it.
The first time I saw her I was reminded of a man, and now
her broad shoulders and sturdy frame carried out the task with almost
masculine strength. The heavy pot, which I could not have lifted, came
crashing down into the piazza. It did not come close to the duelists,
but the sound made De Merode start. He recovered almost at once; but he
was just that fraction of a second too slow to deflect his opponent's
blade entirely, although his catlike quickness undoubtedly saved his
life. The thrust was aimed at his breast. It pierced his arm instead,
but the blow was enough to fell him. His adversary snatched the bridle
of a horse that was being held for him. But instead of mounting he
paused and surveyed the piazza with a sweeping glance.
"Hurry, hurry," shrieked Miss Perkins, jumping up and
down. She was clutching my arm. I had bruises next day, five little
black spots, but at the time I felt nothing.
It almost seemed as if the Falcon had heard her. His gaze
turned toward the balcony where we stood. The drying mask of his face
cracked as he smiled; he drew one finger down his cheek, through the
scarlet stains--and put it to his mouth. From Miss Perkins came a
breathless squeak of laughter.
"Tomato juice," she gasped. "Under his hat…. Hurry, you
mountebank!"
The Falcon's narrowed eyes had already left her; they
focused on the object for which they had been searching. One of the
fallen bodies, dressed in rough homespun, was moving. The Falcon
reached it in a series of leaps, dragging his horse with him. Bending,
he swept the man up and flung him across the saddle. Then he mounted
and turned the horse's head toward the Via della Stellata.
His sword was still in his hand and he used it
ruthlessly, striking down the soldiers who snatched at his stirrups. He
was almost at the archway, and safety, when De Merode rose to a sitting
position. His right arm hung limp; he held the pistol in his left
hand--leveled it--and fired. He must have missed at such a distance.
But his shot was a signal to the other men with firearms. A rattle of
ragged musket fire burst out, and one of the bullets struck the target.
I saw it strike, saw a puff of dust go up from the back of the
brilliant blue coat of the mounted man. The impact of the shot flung
him forward across the horse's neck. The startled animal bolted into
the Via della Stellata, followed by a dozen men.
No one said anything to Miss Perkins about the flowerpot,
though the others, including Grandfather, must have seen her throw it.
But the Contessa's attitude toward my friend changed. She shrank from
Miss Perkins after that as she would have shrunk from a vicious
criminal.
The ride back to the castello would have been
uncomfortable in any case, even without the Contessa's refusal to sit
next to Miss Perkins. We left immediately. Grandfather was like a man
possessed, he barely gave us time to pack, and the fact that we would
not reach home before nightfall did not alter his decision. He asked De
Merode for an escort--and was met with a curt refusal. Every man was
needed.
The Falcon had escaped, but only for the moment. His
horse had been found running loose, its flanks horribly streaked with
drying blood--real blood this time, not a substitute. The two men it
had carried had found refuge in a stable or cellar, protected, no
doubt, by a sympathizer in the city. There were hundreds of hiding
places in the old town, but they would all be searched, and until the
search was completed, the town was sealed off. De Merode himself would
have to vouch for any person who wanted to leave.
It was late afternoon before our coach reached the Porta
San Giovanni. All the other gates were closed. This was the only exit
from the town, and it was guarded by a detachment of soldiers. The
coach stopped and I heard the outraged voice of old Bernardo, the
coachman, expostulating with the soldiers. I tried to look out the
window, and bumped heads smartly with Galiana, who was trying to do the
same thing.
The first person I saw was Captain De Merode. His arm was
in a neat white sling and he was paler than usual; otherwise one would
not have known that he was injured, for he was faultlessly erect in the
saddle and his expression was the usual one of cool indifference.
Grandfather's great black stallion stood next to the Captain's horse,
and the two men were talking together. Finally Grandfather shrugged and
turned aside. De Merode came toward us.
"Ladies, your pardon, but I must ask you to get out of
the coach. I assure you, the delay will be as short as possible."
Miss Rhoda voiced loud objections, but to no avail.
Grandfather said nothing. So we got out and the soldiers practically
took the coach to pieces. There was no space, no matter how small, they
did not look into.
The transaction took less time than one might have
expected, and in a few minutes we took our places again. As soon as we
were through the gate, the horses broke into a trot and they maintained
this pace for the entire trip except when it was necessary for them to
be rested. What with the heat and the jolting, the ride was physically
most uncomfortable. As for our mental states, they may be imagined.
Conversation was impossible; even Galiana gave up the attempt after a
few disjointed exclamations of curiosity and frustrated interest; and
since Miss Perkins and I could not talk confidentially, we did not try
to talk at all. Darkness had fallen before we reached the castle. We
went straight to our rooms, exhausted.
I found Teresa waiting in my beautiful new suite. The bed
was turned back, warm water stood waiting to be poured into the hip
bath, and a fresh nightgown was laid out. Grandfather had sent one of
the footmen galloping ahead to announce our imminent arrival. He had
also carried the great news. I expected that Teresa would be
overflowing with questions, but I found she knew as much about the
affair as I did.
If it had not been for Miss Perkins, I probably would
have gone on thinking of the servants as obedient, convenient puppets
instead of as human beings. To think of them in the latter fashion was
not convenient; it raised too many uncomfortable questions. It was
common knowledge that the servants in a great house knew all the
secrets of the house, often before the master did. The masters took
this for granted and joked about it, as they would have joked about the
clever tricks of a pet. It never seemed to occur to them that this
secret pathway of communication might have its dangers, or that the
creatures they disregarded might threaten them. The barriers between
the two classes were unbreachable. Teresa and I were on friendly terms;
I thought she trusted me and liked me. But that night, when I tried to
get her to express her reactions to the dramatic events that had
transpired in Parezzo, she simply shook her head and made noncommittal
noises. She had been taught to hold her tongue--and I was one of the
enemy. I didn't blame her, but it was exasperating. I finally asked her
point blank, "Can he escape? È possible?"
She shrugged tactfully and rolled her eyes.
"Well, I hope he does," I exclaimed. " ll
è un--what is the word for ‘hero'?-- un eroe.
Nobile, bravo, galante…." Here my stock of adulatory
adjectives ran out. Teresa stared at me, her face a well-schooled
blank, and I added, "I will pray for him." For a moment, then, I
thought the girl's black eyes softened.
Teresa tucked me into bed and put out all the lights
except a pair of candles, shielded against drafts by a clear crystal
cover. The slim topaz flames were shaped like little hands lifted in
appeal. I watched them through drooping eyelashes, and although I did
not lift my own hands, I prayed, more fervently than I had every prayed
before.
II
I woke next morning feeling wretched, after a night
troubled by strange dreams. The hovering bird had been a constant
leitmotiv; now soaring high with beating wings, now swooping to strike;
now plummeting earthward, its once powerful wings limp in death. The
last vision woke me. I sat up with a stifled scream. Sunlight was
pouring into my room and my sweatsoaked nightgown clung to me
uncomfortably.
The day was steaming hot, one of the hottest of the
summer. Teresa laid out the coolest frock I owned, a thin barred muslin
of pale green with ribbons of darker green at the waist and
elbow-length sleeves. I tied my hair back, looping the thick waves up
off my neck and binding them with dark-green ribbons. The image that
glowered back at me from my mirror was marred by the sour expression
and by the drops of perspiration on my forehead.
There was no one in the breakfast room when I went down.
I nibbled at a roll, but heat and anxiety had destroyed my appetite. I
asked the steward whether he had seen Miss Perkins. He said she had
breakfasted and left, he did not know where. The eternal, amiable
Italian shrug and outspread hands had never irritated me more. I
finished spoiling my food and wandered through the empty echoing room.
I knew it was cooler inside the house than it would be outdoors, but I
wanted air, so I went into the garden.
There was no sign of Miss Perkins in the rose garden,
which was usually one of her favorite spots. Nor was she in the water
garden, or the arbor, or the fountain room. Increasingly hot and
disgusted, I walked along the path that led to Stefano's retreat.
The flowers were drooping and dusty; the little house was
shuttered against the heat. I leaned on the gate, staring at the closed
door. By that time I would have talked even to Stefano, but I was
afraid to risk a brusque denial. While I stood there, the door opened
and Piero came out. When he saw me he made as if to go in again, but I
beckoned peremptorily.
"The signorina will ride today?" he asked. "I cannot go,
but another groom--"
"No, it is too hot," I said, in my careful Italian. "Is signor
il conte within? Can I--"
"He is within, signorina; he is not well today, he rests."
"I didn't want to see him anyway," I muttered, turning
away. I had spoken in English. Piero said, "Come?"
I smiled and shrugged and walked away, thinking, "There, I am doing it
myself. I wonder if it irritates Italians as much as it does me."
I went back to the rose garden, and there at last I found
Miss Perkins. She had been looking for me; we had missed each other all
morning. She was trying to look cheerful, but my heart took a downward
plunge as I noticed the worry in her eyes.
"Don't tell me there is bad news," I exclaimed. "Have
they--have they captured him?"
"No; in fact there is good reason to believe that he has
escaped from Parezzo. A messenger arrived this morning, early. The
Prince is deeply concerned; I heard him instructing the innkeeper to
send news at once if anything happened."
"But that is wonderful news," I exclaimed. "Why do you
look so serious?"
"The very fact that he is known to have left the town is
cause for concern. De Merode cannot have searched every nook and cranny
by this time, so he must have gotten word from an informer. If the
informer is someone the Falcon trusts, his every move will be carried
back to his enemy."
"I think you are being too pessimistic," I said.
"I hope so; I sincerely hope so," said Miss Perkins, with
a groan. "I am not good at concealing my feelings; I suppose everyone
in the castle knows that my sympathies are with this young man. And,
oh, Francesca--I fear he is badly hurt. How can a wounded man, weak
from loss of blood, travel fast enough to elude a merciless pursuer
like De Merode? What refuge can he find, with a price on his head and
every soldier in the area searching for him? I wish there were
something I could do!"
"So do I," I whispered.
"Why?" We had been pacing slowly up and down the paths
between the roses. Now she stopped and turned to face me. "Is it just a
girl's romantic imagination that makes you so interested in this man?
Or do you know--"
"I know no more than you. But believe me, it is not
only…. Oh, I think any woman would respond to the sheer romance of the
man, but it is more than that with me; I have seen how these people
suffer, from poverty and ignorance and disease. They deserve better.
This man is trying to help them."
"You are not the thoughtless girl you were when you came
to Italy," said Miss Perkins. "You have grown up a great deal in the
last few months."
"Yes, I have. And," I added, trying to smile, "I must say
I find the process very painful."
"Well, we must hope for the best," said Miss Perkins,
beginning to walk again. "That is all women can do--wait and hope. Such
a waste! We have more strength, more ardor than men realize; if they
would only allow us to share in their struggles!"
"Some men appreciate your abilities," I said. "Andrea
once told me--" And then I came to a stop, my hand at my mouth. "Miss
Perkins! I have been so distressed I forgot all about Andrea. Has he
been released from his room? Piero said that Stefano is in his house,
so I assume--"
"Yes, he is free. He went flying off in a perfect rage,
according to the servants. By then it was too late for him to reach
Parezzo in time for the execution, so I don't know where he has gone.
Off to drown his disappointment in some tavern, if I know men."
"That is a relief. Do you know, Miss Perkins, I was silly
enough…. For a while I actually wondered if Andrea might not be the
Falcon."
"Did you," said Miss Perkins thoughtfully. "Did you,
indeed?"
III
For the remainder of the day I haunted the Salone dei
Divi. This formal, seldom-used chamber had one conspicuous
advantage--it was near the library, where Grandfather was brooding like
a lion in his lair. From this salon I would hear immediately if a
messenger arrived, and I vowed that I would brave the lion if necessary
in order to get the latest news. But the morning wore on without event,
and when the colazione, the midday meal, was
announced, I went to the dining room. Grandfather was not present. Miss
Rhoda said he was dining alone. She seemed disturbed about
something--her precious Andrea, perhaps, for he had not returned.
Galiana was silent too. Her eyes were suspiciously red, and from the
way she kept glancing piteously at her mother, I deduced that she had
been scolded for some misdemeanor or other--perhaps for her bold
behavior on the previous day. The Contessa did not look at her.
Obviously Galiana was in disgrace, and I couldn't help feeling sorry
for her.
It was a relief when the meal was finished and the others
scattered to their rooms for the afternoon rest. I lay down on my bed,
but the heat was so oppressive I could not sleep. Teresa had said there
would be a storm before nightfall. I hoped it was true; rain would
break the heat.
But when I arose after an hour or so, the sun still beat
down out of a cloudless sky. My beautiful rooms oppressed me. I could
not help contrasting their elegance with the mean, stifling houses in
the village. I thought of the man who might even now be lying in some
such foul cellar on a bed of verminous straw--feverish, perhaps dying….
The picture was too vivid, too painful; with a stifled exclamation I
ran from the room, snatching up a straw hat as I went. I had not
visited my friends in the village lately. It might distract me from my
painful thoughts to see how they were getting on.
Piero was nowhere to be seen. One of the grooms, a
nice-looking boy who could not have been more than sixteen, accompanied
me.
The village looked like a city of the dead. Only a few
starved dogs lay panting in the shade. The afternoon was wearing on,
though; shortly the villagers would begin to emerge from their houses.
I glanced up at the sun. No, I was not too early; and I was sure of a
welcome at any time.
The groom had to pound on the door for some time before
anyone answered. Finally the door opened a crack. I could see two eyes,
wide with surprise or fear, then the door opened wide and I saw
Alberto, Giovanni's older brother. He was one of my favorites--a frank,
open-faced boy with a beautiful smile. He was not smiling now.
"Signorina?" he said slowly.
"May I come in?" I held up a basket filled with food.
Instead of moving back, Alberto came out onto the
doorstep and closed the door. He spoke urgently, waving his hands. I
caught only a few words, but his gestures made his meaning plain. He
was telling me to go back to the castle.
I stared at him, offended and hurt. He had gestured
toward the horizon, and there, it was true, I could see storm clouds
beginning to darken the sky. But the storm was a long way off. There
was no hurry.
Suddenly there was a stifled exclamation from my groom. I
turned and saw that another man had joined him. They spoke together,
and the groom's swarthy face turned a queer gray shade.
"Signorina," he said urgently. "Subito--al
castello, per piacere--"
"What is happening?" I demanded. "What--no!" For he had
dared to lay hands on me and was pulling me toward my horse. I
resisted, more indignant than frightened.
"Momento!" Alberto ran down the steps
and caught the groom's arm. Another conference ensued; and then the
stranger turned to me.
"Signorina--will you come with me?"
I started. He spoke not the local dialect but pure,
elegant Tuscan. Even his appearance had undergone a subtle change. His
dark face had a stubble of beard which, with his rough clothing, gave
him a villainous appearance; but now I realized that his long, thin
nose and fine-boned face were not those of a peasant. I hesitated. And
then, some distance away, perhaps on the far side of the village, I
heard sounds. Voices were raised, some in alarm, others in command.
"Si, soldati," said the stranger.
"The soldiers who search for the Falcon. Will you come, signorina?"
I picked up my skirts, lifted them high.
"Where?" I asked.
"This way." I followed him into a street so narrow my
hoops brushed the fronts of the houses. Then he stopped before a door
half hidden in a deep archway, and knocked--a strange combination of
knocks, with pauses in between. The door opened.
It was the dark, evil-smelling cellar of my worst
imaginings. A single candle smoked and sputtered, giving off barely
enough light to enable me to see shapes. I saw two people--men. There
might have been others in the shadows, but I did not look farther; my
eyes went straight to the man who was lying, as I had pictured him, on
a bed of straw in the corner. The candle had been placed so that its
dim light would fall on his body. His shirt was open, and rough
bandages covered his breast. His head also seemed to be swathed in
bandages, but he was conscious; when he saw me, he let out a stream of
hissing, vehement speech, and tried to sit up. The effort was too much.
He fell back, his head striking against the earthen floor.
His remarks ended a low-voiced but vigorous debate
between my guide and one of the other men. I did not doubt that it
concerned me, and the propriety of bringing me here, but I cared
nothing for that. Pulling away from the hands that would have held me,
I ran across the room and dropped to my knees beside the wounded man.
As I did so, one of the guards struck out the candle.
"Stupido," I said angrily. "How can I
see?"
A voice spoke close to my elbow. It was that of my guide.
"Signorina, our leader has lived thus far only because
few of us know who he is. Not even your family could save you if the
enemy thought you could identify him."
The reasoning was doubly convincing in its appeal to my
fears for myself and for the wounded man. There was only one flaw in
the argument. I already knew the Falcon's real identity. His head was
covered by a close-fitting hood that concealed even his hair, with
slits for eyes, nose and mouth; but before the light was extinguished I
had seen a mark on his bared chest--the same mark I had seen once
before on the chest of my cousin Andrea.
Not for an instant was I tempted to mention this. There
were traitors everywhere. Besides, there was no time for anything but
the vital question.
"Does De Merode know he is here?" I spoke in French. It
was necessary to communicate quickly and accurately now, and my
assumption proved to be correct. My guide answered in the same
language, and in the accents of a cultured man.
"Perhaps not. This town is known to be his base. It would
be logical--"
I cut him short. "It doesn't matter. What matters is that
the town will be searched, down to the last kennel. We must get him out
of here."
"But where? No place in the village is safe now."
"The castle. I will hide him in my rooms."
"Impossible, mademoiselle! Some of the servants are with
us, others are not. You could not get him to your rooms without being
seen. Besides, the castle is probably being searched now. A troop of
men, headed by De Merode himself, was seen riding in that direction
less than half an hour ago."
This news shook me to the core. Was De Merode already
suspicious of Andrea? Several of his remarks, meaningless at the time,
now took on a new and terrible significance. But Andrea's absence would
prove nothing; only the capture of the Falcon would do that, and that I
must prevent at any cost.
"He can be hidden somewhere in the hills," I said,
urgency quickening my voice. "I'll think of something. But first we
must get him out of town. If he could ride--"
"I can ride, signorina. Or run, if I must."
I had thought him unconscious. My hand was touching his
breast, and at the sound of his voice I must have pressed down harder
than I meant, for he gave a muffled grunt of pain. His voice was
clearly disguised, a soft, hissing whisper. He spoke the local patois,
but clearly and distinctly. He went on, "Where is your groom? Your
horses?"
His men were well trained. With a minimum of speech and
the utmost speed, the plan the Falcon had hinted at was carried out. I
did not inquire whether my groom's cooperation was forced or voluntary.
While the falcon struggled into the jacket and plumed cap that was the
Tarconti livery, I stood biting my nails with nervous excitement. We
did not leave through the door by which I had entered, but followed a
passageway into a tiny piazza nearby, where the horses were waiting.
The storm clouds had come nearer. The sky was a queer
sullen gray. The dim light was a godsend, but we would need more help
than that from heaven. My companion was a grotesque sight, for the
jacket was far too small for him, and his masked face was hardly
inconspicuous. The disguise, if it could be called that, would pass
muster only at a distance; but that was all it was designed to do. Any
soldier who caught a glimpse of us would assume I was accompanied by
the same servant who had come to the village with me. He would not dare
stop me. If he tried--well, we would have to face that if and when it
happened.
My erstwhile guide, looking even more like a bandit,
caught me in his arms and flung me into my saddle.
"Mademoiselle, I beg you, stay with him," he said
urgently. "He will try to send you away; but he is too weak, he can't
go far alone. If I can, I will meet you outside the town--he knows the
place--but if I should be caught…. Promise you will not leave him!"
"I promise." I turned the horse's head to follow my
"groom," who was already disappearing into the roofed passageway.
Though it was past the hour when the town usually
awakened to life after its siesta, there was not a soul to be seen.
Even the dogs had disappeared. We went at a slow walk, the horses'
hooves scarcely audible in the dust that carpeted the black streets. He
led, I followed; never were the vincoli wide
enough to allow two horses to go side by side. It would have been a
wonderful place for children to play hide and seek--winding, narrow,
with culs-de-sac and mysterious low archways leading into unknown
darkness. We, too, were playing hide and seek, but the loser of the
game would pay a bitter forfeit.
I had not known this part of the town existed. It must
not have changed for five hundred years. I would have been lost within
a few minutes, but the man ahead of me seemed to know every foot of the
way. He took a winding, circuitous path--and not always by choice.
Several times he turned suddenly away from a street when the muffled
sounds of activity were heard there. Once I saw a flash of scarlet
passing in the distance.
Finally we came out of the village onto a narrow plateau.
The transition was almost as abrupt as if a wall had separated town
from country, and indeed a few crumbling foundations showed that the
ancient walls had once stood here. From the high point a narrow path
had been beaten through the weeds that covered the hillside. We were
halfway down the path, within a few yards of a grove of trees, when a
shout behind us made me turn my head.
Thunder muttered overhead; the sky was curtained with
low-hanging clouds. But the scarlet coats stood out against the sober
gray stone of the houses on the hill. One of the soldiers raised an
arm, as if in summons; or perhaps he was aiming a musket, I could not
see distinctly. I turned and rode on at the same deliberate pace. If I
had been alone I am sure I would have urged the horse into a gallop. My
hands were wet with perspiration, and my shoulders hunched in
anticipation of a bullet.
No shot came, of course. The soldiers must have known who
I was, and they would not dare to fire. But they would report having
seen me, and if De Merode learned that his quarry had escaped the trap
of the village, he might put two and two together.
I dug my heels into my horse's sides and came up beside
the other rider. We were on level ground now, and under the shelter of
the trees. He turned his head away, and I thought, How foolish men are!
He still doesn't know I have recognized him. I knew I must leave him to
cherish that comforting delusion. He still thought of me as his "little
cousin," too young and irresponsible to be trusted with his deadly
secret. I would show him that a woman could keep a secret, and spare
him the burden of fearing for my safety.
"Sir," I said primly.
His eyes flashed with an emotion that might have been
amusement as he turned his head toward me, but he made no reply. I
persisted.
"You must find a hiding place. If those men report to
their officer--"
"Si." I had spoken French. He replied
in the hoarse Italian he had used before. Then he pointed. "You--" The
extended finger stabbed emphatically. "You go, there. I--" And his hand
swung around in a ninety-degree angle.
"No, I have no intention of leaving you."
His eyes flashed again, but not with amusement. He raised
his hand threateningly. Since I knew he had no intention of striking
me, I stood my ground, my chin raised. After a moment he shook his
head, muttered something under his breath, and rode on.
We must have proceeded for ten minutes, although it
seemed much longer. The sky steadily darkened; the leaves hung still in
the hush of the imminent storm. The air was hot and close. I found it
hard to breathe. The path, such as it was, had disappeared; we twisted
through narrow ravines, between the trunks of towering pines, scratched
and scraped by the brush.
If the Falcon hoped to discourage me, he did not succeed.
My dress was ripped by thorns, stained by berries. Insects bit me,
perspiration poured down my face, but I pressed doggedly onward. The
straight, unyielding figure ahead of me showed no signs of faltering,
but I had not forgotten the promise I had made to the strange man who
looked like a bandit and spoke French like a courtier. I would have
gone on even without that. I myself had seen the Falcon wounded; the
bullet must have passed straight through his body; and he had been on
the move ever since, with no time to rest. The approaching storm was a
further complication. It would be a bad one; the longer it held off,
the greater the ferocity of wind and rain would be. This I knew from my
brief experience with Italian weather. The injured man must have
shelter from the elements as well as from the ferocity of his foes. But
I had no idea where it was to be found.
We were riding through a narrow canyon when a man darted
out from behind a rock. He was middle-aged; his long hair was grizzled
and his face was half concealed by a bushy beard. I don't know which of
us was the more startled, I or my poor nervous Stella. She reared, and
I went sliding off her back. The newcomer ran to help me to my feet. He
was a stranger--a peasant, by the look of him--and badly frightened, to
judge by his pale face and rolling eyes.
It is amazing what resources the mind can command when it
is forced. I was very bad at the local dialect. Now I understood what
the man was saying, thanks, in part, to his eloquent gestures, but
mostly because of the urgent need to understand.
The soldiers were coming. They had not caught…. I did not
recognize the name, but I knew who was meant--my former guide. He was
still at liberty, but he was closely pursued; he dared not meet us for
fear of leading the pursuit in our direction. The horses were now a
danger, we must leave them. He would return them to the castle stables.
We must proceed on foot.
"But where?" I did not expect an answer. But the answer
came--from the Falcon.
"Le tombe," he said.
I looked around.
Straight ahead, where the ravine widened out, a rounded
hill loomed up against the stormy sky. I had thought the terrain was
beginning to look familiar. Now I knew where I was. The valley ahead
was the valley of the Etruscan tombs. And one of those tombs had a
door, whose secret was known only to the members of the family.
"Come," I said, holding out my hand to him. "Hurry."
For a long moment he did not move. Then he slid slowly
off the horse's back and fell into a crumpled heap at my feet.
The peasant cried out. The sound seemed to echo in the
still air--and I realized that it was not an echo at all. Behind us in
the ravine a man had shouted.
"Help me," I gasped. "Aiuto…."
Stopping, I seized the fallen man roughly by one arm and tugged at him.
He tried to help me, but it was not until the peasant added his
strength to mine that we succeeded in raising the Falcon to his feet.
I had stopped thinking sensibly. All I cared about was
reaching shelter with the man I was trying to save. I didn't care about
the horses or the poor unfortunate peasant who was risking his life to
save us. I had forgotten my terror of the tomb. Once we reached it, we
would be saved.
I never knew the name of the man who helped me that day.
He was only an illiterate, untrained peasant, but he was strong and he
was loyal. With the wounded man between us, we stumbled on to the mouth
of the valley of the tombs.
The sight of that desolate place would have daunted even
a confirmed atheist. The livid, rolling clouds closed it in like the
roof of Hades; in the eerie light the shapes of the great rounded
monuments looked like a city of demons. As we stood there gasping for
breath, with the weight of the half-conscious man dragging at us, there
was a rustle of movement among the weeds. Something came out--something
that shone with a pallid white light….
I let out a sound that was half scream, half hysterical
laugh. The spectral form was one of the big white rabbits. Unafraid, it
sat up on its haunches, its paws folded demurely over its breast, and
stared at us with great liquid eyes.
The sight was too much for my assistant. He had faced the
dangers of the rope, the firing squad, without faltering; but this
diabolical vision touched the deeper layer of superstitious terror that
is stronger than courage. He let out a shriek and fled.
I flung both arms around the limp body of the man whose
sole support I now was. His weight made my knees bend, but by a
superhuman effort he managed to keep his feet and we staggered on until
we reached the mound of the princess.
Here a new difficulty arose. I could not remember where
in the vast stone circle the door was located. The mound was at least a
hundred feet in circumference and the door was masked by shrubs. I felt
as if my arms were about to break off. The Falcon had one arm around my
shoulders; as we stood there, it weighed more and more heavily till it
pressed me to the ground. He had fainted at last. I huddled there in
the prickly grass, with my arms around him, and heard voices at the
entrance to the valley.
I was reduced to the precise mental state of a fox, or
any other hunted beast. Survival was the only idea in my mind, for
myself and for the man whose head rested on my breast. His uneven
breathing scorched my skin through the thin muslin of my dress. A
jagged spear-length of lightning streaked across the sky. In its brief
light, objects stood out with eerie distinctness. The unconscious man
stirred, moaning. I thought I had reached the uttermost limits of
terror, but that sound assured me I had some distance yet to go. With
the strength born of panic, I pressed his face against my breast,
stifling his groans. In the abnormal stillness the slightest sound
would carry; our pursuers might have heard him, as I was able to hear
what they were saying.
Perhaps because it was their common language, they spoke
in English. I recognized one of the voices. I had heard it before, the
day of my first meeting with De Merode.
"What a horrible place," he exclaimed. "Are those truly
the graves of unbelievers, those great high mounds?"
He spoke loudly, as men will do to cover up their fear,
and his companion replied in the same tone.
"So it is said. You are not afraid of the dead, are you,
O'Shaughnessy?"
"And was it not my own ancestor, Brian O'Shaughnessy, who
fought from midnight to dawn with a great skeleton shape to win the
treasure of the kings of Tara? Yet," the Irishman added in a lower
voice, "only a fool would challenge the infernal powers. Lie quiet, all
you pagan souls; we'll not trouble you this night, 'tis a living man we
seek…."
His voice rose suddenly in a shriek, and his companion
laughed--but somewhat shakily.
"It's only a hare, you fool of an Irishman."
"To be sure, to be sure. 'Tis only in England, that
heretic island, that the spirit of a witch may take the shape of a
harmless rabbit. Oh, devil take it, Williams, must we go into this
place? No one but a fool would seek shelter here."
"Precisely why it would make an excellent hiding place,"
his companion said. "Come along, let's get it over with. It will rain
any moment."
Dry branches crackled underfoot as they advanced. Another
flash of lightning, brighter than the last, split the darkening sky
apart. In its glare I saw a shape I knew.
The last five feet to sanctuary were almost the worst of
the whole journey. More than once I cursed the inconvenience of female
clothing; those dreadful hoops got in the way of every step I took.
Only the fact that the soldiers were making as much noise as we kept
them from hearing us. But finally my groping hands found the hidden
catch and the door swung open. One last burst of strength tumbled the
two of us over the threshold. I placed the wooden wedge as I had been
shown, and pulled the door back into place.
Time had no meaning in the stifling darkness. It might
have been an hour later, or ten minutes, or a century, before I forced
the slab open once again.
The worst of the storm had passed, but rain was still
falling steadily. I waited for some time, listening, till I was sure
the soldiers had gone. Then I crept out. I was careful to be sure the
catch was wedged before I pushed the slab back into place, so that it
could be opened from the inside--just in case.
I had not gone twenty feet before my soaked skirts were
clinging to me, making every step an effort. I had removed my hoops
before leaving the tomb. I wondered morbidly what excavators of a
future generation would make of those peculiar objects, supposing that
they found them centuries from now.
I knew the way back to the castello, but this was the
first time I had traversed it on foot. I had not realized it was so
far. Nor had I been fully cognizant of the difficulty of the terrain.
Running water turned every slope into a stream of mud. My fragile
slippers gave no traction; I slipped back two feet for every foot I
gained, and my hands were soon scored and bleeding from the branches I
grasped in order to pull myself up. It was a nightmare journey, and the
need for haste made it seem even longer.
How long could an injured man survive in that dank,
airless chamber, without food or medical aid? I had to leave him there,
I had no choice. All my efforts to revive him had been in vain. I knew
where the candles were, but I was afraid to light one. The slab seemed
tight, but a slit of light might betray his presence to searchers. He
was safe from capture there, but he needed help and I was the only one
who could bring it. Blankets, I thought, inching my way up a brambly
slope. Blankets and hot soup; fresh bandages, food…. How I would get
these things to him I could not imagine, but I would have to do it
somehow. I could trust no one--except Miss Perkins.
I believe her name was my last coherent thought. After
that it was a delirium of rain and mud and thorny branches.
When I reached the lowest terrace of the gardens, the
rain had stopped and a single star was visible through the rent clouds
to the west. I stood there swaying with fatigue, and stared stupidly at
the brilliant point of light. Then I saw that the castle was
illuminated like a building on a festal day. Every window was ablaze.
So numbed was I by worry and physical discomfort that I
might have failed to understand the significance of this unusual
illumination. By a stroke of luck, the man in the shadow of the clipped
yew moved so that I saw him before he saw me. The shape of his cap
silhouetted against the sky told me all I needed to know. I dropped
down behind a tree, my heart racing.
The castello had been invaded and occupied. All very
suavely and courteously, no doubt; De Merode could not arouse
Grandfather's open hostility. His excuse would be that he wanted to
protect the inhabitants against the dangerous criminal still at large.
How much did he know? I wondered. How much was only suspicion?
And--more to the point--how many men were there hiding in the gardens?
The Captain seemed to have an endless number of soldiers at his
disposal; a ridiculous number to employ in the capture of a single
local rebel. Of course De Merode was obsessed. His elusive adversary
had become a personal threat. But he must have powerful connections in
Rome to have acquired so many reinforcements.
Avoiding graveled paths and paved surfaces, I crawled on
hands and knees through the wet grass. I had no plan in mind, only an
instinctive need to avoid capture until I had time to decide what to do.
Below, and to my right, I saw the curious little towers
of the garden house--Stefano's retreat. Stefano…. Surely he would help
if he knew the seriousness of the situation. If I could reach him, I
would sound him out, test him…. I suspected there was some antagonism
in his feelings toward Andrea, but family honor, if not affection,
would surely dictate that he come to his brother's aid. It was worth a
try. It was the only scheme I could think of.
I was shivering violently by then with terror and cold.
The night air was cool after the rain, and it chilled my drenched body.
My teeth began to chatter. I clapped my hand over my mouth to stop the
sound, but it was too late. A dark form leaped over the wall and
enveloped me in a crushing embrace.
" Signorina!" The whisper came just in
time to stop me from screaming. " Signorina, sono io, sono
Piero--non gridare, per l'amore de Dio--i soldati…."
"Piero." I clung to him, gasping for breath. "I must see
the Count--take me to him."
He shook me till the coils of my wet hair smothered my
breath.
" Dov' è lui? Where is he?
Quickly, signorina, tell me!"
"In the tomb," I whispered. " La tomba della
principessa."
The bruising hands left my shoulders and I dropped
panting to the ground. Piero was gone as silently as he had come.
He had not given me time to think; but if I had had time,
I still would not have known what to do. It was done now. Either I had
saved the Falcon or I had betrayed him, and only time would tell which.
II
An hour later I was beginning to hope that I had done the
right thing after all. If Piero meant to betray Andrea, he would have
gone straight to the Captain; and obviously De Merode was still waiting
for news. I could hear him storming up and down outside the door of my
sitting room.
I had walked straight into the house after Piero left me.
If I had wanted to avoid the soldiers, I probably would have been
caught at once. As it was, I managed to reach the terrace before anyone
saw me. Then two of them converged on me with shouts and brandished
muskets. I let out a piercing shriek and sank to the ground.
The pretended faint gave me time to think. Even after I
had been "restored to consciousness," I continued to babble and sob
hysterically. As a footman carried me upstairs, dripping water all over
his neat uniform, I heard Grandfather shouting at the soldiers, and
their protestations. They had not touched me, they had not even
recognized me at first. And no wonder. Miss Perkins let out a cry of
horror when she saw me. As she told me later, she had never seen a more
wretched-looked creature.
She and Teresa flew into action. Gallons of hot water,
warm clothing, brandy, medicines internal and external. As soon as I
was tucked into bed, Grandfather burst in and bent over me.
"My child! What happened? Can she speak?" he demanded,
turning to Miss Perkins. "Is she…. Has she…?"
I knew what he meant. Most girls know, although they are
supposed to be ignorant of such things, and I had had one especially
illuminating experience. The idea enraged me--not the idea of being
ravished, but the fact that this was the foremost worry in
Grandfather's mind. Men act as if we are pieces of property, I thought
disgustedly. If the vase is cracked or the diamond flawed, it loses its
value.
Miss Perkins tried to reassure the agitated old man,
telling him that my injuries were superficial.
"But we--I must know what has happened to her!"
"No, no, she cannot speak, she is too badly hurt," said
Miss Perkins, with magnificent inconsistency.
"I think I can talk a little," I mumbled, trying at the
same time to look exhausted and to reassure Miss Perkins, by a
meaningful look, that I knew what I was doing. "Is--is it the Captain I
hear outside?"
"He cannot come in here," cried Miss Perkins. "You are in
bed, in your nightgown."
She was right. I dared not face De Merode's cutting
intelligence just then. But there was something I wanted to say; one
last thing that might help.
"Tell him," I whispered. I held out a frail, trembling
hand to Grandfather. "Tell him…."
"Yes, my dear child." He pressed my hand. His eyes were
wet.
"He captured me…. The Falcon…."
Grandfather gritted his teeth.
"If he dared to lay hands upon you…!"
"Oh, for heaven's sake," I began angrily, and then
remembered that I was supposed to be weak with shock. "No; no, he did
not…. But he made me go with him--as a hostage. He released me near the
quarry, on the road to Parezzo. It took me so long to get here, I was
afraid, and it was raining…."
I began to sob noisily. Grandfather squeezed my hand till
I wanted to shriek with pain. Then he ran out. I heard him talking to
someone in the outer room; both of them rushed out and the door slammed.
The place I had mentioned was as far to the north of the
castle as the Etruscan cemetery was to the south. I had made my story
as vague as possible, since I didn't know what my unfortunate groom had
told the authorities; but if De Merode believed me he would send his
men in the wrong direction, and Piero would have a chance to reach his
leader.
There were too many imponderables in the plan, but it was
the best I could do. I had flung my arm over my face to conceal the
fact that my sobs were not accompanied by tears; I was far too anxious
to cry just then. Now I peered out from under my sleeve and saw Galiana
standing at the foot of the bed. I had not noticed her before, but it
was not surprising that she should be there. She was attracted by
excitement as a moth is by light.
"Get her out," I hissed at Miss Perkins. "I must talk to
you."
Galiana was not anxious to leave, but Miss Perkins rose
nobly to the occasion. As soon as we were alone, I started talking.
Miss Perkins listened without interrupting; only an occasionally sharp
intake of breath betrayed the intensity of her interest.
"Did I do right to tell Piero?" I asked, finally. "I
couldn't think, I was too upset…. If I have betrayed him…"
"No, no; an informer would have gone straight to the
Captain. Furthermore, Francesca, logic suggests that Piero is one of
the Falcon's supporters. We have all been worried about you, ever since
you failed to return from the village…."
"The groom," I interrupted. "The boy who went with me--"
"He has disappeared. Kidnapped? Or perhaps--"
"Another of the Falcon's supporters. It is possible. But
never mind that. What were you saying about Piero?"
"I said that we were all alarmed about you, especially
after De Merode arrived and told us the Falcon was in the area. He
would not allow us to send men out to search for you, however. None of
our servants was permitted to leave the grounds. So--how did Piero know
you had been with the Falcon? He must be in secret communication with
the rebels. I have long suspected that the Falcon has allies in the
castle--"
"His friend said as much," I agreed. "But Miss Perkins,
if we are wrong…. He is injured and alone in that dreadful place."
Miss Perkins pressed me back against the pillow as I
tried to rise.
"I hope you are not entertaining any notion of returning
to the tomb," she exclaimed. "It would be madness to try, Francesca;
you will be watched, be sure of that. The die is cast in any case.
Either Piero has spoken, or he has found a way to relieve our friend.
Try to sleep now. You have done all you could; you have done nobly."
"Sleep! How can I rest when I don't know what is
happening? I am half mad with worry."
"I shall go down and join the others," Miss Perkins said.
"I promise to come at once and tell you if there is any news. You must
stay here, Francesca; you are supposed to be prostrate. You have
displayed admirable courage so far. Don't fail now."
After she had gone I did try to rest, but it was
impossible. Whenever I closed my eyes the scenes of the past hours
repeated themselves, flashing upon the blackness of my inner vision.
Once again I saw the dirty cellar and the man who lay on the bed of
straw; the shadowy valley and the eerie white rabbit; the mound of the
princess's tomb, the gaping entrance hole. Again I held the unconscious
man's head against my breast and felt his uneven breathing….
I flung the covers back and swung my feet out onto the
floor. It was impossible to rest. I had to move about or lose my mind.
The luxurious elegance of my sitting room was an irritant
instead of a source of comfort. The warmth, the candlelight, the soft
carpets reminded me too painfully of the damp hole in which I had left
the Falcon. I began walking up and down the room. But I had not walked
for long when a sound stopped me in my tracks. I stared dumbfounded as
the door of the big painted armoire began to swing out--and was caught
by four small white fingers.
The truth dawned on me before I had time to imagine worse
threats, and it roused me to tigerish action. In a single bound I
reached the armoire and flung the door wide. Galiana had retreated
behind a row of dresses, but I recognized her little black slippers and
dragged her out with a ruthless hand.
"You are hurting me," she exclaimed indignantly. "Let me
go, Francesca!"
"I am tempted to strangle you," I said, between clenched
teeth. "How long have you been there? What did you hear?"
Her chin began to quiver. I relaxed my hold; but not
because I was moved to pity. Quite the contrary.
"Sit down," I said, pushing her into an armchair.
"Galiana, you frightened me half to death. What a silly thing to do!"
She gave me a sidelong look and began rubbing her arms
where my fingers had held her.
"Not so silly as what you did," she muttered. "I was not
in the armoire all the time, Francesca. I was listening at the door. I
knew all along you were lying; I knew there was something you hadn't
told. And I was right!"
"You couldn't have heard anything. We were whispering."
"Yes, you talked too softly," grumbled Galiana. "But--"
Again came that sly sidelong look--"But Miss Perkins has quite a loud
voice when she is excited. She was most excited, wasn't she, when you
proposed going back to the tomb?"
My heart sank. Miss Perkins had
spoken vehemently then, and that single speech would have told a
listener all she needed to know.
Galiana was not the most intelligent of women, but she
was quick at intrigue. She was watching me closely, and she must have
seen the consternation in my face--a tacit admission of the truth.
"You see, I do know," she said triumphantly. "I suppose
it was wrong to eavesdrop; but you are wrong, Francesca, to keep
secrets from me when you know how interested I am. How long were you
with him? Do tell me who he really is. Just think, he might be someone
I know!"
Again I was faced with a terrible decision. It was
impossible to convince Galiana that she was mistaken. The circumstances
were too damning. And once she got an idea into her head, neither logic
nor threats could get it out. I had to persuade her to keep silent. But
how?
The horror of the situation almost overcame me. Of all
the people to discover my secret, Galiana was probably the most
dangerous. She was an inveterate gossip, and too shallow to understand
the seriousness of the situation. Stefano and Miss Rhoda would have
kept silent; even the Prince would betray his principles before he
would betray his son. But Galiana…. There was only one way I could
think of, only one appeal that might control her tongue.
"Yes, he is someone you know," I said. And as she stared
at me wide-eyed, I fell on my knees beside her chair and caught her
plump little hands tightly in mine. "Galiana, it is Andrea. If De
Merode finds out, Andrea will die; he will be hanged in the square at
Parezzo, as Antonio almost was. And this time there will be no Falcon
to rescue him. It is up to us--you and me--whether he lives or dies."
Galiana's eyes seemed to fill half her face. She had gone
quite pale; there was no amusement on her soft mouth now.
"You are lying," she gasped. "It can't be."
"You needn't believe me," I said. "Tell De Merode, if you
wish; I can't stop you. But if you do, Andrea's blood will be on your
hands."
"No, no." Her hands twisted in mine. I held them fast.
"Will you swear?" I asked. "Swear to keep silent?"
"It is true?" Her eyes searched my face. "Yes, I see you
are not lying now. I can't believe it. Francesca, do you think I would
harm him? I would die rather than see him in danger! Is he hurt? Is he
really in that horrible place? I must go to him, I must--"
"You must stay here and act a part, as you have never
acted in your life! We must convince De Merode that we know nothing.
Believe me, Andrea will be all right. Help has reached him by now. You
can do nothing without endangering him; but you can save him by playing
your part."
As I watched in breathless suspense, her lips tightened
and she nodded.
"I understand," she said. "I promise. Francesca, you do
trust me, don't you? You know how I feel about…"
"I trust you," I said, wishing I were as sure as I tried
to sound. "We must begin acting now, Galiana. Go to bed and at least
pretend to sleep. I know this has been a shock to you."
"Let me stay here with you," she pleaded. "You can say
you were afraid to be alone. I need you, Francesca, I am so worried!"
"That is an excellent idea," I said. At least I could
keep Galiana under my eye for the night, and by morning, if she changed
her mind or lost her nerve, the Falcon would hopefully be beyond De
Merode's reach.
Se we went to sleep, side by side, in my big canopied
bed. Galiana dropped off sooner than I expected. As I looked at her
sleeping face, with traces of tears still on her lashes, I couldn't
help thinking how ironic our situation was. Strange bedfellows
indeed--the two women who loved Andrea Tarconti, and who shared his
deadly secret.
III
Galiana was still asleep when I awoke next morning. I am
sure I need not describe my feelings as consciousness returned to me;
any reader of imagination will comprehend them, and will understand why
the look I bent upon the sweetly sleeping girl was not entirely kind.
When Galiana woke up I had my hands full calming her. Her
resolution was unchanged, but her nerves had weakened. I had to
reiterate, over and over, the melodramatic phrases with which I had
convinced her the night before. She was a creature of emotion--and God
knows the situation was as incredible as the language I had used to
describe it. We ate breakfast in my sitting room, and I was still
encouraging her, when we received a summons to appear downstairs. I
could only hope that my persuasion had been effective, because I feared
that the crisis was upon us.
We found the rest of the family assembled in the library.
When I saw De Merode standing by the fireplace, I knew my fears were
justified.
The Contessa was seated in an armchair. She stretched out
her hand to Galiana as soon as we entered, and the wretched girl ran to
her and hid her face in the maternal lap.
I had read somewhere that the best defense is to attack,
so I turned to De Merode and exclaimed angrily, "You see how you have
affected us, Captain! We are all in a state of nervous excitement. Is
this a courtroom, or a meeting of the famous Inquisition?"
"I don't know why you should say that, mademoiselle," De
Merode said quietly. "I have not spoken to you as yet."
"You don't have to speak, you look
threatening. Grandfather, what is going on? I am still shaken, and I
think I have taken cold."
I suppose my cough was not very convincing. Stefano was
smiling thinly, but his smile was no more convincing than my cough. It
was obvious that no one had slept well the night before. Stefano's
eyelids were heavy and his eyes dull. Grandfather looked even worse. He
was wearing riding clothes, and I wondered where he had been so early
in the morning. Had the Captain forced him to accompany a searching
party?
"Be calm, my child," he said heavily. "The Captain has
assured us he will not take much of our time. He wishes to ask a few
questions."
"I told you everything I knew last night," I said.
"This is outrageous," Miss Rhoda added angrily. For once
she was on my side. When I saw her shadowed eyes and the lines in her
face, I wondered how much she knew.
De Merode ignored her, as he had ignored Grandfather.
"What you told us, mademoiselle, was somewhat misleading.
My men scoured the area you described. They found no traces."
"I don't suppose the man would stay there waiting for you
to find him," I retorted.
"No, indeed. He must have moved very quickly, for we did
find certain signs in quite the opposite direction. Bloodstains."
"Bloodstains! But the rain--"
"They were in a sheltered spot. It struck me, you see,
that this terrain contains a number of excellent hiding places, in the
ancient tombs. And when I learned that one of those tombs has a heavy
door, which cannot be moved unless one knows the secret…."
"So you forced the Prince to show you," I said, with a
calm I certainly was not feeling. "You are insulting, Captain. Only
members of the family know the secret of that door."
"But, mademoiselle, always you malign me. There is no
such thing as a secret from the servants of a great household. These
people know everything that goes on. Obviously one of them is in league
with the Falcon, for we found the bloodstains within the tomb."
I had not been absolutely sure till then that Andrea had
made good his escape. Miss Perkins' reasoning had been logical; but
logic does not convince the heart. By a supreme effort I kept my face
and voice under control. Out of the corner of my eye I saw that Galiana
had raised a tear-stained face from her mother's lap and was listening
with parted lips. It was imperative that I hold the Captain's
attention. I even managed, heaven knows how, to laugh.
"Human blood, of course," I said sarcastically. "How
clever you are, Captain, to be sure it was not that of a poor wounded
animal. Once again, I have told you all I know. I am not responsible
for the workings of your imagination. So if you will excuse me--"
"One moment!" De Merode's nerves were beginning to show
signs of wear too. His voice cracked like a whip. "You are quite right,
mademoiselle, I have no proof of anything. I have only my suspicions,
and my orders. Those orders are to capture this brigand at all costs."
He turned to Grandfather, who had started to protest. "Your Excellency
is no doubt aware that the political situation is increasingly grave.
Garibaldi is on the mainland, and if he takes Naples, the Papal States
will be next. Those serpents of Piedmont, Victor Emmanuel and Cavour,
threaten our northern borders. If there should be uprisings in this
area, they will need no further excuse to invade, on the pretext of
restoring order. The aim of the Falcon, and men like him, is to promote
such rebellions. I will stop at nothing--nothing!--to prevent this. The
man must be found, and when he is, he will be shot, no matter who he
is!"
His face was flushed with passion. As a soldier and a
loyal subject, he had good reason for pursuing an enemy of the state;
but it was clear to all of us that the mocking adversary who had
humiliated and defeated him had become his personal enemy as well.
"A neat summary, Captain," Stefano drawled. "But I fail
to see why you are boring us with this information. Some of us know it
already, and the ladies, I fear, are not interested in politics."
"Ah, but this matter of politics may concern them
closely," said De Merode. "Where is Count Andrea?"
Galiana cried out, and Miss Rhoda exclaimed, "What are
you implying? Do you dare suggest--"
"Count Andrea is a known revolutionary," De Merode said.
"He is strong enough and clever enough to play the role of the Falcon.
He is a friend of Antonio--"
But now he had gone too far. Grandfather rose to his full
height and spoke in a voice that quivered with suppressed fury.
"I too am acquainted with Antonio Cadorna, Captain. Do
you accuse me of being the Falcon? I warn you, do not try me. I have
cooperated to the full so far. Now I ask you to leave my house."
"I will go. But I will return, your Excellency, and if I
find that any persons in this household are involved in any way with
the Falcon, not even your influence can save them. If I must, I will
shoot first and answer for the consequences."
He swung on his heel with a clash of spurs and strode out
of the room.
Then Miss Rhoda--Miss Rhoda of all people--began to weep.
"Why did you irritate him, you wretched girl?" she
sobbed, glaring at me. "He is dangerous, horribly dangerous. How could
you be so stupid?"
Our alliance had not lasted long. I didn't entirely blame
her. She needed some object for her fear and rage. I had been
provocative, but I could hardly explain why.
"Be silent," Grandfather shouted. "She was right! Too
long we have endured the insolence of this creature. This is how my
loyalty, my assistance are rewarded! Francesca, my apologies. I should
not have allowed him to speak to you as he did. And if Stefano were
half a man--"
Shame stopped him before he completed this unworthy
speech, but the damage had been done. Stefano's pale lips curled in the
expression I knew so well.
"It is certainly a pity Andrea was not here instead of
me," he agreed suavely. "He would have challenged De Merode and been
neatly killed in the process. It must be such a comfort to the
survivors of these gallant imbeciles to know that they died honorably,
defending a maiden--even an arrogant outspoken maiden like Francesca.
It would have served her right if De Merode had turned her over his
knee."
Grandfather was quivering with rage. "I only regret now
that I did not assist this man who calls himself the Falcon. At least
he is a man, not a smooth-tongued coward!"
Clutching his gray hair in both hands, he went rushing
out of the room. The others followed, Galiana leaning against her
mother, Miss Rhoda with bowed head. Stefano remained seated, balancing
his stick across his hands.
"He didn't mean it," I said. "He is frightened and angry,
or he would never have said it."
"Thank you for explaining the Prince to me," said
Stefano. "If you expect me to be equally noble--to say that I insulted
you because I was distracted by worry--I am afraid you will be
disappointed. I am not at all distracted, and I had excellent reasons
for speaking as I did."
"Oh, you are impossible," I cried. "You have no heart, no
feelings!"
Miss Perkins, who had been sitting quietly in a corner
the whole time, rose and put out her hand, but I rushed past her. I was
not going to give Stefano the satisfaction of seeing me cry.
It was a terrible day. We were like a household waiting
for news from the battlefield. I tried to find Galiana, feeling that
she was in need of all the verbal fortification I could render, but
when I knocked at the door of the suite she and her mother occupied,
Bianca would not let me in. She blocked the doorway like a black
granite boulder. When I asked if she would at least tell Galiana I
wanted to see her she shook her head and made the hoarse cawing sounds
she used only when she was greatly agitated.
Miss Perkins was not to be found either. She and Galiana
were the only ones I wanted to talk with, so I spent the rest of the
day trying to find them and avoid the others. I took my meals in my
room, sending word by Teresa that I was too unwell to come down. God
knows I was unwell; I felt as if I were in a fever, alternately shaken
by fits of shivering and by such restless impatience that I paced the
floor of my room like a caged animal.
Miss Perkins finally came to me late that evening and
insisted that I take a dose of laudanum to make me sleep. I agreed, on
condition that she would do the same.
"You look terrible," I said. "What have you been doing
all day?"
"Worrying. A futile exercise, I agree. There is still no
news. That is hopeful, I think."
"I need more than hope, I need facts. What of Piero? I
looked for him today, but could not find him. You don't suppose De
Merode has arrested him?"
"Oh, no, Piero has been at his usual duties. I tried to
question him, but he pretended he did not understand my Italian."
She looked so indignant I had to laugh feebly, and she
went on, "He is a clever and loyal man; obviously he could admit
nothing, he doesn't know whether I can be trusted. Besides, Francesca,
we know all we need to know. De Merode searched the tomb and the Falcon
was not there. You may be sure he has found a safe hiding place, or he
would have been captured by now."
We went on reassuring one another in this way until the
medicine began to take effect and I thought perhaps I could sleep. Miss
Perkins stayed with me that night. I was in no mood to be alone.
IV
In any crisis one believes that life is unendurable; yet
one can become accustomed to anything, even to constant uncertainty.
Two days passed in the same way, and our nerves began to relax. They
had to; it would have been impossible for them to remain at such a high
pitch of tension.
I managed to catch up with Galiana, who swore she had not
spoken. Of all of us she seemed the most affected. Her nerves were so
strained she would jump at the slightest sound. Stefano stayed sulking
in his house; Miss Rhoda reverted to her usual cold control; and
Grandfather refused to discuss the subject.
He had enough to worry him in the political news, which
continued bad--for him. Garibaldi was advancing on Naples, and the
peasants in Calabria were welcoming him with open arms. At any time we
expected to hear that the weak Bourbon king, Francis II, had fled the
capital and that Garibaldi had entered in triumph. In our own area,
rumors of rebellion were all about. De Merode's troops were arresting
every stranger on suspicion of being a Piedmontese agent. One
unfortunate merchant of Turin had been detained for three days in the
fortress at Parezzo before he was able to prove his innocence. The
incident created a stir, since the man's family was of some
consequence, but it was evidence of De Merode's increasing mania.
In the midst of the furor Andrea came home.
We were sitting in the drawing room after dinner and I
was at the pianoforte. Stefano had joined us for the first time in
several days, but he had refused to play; so, in an effort to relieve
the gloomy atmosphere, I had gone to the instrument myself. I was
stumbling through a Verdi aria when the doors burst open and Andrea
entered.
While the others stared, he came straight to me, scooped
me up in his arms and kissed me soundly on both cheeks.
"I salute the heroine of the day! You look quite healthy
and blooming, Cousin, for a young lady who has faced the mighty Falcon
himself!"
It was all I could do not to throw my arms around his
neck and return his kisses, I was so relieved to see him. He was
blooming and healthy-looking too; apparently his injury had been less
serious than I had supposed. Aware of the watching eyes of the others,
I said primly, "Andrea, I think you had better put me down."
My smile and my sparkling eyes belied my words. I knew
Andrea understood my real feelings--some of them, at any rate. Did he
still believe me to be unwitting? If so, I was willing to continue the
game; I would never initiate the subject, but would wait for him to
drop the first hint. But oh, how I longed to tell him of my relief, my
affection!
Andrea obeyed, with a smile and a wink. Then he went
straight to Grandfather and kissed him, as is the endearing Italian
custom. The Prince was too moved on this occasion to do anything but
return the embrace heartily. He stood smiling and blinking while Andrea
made the rounds, greeting the others. He would have embraced his
brother too, but Stefano put him off with the point of his stick, and
remarked calmly:
"Your exuberance is too much for an invalid like myself,
Andrea. Welcome home. You missed the excitement, but I see you have
heard of Francesca's adventure. Or should I call it a misadventure?"
"But the province is ringing with it," Andrea exclaimed.
"Such wild stories! You must tell me how it really was, Cousin. Did you
confront the Falcon with his own pistol until you could escape?"
He stood with his feet apart and his hands on hips, his
blue eyes twinkling. It was almost impossible for me to reconcile this
vision of manly health and vigor with the fallen hero whose helpless
head had rested on my breast…. And at that thought I began to blush so
furiously that Andrea burst out laughing.
"Ah, I have offended her modesty. Forgive me, Cousin. But
you are famous; the report of your adventures has gone even to
Florence."
"Then you were in Florence?" Stefano asked dryly.
Andrea's eyes shifted.
"And other places…. I have been very dull, I promise you.
Tell me what you have all been doing."
"Andrea, I must talk to you," Grandfather said.
"I am listening, your Excellency."
"Come to the library. You too, Stefano. For once,"
Grandfather said irritably, "I would like to have a serious discussion
without a pack of women interfering."
He stalked from the room. Andrea smiled and followed.
Stefano pushed himself up out of his chair and limped after them.
"Well!" said Miss Rhoda indignantly.
V
I was unable to speak to Andrea alone next day, he was
rushing around so, and in fact I felt flustered and embarrassed at the
very idea. How could I speak freely when there was so much we had to
conceal, even from each other? He had come to mean so much to me, yet I
did not know whether he shared my feelings. He did not even owe me
gratitude. After what he had done for me, the least I could do was
protect his identity. I longed to be with him, and at the same time I
was shy with him.
There was no need for me to warn him. Grandfather had
told him of De Merode's hints. According to Miss Perkins, who knew
everything that went on--perhaps because she unabashedly gossiped with
the servants--according to her, Andrea had responded to this news with
a shout of laughter and a statement to the effect that De Merode did
him too much honor. He only wished he could claim the credit of being
the Falcon. Unfortunately he could not.
So matters went for the next few days. I began to
understand the feelings of the peasants who live on the slopes of
Vesuvius and watch the ominous smoke plume rise into the sky. I felt as
if an explosion were imminent, but did not know how and when it would
occur. I had expected that De Merode would call on us now that Andrea
was back from…wherever he had been. But the Captain was fully occupied
elsewhere. The entire province was seething like a volcano. Garibaldi
had entered Naples in triumph. King Francis had fled. Urbino had risen
in rebellion, the Piedmontese troops were massing on the frontier. The
Falcon had been seen in Parezzo. Andrea was home one moment, gone the
next….
On the third evening after his return, we were again in
the Salone dei Tritone. The evening was cool; there was a fire in the
fireplace. I was at the piano. Grandfather was working in the library,
but the others were all there. Andrea and Galiana were sitting together
on a sofa in a shadowy corner. Painfully conscious of them, I played
even worse than usual. I was amazed at how complaisant the Contessa had
become over their spending so much time together. Surely it was from
her mother that Galiana had derived her ideas about marrying an elder
son; yet now the older woman smiled affectionately at the young pair as
Galiana flirted and Andrea gazed at her with the intent look of a lover.
The Contessa's maid sat behind her, but by now I had
become as accustomed to Bianca as the others were. She was almost part
of the furnishings. Stefano was wandering aimlessly around the room,
something he seldom did. Finally he came to me, where I sat idly
fingering the keys, my short repertoire exhausted.
"Play something," I said. "Something loud. We are all too
quiet."
"Francesca." Miss Perkins looked up from her embroidery.
She did fancy work very badly, but in those days we all found it
necessary to do something with our hands. "Francesca, don't bother the
Count."
"It's all right, Miss Perkins." Stefano sat down as I
vacated my seat. "Francesca is right, we are too quiet."
He played a Chopin ballade--the First. I have heard it
many times since then, but never have I heard it played as Stefano
played it that night. The poignant, passionate chords of the theme
pulsed in the warm air. The music ended in a plunging arpeggio. For a
moment Stefano sat still, his head bowed, breathing quickly. Then he
rose.
"Andrea," he said, and made a beckoning gesture.
Andrea looked bewildered, but he obeyed the silent
command, and the two brothers walked side by side across the room,
toward the Contessa. They looked formidable as they came on, in
silence, and the Contessa's eyes widened. Then Stefano stepped to one
side.
"Hold her," he said, in Italian. "Quickly, Andrea, don't
let her move."
His hand darted out and snatched something from the hands
of Bianca--some small object she was holding under the folds of her
skirt. The woman rose with one of her harsh, unearthly cries, and
Andrea caught her arms as she snatched at the object Stefano had taken.
"Andrea, Stefano," the Contessa exclaimed. "What are you
doing?"
After that first instinctive gesture, Bianca did not
move. Andrea's eyes were wide as he contemplated the object Stefano was
examining.
The rest of us converged on the group. At first I could
not make out what Stefano had in his hand. His fingers were clasped
tightly around the lower part of it. I saw only a rounded thing the
size of a large marble, like a tiny doll's head. A lock of flaxen hair
had been blued to it and it had painted features--crude and
unrecognizable, but identifiable as eyes, nose and mouth. A sharp
shining point protruded from its forehead.
Galiana was the first to speak.
"La strega," she gasped. "Maladetta…."
"Good heavens," Miss Perkins exclaimed. "It is a moment!
At least that is what they call it in my home in Lancastershire. Some
of the foolish old grannies still believe they can harm an enemy that
way, by abusing the doll. Stefano, what person is this image meant to
represent? Let me see it."
"No." Deliberately Stefano squeezed the body of the doll
until the waxen substance of which it was composed oozed out between
his clenched fingers. There was something horrible about the gesture,
as if he were mutilating living flesh. Bianca's eyes focused and she
drew a long, quivering breath.
"You see," Stefano addressed her in Italian. "It does not
work, Bianca. The one you meant to harm is still alive and well,
although I have crushed the image." Turning, he flung the mangled thing
straight into the heart of the fire. A white flame shot up and quickly
died.
As it died, so did the life in Bianca's face. It went
blank and flat, like the face of the crudely painted doll. A thin
trickle of saliva came out of the corner of her slack mouth. Galiana
shrieked. The Contessa put her hands up to hide her eyes.
"Take her away," she moaned. "I tried to teach her of
Christ and the blessed Virgin; and behind my back she practices the
arts of the Devil. Take her away, I beg."
Miss Rhoda rang the bell and one of the footmen came in.
Bianca moved obediently as he put a gingerly hand on her arm and drew
her away. Her chin was wet with the spittle from her mouth.
"Be gentle with her," the Contessa murmured. "She has
sinned, but she did not know…."
"I'll go with them," Andrea promised. "To be sure she is
well treated. Contessa, don't be concerned, she will be cared for; a
doctor, tomorrow…."
Despite his reassurances, the Contessa began to weep
piteously. Galiana and Miss Rhoda had to help her to her room. When
they had gone Miss Perkins shook her head sadly.
"I fear a doctor cannot help her. The poor thing was
always weak-witted. This has destroyed her mind completely. Count
Stefano, how did you know?"
"I thought there might be some basis for the servants'
gossip," Stefano answered. "You knew about it, Miss Perkins, but you
are too rational to admit that such things exist. I know better. I
couldn't believe the creature would actually carry her foul tricks into
the drawing room, but when I saw her clutching something in her lap…."
"Who was it?" I asked. "Why didn't you let us see it?"
"You are too inquisitive," Stefano snapped. "What
difference does it make? The image was too crude; I couldn't tell."
"But I know." I began to twist my hands nervously
together. "Only three people have hair of that pale-blond shade. You
and Andrea--and I. She has no reason to want to harm either of you--"
"She had no reason to want to harm anyone," Miss Perkins
interrupted, in her most robust, common-sense tone. "She is mad,
Francesca; madness does not know reason."
"There, I fear, you are mistaken," Stefano said. "Sempre
una ragione. There is always a reason. The behavior of a
madman is not irrational, it only seems so to us because it is governed
by reasons we do not accept. Always there is an underlying motive; the idée
fixe. Find that and you have the clue to the conduct of the
insane. But in this case I have no idea what Bianca's motive was, or
who her intended victim may have been. And we will probably never know,
since she cannot speak or write."
The incident cast a pall over the household. As if in
keeping with our mood, the weather next day continued to be cool and
windy. Rain threatened all forenoon. Andrea had left early in the
morning to seek medical advice in Parezzo. At least that was his excuse.
"Was it wise for him to go?" I asked Miss Perkins. "If he
encounters De Merode…."
"He can't hide in the castle all his life," said Miss
Perkins. "Goodness, I wish it would rain. I am as nervous as a cat.
Although I don't know why people say that; cats are usually very placid
creatures."
"You are right," I said, smiling. "I think I'll go to the
stable and visit my feline family. Perhaps it will give me something
pleasant to think about. Will you join me?"
"No, this is the sort of day for a book in the library. I
shall read Ovid. He is not calm, but he does distract one."
So we separated--little dreaming under what circumstances
we would meet again.
The mother cat still resisted my blandishments, but the
kittens had become quite tame, thanks to the scraps of food I brought
them. I played with my favorite--a bushy-tailed little tabby with ears
so big he might have had rabbit ancestry--until he tired of chasing
string and fell into the easy sleep of infancy. Then I went back to my
rooms.
The note was waiting for me on the marble-topped table
beside the chaise longue.
"Come to the tomb at once," it read. "There is desperate
danger. Tell no one. Burn this." It was signed, "II Falcone."
Instinctively my fingers closed over the note, crumpling
it. My heart was beating fast and hard. Something had happened. Had
Andrea met the soldiers--had he been wounded again? I did not stop to
think twice. I paused only long enough to burn the note and to snatch
up a hat and a shawl.
I could not ride. The grooms would have wanted to know
where I was going, would probably have insisted on accompanying me. I
had to go on foot, and fear made the path seem twice as long as it
really was. I was panting and disheveled when I scrambled down the last
slope and ran toward the tomb of the princess. Imagine my consternation
when I saw that the door was open. I was sure he had fallen unconscious
within, unable to close the stone. Gathering my skirts closely around
me I descended the steps, calling his name. I had just reached the
bottom when the door closed.
By some strange alchemy of thought the whole truth struck
me in a single instant, and I believe my first emotion was not fear,
but anger at my stupidity. Slowly I went back up the stairs and pushed
at the door as hard as I could, but I was not surprised to discover
that it did not yield a fraction of an inch. Once again I had been
deliberately imprisoned.
My next move was to reach for the ledge on which
Grandfather kept the candles. It was bare.
I sat down on the top step with my back against the stone
slab that would be my tombstone. Oh, there was a faint chance that
someone might look for me here, when my absence was noted; but the
chance was not great. Stefano had come for me the first time because
Miss Perkins had been suspicious of Grandfather. This time Grandfather
was above suspicion. He was not the one who had sent that note. How
could I have been so gullible? I had received a message from the Falcon
once before. He had not signed his name then, he had used a little
hieroglyphic as a signature. Miss Perkins had seen that message;
therefore the writer of this note was not Miss Perkins….
I would not have suspected her in any case. But I could
no more suspect any of the others. Who could hate me so much? There was
no doubt in my mind that I had been the victim of a series of attempts;
the falling rock in this very valley, the bullet in the garden--perhaps
even the rabid bat. But last night, when Bianca had been caught with
her evil little doll, I had assumed it was she who was responsible for
the other attempts. Why she hated me I did not know, unless in some
twisted way she considered me a rival to Galiana's happiness. That made
as much sense as any other theory I could think of.
I wanted to cling to the idea of Bianca as the culprit,
but I realized that even if she had escaped from her prison room in the
castle, she could not be responsible for this. She could neither read
nor write. She could not have manufactured the false note.
The identity of the villain, the motive for wanting me
out of the way…I had a feeling that if I knew one of the answers, I
could probably deduce the other. But both were beyond me. I formed and
discarded theory after theory, for none made any sense.
I daresay this description sounds as if I behaved in a
cool, sensible manner. I was not sensible, I was simply paralyzed with
the hopelessness of it all. There was no way I could get out by myself.
All I could do was wait and pray that someone would think to look for
me before I perished of exposure or lack of air. To sit quietly and use
no more oxygen than necessary was the sensible procedure, but as the
cold began to seep into my bones, I thought it would kill me before the
air was exhausted. Thankful for my shawl, I huddled into it and tried
to remain calm. Eventually I fell into a sort of stupor; it certainly
was not sleep, and I do not like to think it was unconsciousness, but
it had the same result. I was in danger of toppling down the stairs. So
I crawled to the bottom and settled myself on the floor. My shawl was
not much help. I was chilled to the bone.
I had to believe that rescue would arrive eventually.
Without that hope, I could not have kept my sanity. I recited all the
poems I had been forced to learn by my dear old teachers. Little did I
think that the lines of Cowper and Pope would come back to me in such a
setting. I did mathematical problems in my head, but that did not last
long, for I had never been very good at mathematics. I repeated the
capitals of the countries of Europe and the list of the kings of
England from Alfred the Great to Queen Victoria. In a humiliatingly
short time I had exhausted my entire stock of knowledge.
And I had solved the puzzle.
It was so simple, really. De Merode had told the
household he suspected the Falcon had been hiding in the tomb, but only
two people knew that I had been there with him, and that any mention of
the place would fetch me as neatly as a tantalizing bait catches a
fish. Miss Perkins I scorned to suspect. The other person was Galiana.
Once I thought of her and half accepted her guilt, other
facts fit only too well. Bianca might have carried out the other acts
of violence, but the poor simple-witted creature could not have planned
them. She was only the hands; someone else was the brain. And how had
she learned to hate me so? From Galiana, of course; Galiana, who loved
Andrea and feared my influence with him. I knew her callousness, her
indifference to suffering; I knew her ancestry. Was not Italy the home
of the feud? Perhaps the girl hated me for her father's sake. And I had
thought she was fond of me, in her shallow fashion.
Purgatory will be no novelty to me, if I ever arrive
there. The timelessness must be the worst of it; time without measure,
no way of reckoning its passage, no knowledge of when it will end. When
a slit of light appeared at the head of the stairs I could only stare,
thinking that my mind had given way altogether. Then I staggered to my
feet with a cry. They had found me after all.
Incredulously I realized that it was still daylight--a
blustery gray light, but daylight all the same. I had thought I had
been in the tomb for hours. The sharp wind felt like heaven after those
airless depths. It fluttered the long veil of the woman who stood on
the stairs.
Yes, she wore a veil, a black veil. She also carried a
dagger in her right hand. It glittered faintly in the dusky light.
Not rescue, then, but another threat. Why had she come
back, hiding her face with one of her mother's veils? Perversely that
circumstance gave me a moment of hope. If she troubled to conceal her
identity, perhaps she did not mean to murder me after all.
The veiled figure leaned forward and gave its head an
impatient shake. It could not see into the darkness of the tomb with
the muffling folds dimming its vision. With a sudden movement it flung
the veil back.
A coronet of silvery hair gleamed dully like a tarnished
nimbus. Slowly but nimbly, her slim figure undistorted by the hoops
which would have impeded her movements, the woman descended the stairs.
I retreated. My mind, fixed in its preconceptions, still refused to
accept reality. The Contessa must have learned of her daughter's crime,
and had rushed to release me.
I was not allowed to cherish the illusion for long. With
a sudden lunge she came at me. Backed against the wall, I threw out my
hands against the threat of the dagger, and felt a rope drop over my
wrists. The Contessa jumped back; the noose tightened. I tugged at it,
not believing what was happening.
"Stand still," she said sharply. "Don't try to escape. I
need you alive. I was in error. I acted too soon. But I thought he
would take my word--the word of a Fosilini, and that arrogant young
fool dares to doubt! He wants evidence. So you must tell me how you
knew. You didn't tell Galiana the truth. You are the only one who
knows--the only one who can identify the Falcon."
She had been speaking Italian, of course. I ought to have
answered her in the same language, but I was scarcely capable of speech
of any kind, I could only stutter, in English.
"What? What are you saying?"
She shook her head in a very natural little movement of
mild exasperation.
"Stupid girl," she said gently. "How stupid they are,
these English. She can't even speak a civilized tongue."
As some philosopher has said, there is nothing that
concentrates a man's mind so much as knowing he is to be hanged. At
that moment I knew, as clearly as if a celestial voice had announced it
from heaven, that I must be cleverer, quicker, stronger than I had ever
been in my life, or I would die.
The Contessa tugged impatiently at the rope. I pulled
back. The noose around my wrists tightened. A slip knot--of course that
was what it was. I could free myself of the rope easily enough. But she
was between me and the stairs.
Then I seemed to hear, silently repeated, words I had
heard before:
"Madness has its own kind of reason…Always there is an
underlying motive, an idée fixe. Find that
and you have the key to the conduct of the insane."
"Come," she insisted. " Avanti. The
Captain is waiting."
"No, wait," I said. "I will tell you. But first you must
tell me why you are doing this. Sempre una ragione…."
A blast of air, funneled down the stairwell, lifted her
veil around her like great black wings. She made no attempt to
straighten it, but stared at me thoughtfully. I could see her features
clearly now, and what I saw made me grow cold with terror. But the fear
was not only for myself.
" Una ragione," she repeated softly.
"Yes, yes, there is a reason. But you are so dull! You should have seen
it long ago. He must die, you understand. The other times he escaped
somehow. It was the protection of Satan, whom he serves, perhaps. But
this time--"
"The other times? They were not accidents, then. But I
thought I was the one they were aimed at."
Her exquisite old face was distorted, not by anger, but
by a furious contempt.
"You? I would not soil my hands on you. In a sense you
are to blame for his death; if he had not come to love you, I would not
have to destroy him. But he will not marry my darling girl now. So he
must die. He deserves death. He is a traitor to God and his own class,
but I would have spared him if Galiana…. It is better this way, she
will be the Principessa Tarconti; too low a rank for her beauty, but
the best I can do. My darling little girl…."
Her voice trailed off in a crooning travesty of maternal
love, all the more horrible because of the beauty of the emotion that
prompted it. Her speech was confused; even at her best she did not make
much sense, but I had heard enough to confirm my worst fears--and they
were not for myself. She knew about Andrea and she meant to betray him.
The knowledge that I must overcome her for his sake as well as for my
own gave me additional strength and cunning. I spoke sharply, hoping to
capture her wandering wits for a few more minutes.
"If you don't care about me, why did you trap me here to
die?"
"Well, but why not?" She spoke with a chilling
indifference. "The opportunity arose. It was too good to miss. There
was no danger to me, the old man will be blamed. He is mad, you know.
Quite mad. Oh, yes, it was safe, and I will shut you in again when you
have told me. My darling will marry Andrea, he loves her, he always
has."
And her voice trailed off into soft murmurs, in which the
name of her daughter was blasphemously mingled with fragments of prayer.
There was no point in talking to her any longer. I
understood the obsession, underlying her madness, but she was wandering
farther and farther from sense every moment. She couldn't even remember
the name of the man she wanted for her daughter.
I caught the rope and pulled sharply. She had not been
expecting that move. Off balance, she stumbled toward me. One hard jerk
freed my hands, and I struck at her arm with my clenched fist. The
knife fell clattering to the floor.
I thought I had won then, but I had not reckoned with the
horrible strength of the insane. In an instant the frail old woman was
transformed into a raging beast who used teeth and claws as an animal
might. I turned my head just in time to protect my eyes from her
gouging nails; they raked my cheek instead, and the pain made me cry
out.
I had planned to render her helpless, then bind her with
the rope she had used on me. I knew I could never do it. My only hope
was to run.
I reached the stairs before her, but only because she
stopped to pick up the knife. I heard her grunting and scraping along
the floor as I scrambled on hands and knees up the steep slippery
steps. When I reached the top, the full force of the wind hit me. It
was blowing hard; leaves and twigs struck my face and the gusts blew my
skirts about. Immediately I threw myself against the door. But she was
mad on only one subject; she had had sense enough to prop the door with
a stone. My frantic push jammed it. I was tugging ineffectually at its
weight when I heard her on the stairs.
I ran, stumbling over rocks and thorny bushes, holding my
flying skirts out of the way of my feet. The worst thing about that
crazy flight was not the brambles that raked my face and clothing nor
the agonized speed that soon made every breath a piercing stab in my
breast. It was the fact that I did not dare look back. I had to watch
each step for fear of falling, so uneven was the terrain; and at each
instant I expected to feel her hot breath on my neck, or experience the
stab of a knife in my back. The darkening sky, boiling with rain
clouds, was a fitting backdrop for that nightmarish flight.
Yet I reached the gardens of the castle without being
caught, and there, in the shadow of the pines that fringed the lily
pond, I dared to pause for an instant, my hands clasped over my aching
ribs. No time, no time! She was there, some distance behind me but
coming on--a lean, dark figure against the gray landscape. It had been
clever of her to remove her hoops and veil her face. If she was seen,
she might not be recognized. Stefano was right, the mad were not
without powers of reasoning.
His name reminded me that I was not far from his house.
The castle was still some distance away, across the whole length of the
gardens and up a steep slope, but the little house would be inhabited,
by servants if not by Stefano himself. Stumbling, I circled the pool
and ran along the wall of the enclosed garden till I reached the gate.
My goal was the library, whose French doors opened onto the garden.
I burst through them and then my strength failed me. I
clung to one of the bookcases, panting for breath. Stefano jumped up
from behind his desk. He was in his shirt sleeves, his coat hung over
the back of his chair. Then Miss Perkins, who had been pacing
agitatedly around the room, turned and saw me. She let out a shriek. I
realized that my appearance must be alarming--my face white and
scratched, my skirt hanging in shreds. I put up my hand to smooth my
tangled hair and tried to catch my breath.
"Francesca!" Miss Perkins exclaimed. "Good heavens,
child, what has happened to you? The soldiers are here again; they are
searching for the Falcon, and they seem to think--"
"I know," I interrupted. "And so does the Contessa. She
knows that Andrea is the Falcon. She has gone mad, I think; she tried
to kill me--"
My breath gave out, but there was no need for me to
continue. Through the open window burst the stark black figure of the
madwoman.
She had eyes for no one but me. Without pausing, she
rushed forward, knife held high.
My strength had deserted me. I couldn't move. Miss
Perkins ran toward us, but it was Stefano who came between.
The confrontation seemed ludicrous--a frail old woman
against a man who was, despite his infirmity, tall and broad-shouldered
and half her age. But Stefano was handicapped by his inability to
comprehend that he was not facing the gentle lady he had learned to
respect, but a creature without remorse or fear. She struck him with
the full weight of her body, and he went staggering back, trying only
to hold her off; whereas she was intent on murder. Their bodies hit the
wall with such violence that a picture fell with a crash of glass. Then
Miss Perkins picked up a bookend from the desk and hit the Contessa on
the back of the head. No sooner had she fallen than Miss Perkins
pounced on her.
"Your belt, Francesca," she exclaimed, tugging at her
own. "Seconds count now; she must not be found by the soldiers. Hurry,
hurry, we must render her helpless and hide her before they take it
into their heads to search this place."
While she bound the Contessa's hands, I fastened her
ankles together with my belt, and then Miss Perkins gagged her with a
strip of petticoat. I felt contemptible as I held the fragile limbs in
my hand; unconscious, the Contessa looked as gentle as she was before
madness had twisted her mind. But Miss Perkins' hands were steady and
her face was hard. When we had finished she lifted the Contessa in her
arms, quite easily, and carried her into another room. Where she meant
to hide her I didn't know, but she seemed to have some place in mind.
It struck me then that Stefano had given us no help in
this unpleasant business. I turned. He was still standing against the
wall, where the Contessa's rush had driven him, and I thought at first
that the knife must have struck him after all. His face was as white as
his shirt, his eyes were closed; his hands, pressing hard against the
gilded panels, were all that kept him on his feet. As I stared,
thunderstruck, his bright head fell forward and he slid to the floor. I
reached him and was kneeling at his side before I realized that he
could not have been wounded in the brief struggle. I had watched the
dagger with the intense concentration of fear. Never once had it come
near his body.
I knew then, even before I saw the first crimson drops
stain his white shirt. It was the first time I had seen him without a
mask--the muffling folds of a disguise or the equally concealing mask
of conscious playacting. Without its mocking smile, his face was
dignified and gentle. I opened his shirt and saw what I expected to
see--folds of bandaging, reddened by the reopened wound, and the
birthmark--the sign of his race he and his brother shared.
I was still staring, frozen with shock, when Miss Perkins
returned. She dropped heavily to her knees.
"Stefano," I said numbly. "It was not Andrea. It was--"
"Of course it was Stefano," Miss Perkins snapped. "How
could you have thought Andrea was the Falcon? He is a charming,
handsome, quick-tempered fool. It is this boy who has risked his life
and fortune for his dream of freedom, and if we don't act quickly, he
will be made to pay the full price. There is brandy in that cabinet.
Fetch it--run!"
As she spoke, her stubby, efficient fingers were working
at the bandages.
When I returned with the brandy, Stefano's eyes were open
and he was trying to sit up.
"Not yet," Miss Perkins said. "Brandy is a poor
substitute for blood, but it will help. Francesca, support his head
while I--"
"Francesca will do nothing of the kind," Stefano said.
"Get her away, Miss P. Hide her--you know the secret room--"
"The Contessa is already occupying that hiding place,"
Miss Perkins said calmly. "Francesca, do as you are told."
So I sat down on the floor and lifted Stefano's head onto
my lap. I got no thanks from him, only a wicked glance from his blue
eyes. As my hands touched his disheveled fair curls I wondered how I
could have been so deceived, even with an actor of Stefano's skill
deliberately misleading me. I had never been able to reconcile Andrea
with the man I had held in my arms. If I had ever touched Stefano, even
his hand…. There was no mistaking that sort of recognition, the
instinctive knowledge of the flesh. He had been careful to avoid
physical contact in recent days, but heaven knows he had good reason to
shrink from even the gentlest touch. That morning in the library it
must have cost him dearly to sit upright, much less converse so coolly.
Stefano started to speak again. Miss Perkins cut him
short by pushing the glass of spirits against his mouth. He had to
drink it or choke.
"Don't waste your strength arguing," she said. "If De
Merode comes here, you must be on your feet and seemingly uninjured. He
already suspects you. The slightest sign of weakness--"
"Nonsense," Stefano interrupted. "He suspects Andrea."
"He is not such a fool. We haven't fathomed his real
intentions yet, I feel sure. The time is critical. You know that better
than I do."
"The crisis is closer than you think. I have had to move
the time forward; I got word from Turin this morning. Parezzo must rise
tomorrow at dawn, and I must be there."
"You aren't fit to go," Miss Perkins said.
"I am perfectly fit. That damned woman only jarred me."
Stefano rolled his eyes up so that he was glaring straight into my
face. "I forget myself. Forgive my language, ladies--and leave me!
Francesca, if you aren't out of this room in thirty seconds…."
"Where is she supposed to go?" Miss Perkins demanded.
"You are most unfair to her, Count. If she hasn't earned your trust by
now…. You aren't deceiving me, you know," she added cryptically.
A wave of color flooded into Stefano's pale cheeks. I did
not understand its meaning, but I was fascinated by this new display of
emotion from a man I had considered without feelings.
"You are the most frightful busybody," Stefano said with
a resigned air. "Help me up, Francesca, if you please. I assure you, I
am not as weak as you think. That infernal woman pushed me into the
wall, and the frame of the picture struck the wound. It hurt
abominably, but no real damage was done."
As he spoke he was struggling to his feet. He leaned
without reserve on my shoulder, and this demonstration of confidence
pleased me more than I can say. I helped him to his chair, and noticed
that he walked away without any trace of a limp.
"So that was pretense too," I said. "Was it after your
accident that you got the idea of using a counterfeit infirmity to
conceal the identity of the Falcon?"
"I will tell you my life history another time," Stefano
said. "At the present moment we have a more immediate problem. Can't
you do something about her appearance, Miss P.? If De Merode sees her
so bedraggled, he will assume she has had another
tête-à-tête with the Falcon, and he may drag her off
to prison."
So I made use of the basin and ewer in the adjoining
bedchamber and straightened my hair, while I listened to the
conversation going on in the next room. Though the situation was
fraught with peril, I was filled with an emotion that was close to
happiness. This new discovery was so right; it was like finding the
proper fit for a dress that has pinched in an uncomfortable place. I
returned to the next room in time to hear Miss Perkins say, "What are
we to do with the Contessa?"
"There is no need to do anything with her," Stefano
replied. "Don't you understand? In the next twenty-four hours the issue
will be resolved. The uprising in Parezzo has been planned to coincide
with risings in other cities--Urbino, Perugia, others. The papal
mercenaries will fight, naturally; but there are not enough troops to
handle a dozen different rebellions at once. That is why it is
imperative that all the uprisings take place on schedule. Cavour will
demand that the Pope dismiss his hired mercenaries. Pio Nono will
refuse, and the Piedmontese will have the excuse they need to invade.
Louis Napoleon has already agreed, secretly, not to interfere. Our
people will be fighting on the side of Piedmont. At the very latest the
Bersaglieri should be here within five days. But we need not wait so
long to be safe. By tomorrow morning De Merode will be riding
hell-for-leather toward Parezzo, and thereafter he won't have the time
or energy to worry about you here."
Miss Perkins nodded. Her eyes were bright with excitement
and admiration. Indeed, the daring, the skillful preparation of the
plan was the cleverest thing I had ever heard.
"Wonderful," I said. "But, Stefano, there is still
tonight. I share Miss Perkins' worries about the Captain. I have felt
for a long time that we are underestimating him somehow. Can't you get
your men in Parezzo to strike at once?"
"Impossible. The plot depends on a dozen different
people. I couldn't reach them in time. In fact, I myself must start
before midnight if I am to be there in time to lead the fighting."
"You can't go! You aren't fit to ride, much less fight."
"I must be there." His lips set in a stubborn line.
"He is right," Miss Perkins said reluctantly. "They rely
on him and on his reputation. His presence will rally the peasants. And
they need all the help they can get; De Merode's men are the best
trained, the best led in the province. Only Schmidt, in Perugia, has a
greater reputation for ferocity."
"Stefano!" A sudden thought struck me and turned me cold.
"Are you sure De Merode does not know about the uprising in Parezzo?"
"I have arranged for him to receive a message from an
‘informer' early in the morning," Stefano replied. "I want him away
from the castle as soon as possible. I share your distrust of him. But
if he reaches Parezzo before the barricades are in place and the
fortress is taken, our people will be in trouble."
"What if a real informer has already told him?" I leaned
across the desk and looked straight into his eyes. "What would happen
to the rebellion if word got out that the Falcon had been arrested and
shot?"
Miss Perkins struck the desk with her big fist.
"She is right! That is why De Merode is here today. He
knows, I tell you; at least he has a strong suspicion. He means to trap
you. But how did he find out?"
"The Contessa," I said. "Oh, heavens, and it is all my
fault! I told Galiana that Andrea was the Falcon. I had to tell her to
keep her quiet; she knew where I had been that night. She swore she
wouldn't tell, but I suppose she would not think that oath included her
mother…. But the Contessa was not deceived. I don't know how she
learned the truth…."
"I think I do," Miss Perkins broke in. "But there isn't
time to explain now. You think the Contessa has been in touch with De
Merode? Quite possible. But then he can't act without her testimony.
Perhaps we are safe after all."
Just as she arrived at this comforting conclusion, there
were sounds of a disturbance outside. Stefano snatched up his coat and
struggled into it as the door of the library burst open. One of the
footmen came stumbling in; he tried to speak, but was stopped by a
savage blow from the soldier who had followed him. Other soldiers
crowded through the doorway. Their leader--the red-haired Irishman I
had seen before--saluted.
"The Captain requires your presence, Count," he said.
"And that of the ladies."
"Was it necessary to enforce your request so violently?"
Stefano inquired. It cost him an effort to speak coolly; his eyes
flashed as he gazed at his servant, who was leaning against the door
with his hands pressed to his face and blood trickling between his
fingers.
"The man attempted to keep us out," said the Irishman
insolently. "He'll be none the worse for a lesson in manners."
"From you?" Stefano's tone and his raised eyebrows turned
the question into a subtle insult. He rose, leaning heavily on his
cane. "Yes, I think I had better have a word with the Captain. But the
ladies--"
"The Captain said everyone."
The soldiers escorted us to the library, where two men
stood guard with naked bayonets. The castle had been taken, like an
enemy fortress. De Merode must be desperate, or very confident, to have
given up all pretense at courtesy. That this was indeed the case I
realized as soon as I saw Grandfather. His face was grayish white, with
a strained, pinched look about the nostrils. He did not so much as
glance at us when we entered. His eyes were fixed on his younger
grandson.
Andrea stood between two soldiers who held him by the
arms. His hands were bound behind his back, but he was the coolest
person in the room; his head was high, his lips were curved in a smile.
Never had he so closely resembled his brother.
Galiana ran to me. The tears were streaming down her
cheeks.
"He knows," she cried. "Francesca, he knows; but I did
not speak, I swear--"
I put my arms around her. "Hush," I murmured, hardly
knowing what I said. "Hush, Galiana."
De Merode turned to face us. His burning eyes passed over
me and Miss Perkins as if we had been invisible. He looked directly at
Stefano.
"This is a most distressing situation, Count," he said.
"I assumed you would wish to bid your brother farewell before we take
him away."
"Where are you taking him?" Stefano asked.
"To Parezzo."
"I thought that was where he was," Stefano said mildly.
"You confuse me, Captain. My brother started out this morning in search
of a doctor--"
"That is what you were told," De Merode said. "I fear he
deceived you, Count, as he deceived his honored grandfather and a good
many other people. The city of Parezzo is supposed to rise in rebellion
tonight, and Count Andrea is the leader of the revolt. How it grieves
me to be the one to inform you of this blot on an otherwise stainless
family name! Count Andrea--"
"He thinks I am the Falcon," Andrea interrupted.
"How very naïve of him," Stefano said.
"I don't mind." Andrea's voice was quite calm. "Let the
Captain concentrate his attentions on me; it will give the Falcon his
chance to act. I am honored to serve, even in so small a role as this."
"Andrea, you must learn not to be so theatrical," Stefano
said. "You are giving Captain De Merode the wrong impression. Captain,
you are making a mistake."
"Am I?"
For a moment no one spoke. Then Stefano shrugged.
"Very well, Captain. Take my brother to prison--"
"He is not going to prison," De Merode interrupted. "I
have changed my mind. The Falcon deserves death. O'Shaughnessy, take
the Count into the courtyard and select a firing squad."
The guards led Andrea out. It was a strangely quiet
moment. Galiana's tears had stopped. She and Andrea exchanged a long
look as he passed us. Then Grandfather rose to his feet.
"I wish to be with my grandson when he dies."
De Merode nodded. "Escort the Prince," he said to the
soldier who stood by Grandfather's chair.
Miss Rhoda, who had been crumpled in her seat, sat up.
"I, too."
Grandfather stopped. His elbow bent, he offered his old
enemy his arm. She took it. The two walked slowly toward the door,
allies at last, and very touching in their grief and dignity. As they
were about to pass out of the room, De Merode said, "The firing squad
will await my orders, your Excellency."
Grandfather glanced at him. "You know, of course,
Captain, that I will spend my last soldi and my
last ounce of strength to make sure you pay for this."
De Merode bowed. Grandfather went on. The door closed.
Then De Merode turned to Stefano. The moment had come, the moment for
which all the rest had only been preliminary maneuvering.
"Well, Count? The choice is yours. Your life or that of
your brother. Will you let the innocent suffer for you?"
Galiana lifted her tear-stained face from my shoulder.
"What does he mean? Stefano, can you save him?"
"Oh, yes," De Merode said. "If Count Stefano chooses, his
brother can be freed at once--to return to your arms, mademoiselle. Ask
him now what he has done with your mother."
"My mother?" Galiana repeated.
"She is nowhere in the castle. I have searched. Ask him,
mademoiselle; ask him if he will sacrifice your mother and your
lover--his own brother--to his insane ambition. You can help me, if you
will."
Then I saw what the ancient noble house of Fosilini was
made of. Poor Galiana, driven almost mad by suspense and fear, drew
herself up to her full height.
"I don't understand," she said simply. "But I trust
Stefano and Francesca, and I do not trust you, Captain. You are a cruel
man. I know nothing, but if I did, I would not tell you."
De Merode shrugged. He had not expected anything from
this quarter; he was merely testing all the possibilities and, in the
process, giving another twist to the knife. This interview, the threat
to Andrea and the anguish of his family, was part of De Merode's
revenge for the humiliation he had endured at the hands of his foe. The
choice he was giving Stefano was no choice. The Falcon would die in any
case. If Stefano remained silent and let the execution proceed, De
Merode would kill him too. But he wanted a confession, not only to
justify his acts to the board of inquiry which Grandfather's influence
would certainly demand, but to publish in Parezzo. The rebels must know
that their leader was unable to lead them.
"Well, Count?" he repeated.
Stefano had been leaning on his cane. Now he straightened
up.
"You leave me no choice," he said, and began to remove
his coat.
"Stefano," I cried, trying to free myself of Galiana's
clinging arms.
"Stand back," De Merode exclaimed, pulling his sword from
the scabbard.
Stefano laughed. "What, are you afraid of an unarmed man
and a pack of women?"
"Of these women, yes," De Merode said grimly. He pointed
his sword at Miss Perkins. "Did you think I would not investigate your
Englishwomen? The old one is a member of an emigré
secret society in London. The young one has been a thorn in my side
ever since she came. Spies--"
He broke off with a hiss of satisfaction, his eyes
riveted on the breast of Stefano's shirt, as Stefano tossed his coat
onto a chair. The wound had stopped bleeding, but the bloodstains were
damningly conspicuous against the white linen.
"So I was right," he breathed. "That bullet wound will be
all the evidence I need when I take your body to Rome--after I have
displayed it in Parezzo and crushed the revolt."
"Aren't you afraid your firing squad will obliterate the
evidence?" Stefano asked mildly. Passing his cane from hand to hand, he
seemed to be concerned with straightening his cuffs and smoothing his
shirt sleeves.
"Do you think I am such a fool as to let you leave this
room? You have too many tricks, Count."
Without warning he lunged forward, the point of his sword
directed at Stefano's breast.
Stefano had been expecting the move, if the rest of us
had not. He took one great leap backwards, landing on his toes with his
knees bent, as the Captain's blade ripped harmlessly through his shirt
front. He tugged at his cane. It came apart, displaying a length of
shining steel.
De Merode swore aloud. "A sword-stick! I should have
known. It won't save you, though."
I let go of Galiana, who dropped to the floor. Miss
Perkins caught my arms as I moved forward.
"Stay out of the way, Francesca. You can only distract
him. Lock the door."
I did so, just in time. Shouts from the men outside were
soon followed by blows against the door. The heavy panels would
hold…long enough. My back against the door, as if to brace it, I turned
to watch the life-and-death struggle.
If Stefano had been in good physical condition, I would
not have feared for him. But wounded as he was, with a weapon that was
surely inferior to the Captain's heavy sword…. I felt suffocated as I
watched Stefano slowly retreat, his fragile blade bending under the
violent strokes of his adversary. Her advice forgotten, Miss Perkins
circled the fighters like an old mastiff, watching for an opportunity
to rush in.
In actual time the duel lasted only a few minutes. De
Merode defeated himself. His rage was so extreme he forgot caution and,
as Stefano said later, this was no time for chivalry. When the Captain
stumbled over one of Grandfather's prized Persian rugs, Stefano ran him
through.
The struggle had been short but violent. Stefano was
gasping for breath when he turned toward the French windows and flung
them open. "This way," he panted, as the library doors shuddered under
the blows of the soldiers. "Quickly!"
Supporting Galiana, Miss Perkins and I obeyed. As I
passed the fallen body I had a last glimpse of De Merode's face--the
dark eyes glazed, and the white lips still set in a snarl of rage.
II
When we returned to the library an hour later, De
Merode's body had been removed. The castle was in our hands. Stefano
had signaled his supporters, who included most of the able-bodied
servants in the castle, led by Piero. Demoralized by the death of their
leader, the soldiers were easily disarmed.
I will never forget the moment when Andrea, freed of his
bonds, came striding into the library where Stefano was giving orders
to Piero. He went straight to his brother and flung his arms around him.
"Why did you not tell me?" he demanded, his eyes dimmed
by tears. "Couldn't you trust me, Stefano?"
"You know it was not lack of trust," Stefano replied,
trying to free himself of his brother's impetuous embrace. "Andrea, I
am touched by your emotion, but if your aren't careful, you will finish
the job De Merode began. My ribs…."
Then silence fell, as Grandfather came into the room.
Italians are considered by the English to be
overemotional. All I can say is that I have become quite accustomed to
their outbursts of sentiment, and for my part I find them quite
beautiful. There are times, though, when the emotional climate becomes
almost unendurable; and this was one such moment, when the stately old
man tried to kneel to ask the forgiveness of the man he had misjudged.
As Stefano bent to prevent this, I realized how hard it had been for
him to appear as a weakling in the eyes of the old man he loved.
There was little time for prolonged emotion, or for
explanations. Time was passing, and Stefano was not the man to be
distracted from what he considered his duty. A few hours later we stood
on the terrace and watched the little band ride away to Parezzo and
battle. We were all very brave. Grandfather stood straight as a
soldier, his eyes shining with pride, and we women smiled till our jaws
ached. Andrea, riding beside his brother, turned and waved the torch he
was carrying in a flamboyant gesture of farewell. But Stefano did not
turn, and as his tall, erect figure melted in the darkness of the long
avenue, I knew I might have seen him for the last time.
Everyone knows what happened after that. On September 11
the Bersaglieri of Piedmont crossed the frontier, and within a month
Umbria and the Marches were part of the new kingdom of Italy. Only a
small strip of territory around Rome itself was left to the rule of
Pius the Ninth. It was ten years later before Rome succumbed, and the
ancient capital became the capital of the new Italy, ending a struggle
for freedom that had taken almost half a century and cost the lives of
many gallant men.
I fear we were less concerned, in the next weeks, with
the epic struggle taking place elsewhere than we were with our own
selfish concerns. Galiana was lucky; Andrea was slightly wounded in the
fighting at Parezzo and was forced to stay at home after that,
alternately cursing his bad fortune and basking in Galiana's adoring
care. I was not so fortunate. After the papal garrison at Parezzo
surrendered, Stefano joined one of the Piedmontese regiments as a
liaison officer and followed the troops of Victor Emmanuel throughout
the entire campaign. From time to time we would receive messages, or
word of him; he was fighting with the gallantry we expected, and
surviving; that was all we knew for weeks. The suspense was well-nigh
unendurable, particularly because I had no assurance that Stefano ever
devoted a moment's thought to me, while I thought of nothing else. By
the time a week had passed, I was convinced he cared nothing for me. He
had never demonstrated any affection; quite the contrary; he had done
nothing but sneer and joke at me since I came.
The only consolation I had during those weeks was the
love of those around me. Galiana and Andrea, who were awaiting only the
return of Stefano to make plans for their marriage, could not do enough
for me. Andrea's love comforted Galiana during her mother's illness.
The Contessa's mind had given way altogether. She recognized no one
except her daughter, whom she persisted in addressing as the Princess
Tarconti. The doctors said she would not live long, but while she lived
she would have the constant care and supervision her state required. It
was she who had corrupted the mind of poor Bianca; everything the woman
had done had been at the orders of the Contessa. Bianca was not mad,
she was only weakminded and susceptible.
The object of her attacks had always been Stefano. Miss
Perkins explained this to me during the hours we spent together. We
talked over the whole affair, and the first thing I did was take her to
task for deceiving me.
"After all our talk of spies, you were an English spy," I
said, half jokingly.
"I thought surely you would wonder how Count Andrea found
me so easily," Miss Perkins said, not at all abashed. "He told you the
truth when he said Count Stefano had planned the entire business. He
sent Andrea to certain parties in London, sympathizers with the Italian
cause, who recommended me. I fear I did lie to you when I told you the
Count had hired me through an employment bureau. But I assure you,
Francesca, that I was not in Count Stefano's confidence, not until the
very end."
"But you suspected him, not Andrea. I can't see how."
"The Contessa did, too. We older women, unlike you young
girls, were not misled by dashing adventures and brave speeches. When
you told me--and the Contessa, through Galiana--that you had identified
the Falcon as your cousin, it was obvious that you based this on some
physical characteristic. But Stefano and Andrea are twins, though most
of us tended to forget this. It was equally obvious that Andrea was too
heedless to maintain a disguise so long and plan his campaign so
carefully. Stefano, on the other hand, was a perfect candidate--his
habit of seclusion, his cool intelligence, his general character. The
only thing against it was his physical disability, and you had hints
enough, my dear, that that was put on. When he rescued you from the
tomb, for instance. He acted without thinking then, and had to do some
fast talking to cover up. I began to suspect quite early on, but it was
not until after you had helped him escape from the village that I was
sure. I watched Stefano after that, and it was obvious to me that he
was in considerable physical distress. I taxed him with it and demanded
to be allowed to help."
"But the Contessa attacked him long before that," I
expostulated. "I turn hot with embarrassment, Miss Perkins, when I
remember that I believed myself to be the endangered heroine!"
"You read too many bad novels at that school of yours, I
expect," Miss Perkins replied with a smile. "You ought to have read
Miss Austen's Northanger Abbey, in which she shows
another young lady being led astray by sensational fiction."
"I still don't understand why the Contessa wanted to kill
Stefano," I said, blushing.
"It was logical, in a mad way," Miss Perkins said,
shaking her head. "The Contessa was determined to see her daughter
Princess Tarconti. Until you came, she was in a fair way of bringing it
off. She had the poor child under her influence; Galiana would have
married Stefano if she could have. After a time the Contessa realized
that Stefano would never marry her daughter. But if Stefano were dead…."
"His brother would be Prince Tarconti in time," I said.
"Yes, I see. She told me that, in her ravings, but I thought her mind
was confused."
"It was confused," said Miss Perkins dryly. "You must
admit that her methods were somewhat unorthodox. Yet they probably
would have succeeded. Andrea has always loved Galiana, he would have
married her in a moment. The Contessa told Bianca what she wanted, and
the unfortunate woman proceeded to act whenever the opportunity arose.
It was Stefano at whom the rock fall and the bullet were aimed. You
happened to be with him on both occasions, but that was because he was
seldom out of his house, and vulnerable, unless he was in your company.
When he was within his own walls, with his loyal servants around him,
it was almost impossible for an assassin to get at him."
"But the bat," I began.
"Pure accident. You didn't seriously think that anyone
could capture and control a creature like that? If the incident of the
bat had occurred alone, without the other cases, you would never have
dreamed it was anything but bad luck."
"Is there ever any such thing as luck, I wonder," I said
thoughtfully. "I begin to think that life is one great complex pattern
of interwoven acts and counteracts."
"I am a believer in free will," said Miss Perkins firmly.
"Yet, you are right, in the sense that every act has unimaginable and
far-reaching consequences. One of the most astounding results of De
Merode's plotting is the conversion of his Excellency. I do believe he
is a firmer supporter of the cause of liberation than either of his
sons, and he was once its greatest enemy."
"That is because he found himself inconvenienced," I
said. "People often take up a cause when it suits their selfish
motives."
"I do not like to see a girl of your age so cynical,"
said Miss Perkins reproachfully.
Suddenly, to my shame, I felt my eyes flooding with tears.
"I'm sorry," I muttered, turning aside. "But it has been
so long since he left, and he never said…."
"Jumping to conclusions is another fault of yours," said
Miss Perkins unsympathetically. "You have been wrong fairly
consistently, Francesca; but if you still think that young man is cold
and unemotional…."
Well, I knew he was not unemotional. What I did not know
was whether he had any emotional attachment to me.
The last of the papal fortresses, Ancona, fell on
September 24, after a gallant defense. We received the good news a few
days later; but it was not until the end of the month that Stefano came
home.
I was in the rose garden, and I did not know of his
arrival until I looked up from my book and saw him coming down the
path. He wore the dark-blue uniform of a Piedmontese officer. He had
lost weight. His sunbleached hair formed a striking contrast to his
tanned face, which was burned as brown as that of any peasant. I
wondered how I could ever have thought Andrea was handsomer than he,
and how I could have taken another man for him, even for an instant.
His long free stride faltered when he saw me, and he came
on more slowly.
Any woman will understand why I acted as I did. For weeks
I had been in agony over him; since the hard fighting at Ancona I had
been convinced that he must have been killed, since we had heard
nothing from him. Now I saw him safe--and in the reaction of relief I
was absolutely furious with him. So when he stood before me, hat in
hand, I said casually, "How nice to see you, Stefano. I do hope you
enjoyed yourself."
It was the first time I had ever seen him at a loss for
words. The dark blood rushed into his cheeks. I found myself,
perversely, enjoying the situation.
"Men do enjoy fighting," I went on. "Don't they? I
suspect that is behind the heroism and the gallantry we poor women
ignorantly applaud. You don't fight from a sense of duty; you love it!
While we sit at home and worry ourselves--"
Stefano put an end to this tirade, which was developing
rather nicely, I thought, by picking me up off the bench and lifting me
till my eyes were on a level with his. My feet dangled helplessly, a
good ten inches off the ground.
"Just like a man," I said, somewhat breathlessly, because
his hands were squeezing my ribs. "When you are losing an argument, you
resort to physical violence!"
"Oh, no," Stefano said. "The physical violence is only a
preliminary. This is how I counter arguments such as yours."
He kissed me. I felt as if my bones were melting.
It took me some time to recover. We were sitting on the
bench, with his arm around me and my head on his shoulder, before I
could speak sensibly again.
"It was very presumptuous of you to do that," I murmured.
"What made you suppose that I would tolerate it?"
"I wouldn't have dared if I hadn't happened to meet Miss
Perkins in the hall," Stefano said frankly. "She told me to do it."
"Miss Perkins? Oh, come now!"
"Well, perhaps not in so many words. But she implied in
her tactful fashion that you might not be violently opposed to the
idea."
"She was kinder to you than to me," I said. "For days and
days I have been trying to get her--or anyone--to reassure me as to how
you felt about me."
"If you did not know, you were one of the few who didn't.
Andrea taxed me with it weeks ago. Miss Perkins read my thoughts as if
my head were made of glass. Even the Contessa knew. Why do you suppose
she abandoned her schemes for me to marry Galiana?"
"So that is what Miss Perkins meant," I exclaimed. "I
didn't understand her then. But how could I have known? You were horrid
to me."
"As you were to me."
"I have been in love with you for a long time. I can't
imagine why you didn't notice."
"With me--or with that poor mountebank the Falcon?"
Stefano turned me in the circle of his arm and looked straight into my
eyes. "I hope you did not fall in love with a myth, Francesca, for that
person never really existed. I cannot tell you how glad I am to be done
with him at last."
"I don't believe you," I said, half in jest, half in
earnest. "The role you played here was the hard one. You had a
wonderful time being the Falcon; don't tell me you didn't. He is a part
of you, just as the sober scholar is a part. Don't cast him off
altogether."
Stefano's eyes took on a reminiscent sparkle as I spoke;
but he shook his head.
"I am really a very dull fellow, my darling. And you are
so young. God willing, you may have me on your hands for forty or fifty
years. Do you think you can endure it?"
"I don't know how I can convince you," I said helplessly.
He put his arms around me and drew me close.
"Try," he said.
ELIZABETH PETERS (writing
as BARBARA MICHAELS) was born and brought up in Illinois and earned her
Ph.D. in Egyptology from the University of Chicago's famed Oriental
Institute. Peters was named Grand Master at the inaugural Anthony
Awards in 1986, Grand Master by the Mystery Writers of America at the
Edgar® Awards in 1998, and given the Lifetime Achievement Award at
Malice Domestic in 2003. She lives in an historic farmhouse in western
Maryland. You can visit her website at www.mpmbooks.com.
Books
by Barbara Michaels
Other Worlds
The Dancing
Floor
Stitches In Time
House of Stone
Vanish with the
Rose
This Quiet Dust
Into The
Darkness
Smoke and
Mirrors
Search the
Shadows
Shattered Silk
Be Buried in
the Rain
The Grey
Beginning
The Dark Duet
Here I Stay
Black Rainbow
Someone in the
House
The Wizard's
Daughter
The Walker in
the Shadows
Wait for What
Will Come
Wings of the
Falcon
Patriot's Dream
The Sea King's
Daughter
House of Many
Shadows
Witch
Graygallows
The Crying Child
The Dark on the
Other Side
Prince of
Darkness
Ammie, Come Home
Sons of the Wolf
The Master of
Blacktower
This book is a work of
fiction. The characters, incidents, and dialogue are drawn from the
author's imagination and are not to be construed as real. Any
resemblance to actual events or persons, living or dead, is entirely
coincidental.
WINGS
OF THE FALCON. Copyright © 1977 by Barbara Michaels.
All rights reserved under International and Pan-American Copyright
Conventions. By payment of the required fees, you have been granted the
non-exclusive, non-transferable right to access and read the text of
this e-book on-screen. No part of this text may be reproduced,
transmitted, down-loaded, decompiled, reverse engineered, or stored in
or introduced into any information storage and retrieval system, in any
form or by any means, whether electronic or mechanical, now known or
hereinafter invented, without the express written permission of
PerfectBound™.
|